summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-23 06:47:23 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-23 06:47:23 -0800
commit66ed6a305cac06815186b0b99adf257f6f75df13 (patch)
treef601bfd21d5d9a869aa88d7b51468ebe9acffebd
parentf3970d5f8753e4fe9f15976707065af03fdbf533 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/64825-0.txt11341
-rw-r--r--old/64825-0.zipbin241236 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/64825-h.zipbin694162 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/64825-h/64825-h.htm14291
-rw-r--r--old/64825-h/images/cover.jpgbin225251 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/64825-h/images/frontispiece.jpgbin215116 -> 0 bytes
9 files changed, 17 insertions, 25632 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..48cc0fa
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #64825 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/64825)
diff --git a/old/64825-0.txt b/old/64825-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 7150f87..0000000
--- a/old/64825-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11341 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of Practicable Socialism, by Samuel Agustus
-Barnett
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: Practicable Socialism
- New Series
-
-Author: Samuel Agustus Barnett
- Henrietta Octavia Weston Barnett
-
-Release Date: March 15, 2021 [eBook #64825]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-Produced by: Fay Dunn and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
- https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
- generously made available by The Internet Archive)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM ***
-
-
-
-
-[Transcriber's note: Italic font is indicated by _underscores_.]
-
-
- SOCIOLOGY, SOCIALISM, ETC.
-
-THE ANNUAL CHARITIES REGISTER AND DIGEST: being a Classified Register of
-Charities in or available for the Metropolis, together with a Digest of
-Information respecting the Legal and Voluntary Means for the Prevention
-and Relief of Distress and the Improvement of the Condition of the Poor.
-8vo, 5s. net.
-
-UNEMPLOYMENT: a Problem of Industry. By W. H. BEVERIDGE, Stowell Civil
-Law Fellow of University College, Oxford, 1902-1909. 8vo, 9s. net.
-
-EXPERIMENTS IN INDUSTRIAL ORGANISATION. By EDWARD CADBURY. With a
-Preface by W. J. ASHLEY, M.A. Crown 8vo, 5s. net.
-
-TOWN PLANNING, with Special Reference to the Birmingham Schemes. By
-GEORGE CADBURY, Jun. With Diagrams, Photographs, Charts, and Maps. 8vo,
-7s. 6d. net.
-
-SOCIAL WORK. By the Rev. W. E. CHADWICK, D.D., B.Sc., Vicar of St.
-Peter’s, St. Albans. Crown 8vo, 1s. net.
-
-SOCIOLOGY APPLIED TO PRACTICAL POLITICS. By J. BEATTIE CROZIER, LL.D.
-8vo, 9s. net.
-
-ANTI-CHRISTIAN SOCIALISM. By the Rev. C. L. DRAWBRIDGE, M.A. Crown 8vo,
-paper covers, 6d. net; cloth, 1s. net.
-
-REGENERATION: being an Account of the Social Work of the Salvation Army
-in Great Britain. By Sir RIDER HAGGARD. Cr. 8vo, 2s. 6d. net.
-
-THE INDUSTRIAL SYSTEM. By JOHN ATKINSON HOBSON, M.A. 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.
-
-TWENTIETH CENTURY SOCIALISM: What It Is Not; What It Is; How It May
-Come. By EDMOND KELLY, M.A., F.G.S. Crown 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.
-
-AN INQUIRY INTO SOCIALISM. By THOMAS KIRKUP, LL.D. Cr. 8vo, 4s. 6d. net.
-
-THE REAL DEMOCRACY (First Essays of the Rota Club). By J. E. F. MANN, N.
-J. SIEVERS and R. W. T. COX. Crown 8vo, 4s. 6d. net.
-
-CHARITABLE RELIEF. By the Rev. CLEMENT F. ROGERS, M.A. Crown 8vo, 2s.
-6d. net.
-
-INDUSTRIAL EFFICIENCY: a Comparative Study of Industrial Life in
-England, Germany and America. By ARTHUR SHADWELL, M.A., M.D. Crown 8vo,
-6s. net.
-
-LECTURES ON THE INDUSTRIAL REVOLUTION OF THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY IN
-ENGLAND. Popular Addresses, Notes and other Fragments. By ARNOLD
-TOYNBEE. With a Reminiscence of the Author by LORD MILNER. Crown 8vo,
-2s. 6d. net.
-
-THE FAMILY AND THE NATION: a Study in Natural Inheritance and Social
-Responsibility. By WILLIAM CECIL DAMPIER WHEETHAM, M.A. F.R.S., and
-CATHERINE DURNING WHEETHAM. 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.
-
-HEREDITY AND SOCIETY. By WILLIAM CECIL DAMPIER WHEETHAM, M.A., F.R.S.,
-and CATHERINE DURNING WHEETHAM. 8vo, 6s. net.
-
-TRADES FOR LONDON BOYS AND HOW TO ENTER THEM. Compiled by the
-APPRENTICESHIP AND SKILLED EMPLOYMENT ASSOCIATION, Westminster. 8vo,
-paper covers, 1s. net.
-
-TRADES FOR LONDON GIRLS AND HOW TO ENTER THEM. Compiled by the
-APPRENTICESHIP AND SKILLED EMPLOYMENT ASSOCIATION, Westminster. 8vo, 1s.
-net.
-
-
- BY SIDNEY WEBB.
-
-LONDON EDUCATION. Crown 8vo, 2s. 6d. net.
-
-GRANTS IN AID: A Criticism and a Proposal. 8vo, 5s. net.
-
-
- BY SIDNEY AND BEATRICE WEBB.
-
-THE HISTORY OF TRADE UNIONISM. With Map and full Bibliography of the
-Subject. 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.
-
-INDUSTRIAL DEMOCRACY: a Study in Trade Unionism. 8vo, 12s. net.
-
-ENGLISH POOR LAW POLICY. 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.
-
-THE BREAK-UP OF THE POOR LAW: being Part I. of the Minority Report of
-the Poor Law Commission. Edited, with Introduction. 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.
-
-THE PUBLIC ORGANISATION OF THE LABOUR MARKET: being Part II. of the
-Minority Report of the Poor Law Commission. Edited, with Introduction.
-8vo, 5s. net.
-
-PROBLEMS OF MODERN INDUSTRY: Essays. 8vo, 5s. net.
-
-THE HISTORY OF LIQUOR LICENSING IN ENGLAND, PRINCIPALLY FROM 1700 TO
-1830. Crown 8vo, 2s. 6d. net.
-
-THE STATE AND THE DOCTOR. 8vo, 6s. net.
-
-THE PREVENTION OF DESTITUTION. 8vo, 6s. net.
-
-ENGLISH LOCAL GOVERNMENT FROM THE REVOLUTION TO THE MUNICIPAL
-CORPORATIONS ACT. 8vo.
-
-THE PARISH AND THE COUNTY. 16s. net.
-
-THE MANOR AND THE BOROUGH. 2 vols. 25s. net.
-
-THE STORY OF THE KING’S HIGHWAY. 7s. 6d. net.
-
-
- BY WILLIAM MORRIS.
-
-A DREAM OF JOHN BALL, AND A KING’S LESSON. 16mo, 2s. net. _Pocket
-Edition._ Fcap. 8vo, gilt top, 2s. net; leather, 3s. net.
-
-NEWS FROM NOWHERE; or, An Epoch of Rest. Being some Chapters from an
-Utopian Romance. Fcap. 8vo, paper covers, 1s. net; gilt top, cloth, 2s.
-net; leather, 3s. net.
-
-
- LONGMANS, GREEN AND CO., 39 PATERNOSTER ROW, LONDON, E.C.,
- NEW YORK, BOMBAY, CALCUTTA, AND MADRAS.
-
-
-
-
- PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM
-
-
-
-
- +------------------------------------------------------+
- | THE MAKING OF THE BODY. |
- | |
- | BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT. |
- | _With 113 Illustrations._ _Crown 8vo_, 1_s._ 9_d._ |
- | |
- | ---------- |
- | |
- | LONGMANS, GREEN AND CO., |
- | LONDON, NEW YORK, BOMBAY, CALCUTTA, AND MADRAS. |
- +------------------------------------------------------+
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration: PORTRAITS OF CANON AND MRS. S. A. BARNETT
-
- Painted by Sir Hubert von Herkomer, R.A.; given to them by many
- friends, and presented by the Right Honourable Herbert H. Asquith,
- K.C., M.P., at Toynbee Hall, on November 20th, 1908.]
-
-
-
-
- PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM
-
- _NEW SERIES_
-
- BY
- CANON S. A. BARNETT (THE LATE)
- AND
- MRS. S. A. BARNETT
-
- _WITH FRONTISPIECE_
-
-
- LONGMANS, GREEN AND CO.
- 39 PATERNOSTER ROW, LONDON
- FOURTH AVENUE & 30TH STREET, NEW YORK
- BOMBAY, CALCUTTA, AND MADRAS
- 1915
-
-
-
-
- INTRODUCTION.
-
-
-The first edition of PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM was printed in 1888, the
-second in 1894. Now, twenty-one years afterwards, a new series is
-issued, but the most important of the two authors, alas! has left the
-world, and it therefore falls to me to write the introduction alone.
-
-In selecting the papers for this volume, out of a very great deal of
-material, the principle followed has been to print those which deal with
-reforms yet waiting to be fully accomplished. It would have been easier
-and perhaps pleasanter to have taken the subjects dealt with in the
-previous volumes, and by grouping subsequent papers together, have shown
-how many of the reforms then indicated as desirable and “practicable,”
-had now become accepted and practised. But so to do would not have been
-in harmony with our feelings. My husband counted the sin of “numbering
-the people” as due to a debased moral outlook, and the contemplation of
-“results” as tending to hinder nobler efforts after that which is deeper
-than can be calculated. Of him it is truthful to quote “His soul’s wings
-never furled”.
-
-The papers have been grouped in subject sections, and though the ideas
-have for many years been set forth by him in various publications, in
-most instances the writings here reproduced are under six years old. In
-a few cases, however, I have used quite an old paper, thinking it gave,
-with hopeful vision, thoughts which later lost their freshness as they
-became accomplished facts.
-
-The book begins with _The Religion of the People_ and _Cathedral
-Reform_, for Canon Barnett held with unvarying certainty that--to quote
-his own words--“there is no other end worth reaching than the knowledge
-of God, which is eternal life,”--and that “organizations are only
-machinery of which the driving power is human love, and of which the
-object is the increase of the knowledge of God”. To this test our plans
-and undertakings were constantly brought. “Does our work give ‘life’ by
-bringing men nearer to God and nearer to one another.” “In the knowledge
-of what ‘life’ is, let us put our work to the test.” “Do the Church
-Services release divine hopes buried under the burden of daily cares?”
-“Do the new buildings refine manners?” “Does higher teaching tend to
-higher thoughts about duty?” “Does our relief system help to heal a
-broken dignity as well as to comfort a sufferer?” “Do our entertainments
-develop powers for enjoying the best in humanity past and present?”
-
-That the Church should be reformed to make it the servant of all who
-would lead the higher life, was the hope he cherished throughout many
-years spent in strenuous efforts to obtain a social betterment. He
-writes: “The great mass of the people, because they stand apart from all
-religious communions, may have in them a religious sense, but their
-thought of God is not worked through their emotions into their daily
-lives. They do not know what they worship, and so do not say with the
-psalmist, ‘My soul is athirst for the living god,’ or say with Joseph,
-‘How can I do this great wickedness, and sin against God?’ The
-spiritualization of life being necessary to human peace and happiness,
-the problem which is haunting this generation is how to spiritualize the
-forces which are shaping the future.”
-
-My husband urged that the reform of the Church would tend to solve that
-problem. “The Church by its history and organization has a power no
-other agency can wield. If more freedom could be given to its system of
-government and services, if it could be made directly expressive of the
-highest aspirations of the people, it is difficult to exaggerate the
-effect it might have. In every parish a force would be brought to bear
-which might kindle thought, so that it would reach out to the highest
-object; which might stir love, so that men would forget themselves in
-devotion to the whole; and which might create a hope wherein all would
-find rest. The first need of the age is an increase of Spirituality, and
-the means of obtaining it is a Reformed Church.”
-
-The papers under _Recreation_ might almost as well have been placed in
-the Education Section, so strongly did my husband feel that recreation
-should educate. Only a few months before his illness he wrote: “The
-claim of education is now primarily to fit a child to earn a living, and
-therefore he is taught to read and write and learn a trade. But if it
-were seen that it is equally important to fit a child to use well his
-leisure, many changes would be made.” And such changes he argued would
-increase, not lessen, the joy of holidays, an opinion which my
-experience as Chairwoman of the Country-side Committee of the Children’s
-Country Holiday Fund abundantly supports.
-
-In the Section for _Settlements_ and their work, only three papers will
-be found, for so much has been written and spoken of Toynbee Hall and
-kindred centres of usefulness, that it seems almost unnecessary to
-reproduce the same thoughts. Yet in view of the fact that questions are
-often asked as to the genesis of the idea, I have put in one of the
-first papers (1884) that my husband wrote after we had had nine years’
-experience of the work of University men among the poorest and saddest
-people, in which he suggested the scheme of Toynbee Hall, and also a
-paper of mine written nine years after its foundation, in which I chat
-of the _Beginnings of Toynbee Hall_.
-
-Between the first and the third paper there is a stretch of twenty-one
-busy years, 1884-1905, and the article bears the marks of Canon
-Barnett’s intense realization of the need of higher education, and his
-almost passionate demand for it on behalf of the industrial classes.
-“Social Reform,” he writes, “will soon be the all-absorbing interest as
-the modern realization of the claims of human nature and the growing
-power of the people will not tolerate many of the present conditions of
-industrial life.... The well-being of the future depends on the methods
-by which reform proceeds. Reforms in the past have often been
-disappointing. They have been made in the rights of one class, and have
-ended in the assertion of rights over another class. They have been made
-by force, and produced reaction. They have been done for the people, not
-by the people, and have never been assimilated. The method by which
-knowledge and industry may co-operate has yet to be tried, and one way
-in which to bring about such co-operation is the way of University
-Settlements.”
-
-So many are the changes which affect _Poverty and Labour_, so rapidly
-have they come about, and so keen and living an interest did Canon
-Barnett feel with every step that the great army of the disinherited
-took towards social justice, that it has been difficult to select which
-papers on which subject to reprint, but I have chosen the most
-characteristic, and also those connected with the reforms which most
-influenced character and life. In this Section also some of the many
-papers which Canon Barnett wrote on Poor Law Reform have been admitted.
-I know that the activities of the Fabian Society and the “Break up of
-the Poor Law” organization have rendered some of the ideas familiar, but
-many of the Reforms he advocated are not yet accomplished, and to those
-who are conversant with the subject, his large, sane, unsensational
-statement of the case, as it appeared to him, will be welcome,--all the
-more so because for nearly thirty years he was a member of the
-Whitechapel Board of Guardians, the Founder of the Poor Law Conferences,
-and had both initiated and carried out large administrative reforms. He
-also had a very deep and probing tenderness for the character of
-individual paupers, and a sensitive shrinking from wounding their
-self-respect or lowering the dignity of their humanity, an attitude of
-mind which influenced his relation to schemes sometimes made by paper
-legislators who considered the poor in “the lump” instead of “one by
-one”.
-
-Of the Social Service Section there is but little to say. _The Real
-Social Reformer_ contains guiding principles, _The Mission of Music_ is
-an interesting and curious output from a man with no ear for tune or
-time or harmony, and _The Church on Town Planning_ is but an example of
-how eagerly he desired that the Church should guide as well as minister
-to the people. _Where Charity Fails_ is another plea that the kindly
-intentioned should not injure the character of the recipient, and that
-the crucial question, “Is our aim the self-extinction of our
-organization,” should be borne in mind by the Governors and enthusiastic
-supporters of even the best philanthropic agencies.
-
-The _Educational_ Section might have been much larger, but the papers
-selected bear on the three sides of the subject which my husband in
-recent years thought to be the most important. _The Equipment of the
-Teachers_ but carried on the ideals towards which he ever pressed, from
-the days when as a Curate at St. Mary’s, Bryanston Square, he taught the
-monitors of the Church Schools, through the days when the first London
-Pupil Teachers’ Centre had its birthplace in Toynbee Hall, through the
-days when he established the Scholarship Committee whose work was to
-select suitable pupil teachers and support them through their University
-careers in Oxford and Cambridge, through the days when he rejoiced at
-the abandonment of the vast system of pupil teachers,--to the days when
-he demanded that teachers for the poorest children should be called from
-the cultivated classes, and take their calling as a mission, to be
-recognized and remunerated, as an honoured profession undertaken by
-those anxious to render Social Service.
-
-The article _Justice to Young Workers_ deals with the vexed question of
-Continuation Schools, attendance at which Canon Barnett thought should
-be compulsory, since he believed that economic conditions would more
-readily change to meet legally established educational demands than was
-possible, when, in the interwoven complexity of business, one unwilling
-or ten indifferent employers could throw any complicated voluntary
-organization out of gear.
-
-The two articles on _Oxford and the Working People_ and _A Race between
-Education and Ruin_ only inadequately represent the thought he gave to
-the matter, or the deeply rooted, great branched hopes he had entwined
-round the reform of the University,--but for many reasons he felt it
-wiser to stand aside and watch younger men wield the sword of the pen.
-So his writings on this subject are few, but that matters less than
-otherwise it would have done, because the group of friends who have
-decided to establish “Barnett House” in his memory are among those in
-Oxford who shared his work, cared for his plans, and believed in his
-visions, created as they were on knowledge of the industrial workers and
-the crippling conditions of their lives. So as “Barnett House” is
-established and grows strong, and in conjunction with the Toynbee Hall
-Social Service Fellowship will bring the University and Industrial
-Centres into closer and ever more sympathetic relationship, it is not
-past the power of a faith, however puny and wingless, to imagine that
-the reforms my husband saw “darkly” may be seen “face to face,” and in
-realization show once more how “the Word can be made flesh”.
-
-In some Sections I have included papers from my pen, not because I think
-they add much to the value of the book, but because my husband insisted
-on the previous volumes of PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM being composed of our
-joint writings as well as illustrative of our joint work, or to use his
-words in the 1888 volume: “Each Essay is signed by the writer, but in
-either case they represent our common thought, as all that has been done
-represents our common work”.
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
- _17 July, 1915._
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS
-
-
- PAGE
- RELIGION.
-
- 1. Religion of the People _Canon Barnett_ 1
-
- 2. Cathedral Reform _Canon Barnett_ 17
-
- 3. Cathedrals and Modern Needs _Canon Barnett_ 32
-
- RECREATION.
-
- 4. The Children’s Country Holiday Fun’ _Mrs. S. A. Barnett_ 41
-
- 5. Recreation of the People _Canon Barnett_ 53
-
- 6. Hopes of the Hosts _Mrs. S. A. Barnett_ 70
-
- 7. Easter Monday on Hampstead Heath _Canon Barnett_ 74
-
- 8. Holidays and Schooldays _Canon Barnett_ 77
-
- The Failure of Holidays _Canon Barnett_ 83
-
- 9. Recreation in Town and Country _Mrs. S. A. Barnett_ 89
-
- SETTLEMENTS.
-
- 10. Settlements of University Men in _Canon Barnett_ 96
- Great Towns
-
- 11. The Beginnings of Toynbee Hall _Mrs. S. A. Barnett_ 107
-
- 12. Twenty-one Years of University _Canon Barnett_ 121
- Settlements
-
- POVERTY AND LABOUR.
-
- 13. The Ethics of the Poor Law _Mrs. S. A. Barnett_ 132
-
- 14. Poverty, Its Cause and Cure _Canon Barnett_ 143
-
- 15. Babies of the State _Mrs. S. A. Barnett_ 150
-
- 16. Poor Law Reform _Canon Barnett_ 167
-
- 17. The Unemployed _Mrs. S. A. Barnett_ 178
-
- 18. The Poor Law Report _Canon Barnett_ 184
-
- 19. Widows with Children under the Poor _Mrs. S. A. Barnett_ 203
- Law
-
- 20. The Press and Charitable Funds _Canon Barnett_ 215
-
- 21. What is Possible in Poor Law Reform _Canon Barnett_ 222
-
- 22. Charity up to Date _Canon Barnett_ 230
-
- 23. What Labour Wants _Canon Barnett_ 241
-
- 24. Our Present Discontents _Canon Barnett_ 246
-
- SOCIAL SERVICE.
-
- 25. Of Town Planning _Mrs. S. A. Barnett_ 261
-
- 26. The Mission of Music _Canon Barnett_ 276
-
- 27. The Real Social Reformer _Canon Barnett_ 288
-
- 28. Where Charity Fails _Canon Barnett_ 294
-
- 29. Landlordism up to Date _Canon Barnett_ 297
-
- 30. The Church and Town Planning _Canon Barnett_ 301
-
- EDUCATION.
-
- 31. The Teachers’ Equipment _Canon Barnett_ 307
-
- 32. Oxford University and the Working _Canon Barnett_ 314
- People
-
- 33. Justice to Young Workers _Canon Barnett_ 320
-
- 34. A Race between Education and Ruin _Canon Barnett_ 327
-
-
-
-
- SECTION I.
-
- RELIGION.
-
-The Religion of the People--Cathedral Reform--Cathedrals and Modern
-Needs.
-
-
-
-
- THE RELIGION OF THE PEOPLE.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- July, 1907.
-
- [1] From the “Hibbert Journal”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-The people are not to be found in places of worship; “the great masses,”
-as Mr. Booth says, “remain apart from all forms of religious communion”.
-This statement is admitted as true, but yet another statement is
-continually made and also admitted, that “the people are at heart
-religious”. What is meant by this latter statement? The people are
-certainly not inclined to assert their irreligion. Mr. Henderson, who as
-a labour leader speaks with authority, says, “I can find no evidence of
-a general desire among the workers to repudiate the principles of
-Christianity”. And from my own experience in East London I can testify
-to the growth of greater tolerance and of greater respect for the
-representatives of religion. Processions with banners and symbols are
-now common, parsons are elected on public bodies, and religious
-organizations are enlisted in the army of reform. But this feature of
-modern conditions is no proof that men and women are at heart religious.
-It may only imply a more respectful indifference, a growth in manners
-rather than in spiritual life. Does the statement mean that the people
-are kind, and moved by the public spirit? This again is true. There is
-widely spread kindness: rough lads are generous--one I knew gave up his
-place to make room for a mate whose need was greater; weak and weary
-women watch all night by a neighbour’s sick-bed; a poor family heartily
-welcomes an orphan child; workmen suffer and endure private loss for the
-sake of fellow-workmen. The kindness is manifest; but kindness is no
-evidence of the presence of religion. Kindness may, indeed, be a deposit
-of religion, a habit inherited from forefathers who drew into themselves
-love from the Source of love, or it may be something learnt in the
-common endurance of hardships. Kindness, generosity, public spirit
-cannot certainly be identified with the religion which has made human
-beings feel joy in sacrifice and given them peace in the pains of death.
-
-Before, however, we conclude that the non-church-going people are
-religious or not religious, it may be well to be clear as to what is
-meant by religion. I would suggest as a definition that religion is
-thought about the Higher-than-self worked through the emotions into the
-acts of daily life. This definition involves three constituents: (1)
-There must be use of thought--the power of mental concentration--so
-that the mind may break through the obvious and the conventional.
-(2) There must be a sense of a not-self which is higher than
-self--knowledge of a Most High whose presence convicts the self of
-shortcoming and draws it upward. (3) There must be such a realization
-of this not-self--such a form, be it image, doctrine, book, or life--as
-will warm the emotions and so make the Higher-than-self tell on every
-act and experience of daily life. These constituents are, I think, to
-be found in all religions. The religious man is he who, knowing what
-is higher than himself, so worships this Most High that he is stirred
-to do His will in word and deed. The Mohammedan is he who, recognizing
-the Highest to be power, worships the All-powerful of Mohammed, whom in
-fear he obeys, and with the sword forces others to obey. The Christian
-is he who, recognizing the Most High to be love, worships Christ,
-and for love of Christ is loving to all mankind. Are these three
-constituents of religion to be found among the people?
-
-1. They are using their powers of thought. There is a distinct
-disposition to think about unseen things. The Press which circulates
-most widely has found copy in what it calls Mr. Campbell’s “New
-Theology”. The “Clarion” newspaper has published week after week letters
-and articles which deal with the meaning of God. There is increasing
-unrest under conditions which crib and cabin the mind; men and women are
-becoming conscious of more things in heaven and earth than they can see
-and feel and eat. They have a sense that the modern world has become
-really larger than the old world, and they resent the teaching which
-commits them to one position or calling. They have, too, become
-critical, so that, using their minds, they measure the professions of
-church-goers. Mr. Haw has collected in his book, “Christianity and the
-Working Classes,” many workmen’s opinions on this subject. Witness after
-witness shows that he has been thinking, comparing things heard and
-things professed with things done. It is not just indifference or
-self-indulgence which alienates the people from church or chapel or
-mission; it is the insincerity or inconsistency which they themselves
-have learnt to detect. Huxley said long ago that the greatest gift of
-science to the modern world was not to be found in the discoveries which
-had increased its power and its comfort, so much as in the habit of more
-scientific thinking which it had made common.
-
-The people share this gift and have become critical. They criticize all
-professions, theological or political. They criticize the Bible, and the
-very children in the schools have become rationalists. They also
-construct, and there are few more interesting facts of the time than the
-strength of trades unions, co-operative and friendly societies, which
-they have organized. Even unskilled labour, ever since the great Dock
-strike, has shown its power to conceive methods of amelioration, and to
-combine for their execution. The first constituent of religion, the
-activity of thought, is thus present amid the non-church-going
-population.
-
-2. This thought is, I think, directed towards a Higher-than-self; it,
-that is to say, goes towards goodness. I would suggest a few instances.
-Universal homage is paid to the character of Christ. He, because of His
-goodness, is exalted above all other reformers, and writers who are
-bitter against Christianity reverence His truth and good-will. Popular
-opinion respects a good man whatever be his creed or party; it may not
-always be instructed as to the contents of goodness, but at elections
-its votes incline to follow the lead of the one who seems good, and that
-is sometimes the neighbouring publican whose kindness and courtesy are
-experienced. In social and political thought the most significant and
-strongest mark is the ethical tendency. Few proposals have now a chance
-of a hearing if they do not appeal to a sense of justice. Right has won
-at any rate a verbal victory over might. In late revivals there has been
-much insistence on the need of better living, on temperance, on payment
-of debts and fulfilment of duty, and the reprints which publishers find
-it worth their while to publish are penny books of Seneca, Marcus
-Aurelius, and other writers on morals.
-
-People generally--unconsciously often--have a sense of goodness, or
-righteousness, as something which is higher than themselves. They are in
-a way dissatisfied with their own selfishness, and also with a state of
-society founded on selfishness. There is a widely spread expectation of
-a better time which will be swayed by dominant goodness. The people have
-thus, in some degree, the second constituent of religion, in that they
-have the thought that the High and Mighty which inhabits Eternity is
-good.
-
-3. When, however, we come to the third constituent, we have at once to
-admit that the non-church-going population has no means of realizing the
-Most High in a form which sustains and inspires its action. It has no
-close or personal touch or communion with this goodness; no form which,
-like a picture or like a common meal, by its associations of memory or
-hope rouses its feelings; nothing which, holding the thought, stirs the
-emotions and works the thought into daily life. The forms of religion,
-the Churches, the doctrines, the ritual, the sacraments, which meant so
-much to their fathers and to some of their neighbours, mean nothing to
-them. They have lost touch with the forms of religious thought as they
-have not lost touch with the forms of political thought.
-
-Forms are the clothes of thought. Forms are lifeless, and thought is
-living. Unless the forms are worn every day they cease to fit the
-thought, as left-off clothes cease to fit the body. English citizens who
-have gone on wearing the old forms of political thought can therefore go
-on talking and acting as if the King ruled to-day as Queen Elizabeth
-ruled 300 years ago, but these non-church-going folk, who for
-generations have left off wearing the forms of religious thought, cannot
-use the words about the Most High which the Churches and preachers use.
-They have breathed an atmosphere charged by science--they are
-rationalists, they have a vision of morality and goodness exceeding that
-advocated by many of the Churches. They have themselves created great
-societies, and their votes have made and unmade governments. When,
-therefore, they regard the Churches, the doctrines of preachers, and all
-the forms of religion, not as those to whom by use they are familiar or
-by history illuminated, but as strangers, they see what seem to them
-stiff services, irrational doctrine, disorganized and unbusinesslike
-systems, and the self-assertion of priests and ministers. They, with
-their yearnings to touch goodness, find nothing in these forms which
-makes them say, “There, that is what I mean,” and go on stirred in their
-hearts. They who have learnt to think turn away sadly or scornfully from
-teaching such as that of the Salvation Army about blood and fire, where
-emotion is without thought. Those who manage their own affairs resent
-membership in religious organizations where all is managed for them.
-They want a name for the Most High of whom they think as above and
-around themselves, but somehow the doctrines about Christ, whom they
-respect for His work 2000 years ago, do not stir them up as if He were a
-present power. The working classes, says Dr. Fairbairn in his “Religion
-in History and Modern Life,” are alienated because “the Church has lost
-adaptation to the environment in which it lives”.
-
-Perhaps, however, some one may say, “Forms are unimportant”. This may be
-true so far as regards a few rarely constituted minds, but the mass of
-men are seldom moved except through some human or humanized form. The
-elector may have his principles, but it is the candidate he cheers, it
-is his photograph he carries, it is his presence which rouses
-enthusiasm, and it is politicians’ names by which parties are called.
-The Russian peasant may say his prayers, but it is the ikon--the image
-dear to his fathers--which rouses him to do or to die. The Jews had no
-likeness of Jehovah, but the book of the law represented to them the
-thought and memories of their heart, and they bound its words to their
-foreheads, their poets were stirred to write psalms in its praise, and
-by the emotions it raised its teaching was worked into their daily acts.
-A non-religious writer in the “Clarion” bears witness to the same fact
-when he says, “All effective movements must have creeds. It is
-impossible to satisfy the needs of any human mind or heart without some
-form of belief.” The Quaker who rejects so many forms has made a form of
-no-form, and his simple manner of speech, his custom of dress or
-worship, often moves him to his actions.
-
-Mr. Gladstone bears testimony to the place of form in religion. “The
-Church,” he says, “presented to me Christianity under an aspect in which
-I had not yet known it, ... its ministry of symbols, its channels of
-grace, its unending line of teachers forming from the Head a sublime
-construction based throughout on historic fact, uplifting the idea of
-the community in which we live, and of the access which it enjoys
-through the living way to the presence of the Most High.”
-
-Mr. Gladstone found in the Anglican Church a form of access to the Most
-High, and through this Church the thoughts of the Most High were worked
-into his daily life. Others through the Bible, the sacraments, humanity,
-or through some doctrine of Christ have found like means of access.
-Forms are essential to religion. Forms, indeed, have often become the
-whole of religion, so that people who have honoured images or words or
-names have forgotten goodness and justice--they wash the cup and platter
-and forget mercy and judgment; they say “Lord, Lord,” and do not the
-will of the Lord. Forms have often become idols, but the point I urge is
-that for the majority of mankind forms are necessary to religion. “Tell
-me thy name,” was the cry of Jacob, when all night he wrestled with an
-unknown power which condemned his life of selfish duplicity; and every
-crisis in Israelitish history is marked by the revelation of a new name
-for the Most High. The Samaritans do not know what they worship; the
-Jews know what they worship,--was the rebuke of Christ to a wayward and
-ineffective nation. Even those Athenians to whom God was the Unknown God
-had to erect an altar to that God.
-
-The great mass of the people, because they have no form and stand apart
-from all religious communions, may have in them a religious sense, but
-their thought of God is not worked through their emotions into their
-daily lives. They do not know what they worship, and so do not say with
-the Psalmist, “My soul is athirst for the living God,” or say with
-Joseph, “How can I do this wickedness, and sin against God?” They have
-much sentiment about brotherhood, and they talk of the rights of all
-men; but they are not driven as St. Paul was driven to the service of
-their brothers, irrespective of class, or nation, or colour. They have
-not the zeal which says, “Woe is me if I preach not the Gospel”. They
-endure suffering with patience and meet death with submission, but they
-do not say, “I shall awake after His likeness and be satisfied”. The
-majority of English citizens would in an earthquake behave as brave men,
-but they have not the faith of the negroes who in the midst of such
-havoc sang songs of praise.
-
-The three constituents I included in the definition are all, I submit,
-necessary. Thought without form does not rouse the emotions. Form
-without thought is idolatry, and is fatal to growth. Emotion without
-thought has no abiding or persistent force. Religion is the thought of a
-Higher-than-self worked through the emotions into daily life.
-
-With this definition in mind I now sum up my impressions. The religion
-of the majority of the people is, I think, not such as enables them to
-say, “Here I take my stand. This course of life I can and will follow.
-This policy must overcome the world.” It is not such either as keeps
-down pride and egotism, and leads them to say as Abram said to Lot, “If
-you go to the right I will go to the left”. It does not make men and
-women anxious to own themselves debtors and to give praise. It does not
-drive them to greater and greater experiments in love; it does not give
-them peace. It is not the spur to action or the solace in distress. It
-has little recognition in daily talk or in the Press. One might, indeed,
-live many years, meet many men, and read many newspapers and not come
-into its contact or realize that England professes Christianity.
-
-When I ask my friends, “How does religion show itself in the actions of
-daily life?” I get no answer. There seems to be no acknowledged force
-arising from the conception of the Most High which restrains, impels, or
-rests men and women in their politics, their business, or their homes.
-There are, I suggest, three infallible signs of the presence of
-religion--calm courage, joyful humility, and a sense of life stronger
-than death. These signs are not obvious among the people.
-
-The condition is not satisfactory. It is not unlike that of Rome in the
-first century. The Roman had then forsaken his old worship of the gods
-in the temples, notwithstanding the official recognition of such worship
-and the many earnest attempts made for its revival. There was then, as
-now, something in the atmosphere of thought which was stronger than
-State or Church. There was then, as now, an interest in teachers of
-goodness who held up a course of conduct far above the conventional, and
-the thoughts of men played amid the new mysteries rising in the East.
-The Romans were restless, without anchorage or purpose. They were not
-satisfied with their bread and games; they walked in a dense shadow, and
-had no light from home. Into their midst came Christianity, giving a new
-name to the Most High, and stirring men’s hearts to do as joyful service
-what the Stoics had taught as dull duty.
-
-In the midst of the English people of to-day there are Churches and
-societies of numerous denominations. Their numbers are legion. In one
-East-London district about a mile square there were, I think, at one
-time over twenty different religious agencies. Their activity is
-twofold. They work from without to within, or from within to
-without--from the environment to the soul, or from the soul to the
-environment.
-
-1. The work from without to within, resolves itself into an endeavour to
-draw the people to join some religious communion. The environment which
-an organization provides counts for much, and influences therefrom
-constantly pass into the inner life. Membership in a Church or
-association with a mission often brings men and women into contact with
-a minister who offers an example of a life devoted to others’ service.
-It opens to them ways of doing good, of teaching the children, of
-visiting the poor, and of joining in efforts for social reform. It
-affords a constant support in a definite course of conduct, and makes a
-regular call on the will to act up to the conventional standard, and it
-brings to bear on everyday action an insistent social pressure which is
-some safety against temptation. Sneers about the dishonesty of religious
-professors are common, but, as a matter of fact, the most honest and
-reputable members of the community are those connected with religious
-bodies.
-
-Those bodies have various characters, with various forms of doctrine and
-of ritual. Human beings, if they are true to themselves, cannot all
-adopt like forms; there are some men and women who find a language for
-their souls in a ritual of colour and sound, there are others who can
-worship only in silence; there are some who are moved by one form of
-doctrine, and others who are moved by another form. Uniformity is
-unnatural to man, and the Act of Religious Uniformity has proved to be
-disastrous to growth of thought and goodwill. Progress through the ages
-is marked by the gradual evolution of the individual, and the strongest
-society is that where there are the most vigorous individualities. If
-this be admitted, it must be admitted also that the growth of vigorous
-denominations, and not uniformity, is also the mark of progress.
-
-But, it may be said, denominations are the cause of half the quarrels
-which divide society, and of half the wars which have decimated mankind.
-This is true enough. The denominations are now hindering the way of
-education, and it was as denominations that Catholics and Protestants
-drowned Europe in thirty years of bloodshed. It is, however, equally
-true to say that nationalities have been the cause of war, and that the
-way of peace is hard, because French, Germans, and British are so
-patriotically concerned for their own rights. Nationalities, however,
-become strong during the period of struggle, and they develop
-characteristics valuable for the whole human family; but the end to
-which the world is moving is not a universal empire under the dominance
-of the strongest, it is to a unity in which the strength of each
-nationality will make possible the federation of the world. In the same
-way denominations pass through a period of strife; they too develop
-their characteristics; and the hope of religion is not in the dominance
-of any one denomination, but in a unity to which each is necessary.
-
-The world learnt slowly the lesson of toleration, and at last the strong
-are feeling more bound to bear with those who differ from themselves.
-There is, however, dawning on the horizon a greater lesson than that of
-toleration of differences: it is that of respect for differences. As
-that lesson prevails, each denomination will not cease to be keen for
-its own belief; it will also be keen to pay honour to every honest
-belief. The neighbourhood of another denomination will be as welcome as
-the discovery of another star to the astronomer, or as the finding of a
-new animal to the naturalist, or as is the presence of another strong
-personality in a company of friends. The Church of the future cannot be
-complete without many chapels. The flock of the Good Shepherd includes
-many folds.
-
-The energy of innumerable Churches and missions is daily strengthening
-denominations, and they seem to me likely to stand out more and more
-clearly in the community. One advantage I would emphasize. Each
-denomination may offer an example of a society of men and women living
-in reasonable accord with its own doctrine--not, I ask you to reflect,
-just a community of fellow-worshippers, but, like the Quakers,
-translating faith into matters of business and the home. Mediaeval
-Christians sold all they had and lived as monks or nuns. Nineteenth
-century Christians were kind to their poorer neighbours. Twentieth
-century Christians might give an example of a society fitting a time
-which has learnt the value of knowledge and beauty, and has seen that
-justice to the poor is better than kindness. Every generation must have
-its own form of Christianity.
-
-The earnest endeavour of so many active men and women to increase the
-strength of their own denomination has therefore much promise: provided
-always, let me say, they do not win recruits by self-assertion, by
-exaggeration, or by the subtle bribery of treats and blankets. Each
-denomination honestly strengthened by additional members is the better
-able to manifest some aspect of the Christian life, and, in response to
-the call of that life, more inclined to reform the doctrines and methods
-which tend to alienate a scientific and democratic generation.
-
-Such denominations are, I submit, those most likely to reform
-themselves, and as they come to offer various examples of a Christian
-society, where wealth is without self-assertion, where poverty is
-without shame, where unemployment and ignorance are prevented by just
-views of human claims, and where joy is “in widest commonalty spread,”
-all the members of the community will in such examples better find the
-name of the Most High, and feel the power of religion. “If,” says Dr.
-Fairbairn, “religion were truly interpreted in the lives of Christian
-men, there is no fear as to its being believed.” “What is wanted is not
-more Christians but better Christians.”
-
-2. The activity of ministers and missionaries is, as I have said,
-twofold. Besides working from without to within by building up
-denominations, it also works from within to without by converting
-individuals. Members of every Church or mission are, in ordinary phrase,
-intent “to save souls”. Their work is not for praise, and is sacred from
-any intrusion. Spirit wrestles with spirit, and power passes by unknown
-ways. Souls are only kindled by souls. Conversion opens blind eyes to
-see the Most High, but it is not in human power to direct the ways of
-conversion. The spirit bloweth where it listeth. There are, however,
-other means by which eyes may be opened at any rate to see, if only
-dimly, and some of these means are under human control. Such a means is
-that which is called higher education or university teaching, or the
-knowledge of the humanities.
-
-I would therefore conclude by calling notice to the much or the little
-which is being done by this higher education. The people are to a large
-extent blind because of the overwhelming glory of the present. They see
-nothing beyond the marvellous revelations of science--its visions of
-possessions and of power, and its triumphs over the forces of nature.
-They are occupied in using the gigantic instruments which are placed at
-the command of the weakest, and they are driven on by some relentless
-pressure which allows no pause on the wayside of the road of life. They
-see power everywhere--power in the aggressive personalities which heap
-money in millions, power in the laboratory, power in the market-place,
-power in the Government; but they do not see anything which satisfies
-the human yearning for something higher and holier; they cannot see the
-God whose truth they feel and whose call they hear. Many of them look to
-the past and surround themselves with the forms of mediaeval days, and
-some go to the country, where, in a land of tender shades and silences,
-they try to commune with the Most High.
-
-But yet the words of John the Baptist rise eternally true, when he said
-to a people anxiously expectant, some with their eyes on the past, and
-some with their eyes on the future, “There standeth one among you”. The
-Most High, that is to say, is to be found, not in the past with its
-mysteries, its philosophies, and its dignity of phrase or ritual, and
-not in the future with its vague hopes of an earthly Paradise, but in
-the present with its hard facts, its scientific methods, its strong
-individualities, and the growing power of the State. The kingdom of
-heaven is at hand; the Highest which every one seeks is in the present.
-It is standing among us, and the one thing wanted is the eye to see.
-
-Mr. Haldane, in the address to the students of Edinburgh University, has
-described the character of the higher teaching as a gospel of the wide
-outlook, as a means of giving a deeper sympathy and a keener insight, as
-offering a vision of the eternal which is here and now showing its
-students what is true in present realities, and inspiring them with a
-loyalty to the truth as devoted as that of tribesmen to their chief.
-This sort of teaching, he says, brings down from the present realities,
-or from a Sinai ever accompanying mankind, “the Higher command,” with
-its eternal offer of life and blessing--that is to say, it opens men’s
-eyes to see in the present the form of the Most High. Higher education
-is thus a part of religious activity.
-
-I am glad to know that my conclusion is shared by Dr. Fairbairn, who,
-speaking of the worker in our great cities, and of his alienation from
-religion, says, “The first thing to be done is to enrich and ennoble his
-soul, to beget in him purer tastes and evoke higher capacities”.
-
-I will conclude by calling notice to the much or the little which is
-being done to open the people’s eyes by means of higher education. I
-fear it is “the little”. There are many classes and many teachers for
-spreading skill, there are some which increase interest in nature; there
-are few--very few--which bring students into touch with the great minds
-and thoughts of all countries and all ages--very few, that is, classes
-for the humanities. For want of this the souls of the people are poor,
-and their capacities dwarfed; they cannot see that modern knowledge has
-made the Bible a modern book, or how the bells of a new age have rung in
-the “Christ that is to be”.
-
-For thirty-four years my wife and I have been engaged in social
-experiments. Many ways have been tried, and always the recognized object
-has been the religion of the people--religion, that is, in the sense
-which I have defined as that faith in the Highest which is the impulse
-of human progress, man’s spur to loving action, man’s rest in the midst
-of sorrow, man’s hope in death.
-
-With the object of preparing the way to this religion, schools have
-been improved, houses have been built and open spaces secured. Holidays
-have been made more healthy, and the best in art has been made more
-common. But, viewing all these efforts of many reformers, I am prepared
-to say that the most pressing need is for higher education. Where such
-education is to begin, what is the meaning of religious education in
-elementary schools, and how it is to be extended, is part of another
-subject. It is enough now if, having as my subject the religion of the
-people, I state my opinion that there is no activity which more surely
-advances religion than the teaching which gives insight, far sight,
-and wide sight. The people, for want of religion, are unstable in
-their policy, joyless in their amusements, and uninspired by any sure
-and certain hope. They have not the sense of sin--in modern language,
-none of that consciousness of unreached ideals which makes men humble
-and earnest. They have not the grace of humility nor the force of a
-faith stronger than death. It may seem a far cry from a teacher’s
-class-room to the peace and power of a Psalmist or of a St. Paul; but,
-as Archbishop Benson said, “Christ is a present Christ, and all of us
-are His contemporaries”. And my own belief is that the eye opened by
-higher education is on the way to find in the present the form of the
-Christ who will satisfy the human longing for the Higher-than-self.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- CATHEDRAL REFORM.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- December, 1898.
-
- [1] From “The Nineteenth Century and After”. By permission of the
-Editor.
-
-
-Cathedrals have risen in popular estimation. They represent the past to
-the small but slowly increasing number of people who now realize that
-there is a past out of which the present has grown. They are recognized
-as interesting historical monuments; their power is felt as an aid to
-worship, and some worshippers who would think their honesty compromised
-by their presence at a church or a chapel, say their prayers boldly in
-the “national” cathedral. A trade-union delegate, who had been present
-at the Congress, was surprised on the following Sunday afternoon to
-recognize in St. Paul’s some of his fellow delegates. No reformer would
-now dare to propose that cathedrals should be secularized.
-
-But neither would any one who considers the power latent in cathedral
-establishments for developing the spiritual side of human nature profess
-himself satisfied. It is not enough that the buildings should be
-restored, so that they may be to-day what they were 400 or 500 years
-ago, nor is it enough that active deans should increase sermons and
-services.
-
-A cathedral has a unique position. It holds the imagination of the
-people. Men who live in the prison of mean cares remember how as
-children their thoughts wandered free amid the lights and shadows of
-tombs, pillars, arches, and recesses. Worshippers face to face with real
-sorrow, who turn aside from the trivialities of ritual, feel that there
-is in the solemn grandeur a power to lift them above their cares.
-
-A cathedral indeed attracts to itself that spiritual longing which,
-perhaps, more than the longing for power or for liberty, is the sign of
-the times. This longing, compared with rival longings, may be as small
-as a mustard-seed, but everywhere men are becoming conscious that things
-within their grasp are not the things they were made to reach. There is
-a heaven for which they are fitted, and which is not far from any one of
-them. They like to hear large words, and to move in large crowds. They
-see that “dreaming” is valuable as well as “doing”. They feel that there
-is a kinship between themselves and the hidden unknown greatness in
-which they live. The ideal leader of the day is a mystic who can be
-practical.
-
-Men turning, therefore, from churches or chapels which are identified
-with narrow views, and from a ritual which has occupied the more vacant
-minds, are prepared to pay respect to the cathedral with its grand
-associations.
-
-And the cathedrals which thus attract to themselves modern hope, and
-become almost the symbol of the day’s movement, are equipped to respond
-to the demand. They have both men and money. They have men qualified to
-serve, and a body of singers qualified to make common the best music,
-and they have endowments varying from £4000 to £10,000 a year.
-
-A cathedral is attractive by its grandeur and its beauty, but it ought
-to be something more than an historic monument. Its staff is ample, and
-is often active, but it ought to be something more than a parish church.
-
-Its government, however, is so hampered that it can hardly be anything
-else, and the energies of the chapter are spent in efforts to follow the
-orders of restoring architects. The building is cleared of innovations
-introduced by predecessors, who had in view use and not art. Its
-deficiencies are supplied, the dreams and intentions of the early
-builders are discovered, and at last a church is completed such as our
-ancestors would have desired.
-
-The self-devotion of deans or canons in producing this result provokes
-admiration from those who in their hearts disapprove. Money is freely
-given, and, what is often harder to do, donations are persistently
-begged. The time and ability of men who have earned a reputation as
-workers, thinkers, or teachers, are spent in completing a monument over
-which antiquaries will quarrel and round which parties of visitors will
-be taken at 6d. a head.
-
-The building has little other use than as a parish church, and the
-ideal, before a chapter, anxious to do its duty, is to have frequent
-communions, services, and sermons, as in the best worked parishes. In
-some cases there is a large response. The communicants are many, but,
-being unknown to one another and to the clergy, they miss the strength
-they might have derived by communicating with their neighbours in their
-own churches. The sermons are sometimes listened to by crowded
-congregations, but the people are often drawn from other places of
-worship, and miss the teaching given by one to whom they are best known.
-But in most cases the response is small. The daily services, supported
-by a large and well-trained choir of men and boys, preceded by a
-dignified procession of vergers and clergy, often help only two or three
-worshippers. Many of the Holy Communions which are announced are not
-celebrated for want of communicants, and the sermons are not always such
-as are suitable for the people.
-
-There are, indeed, special but rare occasions when the cathedral shows
-its possibilities. It may be a choir festival, when 500 or 600 voices
-find space within its walls to give a service for people interested in
-the various parishes. It may be some civic or national function, when
-the Corporation attends in state, or some meeting of an association or
-friendly society, when the church is filled by people drawn from a wide
-area. On all those occasions the fitness of the grand building and fine
-music to meet the needs of the moment is recognized, and the citizens
-are proud of their cathedral.
-
-But generally they are not proud. They think--when they care enough to
-think at all--that a building with such power over their imagination
-ought to be more used, and that such well-paid officials ought to do
-more work. “One canon,” a workman remarked, “ought to do all that is
-done, and the money of the others could be divided among poor curates.”
-The members of the chapter would probably agree as to the need of
-reform. It is not their conservatism, it is the old statutes which stand
-in the way.
-
-These statutes differ in the various cathedrals, but all alike suffer
-from the neglect of the living hand of the popular will which in civil
-matters is always shaping old laws to present needs. Their object seems
-to be not so much to secure energetic action as to prevent aggression.
-Activity, and not indolence, was apparently the danger which threatened
-the Church in those old days.
-
-The Bishop, who is visitor and is called the head of the cathedral,
-cannot officiate--as of right--in divine service; he is not entitled to
-take part in the Holy Communion or to preach during ordinary service.
-
-The Dean governs the church, and has altogether the regulation of the
-services; but he can only preach at the ordinary services at three
-festivals during the year.
-
-The Canons, who preach every Sunday, have no power over the order or
-method of the uses of the church.
-
-The Precentor, who is authorized to select the music and is required to
-take care that the choir be instructed and trained in their parts, must
-not himself give instruction and training.
-
-The Organist, who has to train and instruct the boys, has to do so in
-hours fixed by the Precentor, and in music chosen by him.
-
-An establishment so constituted cannot have the vigour or elasticity or
-unity necessary to adapt cathedrals to modern needs. It affords, as
-Trollope discovered, and as most citizens are aware, a field for the
-play of all sorts of petty rivalries and jealousies. No official can
-move without treading on the other’s rights. Bishops, Deans, and Canons
-hide their feelings under excessive courtesies. Precentors and Organists
-try to settle their rights in the law courts, and the trivialities of
-the Cathedral Close have become proverbial.
-
-The apparent uselessness of buildings so prominent, and of a staff so
-costly, provokes violent criticism. Reformers become revolutionists as
-the Dean, Chapter, and choir daily summon congregations which do not
-appear, and the officials become slovenly and careless as they daily
-perform their duties in an empty church. Sacraments may be offered in
-vain as well as taken in vain, and institutions established for other
-needs which go on, regardless of such needs, are self-condemned.
-
-If the army or navy or any department of the civil service were so
-constituted, the demand for reform would be insistent. “We will not
-endure,” the public voice would proclaim, “that an instrument on whose
-fitness we depend shall be so ineffective. It is not enough that the
-members of the profession are prevented from injuring one another. Our
-concern is not their feelings, but our protection.” It is characteristic
-of the indifference to religious interests that an instrument, so costly
-and so capable of use as a cathedral establishment, has been left to
-rust through so many years, and that the troubles of a Chapter should be
-matter for jokes and not for indignant anger.
-
-A Royal Commission, indeed, was appointed in 1879. It was in the earlier
-years presided over by Archbishop Tait, who showed, both by his constant
-presence and by his lively interest, how deeply he had felt and how much
-he had reflected on this subject. The Commissioners had 128 meetings,
-and issued their final report in 1885; but notwithstanding the humble
-and almost pathetic appeal that something should be “quickly done” to
-remedy the abuses they had discovered, and forward the uses which they
-saw possible, nothing whatever has been done. The position of the
-Cathedrals still mocks the intelligence of the people they exist to
-serve, and the hopes which the spread of education has developed.
-
-The Commissioners recognized the change which had been going on in the
-feeling with regard to the tie which binds together the cathedral and
-the people, and their recommendations lead up, as they themselves
-profess, to “the grand conception of the Bishop of a diocese working
-from his cathedral as a spiritual centre, of the machinery there
-supplied being intended to produce an influence far beyond the cathedral
-precincts, of the capitular body being interested in the whole diocese,
-and of the whole diocese having claims on the capitular body”.
-
-This conception, apart from its technical phraseology, may be taken as
-satisfactory. “A live Cathedral in a live Diocese” is, in the American
-phrase, what all desire. It may be questioned, however, in the light of
-thirteen years’ further experience of growing humanity, whether their
-recommendations would bring the conception much nearer to realization.
-
-Their recommendations are somewhat difficult to generalize. The
-peculiarities and eccentricities in the constitution of each cathedral
-are infinite. Some are on the old foundation, with their Deans,
-Precentors, Chancellors, and Prebendaries. Some date from Henry VIII,
-and have only a Dean and a small number of residentiary Canons. Some
-possess statutes which are hopelessly obsolete, and one claims validity
-for a new body of statutes adopted by itself. Some are under the control
-of the chapter only, some have minor corporations. Some have striven to
-act up to the letter of old orders, some have statutes which are of no
-legal authority. But the difference of constitution of the several
-cathedrals was by no means the only difficulty with which the
-Commissioners had to contend.
-
-There is the difference in their local circumstances. Some, as Bristol
-and Norwich, are in the midst of large populations; some, as Ely and St.
-David’s, are in small towns or amid village people. St. Paul’s, London,
-stands in a position so peculiar that it does not admit of comparison
-with any other cathedral in the kingdom.
-
-There is, further, the difference in wealth and the provision of
-residences for the capitular body; some are rich, and endowed with all
-that is necessary for the performance of their duties; some are
-comparatively poor.
-
-The Commissioners have met these difficulties by considering each
-cathedral separately, and by issuing on each a separate report with
-separate recommendations. There is, however, a character and a principle
-common to all their recommendations, by which a judgment may be formed
-as to how far they would, if adopted, fit cathedrals to the needs of the
-time.
-
-
- I.--CENTRAL AUTHORITY.
-
-The Commissioners were at the outset met by the fact that cathedral
-bodies are stationary institutions in a growing society. They remain as
-they had been formed in distant days: ships stranded high above the
-water-line, in which the services went on as if the passengers and cargo
-had not long found other means of transit. They felt that even if by the
-gigantic effort involved in parliamentary action the cathedrals were
-reformed in order to suit the changed society of the nineteenth century,
-the reforms would not necessarily suit the twentieth century. They saw
-that there must be a central authority always in touch with public
-opinion, which would, year by year, or generation by generation, shape
-uses to needs.
-
-They at once therefore introduced the Cathedral Statutes Bill, by which
-a Cathedral Committee of the Privy Council was to be appointed. The Bill
-did not become law, but the provision was admirable. By this means, just
-as the Committee of Council year by year now issues an Education Code,
-by which changes suggested by experience or inquiry are introduced into
-the educational system of the country, so this new Committee of Council
-was, as occasion required, to issue new statutes to control or develop
-the use of cathedrals.
-
-A living rule was to take the place of the dead hand. Representative
-men, and not the authority of an individual or of an old statute, were
-henceforth to control this State provision for the religious interests
-of the people, as a similar body, with manifest advantage, controls the
-State provision for the secular interests. A Committee of the Privy
-Council made up of the Ministers of the day, being professed Christians,
-together with some experts, is probably the best central authority to be
-devised.
-
-But when the Commissioners further proposed that after the expiration of
-their commission it should remain with Deans and Chapters to submit
-proposals for reform in the use of their cathedrals, they at once
-limited the utility of that central authority. Is it to be conceived
-that Deans and Chapters will promote necessary reforms? Can they be said
-to be in touch with the people? Will they, if they make wise and
-far-reaching suggestions, be trusted as representatives?
-
-The Commission aimed to create a living authority, and then proposed to
-bind it hand and foot; it set up a body of representative men capable of
-daring and of cautious action, and then limited the sphere of such
-action by the decisions of Chapters sometimes concerned for inaction.
-
-The obvious criticism is a testimony to the progress of the last few
-years. Education and the extension of local government have made all
-parties recognise that the voice of the people ought to be trusted, and
-can be trusted. Checks and safeguards are no longer thought to be so
-necessary. Interests once jealously preserved by the classes are now
-known to be safe in the hands of the masses. The Crown, property, order,
-are all safe grounded on the people’s will.
-
-It seems therefore out of place, in the eyes of the present generation,
-to safeguard every change in the use of the cathedral by trusting to
-those proposed by Dean and Chapter. The basis of government must be
-democratic. The people, and not any class, must have the chief voice in
-their control. The County Councils, by means of a committee of professed
-Christians, the Diocesan Council, or any body to which the people of the
-neighbourhood have free access, should be that empowered to bring
-suggestions before the central authority. In the Church of England, of
-which every Englishman is a member, and whose Prayer Book is an Act of
-Parliament, there is no new departure in making the County Councils the
-originating bodies to suggest uses for the cathedral.
-
-With the growing interest to which allusion has been made, it is not
-hard to conceive that the call for suggestions would evoke deeper
-thought and remind members of secular bodies that progress without
-religion is very hollow. Parliament was never more dignified, or better
-fitted for foreign or home policy, than when it held Church government
-to be its most important function. County Councils, called on through
-their committees to submit suggestions for the better use of the
-cathedrals to the Committee of Privy Council, might be elevated by the
-call, and at the same time offer advice valuable in itself, and approved
-by the people as coming from their representatives.
-
-The first essential cathedral reform is therefore a central authority as
-recommended by the Commission, which, on the initiative of really
-representative bodies, shall have power to make statutes and publish
-rules of procedure in the several cathedrals.
-
-
- II.--THE BISHOP AND HIS CATHEDRAL.
-
-The Commissioners were evidently struck by the need of promoting
-“earnest and harmonious co-operation between the Bishop of the Diocese
-and the Cathedral Body”. They have endeavoured, as they reiterate, “to
-define and establish the relation in which the Bishop stands to the
-cathedral, and have made provision for assuring to him his legitimate
-position and influence”. When, however, reference is made to the
-statutes by which they carry out their intention, they seem very
-inadequate: the Bishop, for instance, is to “have the highest place of
-dignity whenever he is present”; “to preach whenever he may think fit”;
-“to hold visitation and exercise any function of his episcopal office
-whenever it may seem good”. He is also empowered to nominate a certain
-number of preachers, and is constituted the authority to give leave of
-absence to the Dean or Canons. The Dean, however, is left responsible
-for the services, in control of the officials, and at liberty to develop
-the use of the church.
-
-It is difficult to see how, by such changes, the cathedral will become
-the spiritual centre from which the Bishop will work his diocese, and
-at the same time have harmonious relations with the Dean and Chapter.
-If he uses his full powers: gathers week by week diocesan organizations
-for worship, for encouragement, and for admonition; if he is often
-present at the services, if he arranges classes for the clergy,
-devotional meetings for church workers; if he institutes sermons and
-lectures on history or on the signs of the times--what is there left
-for the Dean and Canons to do? If he does not do such things, how can
-he make the cathedral the centre of spiritual life?
-
-The Commission was evidently hampered in its recommendation by the
-presence of two dignitaries with somewhat conflicting duties. The simple
-solution is to make the Bishop the Dean. He would then have, as by
-right, all the powers it is proposed to confer upon him; he would
-exercise them at all times, without fear of any collision, and he would
-be in name and fact the sole authority in carrying out the statutes, and
-in controlling all subordinate officials. He would then be able to make
-the cathedral familiar to every soul in his diocese, associate its
-building and services with every organization for the common
-good--secular and religious--with choral societies, clubs, governing
-bodies, friendly societies, missionary associations, and such like. He
-would, in fact, make the cathedral the centre of spiritual life, and he
-would for ever abolish the petty rivalries and jealousies which grow up
-under divided control, and which bring such discredit on cathedral
-management. He would be master, and it is for want of a master that each
-official is now so disposed to magnify the petty privileges of his own
-office. There must be some one who is really big, that others may feel
-their proper place.
-
-
- III.--THE CANONS AND THEIR UTILITY.
-
-The Commission has little to suggest, save that they should be compelled
-to reside for eight months of the year in the neighbourhood of the
-cathedral, and during three months attend morning and evening service,
-each one “habited in a surplice with a hood denoting his degree”. They
-are also, if called on, “to give instruction in theological and
-religious subjects, or discharge some missionary or other useful work”.
-These functions seem hardly sufficient for men who are to receive £800 a
-year, and it is difficult to see what virtue there is in mere technical
-residence, or how daily attendance at service is compatible with the
-performance of regular duties as citizens or teachers.
-
-The Canons would better help in making the cathedral the centre of
-spiritual life if they were the Suffragan Bishops of the diocese. They
-would in this case have to receive appointment by the Bishop, and take
-duties assigned by him. One might be responsible for the order of the
-services, for the care of the property of the cathedral, and for the
-proper control of the officials. He might, indeed, be called the Dean.
-Another might be a lecturer or teacher for the instruction of the
-clergy, and the others might assist the Bishop in those functions which
-now so largely intrude on his time.
-
-The Bishop of the twentieth century looms large in the distance. He has
-a place not given to any of his predecessors, as a democratic age has
-greater need of leaders. He is called to new duties and new functions,
-and the danger is that he who might be lifting his clergy on to a higher
-plane, meeting them soul to soul, and comforting them by his contagious
-piety, will be absorbed in organizing, in business, or in the
-performance of functions. Suffragan Bishops attached to the cathedral
-would relieve him from “such serving tables,” and leave him more free to
-be a father in God to the clergy.
-
-
- IV.--THE FABRIC AND FINANCE.
-
-The care of the fabrics is more and more recognized as a national
-concern. Not long ago there was a proposal put forward by non-Christians
-for their preservation out of local or national resources. The
-Commissioners’ suggestion that a report on their condition should be
-published at frequent intervals shows trust in the readiness of a
-voluntary response, but it is hardly a businesslike recommendation.
-
-The suggestion, already made in this paper, that some local
-representative body, such as the County Council, should be the body
-authorized to initiate reforms in the use of the building, would
-naturally lead to the same body becoming responsible for its proper
-care. It is not hard to conceive of such a growing interest as would
-lead to a ready expenditure under the direction of the best advisers.
-The mass of the people are now shut out from contribution; their pence
-are not valued, and even if their gift “be half their living,” it opens
-to them no place on the restoration committee.
-
-If the cathedral is to be the people’s church, its support must rest on
-the people, and this is only possible by means of the local bodies which
-they control.
-
-Finance, as might be expected in a commercial country, takes up a large
-portion of the report. Failure is again and again attributed to poverty,
-and a schedule shows what is wanting in each cathedral for the proper
-payment of officials. The total per annum is an increase of £10,876. The
-Commissioners’ happy thought was, “Why not get this amount from the
-Ecclesiastical Commissioners, who have profited largely from cathedral
-property?” They forthwith made application and were duly snubbed.
-
-But the suggestion already made in this paper, for the more harmonious
-management of cathedrals by the absorption of the Dean’s functions in
-that of the Bishop, at once solves the financial difficulty. The
-salaries now given to the Deans--probably on an average at least £1000 a
-year--would then be ready for redistribution, and might follow the lines
-suggested by the Commissioners, and would supply other gaps due to the
-depreciation of agricultural values.
-
-
- CONCLUSION.
-
-The Commissioners take into view many details connected with the other
-officials, with the rivalry of Precentor and Organist, with the meeting
-of the greater chapter, and with the abolition of the minor corporations
-existing in some cathedrals alongside of the chapter corporation, which
-are in their way important, but which would all fall into place under a
-large scheme of reform.
-
-The essentials of such a scheme are, it is submitted, (1) control by a
-distinguished body, like that of the Committee of the Privy Council,
-which takes its initiative from a representative body like that of the
-County Council; (2) the reinstatement of the Bishop as the chief officer
-of the cathedral, with the Canons as his suffragans.
-
-The cathedrals seem to be waiting to be used by the new spiritual force
-which, amid the wreck of so much that is old, is surely appearing. There
-is a widespread consciousness of their value--an unexpressed instinct of
-respect which is not satisfied by the disquisitions of antiquarians or
-the praises of artists. Common people as well as Royal Commissioners
-feel that cathedrals have a part to play in the coming time. What that
-part is none can foretell, but all agree that the cathedrals must be
-preserved and beautified, that the teaching and the music they offer
-must be of the best, offered at frequent and suitable times, and that
-they must be used for the service of the great secular and religious
-corporations of the diocese.
-
-Under the scheme here proposed this would be possible. The Bishop, as
-head of the cathedral, would direct the order of the daily worship and
-teaching, arrange for the giving of great musical works, and invite on
-special occasions any active organization. He would have as coadjutors
-able men chosen by himself, who, by lectures, meetings, and conferences,
-would make the building alive with use. He would have behind him the
-committee of the County Councils or other local authority, empowered to
-suggest changes in the statutes as new times brought new needs, and
-ready with money as their interest was developed. The scheme, at any
-rate, has the merit of utilizing two growing forces--that of the Bishop,
-and that of local government. No scheme can secure that these forces
-will work to the best ends. That, as everything else, must depend on the
-extent to which the growing forces are inspired by the spirit of Christ.
-
-A cathedral used as a Bishop would use it would receive a new
-consecration by the manifold uses. Just as the silence of a crowd which
-might speak is more impressive than the silence of the dumb, so is the
-quiet of a building which is much used more solemn than the quiet of a
-building kept swept and clean for show. Our cathedrals, being centres of
-activity, would more and more impress those who, themselves anxious and
-careful about many things, feel the impulse of the spiritual force of
-the time. Workmen and business-men would come to possess their souls in
-quiet meditation, or to join unnoticed in services of worship which
-express aspirations often too full for words.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE CATHEDRALS AND MODERN NEEDS.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- 1912.
-
- [1] From “The Contemporary Review”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-This generation is face to face with many and hard problems. Perhaps the
-hardest and the one which underlies all the others is that which
-concerns the spiritualizing of life. Discoveries and inventions have
-largely increased the attractions of the things which can be seen and
-heard, touched, and tasted. Rich and poor have alike found that the
-world is full of so many things that they ought to be all as happy as
-kings, and the one ideal which seems to command any enthusiasm is a
-Socialistic State, where material things will be more equally divided
-among all classes.
-
-But even so, there is an underlying consciousness that possessions do
-not satisfy human nature. Millionaires are seen to miss happiness, and
-something else than armaments are wanted to make the strength of a
-nation. There is thus a widely-spread disposition to take more account
-of spiritual forces, and people who have not themselves the courage to
-forsake all for the sake of an idea speak with sympathy of religion and
-patronize the Salvation Army. There is much talk of “rival ideals
-dominating action,” and the prevalent unrest seems to come from a
-demand, not so much for more money as for more respect, more recognition
-of equality, more room for the exercise of admiration, hope, and love.
-Modern unrest is, in fact, a cry for light.
-
-The problem which is haunting this generation is how to spiritualize the
-forces which are shaping the future; how to inspire labour and capital
-with thoughts which will both elevate and control their actions; how to
-enable rich and poor to move in a larger world, seeing things which eyes
-cannot see; how to open channels between eternal sources and every day’s
-need; how to give to all the sense of partnership in a progress which is
-fitting the earth for man’s enjoyment and men for one another’s comfort.
-The spiritualization of life being necessary to human peace and
-happiness; its accomplishment is the goal of all reformers, and every
-reform may in fact be measured by its power to advance or hinder
-progress to that goal.
-
-I would suggest that the cathedrals are especially designed to help in
-the solution of the problem. Their attractiveness is a striking fact,
-and people who are too busy to read or to pray seem to find time to
-visit buildings where they will gain no advantage for their trade or
-profession, not even fresh air for their bodies. They are recognized as
-civic or national possessions, and working people who stand aloof from
-places of worship, or patronize meeting-houses, are distinctly
-interested in their care and preservation. They have an unfailing hold
-on the popular imagination, so that it is always easy to gather a
-congregation to take part in a service, or to listen to a lecture.
-
-“It was not so much what the lecturer said,” was the reflection of Mr.
-Crooks after a lecture in Westminster Abbey on English History, “as the
-place in which it was given.”
-
-The cathedrals have thus a peculiar position in the modern world, and if
-it be asked to what the position is due I am inclined to answer: to
-their unostentatious grandeur and to their testimony to the past. They
-are high and mighty, they lift their heads to heaven, and they open
-their doors to the humblest. They give the best away, and ask for
-nothing, neither praise nor notice. They are buildings through which the
-stream of ages has flowed, familiar to the people of old time as of the
-present, bearing traces of Norman strength and English aspirations, of
-the enthusiasm of Catholics and Puritans, of the hopes of the makers of
-the nation. The cathedrals are thus in touch with the spiritual sides of
-life, and make their appeal to the same powers which desire before all
-things to see the fair beauty of the Lord, and to commune with man’s
-eternal mind.
-
-But the cathedrals which make this appeal can hardly be said to be well
-used. There are the somewhat perfunctory services morning and afternoon,
-often suspended or degraded during holiday months when visitors are most
-numerous; there are sermons rarely to be distinguished from those heard
-in a thousand parish churches; there is a staff of eight or ten clergy
-who may be busy at good works, but certainly do not make their cathedral
-position their platform; and there are guides who for a small fee will
-conduct parties round the church. Among these guides are indeed to be
-found men who have made a study of the building, and are able to talk of
-it as lovers, but the guides for the most part give no other information
-than lists of names and dates, sometimes relieved by a common-place
-anecdote. The cathedrals are treated as museums, and not so well as the
-Forum of Rome. The question is: Can they be made of greater use in
-spiritualizing life? I would offer some suggestions:--
-
-1. Cathedrals might, I think, be more generally used for civic, county
-and national functions, for intercession at times of crisis, and for
-services in connexion with meetings of conferences and congresses. The
-services might be especially adapted by music and by speech to deepen
-the effect of the building with its grandeur and memories. The use in
-this direction has increased of late years, and even when the service
-seems to be little more than a church parade, those present are often
-helped by the reminder that their immediate concern has a place in a
-greater whole. But the use might be largely extended, so that every
-example of corporate life might be set in the framework which would
-give it dignity. Elections to civic councils might be better understood
-if the newly-elected bodies gathered in the grand central building
-where vulgar divisions would be hushed in the greatness, and the
-ambitions of parties lifted up into an atmosphere in which the rivals
-of past days are recognized in their common service to the State.
-The meetings of congresses and conferences--of scientific and trade
-societies--of leagues and unions for social reform would be helped by
-beginning their deliberations in a place which would both humble and
-widen the thoughts of the members.
-
-Intercessional services, when guided by a few directing words, at which
-men and women would gather to fix their minds on great ideals--on
-peace--on sympathy with the oppressed--on the needs of children and
-prisoners, would gain force from the association of a building where
-generations have prayed and hoped and suffered. And if, as well as being
-more frequent, such use were more carefully considered the effect would
-be much deeper. It is not enough, for instance, that the service should
-always follow the old form, and the music be elaborate and the sermon
-orthodox. Consideration might be given so that prayers, and music, and
-speech might all be made to work together with the influences of the
-building to touch the spiritual side of the object interesting to the
-congregation. The soul of the least important member of a civic council
-or a society is larger than its programme. The cathedral service might
-be, by much consideration, designed to help such souls to realize
-something of the vast horizons in which they move--something of the
-infinite issues attached to their resolutions and votes, something of
-the company filling the past and the future of which they are members.
-The cathedrals, by such frequent and well-considered uses, might do much
-to spiritualize life.
-
-2. There are, as I have said, usually eight or ten clergy who form the
-cathedral staff. Many of them are chosen for their distinction in some
-form of spiritual service, and all have devoted themselves to that
-service. They may be in other ways delivering themselves of their
-duties, but they as spiritual teachers cannot as a rule be said to
-identify themselves with the cathedral. They do not use all their powers
-to make the building a centre of spiritual life.
-
-I would suggest, therefore, that these clergy attached to the cathedral
-should have classes or lectures on theological, social, and historic
-subjects. They should give their teaching freely in one of the chapels
-of the cathedral, and the teaching should be so thorough as to command
-the attention of the neighbouring clergy and other thoughtful people.
-They would also, on occasions, give lectures in the nave designed to
-guide popular thought to the better understanding of the live questions
-of the day, or of the past.
-
-And inasmuch as many of the clergy have been chosen for their skill in
-music, which often at great cost holds a high place in cathedral
-worship, I would suggest that regular teaching be given in the relation
-of music to worship. Words, we are often told, do not make music sacred,
-and religion has probably suffered degradation from the attachment of
-high words to low music. There is certainly no doubt that the music in
-many churches is both bad in character and pretentious. If teaching were
-freely given by qualified teachers in the cathedrals, if examples of the
-best were freely offered, and if the place of music in worship were
-clearly shown, then music might become a valuable agent in
-spiritualizing life.
-
-Perhaps, however, the clergy might urge that they could not by such
-teaching deliver themselves of their obligation to do spiritual work.
-They would rather wrestle with souls and unite in prayer. But surely
-if their teaching has for its aim the opening of men’s minds to know
-the truth--the enlistment of men’s hearts in others’ service and the
-bringing of the understanding into worship, then their teaching will
-end in the knowledge of others’ souls and in acts of common devotion.
-The cathedral staff might, through the cathedral and the position it
-holds in a city, do much to spiritualize life.
-
-3. The great spiritual asset of the cathedral is, however, its
-association with the past, and its living witness that the present is
-the child of the past. This may be called a spiritual asset, because it
-is this conception of the past which, as is evident among the Jews and
-Japanese, is able to inspire and control action. The people who see as
-in a vision their country boldly standing and suffering for some great
-principles and hear the voices of the great dead calling them
-“children,” have power and peace within their reach.
-
-It is, as I have said, because of some dim consciousness of this truth
-that crowds of visitors flock into the buildings and spend a rare
-holiday in hanging upon the dry words of the guides. It is easy to
-imagine how their readily-offered interest might be seized, how guides
-with fresh knowledge and trained sympathy might make the building tell
-and illustrate the tale of the nation’s growth, how the different styles
-of architecture might be made to express different stages of thought,
-how the whole structure might be shown to be a shell and rind covering
-living principles, how every one might be lifted up and humbled as the
-building told him of England’s search for justice, freedom, and truth.
-It is easy to imagine how such a living interpretation might be given to
-the message of the building, but much work would first be necessary.
-
-The cathedral staff would have to be constant learners, and take up
-different sides of interest. They would themselves frequently accompany
-parties and individuals, so that in intimate talk they would learn the
-mind of the people, and they would be continually instructing the
-regular guides. Their special duty would be to give at certain times
-short talks on the history, the architecture, and the art, so that
-visitors might be sure that at these times they would learn what light
-new knowledge was throwing on the familiar surroundings.
-
-The power of the past is dormant, it is buried beneath the insistent
-present, but it is not dead, and it is conceivable that thoughtful and
-devoted effort might rouse it to speak through the buildings which have
-witnessed the highest aspirations of successive ages. If such effort
-succeeded, and if the people of to-day could be helped to know and feel
-the England of old days, they would be conscious of a spiritual force
-bearing them on to great deeds. They would begin to understand how
-things which are not seen are stronger than things which are seen. The
-cathedrals have in themselves a message which would help to spiritualize
-life, but without interpreters the message can hardly be heard.
-
-4. I would add one other suggestion arising from the monuments which in
-every cathedral attract so much notice. They are the memorials of men
-and women notable in national or local history who belonged to various
-parties and classes, to different forms of faith and different
-professions representing divers qualities and diverse forms of service.
-
-It would not be difficult for each cathedral to make a calendar of
-worthies. A lecture every month on one such worthy would give an
-opportunity for taking the minds of modern men into the surroundings of
-the past, where they would see clearly the value of character.
-Familiarity with the lives of Saints has been doubtless a great help to
-many lonely and anxious souls, but this hardly applies to those who hear
-sermons on St. Jude, and St. Bartholomew, and other Saints of whom
-little can be known. If, however, from its great men and women each
-cathedral selected twelve, for one of whom a day should be set apart
-each month, the people in the locality would gradually become familiar
-with their characters and gain by communion with them.
-
-Thoughts are best revealed through lives, and the attraction of
-personality was never more marked than at the present day. Through the
-lives of the great dead, and through the persons of those who walked or
-worshipped within familiar walls, it would be possible to make people
-understand great principles, and gradually become conscious of the
-Common Source from which flows “every good and perfect gift”. The dead
-speak from the walls of the cathedral, but they have no interpreter, and
-the mass of the people who are waiting for their message go away
-unsatisfied. A power which would help to spiritualize life is unused.
-
-But perhaps it may be urged that if all were done which has been
-suggested, if the minds of visitors were kindled to admiration, if the
-past were made to live and the dead to speak, much more would be
-necessary to spiritualize life. Certainly the “spirit bloweth where it
-listeth,” and only they who feel its breath are born again and enter a
-world of power, of peace, and of love.
-
-But it may be claimed that some attitudes are better than others in
-which to feel this breath, and that people whose pride has been brought
-low by the beauty of a great building, or whose ears have been opened to
-the voices of the past, will be more likely to bow before the Holy
-Spirit than those who have no thought beyond what they can see, hear, or
-touch.
-
-The age, we sometimes say, is waiting for a great leader--a prophet who
-will make dead bones to live. It is well to remember that for all
-redeemers the way has to be prepared, and the coming spiritual leader
-will be helped if through our cathedrals people have developed powers of
-communion with the Unseen.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- SECTION II.
-
- RECREATION.
-
-The Children’s Country Holiday Fun’--Recreation of the People--Hopes of
-the Hosts--Easter Monday on Hampstead Heath--Holidays and School
-days--The Failure of Holidays--Recreation in Town and Country.
-
-
-
-
- THE CHILDREN’S COUNTRY HOLIDAY FUN’.[1]
-
- BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT.
-
- April, 1912.
-
- [1] From “The Cornhill Magazine”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Five thousand two hundred and eighty Letters, 872 Sketches, 199
-Collections, all in parcels neatly tied up, the name, age, and sex of
-the writer, artist, or collector clearly written on the first page of
-the covering paper. There they lie, all around me, stack upon stack. The
-sketches are crude but extraordinarily vivid and unaffected; the
-collections are very scrappy but show affectionate care; the letters are
-written in childish unformed characters, and are of varying lengths,
-from a sheet of notepaper to ten pages of foolscap, but one and all deal
-with the same subject. What that subject is shall be told by a maiden of
-nine years old:--
-
-“On one Thursday morning my Mother woke me and said, ‘To-day is Country
-Holiday Fun,’ so I got up and put my cloes on”.
-
-On that Thursday morning, 27 July, 22,624 happy children left London and
-its drab monotonous streets, and went for a fortnight’s visit into the
-country, or by the sea. Oh! the joy, the preparation, the excitement,
-the hopes, the fears, the anxieties lest anything should prevent the
-start; but at last, by the superhuman efforts of all concerned, the
-Committee, the ladies, the teachers, and the railway officials, the
-whole gay, glad, big army of little people were successfully got off. It
-is from these 22,624 children, and 21,756 more who took their places two
-weeks later, that my 5,280 letters come; for only those who really
-choose to write are encouraged to do so.
-
-In almost all cases the journey is fully described, the ride in the
-’bus, the fear of being late, the parcel and how “it fell out,” the
-gentlemen at the station, the porter who gave us a drink of water
-“cause we were all hot,” the gentleman who gave the porter 6d. because
-he said: “This 6d. is for you for thinking as how the children would
-be thirsty”. The number that managed to get in each carriage, the boy
-who lost his cap “for the wind went so fast when my head was outside
-looking,” the hedges, the cows, the big boards with ---- Pills written
-on them, how “it seemed as if I was going that way and the hills and
-cows and trees were going the other way”. It is all told with the fresh
-force of novelty and youth. The names of the Stations and the mileage
-is often noted, as well as the noise. “We shouted for joy,” writes a
-boy of eleven. “We told them it was rude to holler so,” writes a more
-staid girl. “I got tired of singing and went to sleep,” records a boy
-of eight; but the journey over there follows the description, often
-given with some awe, of how,--
-
- “We all went and were counted together, and there were the ladies
- waiting for us, and the gentleman read out our names and our lady’s
- name and then we went home with our right ladies,”
-
-and then, almost without exception, comes the bald but important
-statement, “and then we had Tea”. Indeed, all through the letters there
-is frequent mention of the gastronomic conditions, which appear to
-occupy a large place among the memories of the country visit. Evidently
-the regularity of the meals makes a change which strikes the
-imagination.
-
- “I got up, washed in hot water and had my breakfast. It was duck’s
- egg. I then went out in the fields till dinner was ready. I had
- a good dinner and then took a rest. We had Tea. My lady gave us
- herrings and apple pie for tea, then we went on the Green and
- looked about and then came home and had supper and went to bed.”
-
-Some letters, especially those written after the first visit to the
-country, contain nothing but the plain unvarnished tale of the supply of
-regular food. One girl burns with indignation because
-
- “We girls was sent to bed at 7·30 and got no supper, but the boys was
- let up later and got bread and a big thick bit of cheese”.
-
-A boy of eight chronicles that
-
- “I had custard for my Tea and some jelly which was called corn flour”.
-
-One small observer had apparently discovered the importance of
-meal-times even to the sea itself, for he writes: “The sea always went
-out at dinner time and came back when Tea was ready”. I can see my
-readers smile, but to those of us who know intimately the lives of the
-poor, the significance of meals and their regularity occupying so large
-a place in a child’s mind is more pathetic than comic.
-
-From all the letters the impression is gathered of the generosity of the
-poor hostesses to the London children. For 5s. a week (not 9d. a day) a
-growing hungry boy or girl is taken into a cottager’s home, put in the
-best bed, cared for, fed three or four times a day, and often
-entertained at cost of time, thought, or money.
-
- “I like the day which was Bank lolyiday Monday because it was a
- very joyafull day. My Lady took me to a Flower Show. It was 3d. to
- go in but she paid, and I had swings and saw the flowers, and then
- we had bought Tea, and a man gave away ginger beer.”
-
-Another girl of eleven writes:--
-
- “My lady took me to Windsor Castle. The first thing I saw was the
- Thames. I went and had a paddled and then I went in the Castle and saw
- a lot of apple trees.”
-
-The visits to Windsor are modern-day versions of the old story of the
-Cat who went to see the King and saw only “Mousey sitting under the
-Chair,” for another child records:--
-
- “There were plenty of orchards with apple trees in it. But we would
- not pick them, or else we would be locked up but I went in the
- Castle and I saw a very large table with fifty chairs all round it
- and a piano and a looking glass covered up on the wall.”
-
-One boy who was taken to the lighthouse, though only ten, was evidently
-eager for useful information. He writes:--
-
- “I asked the man how many candlepowers it was but I forgot what he
- said----”
-
-an experience not unknown to his elders and betters!
-
-This child records that “when playing on the beach I made Buckingham
-Palace but a big boy came along and trod it and so we went home to
-bed”--an unconscious repetition of the often-recorded conclusion of
-Pepys’ eventful days.
-
-One of the small excursionists was taken by her hostess to see
-Tonbridge, and writes: “We went to the muzeam wear we saw jitnoes of
-different people”.
-
-The hospitality of the clergymen and their families and the goodness of
-doctors is also often mentioned. Some of the children write so vividly
-that the country vicarage and its sweet-smelling flowers, the hot curate
-and the active ladies, rise up as a picture, the “atmosphere” of which
-is kindness and “the values” incalculable. Other children merely record
-the facts--in some cases anticipating time and establishing an order of
-clergywomen.
-
- “We asked the Vicar Miss Leigh if we could swim and she said No
- because one boy caught a cold.”
-
- “We all went to the Reveren to a party.” “Saturday mornings we went
- to the Rectory haveing games, swings, sea sawes and refreshments.”
- “The party by the Church was fine.” “They had a Church down there
- called the Salvation Army. I thought there was only one Salvation
- Army.”
-
-One of the Vicars hardly conveyed the impression he intended, for the
-boy writes:--
-
- “We went to Church in the morning and in the afternoon for a walk
- as the Clergyman told us not to go to Sunday School as he wanted us
- to enjoy ourselves”.
-
-One wonders if the Sunday School organization and the “intolerable
-strain” which would be put on it by London visitors was in that vicar’s
-mind.
-
-The letter that is sent by the Countryside Committee to the children
-before they leave London tells them in simple language something about
-the trees and flowers and creatures which they will see during their
-holiday, and asks them to write on anything which they themselves have
-observed or which gave them pleasure to see. This request is granted,
-for the children wrote:--
-
- “The trees seemed so happy they danced”.
-
- “The wind was blowing and the branches of the trees was swinging
- themselves.”
-
- “The rainbow is made of raindrops and the sun, tears and smiles.”
-
- “It was nice to sit on the grass and see the trees prancing in the
- breeze.”
-
-These extracts show, in the four small mortals who had each spent the
-ten years of their lives in crowded streets, an almost poetic capacity,
-and the beginning of a power of nature sympathy that will be a source of
-unrecorded solace. The sights of the night impress many children, the
-sky seen for the first time uninterrupted by gas lamps.
-
- “When I (aged eleven) looked into the sky one night you could hardly
- see any of the blue for it was light up with stars.”
-
- “I saw a star shoot out of the sky and then it settled in a different
- place.”
-
- “One night I kept awake and looked for the stars and saw the Big Bear
- of stars.”
-
- “At night the moon looked as if it were a Queen and the stars were her
- Attendants.”
-
- “The clouds are making way for the moon to come out.”
-
-The sun, its rising and setting, is also frequently mentioned. One child
-had developed patriotism to such an extent as to write:--
-
- “One day I looked up to the Sky and saw the sun was rising in the
- shape of the British Isles”.
-
-Alas! What would the Kaiser think?
-
-Another of my correspondents expressed surprise that “the moon came from
-where the sky touched the Earth,” an evidence of street-bound horizon.
-
-In other letters the writers record:--
-
- “I saw the sun set it was like a big silver Eagle’s wing laying on a
- cliff”.
-
- “When the sun was setting out of the clouds came something that looked
- like a County Council Steamer”.
-
-That must have been a rather alarming sunset, but hardly less so than
-“the cloud which was like Saint Paul’s Cathedral coming down on our
-heads”.
-
-The animals gave great pleasure and created wonder:--
-
- “The cows made a grunting noise, the baa lambs made a pretty little
- shriek”.
-
- “The cows I saw were lazy, they were laying. One was a bull who I
- daresay had been tossing somebody.”
-
- “I heard a bird chirping it was make a noise like chirp chirp twee.”
-
- “I saw a big dragon fly. It was like a long caterpillar with long
- sparkling transparent wings.”
-
- “The birds are not like ourn they are light brown.”
-
- “There were wasps which was yellow and pretty but unkind.”
-
- “I (aged eleven) saw a little blackbird--its head was off by a Cat. I
- made a dear little grave and so berreyed it under the Tree.”
-
-The flowers, of course, come in for the greatest attention and after
-them the trees are most usually referred to:--
-
- “I (aged nine) know all the flowers that lived in the garden, but not
- all those who lived in the field”.
-
- “Stinging nettles are a nuisance to people who have holes in their
- boots.”
-
- “The Pond is all covered with Rushes. These had flowers like a rusty
- poker.”
-
- “I picked lots of flowers and always brought them home--”
-
-shows influence of the Selborne Society in teaching children not to pick
-and throw away what is alive and growing.
-
- “The Cuckoo dines on other birds.”
-
- “There was one bird called the squirrel.”
-
- “Only gentlemen are allowed to shoot pheasants as they are expensive.”
-
- “We caught fish in the river some were small others about 2 feet
- long.”
-
- “Butterflies dont do much work.”
-
- “The trunk of the oak is used for constructing furniture, coffins and
- other expensive objects.”
-
-But my readers will be weary, so I will conclude with the pregnant
-remark of a little prig, who writes:--
-
- “I think the country was in a good condition for _I_ found plenty of
- interesting things in it.”
-
-One or two of my small correspondents show an early disposition to see
-faults and remember misfortunes.
-
-“There was no strikes on down there but there was a large number of
-wasps,” was the reflection of one evidently conscious of the fly in
-every ointment. Another (aged ten) writes:--
-
- “DEAR MADAM,--When I was down in the country I was lying on the
- couch and a wasp stung me. As I was on the common a man chased me,
- and I fell head first and legs after into the prickles, and the
- prickles dug me and hurt me.... I was nearly scorched down in the
- country.... One day when I fed the Pigs the great big fat pig bit
- a lump out of my best pinafore. One morning when I was in bed the
- little boy brought the cat up and put it on my face. When I was
- down in the country the Common caught a light for the sun was
- always too hot. So I must close with my love.”
-
-Was there ever such a catalogue of misfortunes compressed into one short
-fortnight? Still, in the intervals she seems to have noticed a
-considerable number of trees, of which she makes a list, and adds: “I
-did enjoy myself”. Poor little maiden! Perhaps her elders had graduated
-in the school of misfortunes, and she had learnt the trick of
-complaining.
-
-A good many children, both boys and girls, were very conscious of the
-absence of their home responsibilities.
-
- “I did not see a babbi. I mean to mind it all the time.”
-
- “The ladys girl dont mind the baby as much as me at home. It stops in
- the garden.”
-
-It opens up a whole realm of matters for reflection: the baby not
-dragged hither and thither in arms too small and weak for its comfort,
-and then plumped down on cold or damp stones while its over-burdened
-nurse snatches a brief game or indulges in a scamper; the clouding of
-the elder child’s life by unremitting responsibilities, and the
-effortful labour which sometimes wears out love, though not so often as
-could be expected, so marvellous is human nature, and its capacity for
-care and tenderness. “I didn’t have to mind no twins,” writes one small
-boy of nine, “I think thems a neusence. I wish Mother had not bought
-them.” But the baby left in a garden! opening its blinking eyes to the
-wonders of sky and flowers and bees and creatures, while its elder
-brothers and sister do their share of work and play. This makes a
-foundation of quiet and pleasure on which to build the strenuous days
-and anxious years of the later life of struggle and effort.
-
-The reiteration of the kindness of the cottage hostesses would be almost
-wearisome if one’s imagination did not go behind it and picture the
-scenes, the hard-worked country woman accepting the suggestion of a
-child guest with a lively appreciation of the usefulness of the 5s.’s
-which were to accrue, but that thought receding as the enjoyment of the
-town child became infectious, until the value given for the value
-received became forgotten, and generous self-costing kindnesses were
-showered profusely.
-
- “My lady she was always doing kind to me.” “Mrs. P. washed my clothes
- before I came home to save Mother doing it.” “My lady told Mr. S. to
- shake her tree for our apples.” “The person that Boarded me gave me
- nice thing to bring back.”
-
-In some cases the thrifty, tidy ways of the country hostesses conveyed
-their lessons.
-
- “She use to make browan bread and She use to make her own cakes and
- apple turn overs and eggloes and current cake.” “The wind came in my
- room and blew me in the night.” “We always had table clothes where I
- was.” “I washed myself well my lady liked it.” “We cleaned our teeth
- down in the country ever morning.”
-
-Sometimes examples on deeper matters were observed and approved of.
-
- “Every morning and dinner and tea we say grace.” “The lady told us
- Sunday School was nice and we went.” “We had Church 3 times. Morning
- noon and night”--
-
-is not reported with entire approval, but the letter ends:--
-
- “I loved my holidays very much and hope that I can go next year to
- live with the same lady”.
-
-A boy writes:--
-
- “The lady was very kind she never said any naughty words to me”.
-
-And another lad reports:--
-
- “I was fed extremely well and treated with the best respect”.
-
-One little girl had clear views on the proper position of man.
-
- “My ladie,” she writes, “had a big pig 4 little ones, 2 cats. some
- hens a bird in a cage a apple tree a little boy and a Huband.”
-
-Sometimes the history of the place has been impressed on the children.
-
- “I (aged eleven) was very glad I went to Guildford because Sir
- Lancelot and Elaine lived there but its name was then Astolat.”
-
- “When I (aged eleven) reached Burnham Thorp I felt the change of
- air and I heard the birds sing--and then I knew that I should see
- the place where our great English sailor Lord Nelson was born,”--
-
-he being a character so indissolubly associated with innocent country
-joys.
-
-The letters both begin and end in a variety of ways, for though I do not
-write all the letters which are issued to the children by the
-Countryside Committee of the Children’s Country Holiday Fund, it is
-considered better for me as Chairwoman to sign them, so as to give a
-more personal tone to the lengthy printed chat, which the teachers
-themselves open, kindly read and talk about to the children, and a copy
-of which each child can have if it so wishes. Thus the reply letters are
-all sent to me, and the vast majority begin “Dear Madam”; but some are
-less conventional, and I have those commencing, “Dear Mrs. Barnett,”
-“Dear Country Holdday Site Commtie,” “Dear friend,” “Dear Miss,” while
-the feeling of personal relation was evidently so real to one small boy
-that he began his epistle with “Dear Henrietta”--I delight in that
-letter! Among the concluding words are the following: “Your affectionate
-little friend,” “Your loving pupil,” “From one who enjoyed,” “Yours
-gratefully,” “Yours truly Friend”.
-
-Some of the regrets at leaving the country are very pathetic:--
-
- “I wish I was in the country now”. “I shall never go again; I am
- too old now.” “I think in the fortnight I had more treats than
- ever before in all my life.” “The blacking berries were red then
- and small. They will be black now and big.” “I wish I was with my
- lady’s baker taking the bread round.” “I enjoyed myself very much,
- I cannot explain how much. Please God next year I will come again.
- As I sit at school I always imagine myself roaming in the fields
- and watching the golden corn, and when I think of it it makes me cry.”
-
-And those tears will find companions in some of the hearts which
-ache for the joyless lives of our town children, weighted by
-responsibilities, crippled by poverty, robbed of their birthright of
-innocent fun. The ecstatic joy of children in response to such simple
-pleasures tells volumes about their drab existence, their appreciation
-of adequate food, their warm recognition of kindness, represent
-privation and surprise. In a deeper sense than Wordsworth used it,
-“Their gratitude has left me mourning”.
-
-I know, and no one better, the countless servants of the people who are
-toiling to relieve the sorrows of the poor and their children, but until
-the conditions of labour, of education, and of housing are fearlessly
-faced and radically dealt with, their labour can only be palliative and
-their efforts barren of the best fruit; but articles, as well as
-holidays, must finish, and so I will conclude by another extract:--
-
- “We had a bottle of Tea and cake and it was 132¾ miles. I saw all
- sorts of things and come to Waterloo Station and thank you very much.”
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE RECREATION OF THE PEOPLE.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- July, 1907.
-
- [1] From “The Cornhill Magazine”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Work may, as Carlyle says, be a blessing, but work is not undertaken for
-work’s sake. Work is part of the universal struggle for existence. Men
-work to live. But the animal world early found that existence does not
-consist in keeping alive. All animals play. They let off surplus energy
-in imitating their own activities, and they recreate exhausted powers by
-change of occupation. Man, as soon as he came into his inheritance of
-reason, recognized play as an object of desire, and as well as working
-for his existence, and perhaps even before he worked to obtain power and
-glory, he worked to obtain recreation. A man, according to Schiller’s
-famous saying, is fully human only when he plays.
-
-Work, then, let it be admitted, is undertaken not for work’s sake but
-largely for the sake of recreation. England has been made the workshop
-of the world, its fair fields and lovely homesteads have been turned
-into dark towns and grimy streets, partly in the hope that more of its
-citizens may have enjoyment in life. Men toil in close offices under
-dark skies, not just to increase the volume of exports and imports, and
-not always to increase their power, or to win honour from one another;
-they dream of happy hours of play, they picture themselves travelling in
-strange countries or tranquilly enjoying their leisure in some villa or
-pleasant garden. Men spend laborious days as reformers, on public boards
-or as public servants, very largely so as to release their neighbours
-from the prison house of labour, where so many, giving their lives “to
-some unmeaning taskwork, die unfreed, having seen nothing, still
-unblest”.
-
-Recreation is an object of work. The recreations of the people consume
-much of the fruit of the labour of the people. Their play discloses what
-is in their hearts and minds and to what end they will direct their
-power. Their use of leisure is a sign-post showing whether the course of
-the nation is towards extinction in ignorance and self-indulgence, or
-towards greater brightness in the revelation of character and the
-service of mankind. By their idle words and by the acts of their idle
-times men are most fairly judged.
-
-The recreation of the people is therefore a subject of greater
-importance than is always remembered. The country is being lost or saved
-in its play, and the use of holidays needs as much consideration as the
-use of workdays.
-
-Would that some Charles Booth could undertake an inquiry into “the life
-and leisure of the people” to put alongside that into their life and
-work! Without such an inquiry the only basis for the consideration which
-I invite is the impression left on the minds of individuals, and all I
-can offer is the impression made on my mind by a long residence in East
-London.
-
-People during the last quarter of a century have greatly increased their
-command of leisure. The command, as Board of Trade inspectors remind us,
-is not sufficient as long as the rule of seventy or even sixty hours of
-work a week still holds in some trades. But the weekly half-holiday has
-become almost universal, some skilled trades have secured an eight or
-nine hours’ day, many workshops every year close for a week, and the
-members of the building trades begin work late and knock off early
-during the winter months. There is thus much leisure available for
-recreation. What do the people do? How do these crowds who swarm through
-the streets on Saturday afternoons spend their holiday?
-
-Many visit the public-houses and try to drink themselves out of their
-gloom. “To get drunk,” we have been told, is “the shortest way out of
-Manchester,” and many citizens in every city go at any rate some
-distance along this way. They find they live a larger, fuller life as,
-standing in the warm bright bar, they drink and talk as if they were
-“lords”. The returns which suggest that the drink bill of a workman’s
-family is 5s. or 6s. a week prove how popular is this use of leisure,
-and they who begin a holiday by drinking probably spend the rest of it
-in sleeping. The identification of rest with sleep is very common, and a
-workman who knows he has a fair claim to rest thinks himself justified
-in sleeping or dozing hour after hour during Saturday and Sunday.
-“What,” I once asked an engineer, “should I find most of your mates
-doing if I called on Sunday?” His answer was short: “Sleeping”.
-
-Another large body of workers as soon as they are free hurry off
-to some form of excitement. They go in their thousands to see a
-football-match, they yell with those who yell, they are roused by the
-spectacle of battle, and they indulge in hot “sultry” talk. Or they
-go to some race or trial of strength on which bets are possible. They
-feel in the rise and fall of the chance of winning a new stirring of
-their dull selves, and they dream of wealth to be enjoyed in wearing a
-coat with a fur collar and in becoming owners of sporting champions. Or
-they go to music halls--1,250,000 go every week in London--where if the
-excitement be less violent it still avails to move their thoughts into
-other channels. They see colour instead of dusky dirt, they hear songs
-instead of the clash of machinery, they are interested as a performer
-risks his life, and the jokes make no demands on their thoughts. The
-theatres probably are less popular, at any rate among men, but they
-attract great numbers, especially to plays which appeal to generous
-impulses. An audience enjoys the easy satisfaction of shouting down
-a villain. The same sort of excitement is that provided on Sunday
-mornings in the clubs, where in somewhat sordid surroundings, a few
-actors and singers try to stir the muddled feelings of their audience
-by appeals, which are more or less vulgar.
-
-There is finally another large body of released workers who simply go
-home. They are more in number than is generally imagined, and they
-constitute the solid part of the community. They are not often found at
-meetings or clubs. Their opinions are not easily discovered. Large
-numbers never vote. They go home from work, they make themselves tidy,
-they do odd jobs about the house, they go out shopping with their wives,
-they walk with the children, they, as a family party, visit their
-friends, they sleep, and they read the weekly paper. All this is
-estimable, and the mere catalogue makes a picture pleasant to the
-middle-class imagination of what a workman’s life should be. The workers
-get repose, but from a larger point of view it cannot be said they
-return to work invigorated by new thoughts and new experiences, with new
-powers and new conceptions of life’s use. Repose is sterilized
-recreation.
-
-These, it seems to me, are the three main streams which flow from work
-to leisure--that towards drink, that towards excitement, and that
-towards home repose.
-
-There are other workers--an increasing number, but small in comparison
-with those in one of the main streams--who use their leisure to attend
-classes, to study with a view to greater technical skill or to read the
-books now so easily bought. There are some who take other jobs,
-forgetting that the wages which buy eight hours’ work should buy also
-eight hours’ sleep and eight hours’ play. There are many who bicycle,
-some it may be for the excitement of rapid motion, but some also for the
-joy of visiting the country and of social intercourse. There are many
-who play games and take vigorous exercise. There are a few--markedly a
-few--who have hobbies or pursuits on which they exercise their less used
-powers of heart or head or limb.
-
-Such is the general impression which long experience has left on my mind
-as to the recreations of the people. It is, however, possible to give a
-closer inspection to some popular forms of amusement.
-
-Consider first one of the seaside resorts during the month of August.
-Look at Blackpool, or Margate, or Weston. On the Saturday before Bank
-Holiday £100,000 was drawn out of the banks at Blackburn and £200,000
-from the banks at Oldham, to be spent in recreation, mostly at
-Blackpool. How was it spent?
-
-The sight of the beach of one of these resorts is familiar. There is the
-mass of people brightly coloured and loudly talking, broken into rapidly
-changing groups. There are the nigger singers, the buffoons, the
-acrobats; there are the great restaurants and hotels inviting lavish
-expenditure on food. There are bookstalls laden with trashy novels.
-There are the overridden beasts and the overworked maid-servants; there
-is the loafing on the pier, and the sleep after heavy meals. Nothing
-especially wicked, much that shows good-nature, but everything so
-vulgar--so empty of interest, so far below what thinking men and women
-should enjoy, so unworthy the expenditure of hundreds of thousands of
-pounds earned by hard work.
-
-Consider again the music hall. Mr. Stead has lent his eyes. “If,” he
-says, “I had to sum up the whole performance in a single phrase I should
-say, ‘Drivel for dregs’. For three and a half hours I sat patiently
-listening to the most insufferable banality and imbecility which ever
-fell on human ears. There was neither beauty nor humour, no appeal to
-taste or to intelligence, nothing but vulgarity and stupidity to
-recreate the heirs of a thousand years of civilization and the citizens
-of an empire on which the sun never sets.” And in one year there are
-some 70,000,000 admissions to music halls in London! Consider, too, the
-football fields or the racecourses. The crowd of spectators is often
-100,000 to 200,000 persons. What can they find worthy the interest of a
-reasonable creature? Would they be present if it were not for the
-excitement of gambling, the mind-destroying pleasure of risking their
-money to get their neighbours’ money? “If,” as Sir James Crichton-Browne
-says, “you would see the English physiognomy at its worst, go to the
-platform of a railway station on the day of a suburban race meeting when
-the special trains are starting. On most of the faces you detect the
-grin of greed, on many the leer of low cunning, on some the stamp of
-positive rascality.”
-
-Consider once more the crowds who go to the country in the summer. “One
-of the saddest sights of the Lake District during the tourist season,”
-says Canon Rawnsley, “is the aimless wandering of the hard-worked folk
-who have waited a whole year for their annual holiday, and, having
-obtained it, do not know what to do with it. They stand with Skiddaw,
-glorious in its purple mantle of heather, on one side and the blue hills
-of Borrowdale and the shining lake on the other, and ask ‘Which is the
-way to the scenery?’” The people, according to this observer, are dull
-and bored amid the greatest beauty. The excursionist finds nothing in
-nature which is his; he reads the handwriting of truth and beauty, but
-understands not what he reads.
-
-But enough of impressions of popular recreations. There are brighter
-sides to notice. There is, for instance, health in the instinct which
-turns to the country for enjoyment. There is hope in the prevalent good
-temper, in the untiring energy and curiosity which is always seeking
-something new. There are better things than have been mentioned and
-there are worse things, but as a general conclusion it may, I think, be
-agreed that the recreations of the people are not such as recreate human
-nature for further progress. The lavish expenditure of hardly earned
-wages on mere bodily comfort does not suggest that the people are
-cherishing high political ideals, and the galvanized idleness which
-characterizes so much popular pleasure does not promise for the future
-an England which will be called blessed or be itself “merrie”.
-
-England in her great days was “Merrie England”. Many of our forefathers’
-recreations were, judged by our standard, cruel and horribly brutal.
-They had, however, certain notable characteristics. They made greater
-demands both on body and mind. When there were neither trains nor trams
-nor grand stands people had to take more exertion to get pleasure, and
-they themselves joined in the play or in the sport. Their delight, too,
-was often in the fellowship they secured, and “fellowship,” as Morris
-says, “is life and lack of fellowship is death”. Our fathers’ sports,
-even if they were cruel--and the “Book of Sports” shows how many were
-not cruel but full of grace--had often this virtue of fellowship. Their
-pageants and spectacles--faithfully pictured by Scott in his account of
-the revels of Kenilworth, were not just shows to be lazily watched; they
-enlisted the interest and ingenuity of the spectators, and stirred their
-minds to discover the meaning of some allegory or trace out some
-mystery.
-
-The recreations which made England “merrie” were stopped in their
-development by the combined influence of puritanism and of the
-industrial revolution. Far be it from me to consider as evil either the
-one or the other. In all progress there is destruction. The puritan
-spirit put down cruel sports such as bull baiting and cock fighting, and
-with them many innocent pleasures. The industrial revolution drew the
-people from their homes in the fields and valleys, established them in
-towns, gave them higher wages and cheaper food. Under the combined
-influence work took possession of the nation’s being. It ruled as a
-tyrant, and the gospel of work became the gospel for the people.
-
-In the latter part of the nineteenth century signs of reaction are
-apparent. Sleary, in Dickens’s “Hard Times,” urges on the economist the
-continual refrain: “The people, Squire, must be amused,” and Herbert
-Spencer, returning from America in 1882, declares the need of the
-“Gospel of Recreation”. Recreation has since increased in pace. The
-right to shorter and shorter hours of labour is now admitted, and the
-provision of amusement has become a great business. The demand which has
-secured shorter hours may safely be left to rescue further leisure from
-work; but demand has not, as we have seen, been followed by the
-establishment of healthy recreation. A child knows a holiday is good,
-but he needs also to know how to enjoy it or he will do mischief to
-himself or others. The people also need, as well as leisure, the
-knowledge of what constitutes recreation.
-
-The subject is not simple, and Professor Karl Groos, in his book “The
-Play of Man,” has with Teutonic thoroughness analysed the subject from
-the physiological, the biological, and the psychological standpoints.
-The book is worthy of study by students, but it seems to me that
-recreation must involve (1) some excitement, (2) some strengthening of
-the less used fibres of the mind or body, (3) the activity of the
-imagination.
-
-(1) Recreation must involve some excitement, some appeal to an existing
-interest, some change, some stirring of the wearied or sleeping
-embers of the mind. Routine work, tending to become more and more
-routine, wears life. It is “life of which our nerves are scant,” and
-recreation should revive the sources of life. Most people, as Mr.
-Balfour, look askance at efforts which, under the guise of amusing,
-aim to impart useful culture. Recreation must be something other than
-repose--something more stirring than sleep or loafing--it must be
-something attractive and not something undertaken as a duty.
-
-(2) Recreation must involve the strengthening of the less used fibres of
-the mind and the body; the embers which are stirred by excitement need
-to be fed with new fuel, or the flames will soon sink into ashes.
-Gambling and drink, sensational dramas, and exciting shows stir but do
-not strengthen the mind. Mere change--the fresh excursion every day, the
-spectacle of a contest--wears out the powers of being. “The crime of
-sense is avenged by sense which wears with time.” On the other hand,
-games well played fulfil the condition, and there is no more cheering
-sight than that of playing-fields where young and old are using their
-limbs intent on doing their best. Music, foreign travel, congenial
-society, reading, chess, all games of skill, also fulfil the condition,
-as they make a claim on the activity of heart or mind, and so strengthen
-their fibres. A good drama is recreation if the spectator is called to
-give himself to thought and to feeling. He then becomes in a sense a
-fellow creator with the author, he has what Professor Groos says
-satisfies every one, “the joy of being a cause,” or, as he explains in
-another passage, “it is only when emotion is in a measure our own work
-do we enjoy the result”. Recreation must call out activity, it fails if
-it gives and requires nothing. We only have what we give. He that would
-save his life loses it.
-
-(3) The last and most notable mark of recreation is the use of the
-imagination. Recreation comes from within and not from without the man.
-It depends on that a man _is_ and not upon what a man _has_. A child
-grows tired of his toys, a man wearies of his possessions, but there is
-no being tired of the imagination which leaps ahead and every day
-reveals something new. Sleary was wrong when he said, “People must be
-amused”. He should have said, “People must amuse themselves”. Their
-recreation must, that is, come from the use of their own faculties of
-heart and mind. “The cultivation of the inner life,” it was truly said
-in a discussion on the hard lot of the middle classes, “is the only cure
-for the commercial tyrannies and class prejudices of that class.” The
-Japanese are the best holiday takers I have ever met; they have in
-themselves a taste for beauty, and they go to the country to enjoy the
-use of that taste. A man who because he is interested in mankind sets
-himself on his holiday to observe and study the habits of man; or,
-because he cares for Nature, looks deeper into her secrets by the way of
-plants or rocks or stars; or, because he is familiar with history, seeks
-in buildings and places illustrations of the past; a holiday maker who
-in such ways uses his inner powers will come home refreshed. His
-pleasure has come from within; he, on the other hand, who has lounged
-about a pier, moved from place to place, travelled from sight to sight,
-looking always for pleasure from outside himself, will come home bored.
-
-If such be the constituents of recreation one reflection stands out
-clearly, and that is the importance of educating or directing the demand
-for amusement. Popular demand can only choose what it knows; it could
-not choose the pictures for an art gallery or the best machines for the
-workshop, neither can it settle the amusements which are recreative.
-Children and young people are with great care fitted for work and taught
-how to earn a living; there is equal need that the people be fitted for
-recreation, and taught how to enjoy their being. They must know before
-they can choose. Education, and not the House of Lords, is the safeguard
-of democratic government.
-
-Mr. Dill’s “History of Social Life in the Towns of the Roman Empire
-during the First and Second Centuries” shows that there is a striking
-likeness between the condition of those times to that which prevails in
-England. The millionaires made noble benefactions, there were
-magnificent spectacles, there were contests which roused lunatic
-excitement as one of the combatants succeeded in some brutal strife,
-there was lavish provision of games and great enjoyment in feasting. The
-amusement was provided by others’ gifts, and, as Mr. Dill remarks, the
-people were more and more drawn from “interest in the things of the
-mind”. The games of Rome were steps in the decline and fall of Rome.
-
-The lesson which modern and ancient experience offers is that people
-must be as thoughtfully and as seriously prepared for their recreation
-as for their work.
-
-The first illusion which must, I think, be destroyed is that a holiday
-means a vacation or an empty time. It is not enough to close the school
-and let the children have no lessons. It is not enough to enact an eight
-hours’ day and leave the people without resources. If the spirit of toil
-be turned out of men’s lives and they be left swept and garnished, there
-are spirits of leisure that will return which may be ten times worse. It
-is a pathetic sight often presented in a playground, when after some
-aimless running and pushing, the children gradually grow listless,
-fractious, and quarrelsome. They came to enjoy themselves and cannot.
-Many a boy for want of occupation for his leisure has taken to crime. It
-is not always love of evil or even greed which makes him a thief, it is
-in the pure spirit of adventure that he stalks his prey on the coster’s
-cart, risks his liberty and dodges the police. It is because they have
-no more interesting occupation that eager little heads pop out of
-windows when the police make a capture, and eager little tongues tell
-experiences of arrests which baby eyes have seen. The empty holiday is a
-burden to a child, and every one has heard of the bus driver who could
-think of nothing better to do on his off day than to ride on a bus
-beside a mate. The idea that, given leisure, the people will find
-recreation is not justified. A kitten may be satisfied with aimless
-play, but a spark disturbs mankind’s clod and his play needs direction.
-
-The other illusion which must be dissipated is that amusement should
-call for no effort on the part of those to be amused. It is the common
-mistake of benevolence that it tries to remove difficulties, rather than
-strengthen people to surmount difficulties. The gift which provides food
-is often destructive of the powers which earn food. In the same way the
-benevolence which, as among the Romans, provides shows, entertainments,
-and feasts, destroys at last the capacity for pleasure. Toys often
-stifle children’s imaginations and develop a greed for possession;
-children enjoy more truly what they themselves help to create, so that a
-bit of wood with inkspots for eyes, which they themselves have made, is
-more precious than an expensive doll. Grown people’s amusements to be
-satisfying must also call out effort.
-
-The shattering of these two illusions leaves society face to face with
-the obligation to teach people to play as well as to work. It is not
-enough to give leisure and leave amusement to follow. Neither is it
-enough to provide popular amusement. James I was not a great King but he
-was a collector of wisdom, and he laid down for his son a guide for his
-games as well as for his work. Teachers and parents with greater
-experience might, like the King, guide their children.
-
-(1) It is not, I think, waste of time to watch infants when at play, to
-encourage their efforts, to welcome their calls to look, and to enter
-into their imaginings. This watching, so usual among the children of the
-richer classes, is missed by the children of the poorer and often leaves
-a gap in their development.
-
-(2) It would not either be wasted expenditure to employ game-teachers in
-the elementary schools, who, on Saturdays and out of school hours would
-teach children games, indoor and outdoor, conduct small parties to
-places of interest, and organize country walks or excursions such as are
-common in Swiss schools.
-
-(3) It is, I think, reasonable to ask that the great school buildings
-and playgrounds should be more continually at the children’s service.
-They have been built at great expense. They are often the most airy and
-largest space in a crowded neighbourhood. Why should they be in the
-children’s use for only some twenty-five hours a week? Why should they
-be closed during two whole months? The experience gained in the vacation
-schools advocated by Mrs. Humphry Ward gives an object lesson in what
-might be done. During the afternoon hours between five and seven, and in
-the summer holidays, the children, with the greatest delight to
-themselves, might be drawn to see new things, to use new faculties of
-admiration or develop new tastes. Every child might thus be given a
-hobby. Recreation means, as we have seen, change. If the children ended
-their school days with more interests, with eyes opened to see in the
-country not only a nest to be taken but a brood of birds to be watched,
-with hands capable not only to make things but to create beauty, the
-limits within which they could find change would be greatly enlarged.
-
-If I may now extend my suggestion to parents I would say that those of
-all classes might do more in planning holidays for their children. There
-is now a strong disposition to leave all responsibility to the teachers,
-and parents are in the danger of losing parental authority. In the
-holidays is their chance of regaining authority; for every day they
-could plan occupation, put aside time to join in some common pursuit,
-arrange visits, and make themselves companions of their own children.
-The teacher may be held responsible, but his work is often spoiled in
-the idle hours of a holiday, when bad books are read, vulgar sights
-enjoyed, low companions found, and habits of loafing developed. But it
-is not only teachers and parents by whom children are guided. There is a
-host of men and women who plan treats, excursions, and country holidays.
-Their efforts could, I think, be made more valuable. The monster day
-treats, which give excitement and turn the children’s minds in a
-direction towards the excitements of crowds and of stimulants from
-without, might be exchanged for small treats where ten or twenty
-children in close companionship with their guide would enjoy one
-another’s company, find new interests, and store up memories of things
-seen and heard. Tramps through England might be organized for elder boys
-and girls in which visits might be paid to historic fields and scenes of
-beauty, and objects of interest sought. Children about to be sent to the
-country by a Holiday Fund might, as is now very happily done by a
-committee in connexion with the Children’s Country Holiday Fund, by
-means of pictures and talk be taught what to look for and be encouraged
-to tell of their discoveries. Habits of singing might be developed, as
-among the Welsh or the Swiss. And in a thousand ways thought might be
-drawn to the observation of nature. Good people might, if I may say so,
-give up the provision of those entertainments which now, absorbing so
-much of the energy of curates and laywomen, seem only to prepare the
-children to look for the entertainment of the music halls. They might
-instead teach children one by one to find amusement, each one in his own
-being.
-
-The hope of the future lies obviously in the training of the children,
-but the elder members of the community might also have more chances of
-growth. Employers, for instance, might more generally substitute
-holidays of weeks for holidays of days, and so encourage the workpeople
-to plan their reasonable use. They might also enlarge their minds by
-informing them about the material on which they work, whence it comes
-and whither it goes. Miss Addams tells of a firm in Ohio where the hands
-are gathered to hear the reports of the travellers as they return from
-Constantinople, Italy, or China, and learn how the goods they have made
-are used by strange people. In the same firm lantern lectures are given
-on the countries with which the firm has dealings, and generally the
-hands are made partners in the thoughts of the heads. “This,” as Miss
-Addams says, “is a crude example of the way in which a larger framework
-may be given to the worker’s mind,” and she adds, “as a poet bathes the
-outer world for us in the hues of human feeling, so the workman needs
-some one to bathe his surrounding with a human significance.” Employers
-also, following the example of Messrs. Cadbury, might require their
-young people not only to attend evening classes to make them fitter for
-work, but also to attend one class which will fit them to ride hobbies,
-which will carry them from the strain and routine of work into other and
-recreating surroundings. Municipal bodies have in these latter days done
-much in the right direction by opening playing fields, picture
-galleries, and libraries, and by giving free performances of high-class
-music. They might perhaps do more to break up the monotony of the
-streets, introducing more of the country into town, and requiring
-dignity as well as healthiness in the great buildings. Such variety adds
-greatly to the joy of living, diverts the minds of weary workers, and
-stimulates the admiration which is one-third of life.
-
-But, after all, improvement starts from individuals, and it is the
-action of individual men and women which will reform popular reaction.
-They must, each one as if the reform depended on him alone, be morally
-thoughtful about the amusements they encourage or patronize, and be
-considerate in preparing for their own pleasure. Each one must develop
-his own being, and stir up the faculties of his own mind. Each one must
-practise the muscles of his mind as a racer practises the muscles of his
-legs.
-
-The most completely satisfying recreation is possibly in the intercourse
-of friends, and it is a sad feature in English holidays that men and
-their wives, who are naturally the closest friends, seem to find so
-little pleasure in one another’s company. They walk one behind the other
-in the country, they are rarely found together at places of
-entertainment, and they are seldom seen talking with any vivacity. The
-fault lies in the fact that they have not developed their own being,
-they have neither interests nor hobbies nor ideas, and so have nothing
-to talk about save wages, household difficulties, and the shortest way
-home.
-
-Enough, however, in the way of suggestion as to what may be done in
-guiding people towards recreation. Under guidance recreations would take
-another than their present character. People, having a wider range of
-interests, would find change within those interests, and cease to turn
-from sensation to sleep and from sleep to sensation. People having
-active minds would look to exercise their minds in a game of skill, in
-searching Nature’s secrets, in spirited talk, in some creative activity,
-in following a thought-provoking drama, in the use, that is, of their
-highest human faculties. The forms of recreation would be changed. Much
-of the difficulty about what seems Sunday desecration would then vanish.
-The play of the people would no longer be fatal to the quiet of the day,
-or inconsistent with the worship which demands the consecration of the
-whole being. It is not recreation so much as the form of recreation
-which desecrates Sunday. This, however, is part of another subject.
-
-As a conclusion of the whole matter I would say how it seems to me that
-Merrie England need be not only in the past. The present time is the
-best of times. There are to-day resources for men’s enjoyment such as
-never existed in any other age or country. There are fresh and pure
-capacities in human nature which are evident in many signs of energy, of
-admiration, and of good will. If the resources were used, if the
-capacities were developed, there would soon be popular recreations to
-attract human longings, and encourage the hope of a future when the
-glory of England shall not be in its possessions of gold and territory,
-but in a people happy in the full use of their powers of heart and of
-head.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE HOPES OF THE HOSTS.[1]
-
- BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT.
-
- January, 1886.
-
- [1] From “The Toynbee Journal”.
-
-
-Certainly a great deal of entertaining goes on in Toynbee Hall. From the
-half-hours spent in the little room, where its Entertainment Committee
-meets, there issue some prominent if not exactly big results, and,
-perhaps, its members are not without a hope that deep consequences as
-well may follow. This method of helping people has not been without its
-critics, one of whom uttered the opinion, “that the Toynbee Hall plan
-was to save the people’s souls alive by pictures, pianos, and parties,”
-and though the remark was made derisively, there may be some doubt if it
-was altogether without truth: only the speaker should have added that it
-was _one_ of the Toynbee Hall plans, instead of using only the definite
-article.
-
-If the Toynbee Hall aim is to help to make it possible that men should
-carry out the command given long ago of “Be ye perfect,” and if, as a
-modern lover of righteousness has put it, “the power of social life and
-manners is one of the great elements in our humanization, and unless we
-cultivate it we are incomplete”; then it is not an error that “pictures,
-pianos, and parties” should be pressed into service to fill up some of
-the incompleteness in the East London dweller’s life, and to help him to
-“save his soul alive”.
-
-It is one of the saddest facts of life in this crowded, busy, tiring,
-and hurried part of London that it is more difficult to keep one’s soul
-(like one’s plants) alive than it is in gentler places, where folk get
-the aid of some of nature’s beauties, and some moments of that outside
-quiet which help to make it possible to fancy “the peace which passeth
-all understanding”. But because Whitechapel is Whitechapel and Toynbee
-Hall is in its midst, more artificial methods for gaining and keeping
-life must be adopted.
-
-It is true that the Entertainment Committee prefer those gatherings
-which can take place out of doors in the country, where the guests gain
-all that comes from the charm of being graciously entertained under “the
-wider sky”; but still town parties are not to be despised, and, judging
-from the glad acceptance of those many who “cannot bid again,” they are
-generally enjoyed.
-
-The method of food entertainment is very simple, so simple that it
-sometimes wars against the generous instincts of the hosts; but, after
-careful thought, it has been decided that the object of Toynbee Hall
-entertainments and parties will be more surely gained if “plain living
-and high thinking” can be maintained--not to mention the more mundane
-consideration that more friends can be welcomed as guests, if each is
-not so expensive. So the pleasure to be gained from rich or dainty food
-is neglected, and the guests are summoned in order to give them
-pleasures by increasing their interests. And among the means of doing
-this may be reckoned the fine thoughts of the great dumb teachers, the
-artists, of which those who care can learn as they turn over the
-portfolios, look at the photograph books, or study the gift pictures on
-the walls. The great in the musical world are called upon for offerings
-as the musically generous among the friends of Toynbee Hall pass on the
-plaintive ideas of Schumann, or the grand soul-stirring aspirations of
-Beethoven and Mozart.
-
-To give pleasure is now almost universally considered to be a righteous
-duty, and when it is taken into consideration that the homes of most
-East Londoners are too narrow, their daily labour too great, and their
-resources too limited to permit them taking pleasure by entertaining in
-their own houses, it cannot but be considered as a gladdening sight when
-the Toynbee reception rooms are full of a happy, an amused, and an
-enjoying company.
-
-To increase interests is not perhaps as yet recognized as so deep a
-human need, but it may be so, none the less for this; and to the young
-or to the much tempted, this opportunity of increasing their interests
-is of untold value.
-
-Most young folk are better educated than their parents, and, with a keen
-sense of enjoyment, a belief in their own powers of self-guidance, and a
-happy blank on their page of disappointments, they are eager for “fuller
-life,” and will take its pleasure in some guise, warn their elders never
-so wisely. To give it them free from temptation, and in such a form that
-when the first novelty is worn off, it will still be true that “the best
-is yet to be”; to increase interests, until a self-centred and
-self-seeking existence shows itself in its true and despicable colours;
-to increase scientific interests with microscopes, magic lanterns, and
-experiments; literary interests with talks on books, recitations from
-the poets, scenes from Shakespeare; to increase musical interests with
-the aid of glee clubs, string quartettes, and solo and chorus songs; to
-increase interests on all sides is the aim of the Entertainment
-Committee, hoping that thus for some “all earth will seem aglow where
-’twas but plain earth before”.
-
-“The cultivation of social life and manners is equal to a moral impulse,
-for it works to the same end.... It brings men together, makes them feel
-the need of one another, be considerate of one another, understand one
-another.” So teaches Matthew Arnold. And the introduction of the guests
-to each other is no neglected feature in the Toynbee Hall gatherings. It
-is for this reason that guests of all classes are summoned together,
-that the hand-worker may have sympathy with the head-labourer, that the
-eager reformer may gather hints from the clear-visioned thoughts of the
-untried lad, or that the boy living a club life far removed from women’s
-power, may be introduced to a “ladye faire,” who may (if she will)
-become to him a “sheltering cloud by day and a pillar of fire by night,”
-guiding him safely through stonier wastes than ever the old Israelites
-weathered. It is no slight duty this, to introduce one human being to
-another--to help them to pass quickly along the dull road of
-acquaintanceship and out into the sweet valley of knowledge and
-friendship, and there gain, the comfort, refreshment, and inspiration,
-without which it almost seems impossible to believe in and hold on to an
-ideal good.
-
-The highest and noblest thing yet revealed to man is the human
-creature’s soul, “the very pulse of the machine,” and if Toynbee Hall
-parties do something to reveal the depths of one creature to another; if
-they do a little to keep alive and weld into solidarity the floating
-hopes and aspirations, which idly live in every human heart, but, alas!
-so often die from loneliness; if they do something to help people to
-care for one another and to see the higher vision; and if those thus
-caring are stirred to take thought for the growth and development of the
-larger, sadder world, then, perhaps, the “pictures, pianos, and parties”
-will not so ill have played their part in the work of Toynbee Hall.
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- EASTER MONDAY ON HAMPSTEAD HEATH.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- April, 1905.
-
- [1] From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Bank Holiday on Hampstead Heath sets moving many thoughts. No
-drunkenness, no bad temper, no brutal rowdiness--but where are the
-family parties? Three-quarters of the people seem to be under twenty
-years of age. Where are the family groups such as are found in France
-or in the colder Denmark making pleasure by talk, or by gaiety,
-singing, or dancing, or acting--finding interest in things beautiful or
-new? There were, indeed, some families at Hampstead, and perambulators
-were driven through the thickest crowd, every one making room for the
-baby. But the father often looked bored and the mother worried. They
-were doing their duty, giving the children pleasure, and getting fresh
-air. The crowd was a young persons’ crowd--boys by themselves, girls by
-themselves, and a smaller number paired. They had come to be amused,
-and the caterers of amusement had established by the roadside the shows
-and shooting-galleries and swings such as are to be found within the
-reach of most crowded neighbourhoods. Organ-grinders played, sweets
-were exposed for sale, and the Heath Road was as packed with people as
-Petticoat Lane on a Sunday morning. The people wandered over the Heath,
-but while they wandered they seemed listless, or on the watch for
-anything to occupy their attention. A few children dancing as every day
-they dance in Whitechapel at once drew together a crowd. Golder’s Hill
-Park, which was never more radiant in its beauty, was comparatively
-empty. The road outside, where public-houses had provided various
-attractions, was packed, not by people who were customers but by people
-watching one another and waiting for something to happen. But inside
-the park, where the County Council’s restaurant had spread its tables
-for tea, where from the Terrace there is a view of unequalled beauty,
-where the gardens are rich in flowers, there were only a few scattered
-groups.
-
-The holiday is not a feast of brutality or drunkenness. No one need have
-been offended by sight or sound. The Shows, thanks to the County Council
-regulations, were all decent, and there was everywhere the courtesy of
-good temper. An observer, thinking of twenty years ago, would say, “What
-an improvement!” but his next thought would be, “How much better things
-are possible!” In the first place, the arrangements for the supply of
-food might be different. In Golder’s Hill itself the regulation that no
-teas should be served on the grass for fear of its injury shows a
-curious ignorance of relative values when, for the want of very slight
-protection, boys are allowed to tear away the banks on the side of
-Spaniard’s Road. The injured grass would revive in a month; the torn
-banks are irreparably damaged. There is no reason why the London County
-Council’s restaurants both on Golder’s Hill and in other parts of the
-Heath should not attract people by the daintiness of their display, and
-why the people should not be held by music and singing. Family parties
-would be more likely to frequent the place if the elders could be
-assured of pleasant resting-places. How differently, how very much
-better, they manage feeding abroad! People are always hungry and thirsty
-on holidays, and from the public-house to the whelk-stall, from the
-tea-gardens to the coffee-stand, there was evidence of English
-incapacity to supply the most persistent of holiday needs. The first
-improvement possible is, therefore, more dainty and more frequent
-provision of refreshment. The next improvement, which especially applies
-to Golder’s Hill, is the addition of objects of interest. There might be
-an aviary, the greenhouses might be filled with flowers and opened,
-rooms in the house might be decorated with pictures of the neighbourhood
-or with a collection of local objects. People who are unconsciously
-taking in memories through their eyes need some illusion; they must
-think they are going to see something they understand, if they are to be
-led to see the better things beyond their understanding. Then, surely,
-some more care might be taken of the tender places on the Heath--there
-are acres of grass on which boys may play, who might thereby be kept
-from scouring the surface of the light sand soil, making highways
-through the gorse, opening waterways to starve the trees.
-
-These improvements are possible at once. There are others longer in the
-doing which are also necessary. People must be educated not only to be
-wage-earners but to enjoy their being. They too much depend on
-stimulants, on some outside excitement always liable to excess. They
-might find pleasure in themselves, in the use of their own faculties, in
-their powers of observation or activity, in their own intelligence and
-curiosity. They might with better education be “good company” for
-themselves and for one another. The people possess in Hampstead Heath a
-property a king might envy, but they only partially enjoy its
-opportunities.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- HOLIDAYS AND SCHOOLDAYS.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- July, 1911.
-
- [1] From “The Daily Telegraph”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Holidays, as well as schooldays, help to form the minds of the citizens.
-Habits, tastes, friendships, are fixed in the hours when restraints are
-relaxed, and the Will takes its shape when it is most free. Our school
-holidays, when in play we commanded or obeyed, when we learnt to know
-the country sights and objects, when, with different companions, we
-travelled to new places, have been largely responsible for such
-satisfaction as we have found in life.
-
-Men and women are what their holidays have made them, and a nation’s use
-of its holidays may almost be said to determine its position in the
-world’s order of greatness. A nation whose pleasures are coarse and
-brutal, whose people delight in the excitement of their senses by
-actions in which their minds take no part, and where solitude is
-unendurable, can hardly do great things. It is not likely that it will
-be remembered, as the poets are remembered, by its care for any
-principle of action. It will hardly be generous in its foreign policy or
-happy in its homes.
-
-The use of holidays is thus most important, and everywhere there are
-signs of their increase. The schools for the richer classes lengthen the
-period of their vacations till they extend, in some cases, to a quarter
-of the year. The King asked that his Coronation year may be marked by an
-extra week of exemption from school. Business people shorten hours of
-business, and workmen’s organizations demand more time for holidays.
-Seaside resorts grow up which live mainly by the pleasures of the
-people, and a vast and increasing body of workers find employment in the
-provision of amusement.
-
-More time and more money are being given to holidays. Their use or
-misuse is a matter of importance, and it is reasonable to demand that
-more thought should also be given to this subject. People--this fact is
-often forgotten--need to be taught to play as they need to be taught to
-earn or to love. Leisure is as likely to produce weariness as joy, and
-the Devil still finds most of his occupation among the idlers.
-
-The public schoolboy who has eight weeks’ vacation, and this year an
-extra week, will hardly be happy if he acquires habits of loafing at the
-seaside shows or picks up acquaintance with despisers of knowledge, or
-comes to think that learning is a “grind,” and he certainly will not in
-after years bless his holiday givers. The workman who obtains holidays
-and shorter hours will hardly be the better if he spends them in eating
-and sleeping, or in exciting himself over a match or race where he does
-not even understand the skill, or in watching an entertainment which
-calls for no effort of his mind.
-
-Rich people, who can do what they like in the time they themselves
-choose, add excitement to excitement; they invent new methods of
-expenditure; they go at increasing speed from place to place; they come
-nearer and nearer to the brinks of vice; they have what they like; and
-yet, like the millionaire in the American tale, they are not happy.
-People need to be taught the use of leisure. The question is, how is
-such teaching practicable?... I would offer two suggestions: one which
-may be applied to the schools of the rich and of the poor, and the other
-to the free provision of means of recreation:--
-
-1. As to schools. The authorities may, it seems to me, keep in mind the
-fact that the children are meant to enjoy life as well as to make a
-living. Enjoyment comes largely by the use of the power of imagination.
-We enjoy ourselves before the beauty of nature, before a work of art, in
-listening to music, and in imagining the life of other climes and
-countries. How little is done in any school to develop this power of
-imagination! The great public schools, though often they are established
-in buildings of much beauty, rarely do anything to develop in the boys
-any understanding of the beauty. There is but little art in the
-schoolrooms and little attempt to teach the value of pictures. There are
-few flowers about the windows and very often the time given to music is
-grudged by the chief authorities.
-
-The elementary schools have not even the advantage of beauty in their
-buildings, and although the children may be taught art, they have their
-lessons in rooms made ugly by decorations, or wearying by untidiness.
-What wonder is it that boys and girls become destructive of the beauty
-in the admiration of which they and others might have found pleasure?
-
-The authorities might thus do something by the curriculum to make
-leisure time a happy time, but they might do more by making holiday
-arrangements. Richer parents may justly be expected to care for their
-own children, and many seize the opportunity of becoming their
-playmates, so that holiday times develop the memories that bind together
-old and young. But few parents can take themselves from business for
-eight or nine weeks together, and not all parents have the knowledge or
-the sympathy to lead the young in their pleasures. A solution might be
-the arrangement by the school authorities of travelling parties--such as
-those organized at Manchester Grammar School; or of walking tours with
-some object, such as the collection of specimens or the investigation of
-places of interest,--or of holiday homes in the school houses or
-elsewhere, where, under the guidance of sympathetic teachers, the
-children could enjoy freer life and more varied interests than are
-possible in school, or of the interchange of visits between the children
-of English and foreign homes. Once let it be realized that the long
-holiday period--if necessary for the teachers--is full of danger for the
-children, and something will be done to make that period healthy as well
-as happy.
-
-For the children in elementary schools it is easy to make arrangements.
-During the three summer months the curriculum might be like that of the
-Vacation Schools. The buildings, often the only pleasant place in a
-crowded neighbourhood--would thus be in continuous use, while the
-children and teachers could get away for their country or foreign
-holiday, without breaking into any school routine. The children would
-then go into the country prepared to see and enjoy its interests, not
-only in the month of August, but at times when they might play in the
-hayfields, pick the spring flowers, and hear the birds sing. The
-teachers could have, not four, but six weeks’ vacation, in which there
-would be time for a foreign visit when the hotels were less crowded. The
-children, at the end of their fortnight in the country, would return,
-not just to loaf about the streets amid the dirt and the noise and
-degrading temptation, but to take their places in the open and pleasant
-surroundings of the school, with its manifold interests.
-
-The end of the summer would, if this arrangement could be carried out,
-find teachers and children alike refreshed and ready for the hard work
-of the ordinary school routine; and, greatest gain of all, the children
-would have learned how to enjoy their leisure. They would have planted
-memories which would call for refreshment; they would have developed
-powers of admiration which would need to be used; they would have found
-interests to occupy their thoughts, and they would look forward to
-holidays in which to go to the country--not to play “Aunt Sally,” or
-even to find fresh air from town pursuits, but to visit old haunts,
-discover more secrets of nature and taste its quiet. They would, as men
-and women, make “good company” for one another, and learn to require
-some distinction of quiet or beauty to make a British holiday. They
-would find, in the appreciation of English scenery, new reasons for
-being patriots.
-
-Satisfying pleasure, it must always be remembered, comes from within,
-and not from without a man. Outside stimulants always fail at last,
-whether they be drink, shows, sensational tales, or games of chance; but
-the pleasures which come from the activity of head, or heart, or of
-limbs last as long as strength and life last.
-
-This leads to the other practicable suggestion which I would offer. The
-Community might provide freely the means which would give the people the
-pleasures which come from culture. Much has been done in this direction.
-Open spaces in our great towns have been made more common, but their use
-has not been developed as has been done in American cities, where
-superintendents teach the children how to play, and the playgrounds
-become centres of common enjoyments. Museums and picture galleries are
-sometimes provided, but they are still rare and often dull. Personal
-guidance is necessary if the objects in a museum are to have any meaning
-for the ordinary visitor, and the pictures in a gallery need to be
-changed frequently if attention is to be held. The Japanese wisely, even
-in their private rooms, have a succession of pictures, relegating those
-not hung to the seclusion of the “Godown”. Music is given in the parks
-and sometimes in the town halls, but the best is not made common, and
-much is so poor that it fails to reach or express the thoughts which, if
-deeply buried, are to be found in the hearts of common people.
-
-No attempts are made to open dull ears, to listen to good music, though
-teachers in public schools report how it is possible by a few talks to
-make athletes enthusiastic for Beethoven. The total amount of good free
-music is very small and certainly not enough to raise the common taste
-and attract minds capable of thought and admiration.
-
-The duty of the Community to provide means of recreation is recognized,
-but too often it has seemed enough if it provides amusement which can be
-measured by popular applause. The duty should, I submit, have for its
-aim the provision of such recreation as would gradually lead the people
-in the way of enjoyment, and raise the character of all holidays by
-making them more satisfying to the higher demands of human nature.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE FAILURE OF HOLIDAYS.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- May, 1912.
-
- [1] From “The Daily Telegraph,” May, 1912. By permission of the
-Editor.
-
-
-Eight hundred thousand children are every August turned out of the airy
-and spacious Schools which London has built for their use, and for
-four weeks they can do what they like. To the people whose opinions
-form public opinion, “to do what one likes” seems the very essence of
-a holiday. The forgotten fact is that the majority of these children
-do not know what they like. All children, indeed, need to be taught
-to enjoy themselves, just as they are taught to earn for themselves;
-and children whose parents are without money to take them to the
-country or the seaside, where nature would give them playmates, and
-without leisure to be referees in their first attempts at games, miss
-the necessary teaching. They get tired of trying to find out what they
-like, tired of waiting for the sensation of a street fight or accident,
-tired of aimless play in the parks, tired even of doing what they had
-been told not to do. A few--40,000 of the 800,000--are sent by the
-Children’s Country Holiday Fund to spend a fortnight of the month in
-country cottages; a few others go to stay with friends or accompany
-their parents, but the greater number--it is said that 480,000 children
-never sleep one night out of London during the year--have no other
-break than a day treat, which, with its intoxicating excitements and
-its distracting noises, can hardly claim to be a lesson in the art of
-enjoyment or to be a fair introduction to country pleasures. The August
-holiday under present conditions, cannot be described as a time in
-which working-class children store up memories of childhood’s joys, nor
-does it prepare them as men and women to make good use of the leisure
-gained by shorter hours of labour.
-
-The use of leisure has not, I think, been sufficiently considered from a
-National point of view. It concerns the happiness, the health, and also
-the wealth of the nation. If their leisure dissipates the strength of
-men’s minds, leaves them the prey to stimulants, and at the same time
-absorbs the wages of work, there is a continual loss, which must at last
-be fatal. The children’s August holiday, with its dullness and its
-dependence on chance excitements, prepares the way for Beanfeasts where
-parties of men find nothing better to do amid the beauty of the country
-than to throw stones at bottles, or for the vulgar futilities of Margate
-sands, Hampstead Heath and the music hall, or for the soul-numbing
-variety of sport.
-
-The recent report issued by the London County Council tells the result
-of an experiment in a better use of the holiday by means of Vacation
-Schools. The word “School” may suggest restraint, and put off some of my
-readers, who are apt to think of “heaven as a place where there are no
-masters”. They will say, “Let the children alone”. But they do not
-realize what “letting alone” means for children whose homes have no
-resources in space or interests. They do not remember that the
-schoolhouse is the Mansion of the neighbourhood, and that the Vacation
-School curriculum includes visits to the parks and to London sights,
-such as the Zoological Gardens, Hampton Court, and the Natural History
-Museum; manual occupations in which really useful things are made,
-painting and cardboard modelling, by which the children’s own
-imaginations have play; lessons on nature, illustrated by plants and by
-pictures, readings from interesting books, about which the teachers are
-ready to talk, and organized games. When relieved from the trouble of
-having to choose at what to play, the children find untroubled
-enjoyment. Vacation Schools thus understood have no terror, but let the
-children themselves give evidence whether they prefer to be let alone.
-
-In a Battersea Vacation School there was an average attendance of 91·6
-per cent, and on one day 153 children out of 154 on the roll voluntarily
-attended. “The high rate of actual attendance at the Vacation Schools,
-which compares not unfavourably with that of the ordinary day schools,
-in spite of the fact that compulsion is completely absent from the
-former, may be taken as an indication that the London child does not
-know what to do during the long vacation, and is anxious and ready to
-take advantage of any opportunity that may be afforded for work and play
-under conditions more healthy and congenial than the street or his home
-can offer.” In another school the teachers report: “We had been asked to
-do our best to keep up the numbers. Our difficulty was to keep them
-down.” “The discipline of the boys specially surprised the staff; a hint
-of possible expulsion was quite sufficient in dealing with two or three
-boys reported during the month.”
-
-The children, by their attendance, give the best evidence that the
-Vacation School is in their opinion a good way of spending a holiday and
-the report gives greater detail as to the reason. The teachers tell how
-“listless manners give place to animation and energy, and how the
-tendency prevalent among the boys to loaf or aimlessly to idle away
-their holidays was checked by the introduction of an objective, the
-absence of which is chiefly responsible for the loafing tendency.... The
-absence of restraint appears to lead to more honourable and more
-thoughtful conduct, and little acts of courtesy and politeness increased
-in frequency as the holidays drew to an end.... Educationally the
-children benefit in increased manual dexterity, by the creation of
-motive, the training of the powers of observation, and the development
-of memory and imagination.... In many cases ... new capabilities were
-discovered, and talents awakened by the more congenial surroundings.
-Some children, who at first appeared dull and inattentive, brightened up
-and became most interested in one or more of their varied
-occupations.... Little chats on the Excursions revealed a marked
-widening of outlook.”
-
-In such testimony as this it is quite easy to find the reason why the
-children so greatly enjoyed themselves. They had a variety of new
-interests and they had the sense of “life” which comes in the exercise
-of new capacities. They were never bored and they felt well. The
-parents, whose burden during holidays is often forgotten, seem to have
-expressed great appreciation at the provision for the children’s care,
-and as for the teachers, one goes so far as to say that “the kind of
-experience gained is a teacher’s liberal education and training”.
-
-The Report as a result of such testimony, naturally recommends an
-extension of the plan of Vacation Schools, so that this summer a greater
-number may be provided. I would, however, submit that the testimony
-justifies something more thorough.
-
-The proposals of the Report assume that holidays must fall in the month
-of August. Now there are many parents whose occupation keeps them in
-town during that month, and who cannot therefore take their children
-to the country. August too, is the period when all health resorts are
-most crowded and expensive. And lastly, if holidays are taken only
-in this autumn season the country of the spring and summer, with its
-haymaking, its flowers and its birds, remains unknown to the children.
-The obvious change--so obvious that one wonders why it has not long
-ago been adopted--is to let some schools take their holidays in the
-months of June and July. But I would myself suggest the best plan
-would be to keep all, or most, of the school in session during the
-whole summer, establishing for the three months a summer curriculum
-on the lines of those adopted in the Vacation Schools. The children
-would then be able to go with their friends, or through the Children’s
-Country Holiday Fund for their Country Holiday without any interference
-with the regular school regime; and all, while they were at home,
-would have those resources in the school hours which have proved to
-be powerful to attract them from the streets. The teachers, free at
-last to take some of their holidays in June or July, would be able to
-benefit by the lower charges, to get, perhaps, a recreative holiday in
-the Alps instead of one at the English seaside in the somewhat stale
-companionship of a party of fellow-teachers.
-
-This more thorough plan would do for all London children everything
-which Vacation Schools attempt, and it has the further advantage that it
-would put refreshing country visits within the reach of more children
-and teachers.
-
-Middle-class families recognize the necessity of an annual visit to the
-sea or country, as a consequence of which great towns exist almost
-wholly as holiday resorts. The necessity of the middle class is much
-more the necessity of the working class, whose children have less room
-in their houses and fewer interests for their leisure. A pressure which
-cannot be resisted will insist that for their health’s sake and for the
-child’s sake, who is the father of the man, the children shall have each
-year the opportunity of breathing for at least a fortnight country air,
-and of learning to be Nature’s playmates. The only practicable way in
-which such holidays may be provided is by the extension of the holiday
-period to include other than the month of August.
-
-The plan I have suggested would make such extension practicable with the
-least possible interference with school work, while it would secure for
-all children some guidance in the use and enjoyment of the leisure,
-which the experiment of Vacation Schools has proved to be so acceptable.
-That guidance, by widening children’s minds and awakening their powers
-of taking notice, would make the country visits more full of interests,
-and develop a love of Nature, to be a valuable resource in later life.
-If the Council’s Report succeeds in moving London opinion it may mark a
-new departure in the use and enjoyment of holidays.
-
-It almost seems as if the education given at such cost ran to waste
-during the holidays. There is a call for another Charles Booth, to make
-an inquiry into “the life and leisure of the people” which might be as
-epoch-making as that into “the life and labour of the people”. Such an
-inquiry would show, I believe, the need of energetic effort if leisure
-is to be a source of strength and not of weakness to national life, a
-way to recreation and not to demoralization.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- RECREATION IN TOWN AND COUNTRY.[1]
-
- RECREATION AND CHARACTER.
-
- BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT.
-
- October, 1906.
-
- [1] A paper written for the Church Congress, and read at its meeting
-at Barrow-in-Furness by the Right Reverend the Lord Bishop of Truro, the
-late C. W. Stubbs.
-
-
-A people’s play is a fair test of a people’s character. Men and women in
-their hours of leisure show their real admiration and their inner faith.
-Their “idle words,” in more than one sense, are those by which they are
-judged.
-
-No one who has reached an age from which he can overlook fifteen or
-twenty years can doubt but that pleasure-seeking has greatly increased.
-The railway statistics show that during the last year more people have
-been taken to seaside and pleasure resorts than ever before. On Bank
-Holidays a larger number travel, and more and more facilities are
-annually offered for day trips and evening entertainments.
-
-The newspapers give many pages to recording games, pages which are
-eagerly scanned even when, as in the case of the “Daily News,” the
-betting on their results is omitted.
-
-Face to face with these facts we need some principles to enable us to
-advise this pleasure-seeking generation what to seek and what to avoid.
-To arrive at principles one has to probe below the surface, to seek the
-cause of the pleasure given by various amusements. Briefly, what persons
-of all ages seek in pleasure is (1) excitement, (2) interest, (3)
-memories. These are natural desires; no amount of preaching or scolding,
-or hiding them away will abolish them. It is the part of wisdom to
-recognize facts and use them for the uplifting of human nature.
-
-May I offer two principles for your consideration?
-
-1. Pleasure, while offering excitement, should not depend on excitement;
-it should not involve a fellow-creature’s loss or pain, nor lay its
-foundation on greed or gain.
-
-2. Pleasure should not only give enjoyment, it should also increase
-capacities for enjoyment. It should strengthen a man’s whole being,
-enrich memory and call forth effort.
-
-
- THE QUALITY OF ENGLISH PLAYING.
-
-If these principles have a basis of truth, the questions arise, “Are the
-common recreations of the people such as to encourage our hope of
-English progress? Do they make us proud of the growth of national
-character, and give us a ground of security for the high place we all
-long that England shall hold in the future?” The country may be lost as
-well as won on her playing fields.
-
-Recreation means the refreshment of the sources of life. Routine wears
-life, and “It is life of which our nerves are scant”. The excitement
-which stirs the worn or sleeping centres of a man’s body, mind or
-spirit, is the first step in such refreshment, but followed by nothing
-else it defeats its own ends. It uses strength and creates nothing, and
-if unmixed with what endures it can but leave the partaker the poorer.
-The fire must be stirred, but unless fuel be supplied the flames will
-soon sink in ashes.
-
-It behoves us then to accept excitement as a necessary part of
-recreation, and to seek to add to it those things which lead to
-increased resources and leave purer memories. Such an addition is skill.
-A wise manager of a boys’ refuge once said to me that it was the first
-step upwards to induce a lad to play a game of skill instead of a game
-of chance. Another such addition is co-operation, that is a call on the
-receiver to give something. It is better for instance to play a game
-than to watch a game. It may, perhaps, be helpful to recall the
-principle, and let it test some of the popular pleasures.
-
-
- POPULAR PLEASURES.
-
-Pleasure, while offering excitement, should not depend on excitement; it
-should not involve a fellow-creature’s loss or pain, nor lay its
-foundation on greed or gain.
-
-This principle excludes the recreations which, like drink or gambling,
-stir without feeding, or the pleasures which are blended with the
-sorrows of the meanest thing that feels. It excludes also the dull
-Museum which feeds without stirring, and makes no provision for
-excitement. Tried by this standard, what is to be said of Margate,
-Blackpool, and such popular resorts, with their ribald gaiety and inane
-beach shows? Of music halls, where the entertainment was described by
-Mr. Stead as the “most insufferable banality and imbecility that ever
-fell upon human ears,” disgusting him not so much for its immorality as
-by the vulgar stupidity of it all. Of racing, the acknowledged interest
-of which is in the betting, a method of self-enrichment by another’s
-impoverishment, which tends to sap the very foundations of honesty and
-integrity; of football matches, which thousands watch, often ignorant of
-the science of the game, but captivated by the hope of winning a bet or
-by the spectacle of brutal conflict; of monster school-treats or
-excursions, when numbers engender such monopolizing excitement that all
-else which the energetic curate or the good ladies have provided is
-ruthlessly swallowed up; shooting battues, where skill and effort give
-place to organization and cruelty; of plays, where the interest centres
-round the breaking of the commandments and “fools make a mock of sin”.
-
-Such pleasures may amuse for the time, but they fail to be recreative in
-so far as they do not make life fuller, do not increase the powers of
-admiration, hope and love; do not store the memory to be “the bliss of
-solitude”. Of most of them it can be easily foretold that the “crime of
-sense will be avenged by sense which wears with time”. Such pleasures
-cannot lay the foundation for a glad old age.
-
-Does this sound as if all popular pleasures are to be condemned? No!
-brought to the test of our second principle, there are whole realms of
-pleasure-lands which the Christian can explore and introduce to others,
-to the gladdening, deepening, and strengthening of their lives. May I
-read the principle again?
-
-Pleasure should not only give enjoyment, it should also increase the
-capacity for enjoyment. It should strengthen a man’s whole being, enrich
-memory and call forth effort and co-operation.
-
-Music, games of skill, books, athletics, foreign travel, cycling,
-walking tours, sailing, photography, picture galleries, botanical
-rambles, antiquarian researches, and many other recreations too numerous
-to mention call out the growth of the powers, as well as feed what
-exists; they excite active as well as passive emotions; they enlist the
-receiver as a co-operator; they allow the pleasure-seekers to feel the
-joy of being the creating children of a creating God.
-
-As we consider the subject, the chasm between right and wrong pleasures,
-worthy and unworthy recreations, seems to become deeper and broader,
-often though crossed by bridges of human effort, triumphs of dexterity,
-evidences of skill wrought by patient practice, which, though calling
-for no thought in the spectator, yet rouses his admiration and provides
-standards of executive excellence, albeit directed in regrettable
-channels.
-
-Still, broadly, recreations may be divided between those which call
-for effort, and therefore make towards progress, and those which
-breed idleness and its litter of evils; but (and this is the inherent
-difficulty for reformers) the mass of the people, rich and poor alike,
-will not make efforts, and as the “Times” once so admirably put
-it--“They preach to each other the gospel of idleness and call it the
-gospel of recreation”.
-
-The mass, however, is our concern. Those idle rich, who seek their
-stimulus in competitive expenditure; those ignorant poor, who turn to
-the examples of brute force for their pleasure; those destructive
-classes, whose delight is in slaying or eliminating space; they are all
-alike in being content to be “Vacant of our glorious gains, like a beast
-with lower pleasures, like a beast with lower pains”.
-
-
- OUR CHURCH AND RECREATION.
-
-What can the clergymen and the clergy women do? It is not easy to reply,
-but there are some things they need not do. They need not promote
-monster treats, they need not mistake excitement for pleasure, and call
-their day’s outing a “huge success,” because it was accompanied by much
-noise and the running hither and thither of excited children; they need
-not use their Institutes and Schoolrooms to compete with the
-professional entertainer, and feel a glow of satisfaction because a low
-programme and a low price resulted in a full room; they need not accept
-the people’s standard for songs and recitations, and think they have
-“had a capital evening,” when the third-rate song is clapped, or the
-comic reading or dramatic scene appreciated by vulgar minds. Oh! the
-waste of curates’ time and brain in such “parish work”. How often it has
-left me mourning.
-
-What the clergymen and women can do is to show the people that they have
-other powers within them for enjoyment, that effort promotes pleasure,
-and that the use of limbs, with (not instead of) brains, and of
-imagination, can be made sources of joy for themselves and refreshment
-for others. Too often, toys, playthings, or appliances of one sort or
-another are considered necessary for pleasure both of the young and the
-mature. Might we not concentrate efforts to provide recreation on those
-methods which show how people can enjoy _themselves_, their own powers
-and capacities? Such powers need cultivation as much as the powers of
-bread-winning, and they include observation and criticism. “What did you
-think of it?” should be asked more frequently than “How did you like
-it?” The curiosity of children (so often wearying to their elders) is a
-natural quality which might be directed to observation of the wonders of
-Nature, and to the conclusion of a story other than its author
-conceived.
-
-“From change to change unceasingly, the soul’s wings never furled,”
-wrote Browning; and change brings food and growth to the soul; but the
-limits of interest must be extended to allow of the flight of the soul,
-and interests are often, in all classes, woefully restricted. It is no
-change for a blind man to be taken to a new view. Christ had to open the
-eyes of the blind before they could see God’s fair world, and in a
-lesser degree we may open the eyes of the born blind to see the hidden
-glories lying unimagined in man and Nature. In friendship also there are
-sources of recreation which the clergy could do much to foster and
-strengthen, and the introduction and opportunities which allow of the
-cultivation of friendship between persons of all classes with a common
-interest, is peculiarly one which parsons have opportunities to develop.
-
-And last but not least, there are the joys which come from the
-cultivation of a garden--joys which continue all the year round, and
-which can be shared by every member of the family of every age. These
-might be more widely spread in town as well as country. Municipalities,
-Boards of Guardians, School Managers, and private owners often have
-both the control of people and land. If the Church would influence
-them, more children and more grown-ups might get health and pleasure
-on the land. I must not entrench on the subject of Garden Cities and
-Garden Suburbs--but the two subjects can be linked together, inasmuch
-as the purest, deepest, and most recreative of pleasures can be found
-in the gardens which are the distinctive feature of the new cities and
-suburbs.
-
-
- THE CLERGY AND THE PRESS.
-
-If the clergy knew more of the people’s pleasures they would yearn more
-over their erring flocks and talk more on present-day subjects. Take
-horse-racing for instance, who can defend it? Who can find one good
-result of it, and its incalculable evils of betting, lying, cheating,
-drinking? Yet the clergy are strangely loth to condemn it! Is it because
-King Edward VII (God bless him for his love of peace) encourages the
-Turf? The King has again and again shown his care for his people’s good,
-and maybe he would modify his actions--and the world would follow his
-lead--if the Church would speak out and condemn this baneful national
-pleasure.
-
-It is not for me to preach to the clergy, but they have so often
-preached to me to my edification, that I would in gratitude give them in
-return an exhortation; and so I beg you good men to give more thought to
-the people’s pleasures; and then give guidance from the Pulpit and the
-Press concerning them.
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- SECTION III.
-
- SETTLEMENTS.
-
-Settlements of University Men in Great Towns--Twenty-one Years of
-University Settlements--The Beginning of Toynbee Hall.
-
-
-
-
- SETTLEMENTS OF UNIVERSITY MEN IN GREAT TOWNS.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- [1] A paper read at a meeting in the rooms of Mr. Sidney Ball at St.
-John’s College, Oxford, November, 1883.
-
-
-“Something must be done” is the comment which follows the tale of
-how the poor live. Those who make the comment have, however, their
-business--their pieces of ground to see, their oxen to prove, their
-wives to consider, and so there is among them a general agreement
-that the “Something” must be done by Law or by Societies. “What can
-I do?” is a more healthy comment, and it is a sign of the times that
-this question is being widely asked, and by none more eagerly than by
-members of the Universities. Undergraduates and graduates, long before
-the late outcry, had become conscious that social conditions were not
-right, and that they themselves were called to do something. It is nine
-years since four or five Oxford undergraduates chose to spend part of
-their vacation in East London, working as Charity Organization Agents,
-becoming members of clubs, and teaching in classes or schools. It is
-long since a well-known Oxford man said, “The great work of our time is
-to connect centres of learning with centres of industry”. Freshmen have
-become fellows, since the Master of Balliol recommended his hearers, at
-a small meeting in the College Hall, to “find their friends among the
-poor”.
-
-Thus slowly has men’s attention been drawn to consider the social
-condition of our great towns. The revelations of recent pamphlets have
-fallen on ears prepared to hear. The fact that the wealth _of_ England
-means only wealth _in_ England, and that the mass of the people live
-without knowledge, without hope, and often without health has come home
-to open minds and consciences. If inquiry has shown that statements have
-been exaggerated, and the blame badly directed, it is nevertheless
-evident that the best is the privilege of the few, and that the
-Gospel--God’s message to this age--does not reach the poor. A workman’s
-wages cannot procure for him the knowledge which means fullness of life,
-or the leisure in which he might “possess his soul”. Hardly by saving
-can he lay up for old age, and only by charity can he get the care of a
-skilled physician. If it be thus with the first-class workman, the case
-of the casual labourer, whose strength of mind and body is consumed by
-anxiety, must be almost intolerable. Statistics, which show the number
-in receipt of poor relief, the families which occupy single rooms, the
-death rate in poor quarters, make a “cry” which it needs no words to
-express.
-
-The thought of the condition of the people has made a strange stirring
-in the calm life of the Universities, and many men feel themselves
-driven by a new spirit, possessed by a master idea. They are eager in
-their talk and in their inquiries, and they ask “What can we do to help
-the poor?”
-
-A College Mission naturally suggests itself as a form in which the idea
-should take shape. It seems as if all the members of a college might
-unite in helping the poor, by adopting a district in a great town,
-finding for it a clergyman and associating themselves in his work.
-
-A Mission, however, has necessarily its limitations.
-
-The clergyman begins with a hall into which he gathers a congregation,
-and which he uses as a centre for “Mission” work. He himself is the only
-link between the college and the poor. He gives frequent reports of his
-progress, and enlists such personal help as he can, always keeping it in
-mind that the “district” is destined to become a “parish”. Many
-districts thus created in East London now take their places among the
-regular parishes, and the income of the clergyman is paid by the
-Ecclesiastical Commissioners, the patronage of the living is probably
-with the Bishop, and the old connexion has become simply a matter of
-history. Apart from the doubt whether this multiplication of parochial
-organizations, with its consequent division of interests, represents a
-wise policy, it is obvious that a college mission does not wholly cover
-the idea which possessed the college. The social spirit fulfils itself
-in many ways, and no one form is adequate to its total expression.
-
-The idea was that all members of the college should unite in good work.
-A college mission excludes Nonconformists. “Can we do nothing,”
-complained one, “as we cannot join in building a church?”
-
-The idea was to bring to bear the life of the University on the life of
-the poor. The tendency of a mission is to limit efforts within the
-recognized parochial machinery. “Can I help,” I am often asked, “in
-social work, which is not necessarily connected with your church or
-creed?” A college mission may--as many missions have done--result in
-bringing devoted workers to the service of the poor--where a good man
-leads, good must follow--but it is not, I think, the form best fitted to
-receive the spirit which is at present moving the Universities.
-
-As a form more adequate, I would suggest a Settlement of University men
-in the midst of some great industrial centre.
-
-In East London large houses are often to be found; they were formerly
-the residences of the wealthy, but are now let out in tenements or as
-warehouses. Such a house, affording sufficient sleeping rooms and large
-reception rooms, might be taken by a college, fitted with furniture, and
-(it may be) associated with its name. As director or head, some graduate
-might be appointed, a man of the right spirit, trusted by all parties;
-qualified by character to guide men, and by education to teach. He would
-be maintained by the college just as the clergyman of the mission
-district. Around such a man graduates and undergraduates would gather.
-Some working in London as curates, barristers, government clerks,
-medical students, or business men would be glad to make their home in
-the house for long periods. They would find there less distraction and
-more interest than in a West-End lodging. Others engaged elsewhere would
-come to spend some weeks or months of the vacation, taking up such work
-as was possible, touching with their lives the lives of the poor, and
-learning for themselves facts which would revolutionize their minds.
-There would be, of course, a graduated scale of payment so as to suit
-the means of the various settlers, but the scale would have to be so
-fixed as to cover the expense of board and lodging.
-
-Let it, however, be assumed that the details have been arranged, and
-that, under a wise director, a party of University men have settled in
-East London. The director--welcomed here, as University men are always
-welcomed--will have opened relations with the neighbouring clergy, and
-with the various charitable agencies; he will have found out the clubs
-and centres of social life, and he will have got some knowledge of the
-bodies engaged in local government. His large rooms will have been
-offered for classes, directed by the University Extension or Popular
-Concert Societies, and for meetings of instruction or entertainment. He
-will have thus won the reputation of a man with something to give, who
-is willing to be friendly with his neighbours. At once he will be able
-to introduce the settlers to duties, which will mean introductions to
-friendships. Those to whom it is given to know the high things of God,
-he will introduce to the clergy, who will guide them to find friends
-among those who, in trouble and sickness, will listen to a life-giving
-message. Honour men have confessed that they have found a key to life in
-teaching the Bible to children, and not once nor twice has it happened
-that old truths have seemed to take new meaning when spoken by a man
-brought fresh from Oxford to face the poor. Those with the passion for
-righteousness the director will bring face to face with the victims of
-sin. In the degraded quarters of the town, in the wards of the
-workhouses, they will find those to whom the friendship of the pure is
-strange, and who are to be saved only by the mercy which can be angry as
-well as pitiful. As I write, I recall one who was brought to us by an
-undergraduate out of a wretched court, overwhelmed by the look and words
-of his young enthusiasm. I recall another who was taken from the police
-court by a Cambridge man, put to an Industrial School, and is now
-touchingly grateful, not to him, but to God for the service. Some, whose
-spare time is in the day, will become visitors for the Charity
-Organization Society, Managers of Industrial and Public Elementary
-Schools, Members of the Committees which direct Sanitary, Shoe Black,
-and other Societies, and in these positions form friendships, which to
-officials, weary of the dull routine, will let in light, and to the
-poor, fearful of law, will give strength. Others who can spare time only
-in the evening will teach classes, join clubs, and assist in
-Co-operative and Friendly Societies, and they will, perhaps, be
-surprised to find that they know so much that is useful when they see
-the interest their talk arouses. In one club, I know, whist ceases to be
-attractive when the gentleman is not there to talk. There are friendly
-societies worked by artisans, which owe their success to the inspiration
-of University men, and there is one branch of the Charity Organization
-Society which still keeps the mark impressed on it, when a man of
-culture did the lowest work.
-
-The elder settlers will, perhaps, take up official positions. If they
-could be qualified, they might be Vestry-men and Guardians, or they
-might qualify themselves to become Schoolmasters. What University men
-can do in local government is written on the face of parishes redeemed
-from the demoralizing influence of out-relief, and cleansed by
-well-administered law. Further reforms are already seen to be near, but
-it has not entered into men’s imaginations to conceive the change for
-good which might be wrought if men of culture would undertake the
-education of the people. The younger settlers will always find
-occupation day or night in playing with the boys, taking them in the
-daytime to open spaces, or to visit London sights, amusing them in the
-evening with games and songs. Unconsciously, they will set up a higher
-standard of man’s life, and through friendship will commend to these
-boys respect for manhood, honour for womanhood, reverence for God. Work
-of such kind will be abundant, and, as it must result in the settlers
-forming many acquaintances, the large rooms of the house will be much
-used for receptions. Parties will be frequent, and whatever be the form
-of entertainment provided, be it books or pictures, lectures or reading,
-dancing or music, the guests will find that their pleasure lies in
-intercourse. Social pleasure is unknown to those who have no large rooms
-and no place for common meeting. The parties of the Settlement will thus
-be attractive just in so far as they are useful. The more means of
-intercourse they offer, the more will they be appreciated. The pleasure
-which binds all together will give force to every method of good-doing,
-be it the words of the preacher, spoken to the crowd, hushed, perhaps,
-by the presence of death, or be it the laughter-making tale told during
-the Saturday ramble in the country.
-
-If something like this is to be the work of a College Settlement, “How
-far,” it may be asked, “is it adequate to the hope of the college to do
-something for the poor?” Obviously, it _affords an outlet for every form
-of earnestness_. No man--call himself what he may--need be excluded from
-the service of the poor on account of his views. No talent, be it called
-spiritual or secular, need be lost on account of its unfitness to
-existing machinery. If there be any virtue, if there be any good in man,
-whatsoever is beautiful, whatsoever is pure in things will find a place
-in the Settlement.
-
-There is yet a fuller answer to the question. A Settlement enables men
-to _live within sight of the poor_. Many a young man would be saved from
-selfishness if he were allowed at once to translate feeling into action.
-It is the facility for talk, and the ready suggestion that a money gift
-is the best relief, which makes some dread lest, after this awakening of
-interest, there may follow a deeper sleep. He who has, even for a month,
-shared the life of the poor can never again rest in his old thoughts. If
-with these obvious advantages, a Settlement seems to want that something
-which association with religious forms gives to the mission, I can only
-say that such association does not make work religious, if the workers
-have not its spirit. If the director be such a man as I can imagine, and
-if there be any truth in the saying that “Every one that loveth knoweth
-God,” then it must be that the work of settlers, inspired and guided by
-love, will be religious. The man in East London, who is the simplest
-worker for God I know, has added members to many churches, and has no
-sect or church of his own. The true religious teacher is he who makes
-known God to man. God is manifest to every age by that which is the Best
-of the age. The modern representatives of those who healed diseases,
-taught the ignorant, and preached the Gospel to the poor, are those who
-make common the Best which can be known or imagined. Christ the Son of
-God is still the “Christ which is to be”--and even through our Best He
-will be but darkly seen.
-
-That such work as I have described would be useful in East London, I
-myself have no doubt. The needs of East London are often urged, but they
-are little understood. Its inhabitants are at one moment assumed to be
-well paid workmen, who will get on if they are left to themselves; at
-another, they are assumed to be outcasts, starving for the necessaries
-of living. It is impossible but that misunderstanding should follow
-ignorance, and at the present moment the West-End is ignorant of the
-East-End. The want of that knowledge which comes only from the sight of
-others’ daily life, and from sympathy with “the joys and sorrows in
-widest commonalty spread,” is the source of the mistaken charity which
-has done much to increase the hardness of the life of the poor.
-
-The much-talked of East London is made up of miles of mean streets,
-whose inhabitants are in no want of bread or even of better houses; here
-and there are the courts now made familiar by descriptions. They are few
-in number, and West-End visitors who have come to visit their
-“neighbours” confess themselves--with a strange irony on their
-motives--“disappointed that the people don’t look worse”.
-
-The settlers will find themselves related to two distinct classes of
-“the poor,” and it will be well if they keep in mind the fact that they
-must serve both those who, like the artisans, need the necessaries for
-_life_, and also those who, like casual labourers, need the necessaries
-for _livelihood_. They will not of course come believing that their
-Settlement will make the wicked good, the dull glad, and the poor rich,
-but they may be assured that results will follow the sympathy born of
-close neighbourhood. It will be something, if they are able to give to a
-few the higher thoughts in which men’s minds can move, to suggest other
-forms of recreation, and to open a view over the course of the river of
-life as it flows to the Infinite Sea. It will be something if they
-create among a few a distaste for dirt and disorder, if they make some
-discontented with their degrading conditions, if they leaven public
-opinion with the belief that the law which provides cleanliness, light
-and order should be applied equally in all quarters of the town. It will
-be something, if thus they give to the one class the ideal of life, and
-stir up in the other those feelings of self-respect, without which
-increased means of livelihood will be useless. It will be more if to
-both classes they can show that selfishness or sin is the only really
-bad thing, and that the best is not “too good for human nature’s daily
-food”. Nothing that is divine is alien to man, and nothing which can be
-learnt at the University is too good for East London.
-
-Many have been the schemes of reform I have known, but, out of eleven
-years’ experience, I would say that none touches the root of the evil
-which does not _bring helper and helped into friendly relations_. Vain
-will be higher education, music, art, or even the Gospel, unless they
-come clothed in the life of brother men--“it took the Life to make God
-known”. Vain, too, will be sanitary legislation and model dwellings,
-unless the outcast are by friendly hands brought in one by one to habits
-of cleanliness and order, to thoughts of righteousness and peace. “What
-will save East London?” asked one of our University visitors of his
-master. “The destruction of West London” was the answer, and, in so far
-as he meant the abolition of the influences which divide rich and poor,
-the answer was right. Not until the habits of the rich are changed, and
-they are again content to breathe the same air and walk the same streets
-as the poor, will East London be “saved”. Meantime a Settlement of
-University men will do a little to remove the inequalities of life, as
-the settlers share their best with the poor and learn through feeling
-how they live. It was by residence among the poor that Edward Denison
-learned the lessons which have taken shape in the new philanthropy of
-our days. It was by visiting in East London that Arnold Toynbee fed the
-interest which in later years became such a force at Oxford. It was
-around a University man, who chose to live as our neighbour, that a
-group of East Londoners gathered, attracted by the hope of learning
-something and held together after five years by the joy which learning
-gives. Men like Mr. Goschen and Professor Huxley have lately spoken out
-their belief that the intercourse of the highest with the lowest is the
-only solution of the social problem.
-
-Settlers may thus join the Settlement, looking back to the example of
-others and to the opinions of the wise--looking forward to the grandest
-future which has risen on the horizon of hope. It may not be theirs to
-see the future realized, but it is theirs to cheer themselves with the
-thought of the time when the disinherited sons of God shall be received
-into their Father’s house, when the poor will know the Higher Life as it
-is being revealed to those who watch by the never silent spirit, when
-daily drudgery will be irradiated with eternal thought, when neither
-wealth nor poverty will hinder men in their pursuit of the Perfect life,
-because everything which is Best will be made in love common to all.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-This paper was reprinted in February, 1884, when the following words and
-names were added.
-
-The following members of the University have undertaken to receive the
-names of any graduates or undergraduates who feel disposed to join a
-“Settlement” shortly or at any future time:--
-
- The Rev. the Master of University.
- The Hon. and Rev. W. H. Fremantle, Balliol.
- A. Robinson, Esq., New College.
- A. H. D. Acland, Esq., Christ Church.
- A. Sidgwick, Esq., C.C.C.
- W. H. Forbes, Esq., Balliol.
- A. L. Smith, Esq., Balliol.
- T. H. Warren, Esq., Magdalen.
- S. Ball, Esq., St. John’s.
- C. E. Dawkins, Esq., Balliol.
- B. King, Esq., Balliol.
- M. E. Sadler, Esq., Trinity.
- H. D. Leigh, Esq., New College.
- G. C. Lang, Esq., Balliol.
-
- _Names should be sent in as soon as possible._
-
- OXFORD, Feb., 1884.
-
-
-
-
- THE BEGINNINGS OF TOYNBEE HALL.[1]
-
- BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT.
-
- 1903.
-
- [1] From “Towards Social Reform”. By kind permission of Messrs. Fisher
-Unwin.
-
-
-“How did the idea of a University Settlement arise?” “What was the
-beginning?” are questions so often asked by Americans, Frenchmen,
-Belgians, or the younger generations of earnest English people, that it
-seems worth while to reply in print, and to trundle one’s mind back to
-those early days of effort and loneliness before so many bore the burden
-and shared the anxiety. The fear is that in putting pen to paper on
-matters which are so closely bound up with our own lives, the sin of
-egotism will be committed, or that a special plant, which is still
-growing, may be damaged, as even weeds are if their roots are looked at.
-And yet in the tale which has to be told there is so much that is
-gladdening and strengthening to those who are fighting apparently
-forlorn causes that I venture to tell it in the belief that to some our
-experiences will give hope.
-
-In the year 1869, Mr. Edward Denison took up his abode in East London.
-He did not stay long nor accomplish much, but as he breathed the air of
-the people he absorbed something of their sufferings, saw things from
-their standpoint, and, as his letters in his memoirs show, made frequent
-suggestions for social remedies. He was the first settler, and was
-followed by the late Mr. Edmund Hollond, to whom my husband and I owe
-our life in Whitechapel. He was ever on the outlook for men and women
-who cared for the people, and hearing that we wished to come Eastward,
-wrote to Dr. Jackson, then Bishop of London, when the living of St.
-Jude’s fell vacant in the autumn of 1872, and asked that it might be
-offered to Mr. Barnett, who was at that time working as Curate at St.
-Mary’s, Bryanston Square, with Mr. Fremantle, now the Dean of Ripon. I
-have the Bishop’s letter, wise, kind and fatherly, the letter of a
-general sending a young captain to a difficult outpost. “Do not hurry in
-your decision,” he wrote, “it is the worst parish in my diocese,
-inhabited mainly by a criminal population, and one which has I fear been
-much corrupted by doles”.
-
-How well I remember the day Mr. Barnett and I first came to see it!--a
-sulky sort of drizzle filled the atmosphere; the streets, dirty and ill
-kept, were crowded with vicious and bedraggled people, neglected
-children, and overdriven cattle. The whole parish was a network of
-courts and alleys, many houses being let out in furnished rooms at 8d. a
-night--a bad system, which lent itself to every form of evil, to
-thriftless habits, to untidiness, to loss of self-respect, to unruly
-living, to vicious courses.
-
-We did not “hurry in our decision,” but just before Christmas, 1872, Mr.
-Barnett became vicar. A month later we were married, and took up our
-life-work on 6 March, 1873, accompanied by our friend Edward Leonard,
-who joined us, “to do what he could”; his “could” being ultimately the
-establishment of the Whitechapel Committee of the Charity Organization
-Society, and a change in the lives and ideals of a large number of young
-people, whom he gathered round him to hear of the Christ he worshipped.
-
-It would sound like exaggeration if I told my memories of those times.
-The previous vicar had had a long and disabling illness, and all was out
-of order. The church, unserved by either curate, choir, or officials,
-was empty, dirty, unwarmed. Once the platform of popular preachers, Mr.
-Hugh Allen, and Mr. (now Bishop) Thornton, it had had huge galleries
-built to accommodate the crowds who came from all parts of London to
-hear them--galleries which blocked the light, and made the subsequent
-emptiness additionally oppressive. The schools were closed, the
-schoolrooms all but devoid of furniture, the parish organization nil; no
-Mothers’ meeting, no Sunday School, no communicants’ class, no library,
-no guilds, no music, no classes, nothing alive. Around this barren empty
-shell surged the people, here to-day, gone to-morrow. Thieves and worse,
-receivers of stolen goods, hawkers, casual dock labourers, every sort of
-unskilled low-class cadger congregated in the parish. There was an Irish
-quarter and a Jews’ quarter, while whole streets were given over to the
-hangers-on of a vicious population, people whose conduct was brutal,
-whose ideal was idleness, whose habits were disgusting, and among whom
-goodness was laughed at, the honest man and the right-living woman being
-scorned as impracticable. Robberies, assaults, and fights in the street
-were frequent; and to me, a born coward, it grew into a matter of
-distress when we became sufficiently well known in the parish for our
-presence to stop, or at least to moderate, a fight; for then it seemed a
-duty to join the crowd, and not to follow one’s nervous instincts and
-pass by on the other side. I recall one breakfast being disturbed by
-three fights outside the Vicarage. We each went to one, and the third
-was hindered by a hawker friend who had turned verger, and who fetched
-the distant policeman, though he evidently remained doubtful as to the
-value of interference.
-
-We began our work very quietly and simply: opened the church (the first
-congregation was made up of six or seven old women, all expecting doles
-for coming), restarted the schools, established relief committees,
-organized parish machinery, and tried to cauterise, if not to cure, the
-deep cancer of dependence which was embedded in all our parishioners
-alike, lowering the best among them and degrading the worst. At all
-hours, and on all days, and with every possible pretext, the people came
-and begged. To them we were nothing but the source from which to obtain
-tickets, money, or food; and so confident were they that help would be
-forthcoming that they would allow themselves to get into circumstances
-of suffering or distress easily foreseen, and then send round and demand
-assistance.
-
-I can still recall my emotions when summoned to a sick woman in Castle
-Alley, an alley long since pulled down, where the houses, three stories
-high, were hardly six feet apart; the sanitary accommodation--pits in
-the cellars; and the whole place only fit for the condemnation it got
-directly Cross’s Act was passed. This alley, by the way, was in part
-the cause of Cross’s Act, so great an impression did it make on Lord
-Cross (then Mr. Cross) when Mr. Barnett induced him to come down and
-see it.
-
-In this stinking alley, in a tiny dirty room, all the windows broken and
-stuffed up, lay the woman who had sent for me. There were no bedclothes;
-she lay on a sacking covered with rags.
-
-“I do not know you,” said I, “but I hear you want to see me.”
-
-“No, ma’am!” replied a fat beer-sodden woman by the side of the bed,
-producing a wee, new-born baby; “we don’t know yer, but ’ere’s the
-babby, and in course she wants clothes, and the mother comforts like. So
-we jist sent round to the church.”
-
-This was a compliment to the organization which represented Christ, but
-one which showed how sunken was the character which could not make even
-the simplest provision for an event which must have been expected for
-months, and which even the poorest among the respectable counts sacred.
-
-The refusal of the demanded doles made the people very angry. Once the
-Vicarage windows were broken, once we were stoned by an angry crowd, who
-also hurled curses at us as we walked down a criminal-haunted street,
-and howled out as a climax to their wrongs “And it’s us as pays ’em”.
-But we lived all this down, and as the years went by reaped a harvest of
-love and gratitude which is one of the gladdest possessions of our
-lives, and is quite disproportionate to the service we have rendered.
-But this is the end of the story, and I must go back to the beginning.
-
-In a parish which occupies only a few acres, and was inhabited by 8,000
-persons, we were confronted by some of the hardest problems of city
-life. The housing of the people, the superfluity of unskilled labour,
-the enforcement of resented education, the liberty of the criminal
-classes to congregate and create a low public opinion, the
-administration of the Poor Law, the amusement of the ignorant, the
-hindrances to local government (in a neighbourhood devoid of the
-leisured and cultured), the difficulty of uniting the unskilled men and
-women, in trade unions, the necessity for stricter Factory Acts, the
-joylessness of the masses, the hopefulness of the young--all represented
-difficult problems, each waiting for a solution and made more
-complicated by the apathy of the poor, who were content with an
-unrighteous contentment and patient with an ungodly patience. These were
-not the questions to be replied to by doles, nor could the problem be
-solved by kind acts to individuals nor by the healing of the suffering,
-which was but the symptom of the disease.
-
-In those days these difficulties were being dealt with mainly by good
-kind women, generally elderly; few men, with the exception of the clergy
-and noted philanthropists, as Lord Shaftesbury, were interested in the
-welfare of the poor, and economists rarely joined close experience with
-their theories.
-
-“If men, cultivated, young, thinking men, could only know of these
-things they would be altered,” I used to say, with girlish faith in
-human goodwill--a faith which years has not shaken; and in the spring of
-1875 we went to Oxford, partly to tell about the poor, partly to enjoy
-“eights week” with a group of young friends. Our party was planned by
-Miss Toynbee, whom I had met when at school, and whose brother Arnold
-was then an undergraduate at Pembroke. Our days were filled with the
-hospitality with which Oxford still rejoices its guests; but in the
-evenings we used to drop quietly down the river with two or three
-earnest men, or sit long and late in our lodgings in the Turl, and
-discuss the mighty problems of poverty and the people.
-
-How vividly Canon Barnett and I can recall each and all of the first
-group of “thinking men,” so ready to take up enthusiasms in their boyish
-strength--Arnold Toynbee, Sidney Ball, W. H. Forbes, Arthur Hoare,
-Leonard Montefiore, Alfred Milner, Philip Gell, John Falk, G. E.
-Underhill, Ralph Whitehead, Lewis Nettleship! Some of these are still
-here, and caring for our people, but others have passed behind the veil,
-where perhaps earth’s sufferings are explicable.
-
-We used to ask each undergraduate as he developed interest to come and
-stay in Whitechapel, and see for himself. And they came, some to spend a
-few weeks, some for the Long Vacation, while others, as they left the
-University and began their life’s work, took lodgings in East London,
-and felt all the fascination of its strong pulse of life, hearing, as
-those who listen always may, the hushed, unceasing moans underlying the
-cry which ever and anon makes itself heard by an unheeding public.
-
-From that first visit to Oxford in the “eights week” of 1875, date many
-visits to both the Universities. Rarely a term passed without our going
-to Oxford, where the men who had been down to East London introduced us
-to others who might do as they had done. Sometimes we stayed with Dr.
-Jowett, the immortal Master of Balliol, sometimes we were the guests of
-the undergraduates, who would get up meetings in their rooms, and
-organize innumerable breakfasts, teas, river excursions, and other
-opportunities for introducing the subject of the duty of the cultured to
-the poor and degraded.
-
-No organization was started, no committee, no society, no club formed.
-We met men, told them of the needs of the out-of-sight poor; and many
-came to see Whitechapel and stayed to help it. And so eight years went
-by--our Oxford friends laughingly calling my husband the “unpaid
-professor of social philosophy”.
-
-In June, 1883, we were told by Mr. Moore Smith that some men at St.
-John’s College at Cambridge were wishful to do something for the poor,
-but that they were not quite prepared to start an ordinary College
-Mission. Mr. Barnett was asked to suggest some other possible and more
-excellent way. The letter came as we were leaving for Oxford, and was
-slipped with others in my husband’s pocket. Soon something went wrong
-with the engine and delayed the train so long that the passengers were
-allowed to get out. We seated ourselves on the railway bank, just then
-glorified by masses of large ox-eyed daisies, and there he wrote a
-letter suggesting that men might hire a house, where they could come for
-short or long periods, and, living in an industrial quarter, learn to
-“sup sorrow with the poor”. The letter pointed out that close personal
-knowledge of individuals among the poor must precede wise legislation
-for remedying their needs, and that as English local government was
-based on the assumption of a leisured cultivated class, it was necessary
-to provide it artificially in those regions where the line of leisure
-was drawn just above sleeping hours, and where the education ended at
-thirteen years of age and with the three R’s.
-
-That letter founded Toynbee Hall. Insomnia had sapped my health for a
-long time, and later, in the autumn of that year, we were sent to
-Eaux Bonnes to try a water-cure. During that period the Cambridge
-letter was expanded into a paper, which was read at a college meeting
-at St. John’s College, Oxford, in November of the same year.
-Mr. Arthur Sidgwick was present, and it is largely due to his
-practical vigour that the idea of University Settlements in the
-industrial working-class quarters of large towns fell not only on
-sympathetic ears, but was guided until it came to fruition. The first
-meeting of undergraduates met in the room of Mr. Cosmo Lang now (1908),
-about to become Archbishop of York. Soon after the meeting a small but
-earnest committee was formed; later on the committee grew in size and
-importance, money was obtained on debenture bonds, and a Head sought who
-would turn the idea into a fact. Here was the difficulty. Such men as
-had been pictured in the paper which Mr. Knowles had published in the
-“Nineteenth Century Review” of February, 1884, are not met with
-every-day; and no inquiries seemed to discover the wanted man who would
-be called upon to give all and expect nothing.
-
-Mr. Barnett and I had spent eleven years of life and work in
-Whitechapel. We were weary. My health stores were limited and often
-exhausted, and family circumstances had given us larger means and
-opportunities for travel. We were therefore desirous to turn our backs
-on the strain, the pain, the passion and the poverty of East London, at
-least for a year or two, and take repose after work which had aged and
-weakened us. But no other man was to be found who would and could do the
-work; and, if this child-thought was not to die, it looked as if we must
-undertake to try and rear it.
-
-We went to the Mediterranean to consider the matter, and solemnly, on a
-Sunday morning, made our decision. How well I recall the scene as we sat
-at the end of the quaint harbour-pier at Mentone, the blue waves dancing
-at our feet, everything around scintillating with light and movement in
-contrast to the dull and dulling squalor of the neighbourhood which had
-been our home for eleven years, and which our new decision would make
-our home for another indefinite spell of labour and effort. “God help
-us,” we said to each other; and then we wired home to obtain the refusal
-of the big Industrial School next to St. Jude’s Vicarage, which had
-recently been vacated, and which we thought to be a good site for the
-first Settlement, and returned to try and live up to the standard which
-we had unwittingly set for ourselves in describing in the article the
-unknown man who was wanted for Warden.
-
-The rest of the story is soon told. The Committee did the work, bought
-the land, engaged the architect (Mr. Elijah Hoole), raised the money,
-and interested more and more men, who came for varying periods, either
-to live, to visit, or to see what was being done.
-
- ------------------------------------
-
-On 10 March, 1883, Arnold Toynbee had died. He had been our beloved and
-faithful friend, ever since, as a lad of eighteen, his own mind then
-being chiefly concerned with military interests and ideals, he had
-heard, with the close interest of one treading untrodden paths, facts
-about the toiling, ignorant multitude whose lives were stunted by
-labour, clouded by poverty, and degraded by ignorance. He had frequently
-been to see us at St. Jude’s, staying sometimes a few nights, oftener
-tempting us to go a day or two with him into the country; and ever
-wooing us with persistent hospitality to Oxford. Once in 1879 he had
-taken rooms over the Charity Organization Office in Commercial Road,
-hoping to spend part of the Long Vacation, learning of the people; but
-his health, often weakly, could not stand the noise of the traffic, the
-sullenness of the aspect, nor the pain which stands waiting at every
-corner; and at the end of some two or three weeks he gave up the plan
-and left East London, never to return except as our welcome guest. His
-share of the movement was at Oxford, where with a subtle force of
-personality he attracted original or earnest minds of all degrees, and
-turned their thoughts or faces towards the East End and its problems.
-Through him many men came to work with us, while others were stirred by
-the meetings held in Oxford, or by the pamphlet called the “Bitter Cry,”
-which, in spite of its exaggerations, aroused many to think of the poor;
-or by the stimulating teaching of Professor T. H. Green, and by the
-constant, kindly sympathy of the late Master of Balliol, who startled
-some of his hearers, who had not plumbed the depths of his wide, wise
-sympathy, by advising all young men, whatever their career, “to make
-some of their friends among the poor”.
-
-The 10th of March, 1884, was a Sunday, and on the afternoon of that day
-Balliol Chapel was filled with a splendid body of men who had come
-together from all parts of England in loving memory of Arnold Toynbee,
-on the anniversary of his death. Dr. Jowett had asked my husband to
-preach to them, and they listened, separating almost silently at the
-chapel porch, filled, one could almost feel, by the aspiration to copy
-him in caring much, if not doing much, for those who had fallen by the
-way or were “vacant of our glorious gains”.
-
-We had often chatted, those of us who were busy planning the new
-Settlement, as to what to call it. We did not mean the name to be
-descriptive; it should, we thought, be free from every possible savour
-of a Mission, and yet it should in itself be suggestive of a noble aim.
-As I sat on that Sunday afternoon in the chapel, one of the few women
-among the crowd of strong-brained, clean-living men assembled in
-reverent affection for one man, the thought flashed to me, “Let us call
-the Settlement Toynbee Hall”. To Mr. Bolton King, the honorary secretary
-of the committee, had come the same idea, and it, finding favour with
-the committee, was so decided, and our new Settlement received its name
-before a brick was laid or the plans concluded.
-
-On the first day of July, 1884, the workmen began to pull down the old
-Industrial School, and to adapt such of it as was possible for the new
-uses; and on Christmas Eve, 1884, the first settlers, Mr. H. D. Leigh,
-of Corpus, and Mr. C. H. Grinling, of Hertford, slept in Toynbee Hall,
-quickly followed by thirteen residents, some of whom had been living in
-the neighbourhood of Whitechapel, some for a considerable length of
-time, either singly or in groups, one party inhabiting a small disused
-public-house, others in model dwellings or in lodgings, none of them
-being altogether suitable for their own good or the needs of those whom
-they would serve. Those men had become settlers before the Settlement
-scheme was conceived, and as such were conversant with the questions in
-the air. It was an advantage also, that they were of different ages,
-friends of more than one University generation, and linked together by a
-common friendship to us.
-
-The present Dean of Ripon had for many years lent his house at No. 3,
-Ship Street, for our use, and so had enabled us to spend some
-consecutive weeks of each summer at Oxford; and during those years we
-had learnt to know the flower of the University, counting, as boy
-friends, some men who have since become world-widely known; some who
-have done the finest work and “scorned to blot it with a name”; and
-others who, as civil servants, lawyers, doctors, country gentlemen,
-business men, have in the more humdrum walks of life carried into
-practice the same spirit of thoughtful sympathy which first brought them
-to inquire concerning those less endowed and deprived of life’s joys, or
-those who, handicapped by birth, training, and environment, had fallen
-by the way.
-
-As to what Toynbee Hall has done and now is doing, it is difficult for
-any one, and impossible for me, to speak. Perhaps I cannot be expected
-to see the wood for the trees. Those who have cared to come and see for
-themselves what is being done, to stay in the house and join in its
-work, know that Toynbee Hall, Whitechapel, is a place where twenty
-University men live in order to work for, to teach, to learn of the
-poor. Since 1884 the succession of residents has never failed. Men of
-varied opinions and many views, both political and religious, have lived
-harmoniously together, some staying as long as fifteen years, others
-remaining shorter periods. All have left behind them marks of their
-residence; sometimes in the policy of the local Boards, of which they
-have become members; or in relation to the Student Residences; or the
-Antiquarian, Natural History, or Travelling Clubs which individuals
-among them have founded; or by busying themselves with classes, debates,
-conferences, discussions. Their activities have been unceasing and
-manifold, but looking over many years and many men it seems to my
-inferior womanly mind that the best work has been done by those men who
-have cared most deeply for individuals among the poor. Out of such deep
-care has grown intimate knowledge of their lives and industrial
-position, and from knowledge has come improvement in laws, conditions,
-or administration. It is such care that has awakened in the people the
-desire to seek what is best. It is the care of those, who, loving God,
-have taught others to know Him. It is the care of those who, pursuing
-knowledge and rejoicing in learning, have spread it among the ignorant
-more effectively than books, classes or lectures could have done. It is
-the care for the degraded which alone rouses them to care for
-themselves. It is the care for the sickly, the weak, the oppressed, the
-rich, the powerful, the happy, the teacher and taught, the employed and
-the employer, which enables introduction to be made and interpretation
-of each other to be offered and accepted. From this seed of deep
-individual care has grown a large crop of friendship, and many flowers
-of graceful acts.
-
-It is the duty of Toynbee Hall, situated as it is at the gate of East
-London, to play the part of a skilful host and introduce the East to the
-West; but all the guests must be intimate friends, or there will be
-social blunders. To quote some words out of a report, Toynbee Hall is
-“an association of persons, with different opinions and different
-tastes; its unity is that of variety; its methods are spiritual rather
-than material; it aims at permeation rather than conversion; and its
-trust is in friends linked to friends rather than in organization”....
-
-It was a crowded meeting of the Universities Settlements Association
-that was held in Balliol Hall in March, 1892, it being known that Dr.
-Jowett, who had recently been dangerously ill, would take the chair. He
-spoke falteringly (for he was still weakly), and once there came an
-awful pause that paled the hearers who loved him, in fear for his
-well-being. He told something of his own connexion with the movement; of
-how he had twice stayed with us in Whitechapel, and had seen men’s
-efforts to lift this dead weight of ignorance and pain. He referred to
-Arnold Toynbee, one of the “purest-minded of men,” and one who “troubled
-himself greatly over the unequal position of mankind”. He told of the
-force of friendship which was to him sacred, and “some of which should
-be offered to the poor”. He dwelt on his own hopes for Toynbee Hall, and
-of its uses to Oxford, as well as to Whitechapel; and he spoke also of
-us and our work, but those words were conceived by his friendship for
-and his faith in us, and hardly represented the facts. They left out of
-sight what the Master of Balliol could only imperfectly know--the
-countless acts of kindness, the silent gifts of patient service, and the
-unobtrusive lives of many men; their reverence before weakness and
-poverty, their patience with misunderstanding, their faith in the power
-of the best, their tenderness to children and their boldness against
-vice. These are the foundations on which Toynbee Hall has been built,
-and on which it aims to raise the ideals of human life, and strengthen
-faith in God.
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- TWENTY-ONE YEARS OF UNIVERSITY SETTLEMENTS.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- June, 1905.
-
- [1] From “The University Review”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Twenty-five years ago many social reformers were set on bringing about a
-co-operation between the Universities of Oxford and Cambridge and the
-industrial classes. Arnold Toynbee thought he could study at Oxford
-during term time and lecture in great cities during the vacation.
-Professor Stuart thought that University teaching might be extended
-among working people by means of centres locally established. There were
-others to whom it seemed that no way could be so effective as the way of
-residence, and they advocated a plan by which members of the University
-should during some years live their lives among the poor.
-
-Present social reformers have, however, other business on hand. They
-think that something practical is of first importance, some alteration
-in the land laws, which would make good houses more possible--some
-modification of the relation between labour and capital, which would
-spread the national wealth over a larger number of people. They see
-something which Parliament or the municipal bodies could do, which seems
-to be very good, and they are not disposed to spend time on
-democratizing the old Universities or on humanizing the working-man.
-
-The present generation of reformers claim to be practical, but one who
-belongs to the past generation and is not without sympathy with the
-present, may also claim that much depends on the methods by which good
-objects are secured. There is truth in the saying that means are more
-important than ends. Many present evils are due to the means--the force,
-the flattery, the haste--by which good men of old time achieved their
-ends. “God forgive all good men” was the prayer of Charles Kingsley.
-
-Reformers may to-day pass laws which would exalt the poor and bring down
-the rich, but if in the passing of such laws bitterness, anger, and
-uncharitableness were increased, and if, as the result, the exalted poor
-proved incapable of using or of enjoying their power--another giant
-behaving like a giant--where would be the world’s gain? The important
-thing surely is not that the poor shall be exalted, but that rich and
-poor shall equally feel the joy of their being and, living together in
-peace and goodwill, make a society to be a blessing to all nations.
-
-Co-operation between the Universities and working men, between
-knowledge and industry, might--it seemed to the reformers of old
-days--make a force which would secure a reform not to be reformed, a
-repentance not to be repented of, a sort of progress whose means would
-justify its end.
-
-The Universities have the knowledge of human things. Their professors
-and teachers have, in some measure, the secret of living, they know that
-life consists not in possessions, and that society has other bonds than
-force or selfishness, and they offer in their homes the best example of
-simple and refined living. They have studied the art of expression, and
-can put into words the thoughts of many hearts. They look with the eye
-of science over the fields of history, they appreciate tradition at its
-proper value, and are familiar with the mistakes which, in old times,
-broke up great hopes. Their minds are trained to leap from point to
-point in thought. They have followed the struggles of humanity towards
-its ideals, they know something of what is in man, and something of what
-he can possibly achieve.
-
-If these national Universities, with their wealth of knowledge, felt
-at the same time the pressure of those problems which mean suffering
-to the workmen, they would be watch-towers from which watchmen would
-discern the signs of the times, those movements on the horizon now
-as small as a man’s hand but soon to cover the sky. If by sympathy
-they felt the unrest, which all over the world is giving cause for
-disquietude to those in authority, they would give a form to the wants,
-and show to those who cry, and those who listen, the meaning of the
-unrest. If they were in touch with the industrial classes, they would
-adapt their teaching to the needs and understandings of men, struggling
-to secure their position in a changing industrial system, and better
-acquainted with facts than with theories about facts. A democratized
-University would be constrained to give forth the principles which
-underlie social progress, to show the nation what is alterable and
-unalterable in the structure of society--what there is for pride or
-for shame in its past history, what is the expenditure which makes or
-destroys wealth--it would be driven to help to solve the mystery of the
-unemployed, why there should be so much unemployment when there must
-be so great a demand for employment if people are to be fitly clothed
-and fed and housed. It would, at any rate, guide the nation to remedies
-which would not be worse than the disease.
-
-“How,” it was once asked of an Oxford professor, “can the University be
-adapted to take its place in modern progress.” His answer was “By
-establishing in its neighbourhood a great industrial centre.” The
-presence, that is to say, of workmen would bring the Universities to
-face the realities of the day, raise their policy to something more
-important than that of compulsory Greek, and direct their teaching to
-other needs than those felt by the limited class, whose children become
-undergraduates or listeners to an “extension lecturer”. A committee of
-the University dons has been described as a meeting where each member is
-only a critic, where nothing simple or practical has a chance of
-adoption, and only a paradox gets attention. If labour were heard
-knocking at its doors, and demanding that the national knowledge, of
-which the Universities are the trustees, should be put at its service,
-the same committee would cease criticizing and begin to be practical.
-Knowledge without industry is often selfishness.
-
-If Oxford and Cambridge need what workmen can give, the workmen have
-no less need of the Universities. Workmen have the strength of
-character which comes of daily contact with necessity, the discipline
-of labour, sympathy with the sorrow and sufferings of neighbours with
-whose infirmities they themselves are touched. The working classes
-have on their side the force of sacrifice and the power of numbers.
-They have the future in their hands. If they had their share of the
-knowledge stored in the National Universities they would know better
-at what to aim, what to do, and how to do it. They, as it is, are
-often blind and unreasoning. Blind to the things which really satisfy
-human nature while they eagerly follow after their husks, unable to
-pursue a chain of thought while they readily act on some gaudy dogma,
-inclined to think food the chief good, selfishness the one motive of
-action, and force the only remedy. The speeches of candidates for
-workmen’s constituencies--their promises--their jokes--their appeals are
-the measure of the industrial mind. How would a Parliament of workmen
-deal with those elements which make so large a part of the nation’s
-strength--its traditions--its literature--its natural scenery--its art?
-What sort of education would it foster? Would it recognize that the
-imagination is the joy of life and a commercial asset, that unity
-depends on variety, that respect and not only toleration is due to
-honest opponents? How would it understand the people of India or deal
-reverently with the intricate motives, the fears and hopes of other
-nations? How would workmen themselves fulfil their place in the future
-if well-fed, well-clothed, and well-housed, they had no other
-recreation than the spectacle of a football match? Industry without
-knowledge is often brutality.
-
-Workmen have the energy, the honesty, the fellow feeling, the habit of
-sacrifice which are probably the best part of the national inheritance,
-but as a class they have not knowledge of human things, the delicate
-sense which sees what is in man--the judgment which knows the value of
-evidence--the feeling which would guide them to distinguish idols from
-ideals and set them on making a Society in which every human being shall
-enjoy the fullness of his being. They have not insight nor far-sight and
-their frequent attitude is that of suspicion. If sometimes I am asked
-what I desire for East London I think of all the goodness, the
-struggles, the suffering I have seen--the sorrows of the poor and the
-many fruitless remedies--and I say “more education,” “higher education”.
-People cannot really be raised by gifts or food or houses. A healthy
-body may be used for low as for high objects. People must raise
-themselves--that which raises a man like that which defiles a man comes
-from within a man. People therefore must have the education which will
-reveal to them the powers within themselves and within other men, their
-capacities for thinking and feeling, for admiration, hope and love. They
-must be made something more than instruments of production, they must be
-made capable of enjoying the highest things. They need therefore
-something more than technical teaching, it is not enough for England to
-be the workshop of the world, it must export thoughts and hopes as well
-as machines. The Tower of London would be a better defence for the
-nation if it were a centre of teaching, than as a barracks for soldiers.
-The working class movement which is so full of promise for the nation
-seems to me likely to fail unless it be inspired by the human knowledge
-which the Universities represent. Working-men without such knowledge
-will--to say nothing else--be always suspicious as to one another and as
-to the objects which they seek.
-
-The old Universities and industry must, if this analysis be near the
-truth, co-operate for social reform. There are many ways to bring
-them together. The University extension movement might be worked by
-the hands of the great labour organizations--legislation might adapt
-the constitution of the Universities to the coming days of labour
-ascendancy--workmen might be brought up to graduate in colleges, and
-they might, as an experiment, be allowed to use existing colleges
-during vacations.
-
-But the subject of this paper is the “way of Settlements”. Members of
-the Universities, it is claimed, may for a few years settle in
-industrial centres, and in natural intercourse come into contact with
-their neighbours. There is nothing like contact for giving or getting
-understanding. There is no lecture and no book so effective as life.
-Culture spreads by contact. University men who are known as neighbours,
-who are met in the streets, in the clubs, and on committees, who can be
-visited in their own rooms, amid their own books and pictures, commend
-what the University stands for as it cannot otherwise be commended. On
-the other hand workmen who are casually and frequently met, whose idle
-words become familiar, whose homes are known, reveal the workman mind as
-it is not revealed by clever essayists or by orators of their own class.
-The friendship of one man of knowledge and one man of industry may go
-but a small way to bring together the Universities and the working
-classes, but it is such friendship which prepares the way for the
-understanding which underlies co-operation. If misunderstanding is war,
-understanding is peace. The men who settle may either take rooms by
-themselves, or they may associate themselves in a Settlement. There is
-something to be said for each plan. The advantage of Settlement is that
-a body of University men living together keep up the distinctive
-characteristics of their training, they better resist the tendency to
-put on the universal drab, and they bring a variety into their
-neighbourhood. They are helped, too, by the companionship of their
-fellows, to take larger views of what is wanted, their enthusiasm for
-progress is kept alive and at the same time well pruned by friendly and
-severe criticism.
-
-But whether men live in lodgings or in Settlements, there is one
-necessary condition besides that of social interest if they are to be
-successful in uniting knowledge and industry in social reform. They must
-live their own life. There must be no affectation of asceticism, and no
-consciousness of superiority. They must show forth the taste, the mind
-and the faith that is in them. They have not come as “missioners,” they
-have come to settle, that is, to learn as much as to teach, to receive
-as much as to give.
-
-Settlements which have been started during the last twenty years have
-not always fulfilled this condition. Many have become centres of
-missionary effort. They have often been powerful for good, and their
-works done by active and devoted men or women have so disturbed the
-water, that many unknown sick folk have been healed. They, however, are
-primarily missions. A Settlement in the original idea was not a mission,
-but a means by which University men and workmen might by natural
-intercourse get to understand one another, and co-operate in social
-reform.
-
-There are many instances of such understanding and co-operation.
-
-Twenty years ago primary education was much as it had been left by Mr.
-Lowe. Some University men living in a Settlement soon became conscious
-of the loss involved in the system, they talked with neighbours who by
-themselves were unconscious of the loss till inspired, and inspiring
-they formed an Education Reform League. There were committees, meetings,
-and public addresses. The league was a small affair, and seems to be
-little among the forces of the time. But every one of its proposals have
-been carried out. Some of its members in high official positions have
-wielded with effect the principles which were elaborated in the forge at
-which they and working men sweated together. Others of its members on
-local authorities or as citizens have never forgotten the inner meaning
-of education as they learnt it from their University friends.
-
-Another instance may be offered. The relief of the poor is a subject on
-which the employing and the employed classes naturally incline to take
-different views. They suspect one another’s remedies. The working men
-hate both the charity of the rich and the strict administration of the
-economist, while they themselves talk a somewhat impracticable
-socialism. University men who assist in such relief, are naturally
-suspected as members of the employing class. A few men, however, who as
-residents had become known in other relations, and were recognized as
-human, induced some workmen to take part in administering relief.
-Together they faced actual problems, together they made mistakes,
-together they felt sympathy with sorrow, and saw the break-down of their
-carefully designed action. The process went on for years, the personnel
-of the body of fellow-workers has changed, but there has been a gradual
-approach from the different points of view. The University men have more
-acutely realized some of the causes of distress, the need of preserving
-and holding up self-respect, the pressure of the industrial system, and
-the claim of sufferers from this system to some compensation. They have
-learnt through their hearts. The workmen, on the other hand, have
-realized the failure of mere relief to do permanent good, the importance
-of thought in every case, and the kindness of severity. The result of
-this co-operation may be traced in the fact that workmen, economists and
-socialists have been found advocating the same principle of relief, and
-now more lately in the establishment of Mr. Long’s committee which is
-carrying those principles into effect. Far be it from me to claim that
-this committee is the direct outcome of the association of University
-and working-men, or to assert that this committee has discovered the
-secret of poverty, but it is certain that this committee represents the
-approach of two different views of relief, and that among some of its
-active members are workmen and University men who as neighbours in
-frequent intercourse learnt to respect and trust one another.
-
-There is one other instance which is also of interest. Local Government
-is the corner-stone in the English Constitution. The people in their own
-neighbourhoods learn what self-government means, as their own Councils
-and Boards make them happy or unhappy. The government in industrial
-neighbourhoods is often bad, sometimes because the members are
-self-seekers, more often because they are ignorant or vainglorious. How
-can it be otherwise? If the industrial neighbourhood is self-contained,
-as for example in East London, it has few inhabitants with the necessary
-leisure for study or for frequent attendance at the meetings. If it is
-part of a larger government--as in county boroughs--it is unknown to the
-majority of the community. The consequence is that the neighbourhoods
-wanting most light and most water and most space have the least, and
-that bodies whose chief concern should be health and education waste
-their time and their rates arranging their contracts so as to support
-local labour. In a word, industrial neighbourhoods suffer for want of a
-voice to express their needs and for the want of the knowledge which can
-distinguish man from man, recognize the relative importance of spending
-and saving, and encourage mutual self-respect.
-
-University men may and in some measure have met this want. They, by
-residence, have learnt the wants, and their voice has helped to bring
-about the more equal treatment which industrial districts are now
-receiving. They have often, for instance, been instrumental in getting
-the Libraries’ Act adopted. They have as members of local bodies learnt
-much and taught something. They have always won the respect of their
-fellow-members, and if not always successful in preventing the
-neighbourly kindnesses which seem to them to be “jobs,” or in forwarding
-expenditure which seems to them the best economy, they have kept up the
-lights along the course of public honour.
-
-There are other examples in which results cannot be so easily traced.
-There have been friendships formed at clubs which have for ever changed
-the respective points of view affecting both taste and opinion. There
-have been new ideas born in discussion classes, which, beginning in
-special talk about some one subject, have ended in fireside confidences
-over the deepest subjects of life and faith. There have been common
-pleasures, travels, and visits in which every one has felt new interest,
-seeing things with other eyes, and learning that the best and most
-lasting amusement comes from mind activity. The University man who has a
-friend among the poor henceforth sees the whole class differently
-through that medium, and so it is with the workman who has a University
-man as his friend. The glory of a Settlement is not that it has spread
-opinions, or increased temperance, or relieved distress, but that it has
-promoted peace and goodwill.
-
-But enough has been said to illustrate the point that by the way of
-residence the forces of knowledge and industry are brought into
-co-operation. The way, if long, is practicable. More men might live
-among the poor. The effort to do so involves the sacrifice of much which
-habits of luxury have marked as necessary. It involves the daring to be
-peculiar, which is often especially hard for the man who in the public
-school has learnt to support himself on school tradition.
-
-Nothing has been said as to the effect of Settlements on Oxford and
-Cambridge. There does not seem to be much change in the attitude of
-these Universities to social reform, and they are not apparently moved
-by any impulse which comes from workmen. But judgment in this matter
-must be cautious as changes may be going on unnoticed. It is certain, at
-any rate, that the individual members who have lived among the poor are
-changed. If a greater number would live in the same way that experience
-could not fail ultimately to influence University life.
-
-Social reform will soon be the all-absorbing interest as the modern
-realization of the claims of human nature and the growing power of the
-people, will not tolerate many of the present conditions of industrial
-life. The well-being of the future depends on the methods by which
-reform proceeds. Reforms in the past have often been disappointing. They
-have been made in the name of the rights of one class, and have ended in
-the assertion of rights over another class. They have been made by force
-and produced reaction. They have been done for the people not by the
-people, and have never been assimilated. The method by which knowledge
-and industry may co-operate has yet to be tried, and one way in which to
-bring about such co-operation is the way of University Settlements.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- SECTION IV.
-
- POVERTY AND LABOUR.
-
-The Ethics of the Poor Law--Poverty, its Cause and Cure--Babies of the
-State--Poor Law Reform--The Unemployed--The Poor Law Report--Widows
-under the Poor Law--The Press and Charitable Funds--What is Possible
-in Poor Law Reform--Charity Up To Date--What Labour wants--Our Present
-Discontents.
-
-
-
-
- THE ETHICS OF THE POOR LAW.[1]
-
- BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT.
-
- October, 1907.
-
- [1] A Paper read at the Church Congress at Yarmouth.
-
-
-For the purpose of this paper, I propose to divide the history of the
-Poor Laws into five divisions, and briefly to trace for 500 years the
-growth of thought which inspired their inception and directed their
-administration.
-
-During the first period, from the reign of Richard II (1388) to that of
-Henry VII, such laws as were framed were mainly directed against
-vagrancy. There was no pretence that these enactments, which controlled
-the actions of the “valiant rogue” or “sturdy vagabond,” were instituted
-for the good of the individual. It was for the protection of the
-community that they were framed, the recognition that a man’s poverty
-was the result of his own fault being the root of many statutes.
-
-Against begging severe penalties were enforced: men were forbidden to
-leave their own dwelling-places, and the workless wanderer met with no
-pity and scant justice. Later, as begging seemed but little nearer to
-extinction, the justices were instructed to determine definite areas in
-which beggars could solicit alms.
-
-Thus was inaugurated the first effort to make each district responsible
-for its own poor. Persons who were caught begging outside such areas
-were dealt with with a severity which now seems almost incredible. For
-the first offence they were beaten, for the second they had their ears
-mutilated (so that all men could see they had thus transgressed), and
-for the third they were condemned to suffer “the execution of death as
-an enemy of the commonwealth”. Later, the further sting was added,
-“without benefit of clergy”.
-
-_Put briefly, these laws said, “Poverty demands punishment”._
-
-But men could not deny that all the dependent poor were not so by
-choice. In the reign of Henry VIII (1536), discrimination was made
-between “the poor impotent sick and diseased persons not being able to
-work, who may be provided for, holpen, and relieved,” and “such as be
-lusty and able to get their living with their own hands”. For the
-assistance of the former, the clergy were bidden to exhort their people
-to give offerings into their hands so that the needy should be
-succoured. This began what I may call the second period, when pity
-scattered its ideas among the leaves of the statute book. In the reign
-of Edward VI (the child King), the first recognition of the duty of
-rescuing children appears to be the subject of an Act whereby persons
-were “authorized to take neglected children between five and fourteen
-away from their parents to be brought up in honest labour”. This was
-followed by the declaration that the neglect of parental duties was
-illegal, and punishments were specified for those who “do run away from
-their parishes and leave their families”.
-
-_Put briefly, these laws said, “Poverty demands pity”._
-
-During the fifty years (1558-1603) when Elizabeth held the sceptre,
-important changes took place. Her realm, we read, was “exceedingly
-pestered” by “disorderly persons, incorrigible rogues, and sturdy
-beggars,” while the lamentable condition of “the poor, the lame, the
-sick, the impotent and decayed persons” was augmented by the suppression
-of the monasteries and other religious organizations which had hitherto
-done much to assuage their sufferings. The noble band of men, whom that
-great woman attracted and stimulated, faced the subject as statesmen,
-and the epoch-making enactment of 1601 still bears fruit in our midst.
-Broadly, the position of the supporters in relation to the supported was
-considered, and for the advantage of both it was enacted that “a stock
-of wool, hemp, flax, iron, and other stuff” should be bought “to be
-wrought by those of the needy able to labour,” so that they might
-maintain themselves. “Houses of correction” were established, to which
-any person refusing to labour was to be committed, where they were to be
-clothed “in convenient apparel meet for such a body to weare,” and “to
-be kept straitly in diet and punished from time to time”. In this Act
-the duty of supporting persons in “unfeigned misery” was made
-compulsory, power being given to tax the “froward persons” who “resisted
-the gentle persuasions of the justices” and “withheld of their
-largesse”.
-
-Thus the system of poor rating was established, and the maintenance of
-the needy drifted out of the hands of the Church into the hands of the
-State.
-
-Neither of the motives which had ruled action in the previous centuries
-was disclaimed. That the idle poor deserve punishment, and that the
-suffering poor demand pity, were still held to be true, but to these
-principles was added the new one that the State was responsible for
-both. In order to ease the burdens of the charitable, the idle must be
-compelled to support themselves, and in the almost incredible event of
-any one who, having this world’s goods, yet refused to be charitable,
-provision was made to compel him to contribute, so as to hinder
-injustice being done to the man who gave willingly.
-
-_Put briefly, these laws said, “Poverty demands scientific treatment”._
-
-During the next two centuries great strides were made in the directions
-indicated by each of these three principles. The right to punish persons
-who would not work “for the ordinary wages” was extended from that
-legalized in Elizabeth’s time of being “openly whipped till his body was
-bloody,” to the drastic statute of the reign of Charles II, when it
-became lawful to transport the beggars and rogues “to any of the English
-plantations beyond the seas,” while the effort to create the shame of
-pauperism was made by the legislators of William III, who commanded that
-every recipient of public charity should wear “a large ‘P’ on the
-shoulder of the right sleeve of his habilement”. Pity was shown to the
-old, for whom refuges were provided and work such as they could perform
-arranged; the lame were apprenticed; the lives of the illegitimate
-protected; the blind relieved; the children whose parents could not or
-would not keep them were set to work or supported; lunatics were
-protected; and infectious diseases recognized.
-
-The whole gamut of the woes of civilization as they gradually came into
-being were brought into relation with the State, whose sphere of duty to
-relieve suffering or assuage the consequences of sin was ever enlarging,
-until, in the reign of George III, we find it including penitentiaries,
-and the apprenticing of lads to the King’s ships. The organization to
-meet these needs grew apace; guardians were appointed, unions were
-formed, workhouses were built (the first erected at Bristol in 1697), a
-system of inspection was instituted, relieving officers were
-established, areas definitely laid down, and the function of officials
-prescribed. But abuses crept in, and in 1691 we find that an Act recites
-“that overseers, upon frivolous pretences, but chiefly for their own
-private ends, do give relief to what persons and number they think fit”.
-And yet another Act was passed to enable parish authorities to be
-punished for paying the poor their pittances in bad coin.
-
-Still, it is probable that out of the two principles (roughly consistent
-with the unwritten laws of God in nature) there would have been evolved
-some practicable method of State-administered relief, had it not
-happened that the high cost of provisions (following the war with
-France) and the consequent sufferings of the “industrious indigent” so
-moved the magistrates at the end of the eighteenth century, that in 1795
-they decided to give out-relief to every labourer in proportion to the
-number of his family and the price of wheat, without reference to the
-fact of his being in or out of employment. The effect was disastrous.
-The rich found no call to give their charity, and the poor no call to
-work. The rates ate up the value of the land, and farms were left
-without tenants, because it became impossible to pay the rates, which
-often reached £1 per acre. But an even worse effect was the
-demoralization of society. The stimulus towards personal effort and
-self-control was removed, for the idle and incompetent received from the
-rates what their labour or character failed to provide for them; and
-wages were reduced because employers realized that their workmen would
-get relief. Drink and dissipation, deception and dependence, cheating
-and chicanery, became common.
-
-Society threatened in those years to break up. It is a curious comment
-that a humane poor law stands out as chief amid the dissolving forces,
-so blind is pity if it be not instructed.
-
-This condition of things pressed for reform, and in 1832 a Poor Law
-Commission was appointed, which has left an indelible mark on English
-life.
-
-The Commissioners, like able physicians, diagnosed the disease, and
-dealt directly with its cause, prescribing for its cure remedies which
-may be classed under two heads:--
-
-_I.--The Principle of National Uniformity._
-
-_II.--The Principle of Less Eligibility._
-
-The principle of national uniformity--that is, identity of treatment
-of each class of destitute persons from one end of the kingdom to the
-other--had for its purpose the reduction of the “perpetual shifting”
-from parish to parish, and the prevention of discontent in persons who
-saw the paupers of a neighbouring parish treated more leniently than
-themselves.
-
-The principle of less eligibility, or, to put it in the words of the
-report, that “the situation of the individual relieved” shall not “be
-made really or apparently so eligible as the situation of the
-independent labourer of the lowest class,” had for its purpose the
-restoration of the dignity of work and the steadying of the labour
-market.
-
-_Put briefly, the Commission said, “Poverty demands principles.”_
-
-The workhouse system, with all its ramifications, has grown out of these
-two principles, and in its development it has, if not wholly dropped the
-principles, at least considerably confused them. National uniformity no
-longer exists, even as an ideal. Less eligibility is forgotten, as
-boards vie with each other to produce more costly and up-to-date
-institutions. Out-relief is still given, after investigation and to
-certain classes of applicants and under particular conditions; but the
-creation of the spirit of institutionalism is the main result of the
-1834 commission.
-
-And now, to-day, what do we see? An army of 602,094 paupers, some
-221,531 of whom are hidden away in monster institutions. Let us face the
-facts, calmly realize that one person in every thirty-eight is dependent
-on the rates, either wholly or partially.
-
-Where are the old, the honoured old? In their homes, teaching their
-grand-children reverence for age and sympathy for weakness? No; sitting
-in rows in the workhouse wards waiting for death, their enfeebled lives
-empty of interest, their uncultivated minds feeding on discontent, often
-made querulous or spiteful by close contact.
-
-Where are the able-bodied who are too ignorant and undisciplined to earn
-their own livelihood? Are they under training, stimulated to labour by
-the gift of hope? No; for the most part they are in the workhouses. Have
-you ever seen them there? Resentment on their faces, slackness in their
-limbs, individuality merged in routine, kept there, often fed and housed
-in undue comfort, but sinking, ever sinking, below the height of their
-calling as human beings and Christ’s brothers and sisters?
-
-Where are the 69,080 children who at the date of the last return were
-wholly dependent on the State? In somebody’s home? Sharing somebody’s
-hearth? Finding their way into somebody’s heart? No; 8,659 are boarded
-out, but 21,366 are still in workhouses and workhouse infirmaries, and
-20,229 in large institutions; disciplined, taught, drilled, controlled,
-it is true, often with kindliness and conscientious supervision, but for
-the most part lacking in the music of their lives that one note of love,
-which alone can turn all from discord to harmony.
-
-Where are the sick, the imbecile, the decayed, worn out with their
-lifelong fight with poverty? Are they adequately classified? Are the
-consumptive in open-air sanitoria? the imbeciles tenderly protected,
-while encouraged to use their feeble brains? No; they are in
-infirmaries, often admirably conducted, but divorced from normal life
-and its refreshment or stimulus, deprived of freedom, put out of sight
-in vast mansions; all sorts of distress often so intermingled as to
-aggravate disorders and embitter the sufferer’s dreary days.
-
-And yet we all know that the rates are very heavy, and that the
-struggling poor are cruelly handicapped to keep the idle, the old, the
-young, the sick. We have all read of the culpable extravagance and
-dishonest waste which goes on behind the high walls of the palatial
-institutions governed by the “guardians,” who should be the guardians of
-the public purse as well as of the helpless poor.
-
-The village built for the children of the Bermondsey Union has cost over
-£320 per bed, and last year each child kept there cost £1 0s. 6½d. per
-week. It is said that the porcelain baths provided for the children of
-the Mile End Union were priced at from £18 to £20 each, while it is
-stated that the cost of erecting and equipping the pauper village for
-the children chargeable to the Liverpool Select Vestry worked out at
-£330 per inmate. For England and Wales the pauper bill was in 1905
-£13,851,981, or £15 13s. 3¼d. for each pauper.
-
-And are we satisfied with what we are purchasing with the money? Is even
-the Socialist content with the giant workhouses--“’Omes of rest for them
-as is tired of working,” as a tourist tram-conductor described the
-Brighton Workhouse? With the children’s pauper villages composed of
-electrically-lit villa residences? With the huge barrack schools,
-oppressively clean and orderly, where many apparatus for domestic
-labour-saving are considered suitable for training girls to be workmen’s
-wives?
-
-Are we, as Londoners, proud to reply to the intelligent foreigner that
-the magnificent building occupying one of the best and most expensive
-sites on a main thoroughfare of West London is the “rubbish heap of
-humanity,” where, cast among enervating surroundings, a full stop is put
-to any effortful progress for character building?
-
-No; and I know I shall find an echo of that emphatic “No” in the heart
-of each of my hearers. We, as Christians, are _not_ satisfied with the
-treatment of our dependent poor. The spirit of repression which was
-paramount before Elizabeth’s time is with us still; the spirit of
-humanitarianism which arose in her great reign is with us still; but
-both have taken the form of institutionalism, and with that no one who
-believes in the value of the individual can be rightfully satisfied; for
-while the body is pampered no demands are made on the soul, no calls for
-achievement, for conquest of bad tendencies or idle habits.
-
-Broadly speaking, the repression policy failed because it was not
-humanitarian; the humanitarian policy failed because it was not
-scientific; the scientific policy is failing because by institutionalism
-individualism is crushed out.
-
-What is it we want? There is discontent among the thoughtful who
-observe; discontent among the workers who pay; discontent among the
-paupers who receive. But discontent is barren unless married to ideals,
-and they must be founded on principles. May I suggest one?
-
-“All State relief should be educational, aiming by the strengthening of
-character to make the recipient independent.”
-
-If the applicant be idle, the State must develop in him an interest in
-work. It must, therefore, detain him perhaps for years in a workhouse or
-on a farm; but not to do dull and dreary labour at stone-breaking or
-oakum-picking. It must give him work which satisfies the human longing
-to make something, and opens to him the door of hope. If the applicant
-be ignorant and workless, it must teach him, establishing something like
-day industrial schools, in which the man would learn and earn, but in
-which he would feel no desire to stay when other work offers.
-
-We must revive the spirit of the principle of 1834, and see that the
-position of the pauper be not as eligible as that of the independent
-workman; there must always be a centrifugal force from the centre of
-relief, driving the relieved to seek work; but this force need not be
-terror or repression. A system of training, a process of development,
-would be equally effective in deterring imposition. Scientific treatment
-of the poor need not, therefore, be inconsistent with that which is most
-humane.
-
-The same principle as to the primary importance of developing character
-must be kept in view, though with somewhat different application, when
-the people to be helped are the sick, the old, and the children.
-
-Thus the sick, by convalescent homes, by the best nursing and the most
-skilled attention, should be as quickly as possible made fit for
-work.[2]
-
- [2] How does this harmonize with the practice of turning the lying-in
-mother out after fourteen days?
-
-The children should be absorbed into the normal life of the population,
-and helped to forget they are paupers.[3]
-
- [3] How does this harmonize with the practice of keeping them in
-barrack schools, in pauper villages?
-
-The aged should be left in their own homes, supported by some system of
-State pensions, unconsciously teaching lessons of patience to those who
-tend them, and giving of their painfully obtained experience lessons of
-hope or warning.[4]
-
- [4] How does this harmonize with the fact that there are thousands
-of people over sixty years of age in our State institutions? Has it ever
-occurred to the statistical inquirers to ascertain the death-rate of
-babies in relation to the absence of their grand-parents?
-
-The revelation to this age is the law of development, and it can be seen
-in the laws which govern Society as well as those which govern Nature.
-Slowly has been evolved the knowledge of the duty of the State to its
-members. Repression of evil, pity for suffering, systematizing of
-relief; each has given place to the other, and all have left the
-Christian conscience ill at ease. Development of character is before us,
-and it is for the Church to “see visions” and to open the eyes of the
-blind to its ideals. What shall they be? As teachers of the reality of
-the spiritual life I would ask you, as clergy, first, to serve on
-poor-law boards, and, secondly, to consider each individual as an
-individual capable of development; each drunken man, each lawless woman,
-each feeble-minded creature, each unruly child, each plastic baby, each
-old crone, each desecrated body: let us place each side by side with
-Christ and their own possibilities, and then vote and work to give each
-an upward push, remembering that to allow freedom for choice and to
-withhold aid are often duties, for on all individual souls is laid the
-command to “work out their _own_ salvation in fear and trembling”.
-
-_Put briefly, Christians must say, “Poverty demands prayer”._
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- POVERTY, ITS CAUSE AND ITS CURE.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- [1] A Paper read at the Summer School for the Study of Social
-Questions held at Hayfield, June 22nd to 29th, 1907.
-
-
-Poverty is a relative term. The citizen whose cottage home, with its
-bright housewife and happy children, is as light in our land, is poor in
-comparison with the occupant of some stately mansion. But his poverty is
-not an evil to be cured. It is a sign that life does not depend on
-possessions, and the existence of poor men alongside of rich men, each
-of whom lives a full human life in different circumstances, make up the
-society of the earthly paradise. The poverty which has to be cured is
-the poverty which degrades human nature, and makes impossible for the
-ordinary man his enjoyment of the powers and the tastes with which he
-was endowed at his birth. This is the poverty familiar in our streets,
-more familiar, we are told, than in the streets of any foreign town.
-This is the poverty by which men and women and children are kept from
-nourishment and sent out to work weak in body and open to every
-temptation to drink. This is the poverty which makes men slaves to work
-and uninterested in the magnificent drama of nature or life. This is the
-poverty which lets thousands of our people sink into pauperism.
-
-What is the cause and the cure of this poverty?
-
-The cause may be said to be the sin or the selfishness of rich and poor,
-and its cure to be the raising of all men to the level of Christ. The
-world might be as pleasant and as fruitful as Eden, but so long as some
-men are idle and some men are greedy, poverty and other evils are sure
-to invade. Man is always stronger than his environment. He may be a
-prisoner in the midst of pleasures, and he may prove that walls cannot a
-prison make. Character may thus be truly said to be the one necessary
-equipment for climbing the hill of life, and every remedy which is
-suggested for those who stumble and fall must be judged by its effect on
-character. The dangers of the relief which weakens self-reliance have
-been recognized, the kindness which removes every hindrance from the way
-has been seen to relax effort; but even so there is no justification for
-law and custom to intrude obstacles to make the way harder or to bind on
-life’s wayfarer extra burdens.
-
-Our subject thus presents two questions: 1. How is character to be
-strengthened? 2. How are the obstacles imposed by law and custom to be
-removed?
-
-1. Character largely depends on health and education. Children born of
-overworked parents; fed on food which does not nourish; brought up in
-close air and physicked over-much cannot have the physical strength
-which is the basis of courage. The importance of health is recognized,
-and every year more is done to spread knowledge and enforce sanitary
-law. But the neglect of past generations has to be made up, and few of
-us yet realize what is necessary. The rate of infant mortality is a safe
-index of unhealthy conditions, and until that is lowered we may be sure
-of a drift towards poverty.
-
-There are two directions in which energy should push effort: (_a_) More
-space should be secured about houses so that in the fullest sense every
-inhabited house might be a “living” house, with a sufficiency of air and
-space and water to enable every inmate to feel in himself the spring of
-being. (_b_) The Medical Officer of Health should be responsible for the
-health of every one in his district. He should be at the head of the
-Poor Law Medical Officers, of the Dispensary, of the Hospitals, and of
-the Infirmary. He should be able not only to report on unhealthy areas
-but to order for every sick person the treatment which is necessary.
-Medical relief and direction should be a right, not a favour grudgingly
-given through Relieving Officers. He should be able to prevent mothers
-working under conditions prejudicial to the health of their children. He
-should be the authorized recognized centre of information and direct the
-spread of knowledge. Disraeli, years ago, set up as a Reform cry,
-_Sanitas sanitatum, omnia sanitas_. Much money has been spent in the
-name of health, and hospitals have been doubled in efficiency, but
-because of physical weakness recruits are unfit for the army, and family
-after family drop into poverty. The need is some authority to bring the
-many efforts into order, and that authority should be, I submit, a
-Medical Officer responsible for the health of every person in his
-district.
-
-But when children are strong in body they do not necessarily become
-strong characters. They must be educated. Perhaps it might be said that
-it would be a fair division of labour if, while the school developed
-children’s minds, the home developed their characters. But the fact
-must be faced that either through neglect or greed the home has largely
-failed in its part. The schools of the richer classes recognize this
-fact and set themselves to develop character. They produce, as a rule,
-self-reliant men and women, wanting, perhaps, in sympathy and moral
-thoughtfulness, careless, perhaps, of others’ poverty, not always
-intelligent, but strong in qualities which keep them from poverty.
-The schools of the industrial classes are models of order, the
-teachers teach admirably and work hard, the children satisfy examiners
-and inspectors, their handwriting is good, their pronunciation--in
-school--is careful, they can answer questions on hygiene, on thrift,
-on history, on chemistry, and a half a dozen other subjects. But they
-have not resourcefulness, they are without interests which occupy their
-minds, they shun adventure and seek safe places, they have not the
-character which enjoys a struggle and resists the inroads of poverty,
-they have little hold on ideals which force them to sacrifice, they
-soon become untidy, they are an easy prey to excitement, and depend on
-others rather than on themselves. The problem how to educate character
-is full of difficulties. Happily there are workmen’s homes where, by
-the example of the parents and by the order of the household, children
-enter the world well equipped, and become leaders in industry and
-politics, but how in the twenty-seven hours of school time each week
-to educate mind _and_ character is a problem not to be solved in a few
-words.
-
-Perhaps the first thing to be done is to extend the hours of school
-time; children might come to the school buildings on Saturdays, and
-daily between five and seven, to play ordered games, and learn to take a
-beating without crying; boys and girls might be compelled to attend
-continuation schools up to the age of eighteen, and experience the joy
-of new interests; the age of leaving might be raised; the classes in the
-day schools might be smaller; the subjects taught might be fewer; the
-teachers might be left more responsible; and the recreation of the
-children might be more considered. Persons, not subjects, make
-character. The teachers in our elementary schools must, therefore, be
-more in number, have more time to know their pupils, and feel more
-responsible for each individual.
-
-Religion is, of course, the great character former, but our unhappy
-divisions put the subject outside friendly discussion. All that can be
-said is that the religious teacher who recognizes in all his ways that
-he is “under Authority” unconsciously moulds character, and all we can
-wish is that he may have more time and a smaller class. We, who set
-ourselves to root out poverty, will do well to look above the cries and
-claims of religious denominations, while we consider how our national
-schools may help to form the character, without which neither health nor
-wealth, nor even denominational equality, will avail much.
-
-2. It is time, however, to consider the second question. Character may
-overcome every obstacle, and our memories tell of men like Adam Bede or
-Abraham Lincoln or some of the present labour members, who have
-triumphed in the hardest circumstances. Circumstances must always be
-hard. God has so ordered the world; but there is no justification for
-law and custom to make them harder. Many men might have strength to get
-over what may be called natural difficulties, but fail upon those which
-have been artificially made.
-
-Our second question, therefore, in considering the cure of poverty is:
-How are the obstacles imposed by law and custom to be removed? I take as
-an example the laws which govern the use of land. The land laws were
-made by our forefathers, because in those days such laws seemed the best
-to force from the land its greatest use to the community. These laws
-made one man absolute owner, so that by his energy the land might become
-most productive. But times have changed, and now these laws, instead of
-making wealth, seem to help in making poverty. The country labourer may
-have strong arms; he may have some ambition to use his arms and his
-knowledge to make a home in which to enjoy his old age; but he sees land
-all around him which is serving the pleasures of the few, and not the
-needs of the many; he is shut out from applying his whole energy to its
-development, for he cannot hope to get secure tenure of a small plot. He
-leaves the country and goes to the town, where his strong arms are
-welcomed. But here, again, because the land is in the absolute control
-of its owner, house is crowded against house, so that health and
-enjoyment become almost impossible; and here, also, because so large a
-portion of profit must go to the owner who has done no share of his
-work, his wage must be reduced. He gives in, and his wife lets dirt and
-untidiness master his home, and he at last comes into poverty. Law, with
-good intention, created the obstacle which he could not surmount. Law
-could remove the obstacle. Law for the common good could interfere with
-that absolute ownership which for the common good it in the old days
-created. Country men might have the possibility of holding land, with
-security of tenure, which they could cultivate for their own and their
-children’s enjoyment. Town municipalities might be given the right to
-take possession of the land in their environment, on which houses could
-be built with space for air and for gardens.
-
-The subject is a large one, but the point I would make is that poverty
-is increased by the obstacles which our land laws have put in the man’s
-way. The landlord prevents the application of energy to the soil, and so
-taxes industry that a large share of others’ earnings automatically
-reach his pocket. The change of law may involve great cost to
-individuals, or to the State. But patriotism compels sacrifice, and a
-people which willingly gives its hundreds of millions to be for ever
-sunk in a war, may even more willingly surrender rights and pay taxes,
-so that its fellow-citizens may develop the common-wealth, and escape
-poverty.
-
-Custom is perhaps as powerful as law in putting obstacles in the way of
-life’s wayfarers. It is by custom that the poor are treated as belonging
-to a lower, and the rich to a higher class; that employers expect
-servility as well as work for the wages they pay; that property is more
-highly regarded than a man’s life; that competition is held in a sort of
-way sacred. It is custom which exalts inequality, and makes every one
-desirous of securing others’ service, and to be called Master. Many a
-man is, I believe, hindered in the race because he meets with treatment
-which marks him out as an inferior. He is discouraged by discourtesy, or
-he is tempted to cringe by assertions of inferiority. Charity to-day is
-often an insult to manhood. Many of our customs, which survive from
-feudalism, prevent the growth of a sense of self-respect and of human
-dignity. Men breathe air which relaxes their vigour, they complain of
-neglect, they seek favour, they follow after rewards, they give up, and
-thus sink into poverty.
-
-It may not seem a great matter, but among the cures for poverty I may
-put greater courtesy; a wider recognition of the equality in human
-nature; a more set determination to regard all men as brothers. It is
-not only gifts which demoralize; it is the attitude of those who think
-that gifts are expected of them, and of those who expect gifts. Gifts
-are only safe between those who recognize one another as equals.
-
-The subject is so vast that one paper can hardly scratch the surface,
-but I hope I have suggested some lines of thought. In conclusion, I
-would repeat that for the cure of poverty, nothing avails but personal
-influence. He does best who turns one sinner to righteousness, that is,
-who helps to make one poor man more earnest of purpose, and one rich man
-more thoughtfully unselfish. But circumstances also are important, and
-he does second best who helps to alter the laws and customs which put
-stumbleblocks in the ways of the simple.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE BABIES OF THE STATE.[1]
-
- BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT.
-
- July, 1909.
-
- [1] From “The Cornhill Magazine”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Without organization and without combination a widespread and effective
-strike has been slowly taking place--the strike of the middle and
-upper-middle class women against motherhood.
-
-Month by month short paragraphs can be seen in the newspapers
-chronicling in stern figures the stern facts of the decrease of the
-birth rate. At the same time the marriage rate increases, and the
-physical facts of human nature do not change. The conclusion is,
-therefore, inevitable that the wives have struck against what used to be
-considered the necessary corollary of wifehood--motherhood.
-
-The “Cornhill Magazine” is not the place to discuss either the physics
-or the ethics of this subject, but it is the place to suggest thoughts
-on the national and patriotic aspects of this regrettable fact.
-
-The nation demands that its population should be kept up to the standard
-of its requirements; the classes which, for want of a better term, might
-be called “educated” are refusing adequately to meet the need; the
-classes whose want of knowledge forbids them to strike, or whose lack of
-imagination prevents their realizing the pains, responsibilities, and
-penalties of family duties, still obey brute nature and fling their
-unwanted children on to the earth. “Horrible!” we either think or say,
-and inclination bids us turn from the subject and think of something
-pleasanter. But two considerations bring us sharply back to the point:
-first, that the nation, and all that it stands for, needs the young
-lives; and, secondly, that the babies, with their tiny clinging fingers,
-their soft, velvety skins, their cooey sounds and bewitching gestures,
-are guiltless of the mixed and often unholy motives of their creation.
-They are on this wonderful world without choice, bundles of
-potentialities awaiting adult human action to be developed or stunted.
-
-How does the nation which wants the children treat them? The annals
-of the police courts, the experience of the attendance officers of
-the London County Council, the reports of the National Society for
-Prevention of Cruelty to Children, the stories of the vast young army
-in truant or industrial schools, the tales of the Waifs and Strays
-Society and Dr. Barnardo’s organization are hideously eloquent of the
-cruelty, the neglect, and the criminality of thousands of parents.
-For their action the State can hardly be held directly responsible (a
-price has to be paid for liberty), but for the care of the children
-whose misfortunes have brought them to be supported by the State
-the nation is wholly responsible. Their weal or woe is the business
-of every man or woman who reads these pages. To ascertain the facts
-concerning their lives every tax-payer has dipped into his pocket
-to meet the many thousands of pounds which the Royal Commission on
-the Poor Laws has cost, and yet the complication of the problem and
-the weight of the Blue-books are to most people prohibitive, and
-few have read them. Even the thoughtful often say: “I have got the
-Reports, and hope to tackle them some day, but----,” and then follow
-apologies for their neglect owing to their size, the magnitude of the
-subject, or the pressure of other duties or pleasures. Meanwhile the
-children! The children are growing up, or are dying. The children,
-already handicapped by their parentage, are further handicapped by the
-conditions under which the State is rearing them. The children, which
-the nation needs--the very life-blood of her existence, for which she
-is paying, are still left under conditions which for decades have been
-condemned by philanthropists and educationists, as well as by the Poor
-Law Inspectors themselves.
-
-On 1 January, 1908, according to the Local Government Board return:
-234,792 children were dependent on the State, either wholly or
-partially. Of these:--
- 22,483 were in workhouses and workhouse infirmaries;
- 11,602 in district and separate, often called “barrack,” schools;
- 17,090 in village communities, scattered,
- receiving, and other Guardians’ homes;
- 11,251 in institutions other than those mentioned above;
- 8,565 boarded out in families of the industrial classes; and
- 163,801 receiving relief while still remaining with their parents. It
-is a portentous array, of nearly a quarter of a million of children,
-and each has an individual character.
-
-Pageants are now the fashion. Let us stand on one side of the stage (as
-did Stow, the historian, in the Whitechapel children’s pageant) and pass
-the verdict of the onlooker, as, primed with the figures and facts
-vouched for by the Royal Commissioners, we see the children of the State
-exhibit themselves in evidence of the care of their guardians.
-
-First the babies. Here they come, thousands of them, some born in the
-workhouse, tiny, pink crumpled-skinned mites of a few days old; others
-toddlers of under three, who have never known another home.
-
-“What a nice woman in the nurse’s cap and apron! I would trust her with
-any child. The head official, I suppose. But her under staff! What a
-terrible set! Those old women look idiotic and the young ones wicked.
-The inmates told off to serve in the nurseries you say they are! Surely
-no one with common humanity or sense would put a baby who requires wise
-observation under such women!”
-
-“Alas! but the Guardians do.”
-
-The Report states:--
-
- “The whole nursery has often been found under the charge of a
- person actually certified as of unsound mind, the bottles sour, the
- babies wet, cold, and dirty. The Commission on the Care and Control
- of the Feeble-minded draws attention to an episode in connexion
- with one feeble-minded woman who was set to wash a baby; she did so
- in boiling water, and it died.”
-
-But this is no new discovery made by the recent Royal Commission. In
-1897 Dr. Fuller, the Medical Inspector, reported to the Local Government
-Board that
-
- “in sixty-four workhouses imbeciles or weak-minded women are
- entrusted with the care of infants, as helps to the able-bodied or
- inferior women who are placed in charge by the matron, without the
- constant supervision of a responsible officer”.
-
-“We recognise,” acknowledges the Report of the Royal Commissioners,
-“that some improvement has since taken place; but, as we have ourselves
-seen, pauper inmates, many of them feeble-minded, are still almost
-everywhere utilized for handling the babies.... As things are, the
-visitor to a workhouse nursery finds it too often a place of intolerable
-stench, under quite insufficient supervision, in which it would be a
-miracle if the babies continued in health.”
-
-“How thin and pale and undersized many of them are! Surely they are
-properly fed and clothed and exercised!”
-
-“In one large workhouse,” writes the Commissioners, “it was noticed that
-from perhaps about eighteen months to two and a half years of age the
-children had a sickly appearance. They were having their dinner, which
-consisted of large platefuls of potatoes and minced beef--a somewhat
-improper diet for children of that age.” “Even so elementary a
-requirement as suitable clothing is neglected.” “The infants,” states a
-lady Guardian, “have not always a proper supply of flannel, and their
-shirts are sometimes made of rough unbleached calico.” “Babies of twelve
-months or thereabouts have their feet compressed into tight laced-up
-boots over thick socks doubled under their feet to make them fit into
-the boots.” “In some workhouses the children have no toys, in others the
-toys remain tidily on a shelf out of reach, so that there may be no
-litter on the floor.”
-
- “In another extensive workhouse it was found that the babies of one
- or two years of age were preparing for their afternoon sleep. They
- were seated in rows on wooden benches in front of a wooden table.
- On the table was a long narrow cushion, and when the babies were
- sufficiently exhausted they fell forward upon this to sleep! The
- position seemed most uncomfortable and likely to be injurious.”
-
-In another place it was stated:--
-
- “That the infants weaned, but unable to feed themselves, are
- sometimes placed in a row and the whole row fed with one spoon ...
- from one plate of rice pudding. The spoon went in and out of the
- mouths all along the row.”
-
-“We were shocked,” continues the Report, “to discover that the infants
-in the nursery of the great palatial establishments in London and other
-large towns _seldom or never got into the open air_.”
-
- “We found the nursery frequently on the third or fourth story of
- a gigantic block, often without balconies, whence the only means of
- access even to the workhouse yard was a flight of stone steps down
- which it was impossible to wheel a baby carriage of any kind. There
- was no staff of nurses adequate to carrying fifty or sixty infants
- out for an airing. In some of these workhouses it was frankly
- admitted that these babies never left their own quarters (and
- the stench that we have described), and never got into the open
- air during the whole period of their residence in the workhouse
- nursery.”
-
-In short, “we regret to report,” say the Commissioners, “that these
-workhouse nurseries are, in a large number of cases, alike in structural
-arrangements, equipment, organization, and staffing, wholly unsuited to
-the healthy rearing of infants”.
-
-“See, here come the coffins!”
-
-Coffins--tiny wooden boxes--of just cheap deal; some with a wreath of
-flowers, and followed by a weeping woman; others just conveyed by
-officials--unwanted, unregretted babies.
-
-As far as one’s eye can reach they come. Coffins and coffins, and still
-more coffins; almost as many coffins as there were babies?
-
-Not quite. The Report repeats the evidence of the Medical Inspector of
-the Local Government Board for Poor-Law purposes, who some years ago
-made a careful inquiry and found that one baby out of every three died
-annually. “A long time ago,” did I hear you murmur, “and things are
-better now”?
-
-Would that it were so, but a more recent inquiry made by the
-Commissioners shows that “out of every thousand children born in the
-Poor-Law institutions forty to forty-five die within a week, and out of
-8483 infants who were born during 1907, in the workhouses of the 450
-Unions inquired into, no fewer than 1050 (or 13 per cent) actually died
-on the premises before attaining one year.” “The infantile mortality in
-the population as a whole,” writes the authors of the Minority Report,
-“exposed to all dangers of inadequate medical attendance and nursing,
-lack of sufficient food, warmth, and care, and parental ignorance and
-neglect, is admittedly excessive. The corresponding mortality among the
-infants in the Poor-Law institutions, where all these dangers may be
-supposed to be absent, is between two and three times as great.”
-
-“It must be the fault of the system, it is often said, that children,
-like chickens, cannot for long be safely aggregated together.”
-
-“It is difficult to say whether it is the system or the administration
-which is most to blame, but the facts are incontrovertible. In some
-workhouses 40 per cent of the babies die within the year. In ten others
-493 babies were born, and only fourteen, or 3 per cent, perished before
-they had lived through four seasons. In ten other workhouses 333 infants
-saw the light, and through the gates 114 coffins were borne, or 33 per
-cent of the whole.”
-
-This variation would appear to point to faults of administration. On the
-other hand, the system is contrary to nature; for the natural law limits
-families to a few children, and usually provides that King Baby should
-rule as sole monarch for eighteen months or two years. On this the
-Report says:--
-
- “It has been suggested to us by persons experienced in the peculiar
- dangers of institutions for infants of tender years, that the
- high death rate, especially the excessive death rates after the
- first few weeks of life, right up to the age of three or four,
- may be due to some adverse influence steadily increasing in its
- deleterious effect the longer the child is exposed to it. In the
- scarlet fever wards of isolation hospitals it has been suggested
- that the mere aggregation of cases may possibly produce, unless
- there are the most elaborate measures for disinfection, a dangerous
- ‘intensification’ of the disease. In the workhouse nursery there is
- practically no disinfection. The walls, the floors, the furniture,
- must all become, year after year, more impregnated with whatever
- mephitic atmosphere prevails. The very cots in which the infants
- lie have been previously tenanted by an incalculable succession of
- infants in all states of health and morbidity.”
-
-“Is the long undertaker’s bill to be deplored, considering the parentage
-of this class of children and the way the Guardians rear them?”
-
-The nation wants the babies; indeed, to maintain its position it must
-have them, and “the tendency of nature is to return to the normal”--a
-scientific fact of profound civic importance. Besides, the Report
-says:--
-
- “We find that it is generally assumed that the women admitted
- to the workhouse for lying-in are either feeble-minded girls,
- persistently immoral women, or wives deserted by their husbands.
- Whatever may have been the case in past years, this is no longer
- a correct description of the patients in what have become, in
- effect, maternity hospitals. Out of all the women who gave birth to
- children in the Poor-Law institutions of England and Wales during
- 1907, it appears that about 30 per cent were married women. In the
- Poor-Law institutions of London and some other towns the proportion
- of married women rises to 40 and even to 50 per cent.”
-
-As to how the Guardians rear the babies that is another matter. But let
-us leave Institutions with the high walls, the monotony which stifles,
-the organization which paralyses energy, the control which alike saps
-freedom and initiation, and the unfailing provision of food no one
-visibly earns, so that we may go and visit some of the homes which the
-Guardians subsidize, and where they keep, or partially keep, out of the
-ratepayers’ pockets 163,801 children.
-
-I.--A clean home this, mother out at work, earning 4s. 6d. by charing;
-the Guardians giving 7s. 6d. Four children (thirteen, nine, six, four),
-left to themselves while she is out, but evidently fond of home and each
-other. A small kitchen garden which would abundantly pay for care, but
-fatigue compels its neglect. No meat is included in her budget, and but
-3d. a week for milk; but 12s. a week, and 4s. 6d. of it depending on her
-never ailing and her employers always requiring her, is hardly adequate
-on which to pay rent and to keep five people, providing the children
-with their sole items of life’s capital--health, height, and strength.
-
-II.--A dirty home this, in a filthy court. The mother is out; the
-children playing among the street garbage. Their clothes are ragged,
-their heads verminous, their poor faces sharp with that expression which
-always wanting and never being satisfied stamps indelibly on the human
-countenance. One bed and a mattress pulled on to the floor is all that
-is provided for the restful sleep of six people; and 3s. a week is what
-a pitiful public subscribes via the rates to show its appreciation of
-such a home life. Waste and worse. The Majority Report quotes with
-approval the words of Dr. McVail: “In many cases the amount allowed by
-the Guardians for the maintenance of out-door pauper children cannot
-possibly suffice to keep them even moderately well”. This could be
-applied to Case I. “Many mothers having to earn their living ... cannot
-attend to their children at home, so that there is no proper cooking,
-the house is untidy and uncomfortable, and the living rooms and bedrooms
-unventilated and dirty.” This could be applied to Case II.
-
-III. A disgraceful home this, best perhaps described in the words of the
-Majority Report:--
-
- “A widow with three children, a well-known drunken character,
- was relieved with 3s., one of her children earning 7s. making a
- total of 10s. It was urged by the relieving officer that it was
- no case for out relief, as it was encouraging drunkenness and
- immorality.... It was held that the relief having been suspended
- for a month, she had suffered sufficient punishment. The officer
- said: ‘She still drinks,’ and that 4s. relief was given on 13
- December, ‘to tide her over the holidays’. She had been before the
- police for drunkenness. It was considered (by the Guardians) to
- meet the disqualification of the case by reducing the relief to 3s.
- instead of 4s.”
-
-IV. An immoral home this, again best described in official words:--
-
- “I saw in one instance out-relief children habitually sent out
- to pilfer in a small way, others to beg, some whose mothers were
- drunkards or living immoral lives.... These definitely bad mothers
- were but a small minority of the mothers whom we visited, but
- there were many of a negatively bad type, people without standard,
- whining, colourless people, often with poor health. If out relief
- is given at all ... those who give it must take the responsibility
- for its right use.”
-
-In 1898, when Lord Peel was the Chairman of the State Children’s
-Association, its Executive Committee brought out a chart which showed
-that there were children nationally supported under the Local Government
-Board, under the Home Office, under the Education Department, under the
-Metropolitan Asylums Board, under the Lunacy Commissioners, each using
-its own administrative organization. At that time the same children were
-being dealt with by what may be called rival authorities, without any
-machinery for co-operation or opportunities of interchange of knowledge
-or experience. Since then there has been but little change, the Reports
-point out forcibly the existence of the same conditions only worse,
-inasmuch as more parents now seek free food and other assistance for
-their children from official hands.
-
-Face to face with such a serious confusion of evils, affecting as they
-do the character of the people--the very foundation of our national
-greatness; confronted with the complicated problem how to simplify
-machinery which has been growing for years, and is further entangled
-with the undergrowth of vast numbers of officials and their vested
-interests; distressed on the one hand by the clamour of that section of
-society who think that everything should be done by the State, and on
-the other by the insistent demand of those who see the incalculable good
-which springs from volunteer effort or agencies, the bewildered
-statesman might be sympathized with, if not excused, if he did feel
-inclined to agree with Mr. John Burns’s suggestion, and leave it all to
-him.
-
-“I care for the people,” in effect he said, “I know their needs. I have
-the officials to do the work. I am the President of the Local Government
-Board. Be easy, leave it all to me, I will report to the House once in
-three months. All will be well.”
-
-It sounds a simple plan, but, before it can be even seriously advocated,
-it would be as well to survey the recent history of the Local Government
-Board, and see if, even under this President, its past record gives hope
-for future effective achievement. Once more let us begin with--
-
-(_a_) _The Babies._--Sir John Simon, Chief Medical Officer of the Local
-Government Board, wrote forcibly on the subject more than a generation
-past. Dr. Fuller’s Report was made years ago. Again and again reform has
-been urged by Poor Law Inspectors and workhouse officials, who have
-asked for additional powers to obtain information or classification or
-detention. What has the Local Government Board done? The following
-extract from the Minority Report can be the reply:--
-
- “Alike in the prevention of the continued procreation of the
- feeble-minded, in the rescue of girl-mothers from a life of
- sexual immorality, and in the reduction of infantile mortality in
- respectable but necessitous families, the destitution authorities,
- in spite of their great expenditure, are to-day effecting no
- useful results. With regard to the two first of these problems, at
- any rate, the activities of the Boards of Guardians are, in our
- judgment, actually intensifying the evil. If the State had desired
- to maximize both feeble-minded procreation, and birth out of
- wedlock, there could not have been suggested a more apt device than
- the provision, throughout the country, of general mixed workhouses,
- organized as they are now to serve as unconditional maternity
- hospitals.... While thus encouraging ... these evils they are doing
- little to arrest the appalling preventible mortality that prevails
- among the infants of the poor.”
-
-(_b_) _The Children in the Workhouses._--“So long ago as 1841 the
-Poor-Law Commissioners pointed out forcibly the evils connected with the
-maintenance of children in workhouses.” In 1896 the Departmental
-Committee, of which Mr. Mundella was chairman, and on which I had the
-honour of sitting, brought before the public the opinion of inspectors,
-guardians, officials, educationists and child-lovers, all unanimous in
-condemning this system. “In the workhouse the children meet with crime
-and pauperism from day to day.” “They are in the hands of adult paupers
-for their cleanliness, and the whole thing is extremely bad.” “The
-able-bodied paupers with whom they associate are a very bad class,
-almost verging on criminal, if not quite,” is some of the evidence
-quoted in the Report, and the Committee unanimously signed the
-recommendation “that no children be allowed to enter the workhouse,” and
-now, thirteen years afterwards, the same conditions prevail. The
-Majority Report thus describes cases of children in workhouses:--
-
- “The three-year-old children were in a bare and desolate room,
- sitting about on the floor and on wooden benches, and in dismal
- workhouse dress. The older ones had all gone out to school ...
- except a cripple, and a dreary little girl who sat in a cold room
- with bare legs and her feet in a pail of water as a ‘cure’ for
- broken chilblains.... The children’s wards left on our minds a
- marked impression of confusion and defective administration....
- In appearance the children were dirty, untidy, ill-kept, and
- almost neglected. Their clothes might be described with little
- exaggeration as ragged.... The boys’ day-room is absolutely dreary
- and bare, and they share a yard and lavatories with the young
- men.... An old man sleeps with the boys. It is a serious drawback
- (says the inspector) that every Saturday and Sunday, to say nothing
- of summer and winter holidays, have for the most part to be spent
- in the workhouse, where they either live amid rigid discipline and
- get no freedom, or else if left to themselves are likely to come
- under the evil influence of adult inmates. The Local Government
- Board inspectors point out that, even if the children go to the
- elementary schools for teaching, the practice of rearing them in
- the workhouse exposes them to the contamination of communication
- with the adult inmates whose influence is often hideously
- depraving.”
-
-“Terrible!” my reader will say; “but surely the reform requires
-legislation, and the Poor Law is too large a subject to tinker on, it
-must be dealt with after time has been given for due thought.” To this I
-would reply that even if it did require legislation there has been time
-enough to obtain it during all these years that the evils have existed;
-but to quote the Majority Report: “So far as the ‘in-and-out’ children
-are concerned it is probable that no further power would be needed,
-since the Guardians already have power under the Poor Law Act, 1899, to
-adopt children until the age of eighteen.” This Act, I may say in
-passing, was initiated, drafted, and finally secured, not by the
-responsible authorities but by the efforts of the State Children’s
-Association.
-
-Why, then, has not the Local Government Board removed the children from
-the workhouses? Why, indeed?
-
-(_c_) _The Ins and Outs._--In 1896 the Departmental Committee quoted the
-evidence of Mr. Lockwood, the Local Government Board Inspector, who
-referred to “cases of children who are constantly in and out of the
-workhouse, dragged about the streets by their parents, and who
-practically get no education at all,” and he puts in a table of
-“particulars of eleven families representing the more prominent ‘ins and
-outs’” of one Metropolitan West-end workhouse of whom “one family of
-three children had been admitted and discharged sixty-two times in
-thirteen months.” Other cases were given, for instance:--
-
- “D----, a general labourer, who has three boys and a girl, who come in
- and out on an average once a week.
-
- “A family named W----. The husband drunken, and has been in an asylum;
- the wife unable to live with him. He would take his boys out in the
- early morning, leave them somewhere, meet them again at night, and
- bring them back to the workhouse; they had had nothing to eat, and had
- wandered about in the cold all day.”
-
-“This state of things is cruel and disastrous in every respect,” writes
-the Committee in 1896, appointed, be it remembered, by the Department to
-elicit facts and “to advise as to any changes that may be desirable”.
-Yet we find that in 1909 the same conditions exist. To quote the
-Report:--
-
- “Out of twenty special cases of which details have been obtained,
- twelve families have been in and out ten or more times; one child
- had been admitted thirty-nine times in eleven years; another
- twenty-three times in six years. The Wandsworth Union has a large
- number of dissolute persons in the workhouse with children in the
- intermediate schools. The parents never go out without taking the
- children, and seem to hold the threat of doing so as a rod over the
- heads of the Guardians. One mother frequently had her child brought
- out of his bed to go out into the cold winter night. One boy who
- had been admitted twenty-five times in ten years had been sent more
- than once to Banstead Schools, but had never stayed there long.
- Whenever he knew he was to go there he used to write to his mother
- in the workhouse, when she would apply for her discharge and go out
- with him.”
-
-In the thirteen years which have passed since the issue of the two
-Reports, what has the Local Government Board done? It has induced some
-of the Boards to establish receiving or intermediary houses at the cost,
-in the Metropolis, of about £200,000, but that is but attacking the
-symptom and leaving the disease untouched. Without an ideal for
-child-life or appreciation of child-nature, it has been content to let
-this hideous state of things go on. Again to quote the Report:--
-
- “It has done nothing to prevent the children from being dragged
- in and out of the workhouse as it suits their parents’ whim or
- convenience. The man or woman may take the children to a succession
- of casual wards or the lowest common lodging-houses. They may go
- out with the intention of using the children, half-clad and blue
- with cold, as a means of begging from the soft-hearted, or they may
- go out simply to enjoy a day’s liberty, and find the children only
- encumbrances, to be neglected and half-starved.... The unfortunate
- boys and girls who are dragged backwards and forwards by parents
- of the ‘in-and-out’ class practically escape supervision. They pass
- the whole period of school age alternately being cleansed and ‘fed
- up’ in this or that Poor Law institution, or starving on scraps
- and blows amid filth and vice in their periodical excursions in
- the outer world, exactly as it suits the caprice or convenience of
- their reckless and irresponsible parents.”
-
-And the Local Government Board has stood it for years and stands by
-still and lets the evils go on. Meanwhile it is the children who suffer
-and die; it is the children who are being robbed of their birthright of
-joy as they pass a miserable childhood in poverty in workhouses or in
-huge institutions; it is the children whose potentialities for good, and
-strength, and usefulness are being allowed to wither and waste and turn
-into evil and pain. It is the children who are needed for the nation; it
-is the nation who supports them; and it is the nation who must decide
-their future.
-
-Speaking for myself (not in any official capacity), twenty-two years’
-experience as manager of a barrack school, two years’ membership of the
-Departmental Committee, twelve years’ work as the honorary secretary of
-the State Children’s Association have brought me to the well-grounded
-opinion that the children should be removed altogether from the care of
-the Local Government Board and placed under the Board of Education. This
-Board’s one concern is children. Its inspectors have to consider nothing
-beyond the children’s welfare, and its organization admits the latest
-development in the art of training, both in day and boarding schools.
-
-However much courtesy demanded moderation, the fact remains that both
-the Reports are a strong condemnation of the whole of the Poor-Law work
-of the Local Government Board, both in principle and administration. The
-condition of the aged, the sick, the unemployed, the mentally defective,
-the vagrant, the out-relief cases, as well as the children, alike come
-in for strong expressions of disapproval or for proposals for reform so
-drastic as to carry condemnation. If such a report had been issued on
-the work of the Admiralty or the War Office, the whole country would
-have demanded immediate change. “They have tried and failed,” it would
-be said; “let some one else try”; and a similar demand is made by those
-of us who have seen many generations of children exposed to these evils,
-and waited, and hoped, and despaired, and waited and hoped again. But
-once more some of the best brains in the country have faced the problem
-of the poor, and demanded reforms, and so far as the children are
-concerned almost the identical reforms demanded thirteen years ago; once
-more the nation has been compelled to turn its mind to this painful
-subject, and there is again ground for hope that the lives of the wanted
-babies will be saved, and their education be such as to fit them to
-contribute to the strength and honour of the nation.
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- POOR LAW REFORM.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- November, 1909.
-
- [1] From “The Contemporary Review”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-A compromise between kindliness and cruelty often stands--according to
-Mr. Galsworthy--for social reform. The Poor Law is an example of such
-compromise. In kindliness it offers doles of out-relief to the destitute
-and builds institutions at extravagant cost. In cruelty it disregards
-human feelings, breaks up family life, suspects poverty as a crime, and
-degrades labour into punishment.
-
-The Poor Law, however, receives almost universal condemnation. Its cost
-is enormous, amounting to over fourteen millions a year. The incidence
-is so unfair that its call on the rich districts is comparatively light,
-and in poor districts inordinately heavy. Its administration is both
-confused and loose. Its relief follows no principle--out-relief is given
-in one district and refused in others;--its institutions sometimes
-attract and sometimes deter applications, and its expenditure is often
-at the mercy of self-seeking Guardians, whose minds are set on securing
-cheap labour or even on secret commissions.
-
-The poor, whom at such vast cost and with such parade of machinery it
-relieves, are often demoralized. There is neither worth nor joy to be
-got out of the pauper, who has learned to measure success in life by
-skill in evading inquiry. And, what is most striking of all, the Poor
-Law has allowed a mass of poverty to accumulate which has led to the
-erection of charity upon charity, and is still, by its squalor, its
-misery and hopelessness, a disgrace and a danger to the nation. The
-public, recognizing the failure of the Poor Law, has become indifferent
-to its existence, and now only a small percentage of the electors record
-their votes at an election of the guardians of the poor.
-
-The case for reform is clear.
-
-What that reform should be is a question not to be answered in the
-compass of a short article. The best I can do is to offer for the
-consideration of my readers some principles which I believe to underlie
-reform. Those principles once accepted, it will be for every one to
-consider with what modifications or extensions they may be applied to
-the different circumstances of town and country, young and old, weak and
-strong.
-
-The last great reform of the Poor Law was in 1834. The Reformers of
-those days took as their main principle _that the position of the person
-relieved should be less attractive than that of the workman_. They were
-driven to adopt this principle by the condition to which the Elizabethan
-Poor Law had brought the nation. When, under that Poor Law, the State
-assumed the whole responsibility “for the relief of the impotent and the
-getting to work of those able to work,” and when by Gilbert’s Act in
-1782 it was further enacted that “out-relief should be made obligatory
-for all except the sick and impotent,” it followed that larger and
-larger numbers threw themselves on the rates. Relief offered a better
-living than work. The number of workers decreased, the number receiving
-relief increased. Ruin threatened the nation, and so the Reformers came
-in to enforce the principle that relief should offer a less attractive
-living than work.
-
-The principle is good; it is, indeed, eternally true, because it is not
-by what comes from without, but by what comes from within that a human
-being is raised. It is not by what a man receives, but by that he is
-enabled to do for himself that he is helped. This principle was applied
-in 1834 by requiring from every applicant evidence of destitution, by
-refusing relief to able-bodied persons, except on admission to
-workhouses, and by making the relief as unpleasant or as “deterrent” as
-possible.
-
-This harsh application of the principle may have been the best for the
-moment. The nation required a sharp spur, and no doubt under its
-pressure there was a marvellous recovery. Men who had been idle sought
-work, and men who had saved realized that their savings would no longer
-be swallowed up in rates. The spur and the whip had their effect, but
-such effect, whether on a beast or a man, is always short-lived.
-
-The tragedy of 1834 is that the reforming spirit, which so boldly
-undertook the immediate need, did not continue to take in other needs as
-they arose. It is, indeed, the tragedy of the history of the State, of
-the Church, and of the individual, that moments of reform are followed
-by periods of lethargy. People will not recognize that reform must be a
-continuous act, and that the only condition of progress is eternal
-vigilance. Indolence, especially mental indolence, is Satan’s handiest
-instrument, and so after some great effort a pause is easily accepted as
-a right.
-
-After the reform of 1834 there was such a pause. New needs soon came to
-the front, and the face of society was gradually changed. The strain of
-industrial competition threw more and more men on to the scrap heap, too
-young to die, too worn to work, too poor to live. The crowding of house
-against house in the towns reduced the vitality of the people so that
-children grew up unfit for labour, and young people found less and less
-room for healthy activities of mind or body. Education, made common and
-free, set up a higher standard of respectability and called for more
-expenditure. A growing sense of humanity among all classes made poverty
-a greater burden on social life, provoking sometimes charity and
-sometimes indignation.
-
-These, and such as these, were the changes going on in the latter part
-of the nineteenth century, but the spirit of the reformers of 1834 was
-dead, and in their lethargy the people were content that the old
-principle should be applied without any change to meet new needs.
-Institutions were increased, officials were multiplied, and inspectors
-were appointed to look after inspectors. Any outcry was met by
-expedients. Mr. Chamberlain authorised municipal bodies to give work.
-Mr. Chaplain relaxed the out-relief order. New luxuries were allowed in
-the workhouse, the infirmaries were vastly improved, and the children
-were, to some extent, removed from the workhouses and put, often at
-great cost, in village communities or like establishments. But reliance
-was always placed on making relief disagreeable and deterrent. One of
-the latest reforms has been the introduction of the cellular system in
-casual wards, so that men are kept in solitary confinement, while as
-task work they break a pile of stones and throw them through a narrow
-grating. Poverty, indeed, is met by a compromise between kindliness and
-cruelty.
-
-The reformers of 1834 looked out on a society weakened by idleness. They
-faced a condition of things in which the chief thing wanted was energy
-and effort, so they applied the spur. The reformers of to-day look out
-on a very different society, and they look with other eyes. They see
-that the people who are weak and poor are not altogether suffering the
-penalty of their own faults. It is by others’ neglect that uninhabitable
-houses have robbed them of strength, that wages do not provide the means
-of living, and that education has not fitted them either to earn a
-livelihood or enjoy life. The reformers of to-day, under the subtle
-influence of the Christian spirit, have learnt that self-respect, even
-more than a strong body, is a man’s best asset, and that willing work
-rather than forced work makes national wealth.
-
-Sir Harry Johnson, who speaks with rare authority, has told us how
-negroes with a reputation for idleness respond to treatment which,
-showing them respect, calls out their hope and their manhood. Treat
-them, he implies, as children, drive them as cattle, and you are
-justified in your belief in their idleness. Treat them as men, give them
-their wages in money, open to them the hope of better things, and they
-work as men.
-
-The relief given in the casual ward may be sufficient for the body of
-the casual, but the penal treatment, the prison-like task and the
-solitary confinement make him set his teeth against work, and he becomes
-the enemy of the society which has given him such treatment.
-
-The Reformers of to-day, with their greater knowledge of human nature,
-and in face of a society the fault of which is not just idleness, will
-do well then to take another principle as the basis of their action.
-Such a principle is _that relief must develop self-respect_. They will
-have, indeed, to remember that the form of relief must still be less
-attractive than that offered by work, but less attractiveness must be
-attained not by an insolent inquisition of relief officers into the
-character of applicants, not by treating inmates as prisoners, and not
-by making work as distasteful as possible. It might possibly be
-sufficient if relief, so far as regarded the able-bodied, took the form
-of training for work. There is no degradation in requiring men and women
-to fit themselves to earn,--no loss of self-respect is brought on anyone
-by being called to be a learner;--but, at the same time, opportunities
-for learning are not attractive to idlers, nor are they likely to
-encourage the reliance on relief which brought disaster on the nation
-before 1834.
-
-The Whitechapel Guardians, many years ago, determined that the workhouse
-should more and more approximate to an adult industrial school. They did
-away with stone breaking and oakum picking, they abolished cranks turned
-by human labour, they instituted trade work and appointed a mental
-instructor to teach the inmates in the evening. They had no power of
-detention, so the training was not of much use, but as a deterrent the
-system was most effective, and fewer able-bodied men came to Whitechapel
-Union than to neighbouring workhouses. Regard for the principle that
-relief must develop self-respect is not, therefore, inconsistent with
-the principle that relief must offer a position which is less attractive
-than that offered by work.
-
-But let me suggest some further application of the principle.
-
-1. It implies, I think, the abolition of Boards of Guardians and of all
-the special machinery for relief. It implies, perhaps, the abolition of
-the Poor Law itself. There is no class of “the poor” as there is a class
-of criminals. Poverty is not a crime, and there are poor among the most
-honourable of the people. Poverty is a loose and wide term, involving
-the greater number of the people. There must, therefore, be some loss of
-self-respect in those of the poor who feel themselves set apart for
-special treatment. One poor man goes to the hospital, his neighbour--his
-brother, it may be--goes to the Poor Law infirmary. Both are in the same
-position, but the latter, because he comes under the Guardians, loses
-his self-respect, and has acquired a special term--he is “a pauper”.
-
-Those men and women who through weakness, through ignorance or through
-character are unable to do their work and earn a living are, as much as
-the rich and the strong, members of the nation. All form one body and
-depend on one another. Some for health’s sake need one treatment and
-some another. There is no reason in putting a few of them under a
-special law and calling them “paupers,” the use of hard names is as
-inexpedient for the Statute Book as it is for Christians. Reason says
-that all should be so treated that they may, as rapidly as possible, be
-restored to economic health by the use of all the resources of the
-State, educational and social. There is no place for a special law, a
-specially elected body of administrators and a special rate.
-
-A further objection to Boards of Guardians is that an election does not
-involve interests which are sufficiently wide or sufficiently familiar.
-Side issues have to be exalted so as to attract the electors’ attention.
-Such a side issue was found in the religious question, which gave
-interest to the old School Board elections; no such side issue has been
-found in Guardian elections, and so only a small minority of ratepayers
-record their votes. Experience, therefore, justifies the proposal that
-with a view to encouraging the growth of self-respect in the
-economically unhealthy members of the nation, the present system of Poor
-Law machinery should be abolished.
-
-2. The principle further implies that the same municipal body which is
-responsible for the health, for the education, and for the industrial
-fitness of some members of the community should be responsible in like
-manner for all the members, whatever their position.
-
-(_a_) _The Sick._--The County Council appoints a medical officer of
-health and itself administers many asylums. It establishes a sort of
-privileged class which receives its benefits and, unless it extends its
-operations so that all who are sick may be reached, must lower the
-self-respect of those who are excluded and driven to beg for relief.
-
-The medical officer might be in fact what he is in name, responsible for
-the health of the district, and as the superior officer of the visiting
-doctors see that ill-health was prevented and cured. The interest of the
-community is universal good health; how unreasoning is the system which
-deters the sick man from trying to get well by making it necessary for
-him to endure the inquisition of the relieving officer before getting a
-doctor’s visit! The strength of the community is in the self-respect of
-its members; how extravagant is the system which offers relief only on
-condition of some degradation.
-
-(_b_) _The Children._--The County Council is responsible for the
-education of the children; it must--unless one set of children is to be
-kept in a less honourable position--extend its care over all the
-children. There must be no such creature as a “pauper child,” and no
-distinction between schools in which children are taught or boarded. The
-child who has lost its parents, the child who has been deserted, the
-child who has no home, must be started in life equipped with equal
-knowledge and on an equal footing with other children. Every child must
-be within reach of the best which the State can offer. The inclusion of
-the care of all children under the same municipal authority would help
-to develop in all a sense of self-respect, and at the same time enable
-the authority to make better use of the existing buildings in the
-classification of their uses, apportioning some, _e.g._, as technical
-schools, some as infirmaries, and some for industrial training. Dr.
-Barnardo, who has taught the nation how to care better for its children,
-adopted some such method.
-
-(_c_) _The Able-Bodied._--A greater difficulty occurs in applying the
-principle to the care of the able-bodied. How, it may be asked, is the
-County Council to deal with the unemployed and with the loafer so as to
-relieve them and at the same time develop their sense of respect? The
-County Council has lately been made responsible for dealing with the
-unemployed, and experience has shown that at the bottom of the problem
-lies the custom of casual labour, the use of boys in dissipating work,
-and the ignorance of the people. The Council has in its hands the power
-of dealing with these causes. It can establish labour registers, it can
-prevent much child labour, and it can provide education. It may be
-necessary to increase its powers, but already it can do something to
-prevent unemployment in the future.
-
-The need, however, of the present unemployed is training. The Council
-might be empowered to open for them houses or farms of discipline, in
-which such training could be given. The man with a settled home could be
-admitted for a short period, the loafer could be detained for three or
-four years. The work in every case, while less attractive than other
-work, could be such as to interest the worker; the discipline, such as
-to involve no degradation; and the door of hope could be studiously kept
-open. The farms or houses could indeed be adult industrial schools
-offering a livelihood, not indeed as attractive as that offered by work,
-but such as any man might take with gain to his sense of self-respect.
-
-The County Council might thus take over the duties performed by
-Guardians. The same body which now looks after the housing and the
-cleanliness of the streets, would possibly realize the cost of neglect
-in doing those duties, if they also had the care of the broken in body
-and in heart. In other words, a more scientific expenditure of the rates
-might be expected to ensue if the body responsible for the relief of
-poverty were the same body as is now responsible for its prevention. The
-claims of education would perhaps become more popular.
-
-Enough, perhaps, has now been said to suggest a line of reform, and
-hours might be spent in discussing a thousand details, each of which
-has its importance. But not even a slight article could be complete
-without some reference to the mass of charity--£10,000,000 is said to
-be spent in London alone--which is annually poured out on the poor.
-Charity, unless it be personal--from a friend to a friend--is often as
-degrading as Poor Law relief. Attempts have been made at organization,
-and much has been done to bring about personal relationships between
-the Haves and the Have-nots. Years ago it was suggested that the
-Charity Organization Society might take as a motto, “Not relief, but a
-friend”.
-
-Much has been done, but with a view to putting a further limit on the
-competition of charities and on the fostering of cringing habits, some
-reformers suggest that a statutory body of representatives of charities
-should be formed in each district. Over these a County Council official
-might preside. At weekly meetings cases of distress which have been
-noticed by the doctors, the school officers or any private person could
-be considered. These cases would then be handed over to individuals or
-charities, who would report progress at the next meeting, or they would
-be undertaken by the presiding officer and dealt with efficiently by one
-of the committees of the County Council.
-
-“The strength of a nation,” according to a saying of Napoleon quoted by
-Mr. Fisher, “depends on its history.” No reform is likely to endure
-which does not fit in with the traditions of the past. It might be
-possible to elaborate on paper a perfect scheme for the care of the weak
-and the sickly, but it would not avail if it disregarded history. Here
-in England the State has, during many centuries, recognized its
-obligation for the well-being of all its members, and it has performed
-its obligations by the service of individuals. The State, in more senses
-than one, is identified with the Church. In the new times, in the face
-of new needs and with the command of new knowledge, it is still the
-State which must organize the means to restore the fallen and it must
-still use as its instruments the willing service of individual men and
-women. The sketch of Poor Law reform which I have presumed to offer in
-this article fulfils, I believe, these requirements.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE UNEMPLOYED.[1]
-
- BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT.
-
- November, 1904.
-
- [1] A Paper read at a meeting in a West-End drawing room and
-afterwards printed by request.
-
-
-I am often asked to speak publicly, and when I express wonder as I open
-my letters at my breakfast-table, my family (with that delightful
-candour which is so good for one’s character) say, “Oh, they ask you
-because you always make them hear and sometimes make them laugh”.
-Ladies, to-day I shall, I hope, make you hear, but I cannot make you
-laugh.
-
-Those of us who have lived among the poor, as my dear old friend Emma
-Cons and I have done, in Lambeth and Whitechapel for over thirty years,
-know that there is no joke connected with the unemployed. Those of us
-who went through the awful winter of 1886, and saw the sad suffering
-which caused the still more sad sin, as the people lied and cringed and
-begged and bullied to get a share--(what they considered a lawful share,
-some called it “The ransom of the rich”) of the Mansion House Fund, know
-that this condition of want of employment is not only an economic
-question, but one involving deep and far-reaching moral issues, and it
-is this problem that is before us now.
-
-The number of unemployed in London is variously estimated, some say
-30,000 some 100,000, no one can tell, for it so much depends on what is
-meant by unemployed. Do we mean those workers in seasonal trades, such
-as the painters whose labour ceases in the winter? and the bricklayers’
-labourers who are stopped by a frost? Do we mean those thousands which
-Mr. Charles Booth calculates never have an income sufficient to keep
-the family in health, who are always partially unemployed because their
-labour is of so inefficient a kind that they are not worth a “living
-wage”. “Why,” one may ask the frequenters of the Relief Office, “have
-you come to this?” the answer in a hundred different forms will be the
-same. “I fell out of work owing to bad trade--I struggled for a year,
-but things got worse and worse--I am no longer fit for continuous work
-and I couldn’t do it if I got it”. They have, that is, lost their
-power, which makes efficient labour.
-
-On this matter there is need of clear thinking, but leaving for a moment
-or two the task of defining and classifying the unemployed, let us
-realize the large army of men, with the still larger army of women and
-children dependent on them, who, on this cold, cheerless day are out of
-work--what do they want? Food, fire, shelter,--on this we all agree, and
-the plan of some kind persons is to supply their needs. Thus Soup
-Kitchens, Free Breakfasts, Shelters for the Homeless, Meals for the
-Children, Blankets for the Old, Coals for the Cold, Clothing for the
-Destitute, Doles of all kinds for all kinds of people are begged for,
-and we are told, often with regrettable exaggeration, that to support
-this charity or that organization will relieve the suffering which
-(whatever our politics) we all combine to deplore.
-
-But those of us who have thought with our brains, as well as with our
-hearts, know that to ease the symptoms is not to cure the disease, and
-that this social ulcer needs first an exhaustive diagnosis by the most
-experienced social physicians, and then infinite patience and great
-firmness as we build up again the constitution of the unfit, which,
-through long years has become physically weakened and morally
-deteriorated.
-
-I seem to hear my listeners say: “But at least it cannot do harm to feed
-the children,” and there I confess my economics break down! I have lived
-long enough in Whitechapel to see three generations, and I have watched
-the underfed boy grow into the undersized man, pushed aside by stronger
-arms in the labour market. I have seen the underfed girl grown into the
-enfeebled woman, producing in motherhood puny children. But, and it is a
-big but, if you feed the children, you must feed them adequately, and
-feed them as individuals by individuals. The practice of giving children
-two or three dinner tickets a week is bad economy, bad for the
-children’s digestion, bad for the mother’s housekeeping, and bad for the
-father’s sense of responsibility. We should not like our own children to
-be fed thus, and indeed if we would consider each child of the poor as
-we consider our own, the problem of feeding the children would soon be
-solved. I know you will think me Utopian, but if every one of us here
-were to have two or three children as kitchen guests daily! Well! It
-perhaps would not do much, but once we were told ten righteous men might
-have saved the city.
-
-This is a long digression, but the individual treatment of children is a
-subject that occupies much of my thought, and one which I would ask you
-to consider carefully as throwing light on many loudly voiced schemes of
-reform, which, lacking the personal touch, are apt to miss the deeper
-and spiritual forces by which character must be nourished if it is to
-grow.
-
-Now to return to the unemployed. Briefly they can be put into four
-classes:--
-
- 1. The skilled mechanic.
-
- 2. The unskilled labourer.
-
- 3. The casual worker.
-
- 4. The loafer.
-
-Concerning the first, the Chart published in the “Labour Gazette” shows
-that the number approaches 7 per cent as against nearly 5 per cent last
-year. This is the only class about which we have accurate figures, but
-the returns of pauperism, and the experience of charitable agencies
-combine in agreeing that there is more want of employment in the other
-three classes than is usual at this time of the year, and that there are
-fewer “bits of things” to go to the pawnshop than usual, because, owing
-to the war, and some think to the fiscal agitation, the summer trade has
-been slack, and wages low and uncertain.
-
-No one can read the daily papers without seeing how many schemes are
-now being put forward to aid the unemployed, and in the space of
-time given to me it is impossible to name all these, let alone to
-discriminate between them, but certain principles can be laid down.
-(1) The form of help should be work. (2) The work should be such as
-will uplift and not degrade character. (3) The work should be paid
-sufficiently to keep up the home and adequately feed the family. (4)
-The work, if it be relief work--i.e., that not required in the ordinary
-channels by ordinary employers--should not be more attractive than the
-worker’s normal labour.
-
-It should never be forgotten that provision of work may become as
-dangerous to character as doles of money have proved to be. Work is of
-so many sorts; that which is effortful to some men may be child’s play
-to others, or it might be so carelessly supervised as to encourage the
-casual ways and self-indulgent habits which lie at the root of much
-poverty. Human nature in every walk of life has a tendency to take the
-easiest courses, and many men are tempted to relax the efforts which the
-higher classes of employment demand.
-
-“Why,” I said to a butler who had taken £80 a year in service, “did you
-become a cabman?” “Well, madam,” he said, “in service one has always to
-be spruce.” In other words he had resented the control of order, and so
-he had sunk from a skilled trade to a grade lower.
-
-“Why,” I asked an old friend, a Carter Paterson driver, “did you leave
-your regular work?” “’Tis like this,” he said, “it means being out in
-all weathers, now I can go home if things is too nasty outside.” He had
-yielded to the temptation of comfort and gone down a grade lower to
-casual work.
-
-“Why did you go on the tramp?” was asked of a man in the casual ward.
-“If yer takes to the road,” he said with perfect candour, “yer never
-knows what’s before yer. Yer may be in luck or yer mayn’t but it’s all
-on the chance.” The spirit of gambling had got the better of him and he
-had gone down a grade lower.
-
-These examples illustrate the importance of the principles laid down.
-The help must be work and the work must be steady and continuous, and
-capable, by drawing forth each man’s best powers, to uplift him in
-character and maintain his own self-esteem. The work must be of many
-kinds. It is folly to expect the tailor, the cigarette-maker, the
-working jeweller, to do only road sweeping and that badly, and lastly
-the work, while always strengthening character, must be given only under
-such conditions as will not attract men to leave their regular calling,
-which makes demands on their powers of self-discipline, and throw
-themselves on what is charity, even though offered in the form of
-labour.
-
-Last year the Mansion House Committee carried out on a small scale an
-experiment in relief, which in many ways followed these principles. It
-sent the men to Labour Colonies, where they had good food and honest
-work, away from the attractions of the streets, and while they were away
-it provided the women and children with sufficient money for the upkeep
-of health and home. It brought to individuals the care of individuals,
-as week by week superintendents reported on the workers’ work, and
-visitors carried the money to the families. It offered facilities for
-training men for emigration to the colonies, or for migration to the
-country. It provided employment which was not so attractive as to draw
-men from their regular work, nor the loafer from the streets, and it
-offered to every one hope and a way out in the future. The experiment
-has shown what is possible, and encourages those who worked it to
-believe that some year, if not this year, there will be humane and
-scientific dealing with the problem of unemployment.
-
-“Oh, yes,” I was told by a young married woman the other day, “people
-talk so much of the unemployed now. It is all the fashion, but I think
-quite half of them could get work if they wanted to.”
-
-“Really,” I said, recalling the hopeless eyes, gaunt figures, and worn
-boots of many an out-of-work friend, the pathetic patience of their
-women and white faces of the children, “Is that your experience?”
-
-“Oh, no!” she replied, “but I am sure I have heard it said--and I expect
-it is true.”
-
-I could have shaken her--but I did not--only that sort of thing is what
-discounts women’s opinion so often with the men (the governing sex), and
-as it is, I fear, not uncommon, it behoves us, the thinking, caring
-women, to think more clearly, and to care more deeply. If we bore more
-continuously this sad suffering in mind, if we studied, and read, and
-thought in the effort to probe its cause to its roots, if we resolved by
-personal effort to find or provide labour for at least one family during
-the winter, the problem would be nearer solution, but we must see to it
-that reforms go on lines which recognize that character is more
-important than comfort, and that a man is more wronged if Society steals
-his responsibility than if it steals his coat.
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE POOR LAW REPORT.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- April, 1909.
-
- [1] From “The Contemporary Review”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-The Poor Law has too long blocked the way of social progress, and its
-ending or its mending has become a matter of urgent necessity. The
-Report just issued may thus mark the beginning of a new age. The
-“condition of the people” is, from some points of view, even more
-serious than it was in 1834, when the first Commissioners brought out
-the Report which called “check” to many processes of corruption. In
-those days a lax system of relief had so tempted many strong men to
-idleness and so reduced incentives to investment, that the nation was
-threatened with bankruptcy. In these days, when a confusion of methods
-alternates between kindliness and cruelty in their treatment of the
-poor; when begging is encouraged by gifts, public and private, said to
-reach the amount of £80,000,000 a year; when giving provokes distrust
-and leaves such evidence of human starvation and degradation as may
-daily be seen amid the splendours of the Embankment, it sometimes seems
-as if the nation were within measurable distance of something like a
-bankruptcy of character.
-
-The present Poor Law system, valuable as it was in checking “various
-injurious practices,” has been applied to conditions and people who were
-not within its makers’ range of vision, and is now responsible for more
-trouble than is at once apparent. It preaches by means of palatial
-institutions which every one sees, and of officials who are more
-ubiquitous and powerful than parsons. Its sermon is: “Look outside
-yourselves for the means of livelihood; grudge if you are not
-satisfied”. It preaches selfishness and illwill; it encourages a
-scramble for relief; it discounts energy and trust. The present Poor Law
-does not really relieve the poor, and it does tend to weaken the
-national character.
-
-The admirable statistical survey which introduces the Report represents
-the failure of the present system in striking figures. The number of
-paupers--markedly of males--is increasing. In London alone 15,800 more
-paupers are being maintained than there were twenty years ago, and the
-rate of pauperism through the country has reached 47 in the 1000. The
-cost has also increased, and the country is now spending more than
-double the amount on each individual which was spent in 1872, “making a
-total which is now equivalent to nearly one half of the present
-expenditure on the Army”. The increase goes on, as the Commissioners
-remark, notwithstanding the millions of money now spent on education and
-sanitation, and notwithstanding the rise in wages, affording clear proof
-“that something in our social organization is seriously wrong”.
-
-The Commissioners are unanimous in their condemnation of the system
-which produces such results. They have gathered evidence upon evidence
-of its failure, and, while they praise the devoted service of many
-Guardians and officials, both the Majority and Minority Reports agree
-recommending radical changes.
-
-The revelation of the abuse is itself a valuable contribution to the
-needs of the time. The public, unless they know the extent of the
-mischief, will never be moved to the necessary effort of reform; and
-teachers of the public, through the Pulpit and the Press, could hardly
-do better than publish extracts from the Report showing the waste of
-money, the demoralization, the ill-will, which gathers round workhouses,
-casual wards and out relief.
-
-The ordinary reader of this evidence might naturally inquire, “What has
-the Local Government Board been doing to prevent the abuses which it
-must have known? Why, if conviction was not possible, was not Parliament
-asked for further powers or for some reform? What is the use of
-inspectors? Why should a controlling department exist if the nation is
-to stand convicted of such neglect, and to be brought into such danger?”
-The Report implies, indeed, some slight blame to the Local Government
-Board, because it did not at all times afford sufficient direction; and
-the Minority Report, in its more trenchant way, sometimes emphasizes the
-confusion it has caused by its varying decisions; but the thought
-naturally occurs that if the Board had not been so strongly represented
-on the Commission, or if a body representative of the best guardians
-were called on to render a report, the supreme authority which has so
-long known the evil and done so little for its reform would have been
-roundly condemned.
-
-The Commissioners, however, pass their judgment on the system, and
-proceed to make their recommendations. There are two sets, those of the
-Majority and those of the Minority. They extend over 1238 large pages,
-and deal with thousands of details. A close examination is therefore
-impossible in a short article, but there are certain tests by which the
-principal recommendations may be tried. I would try just two such tests:
-(1) Do they make it possible to relieve needs without demoralizing
-character? (2) Do they stimulate energy without raising the devil in
-human nature?
-
-The people who need relief are roughly divided into two great classes,
-“the unable” and “the able”. The recommendations of the Report--Majority
-and Minority--as they affect these two classes may be tried by the
-suggested test.
-
-
- THE UNABLE.
-
-I. “The unable” include the sick, the old, the children and infirm,
-and--although on this matter the Local Government Board gave uncertain
-guidance--widows with children. The present system, starting from the
-principle laid down in 1834, aims at deterring people from application
-by a barbed-wire fence of regulations. The sick can only have a doctor
-after inquiry by the relieving officer. The old and infirm are herded in
-a general workhouse together with people whose contact often wounds
-their self-respect. The children are isolated from other children, and
-treated as a class apart. Widows with children can only get means of
-maintenance by applying at the relief table in company with the
-degraded, by enduring the close inquisition of the relieving officer,
-and then by attendance at the Board of Guardians, where, standing in the
-middle of the room, they have to face their gaze, answer their
-questions, and at the end be grateful for a pittance of relief.
-
-This system does not, in the first place, relieve the necessities of the
-poor. Many of the sick defer their application till their condition
-becomes serious, or they set themselves to beg for hospital letters.
-Many of the old and infirm, rather than submit to the iniquities of the
-workhouse, live a life of semi-starvation. Few of the widows who receive
-a few shillings a week for the maintenance of their families, are able
-unaided to look after their children and give them the necessary care
-and food.
-
-“A few Boards,” says the Minority Report, “restrict to the uttermost the
-grant of out relief to widows with children; many refuse it to the widow
-with only one child or with only two children, however young these may
-be; others grant only the quite inadequate sum of 1s. or 1s. 6d. a week
-per child, and nothing for the mother. Very few Guardians face the
-problem of how the widow’s children ... can under these circumstances be
-properly reared.... In at least 100,000 cases their children are growing
-up stunted, under-nourished, and to a large extent neglected, because
-the mother is so hard driven that she cannot properly attend to them.
-The irony of the situation appears in the fact that if the mother
-thereupon dies the children will probably be ‘boarded out’ with a
-payment of 4s. or 5s. per week each, or three or four times as much as
-the Guardians paid for them before, or else be taken into the Poor Law
-school or cottage homes at a cost of 12s. to 21s. per week each.”
-
-The vast sum of money--this £20,000,000 a year--which is spent misses
-to a large extent its object to give relief, and, further than this,
-causes widespread demoralization. The sick who have overcome their
-shrinking to face the relieving officer to ask for a medical officer,
-are found readily treading the same path to ask for other relief. The
-workhouses--one of which, lately built, has cost £126,612, or £286 a
-bed--“are,” we read, “largely responsible for the considerable increase
-of indoor pauperism,” and evidence is given “that life in a workhouse
-deteriorates mentally, morally, and physically the habitual inmates”.
-It must be so, indeed, when young girls are put “to sleep with women
-admitted by the master to be frequently of bad character”.
-
-Out relief has been the battlefield of rival schools of administrators,
-and the Commissioners find in the system “of trying to compensate for
-inadequacy of knowledge by inadequacy of relief” two obvious points:
-“First, that when the applicants are honest in their statements they
-must often suffer great privations; and, second, that when they are
-dishonest, relief must often be given quite unnecessarily”. Evidence,
-too, is given of instances where out relief is being applied to
-subsidize dirt, disease and immorality, justifying the conclusion that
-it is “a very potent influence in perpetuating pauperism and propagating
-disease”.
-
-When the Commissioners have admitted that much has been done by wise
-Boards of Guardians in providing infirmaries for the sick which are as
-good as hospitals, and in administering out relief with sympathy and
-discrimination, the conclusion must still remain that the present system
-does not relieve the necessities of the poor, while it tends to spread
-demoralization. It fails under the suggested test.
-
-The Commissioners’ proposed reforms must be tried by the same tests.
-Their proposals include (1) the constitution of a new authority,
-and (2) the principles on which that authority is to act. The
-principles--keeping in mind for the moment the class of “the
-unable”--recommended by the Majority and Minority are practically
-identical. In the words of the Majority:--
-
-1. The treatment of the poor who apply for public assistance should be
-adapted to the needs of the individual, and if constitutional should be
-governed by classification.
-
-2. The system of public assistance thus established should include
-processes of help which would be preventive, curative and restorative.
-
-3. Every effort should be made to foster the instincts of independence
-and self-maintenance amongst those assisted.
-
-The same principles appear when the Minority Report urges the (1)
-“paramount importance of subordinating mere relief to the specialized
-treatment of each separate class, with the object of preventing or
-curing its distress”.
-
-(2) “The expediency of ultimately associating this specialized treatment
-of each class with the standing machinery for enforcing both before and
-after the period of distress the fulfilment of personal and family
-obligations.”
-
-The differences between the Reports are manifest in that the Minority
-is more anxious to secure a co-ordination of public authorities, but
-both alike agree that relief must be thorough and regard primarily the
-necessities of the individual. The general workhouse is therefore to
-be broken up, and separate institutions set apart for children, the
-old, the sick, mothers, and feeble-minded. Out relief is to be given
-on uniform principles and under strict supervision, whether by skilled
-officials or by a registrar. (The majority make the interesting--if it
-be practicable--suggestion that there shall be proscribed districts
-in which no out relief shall be given, on account of their slum
-character.) The sick are to have the means of treatment brought within
-their reach, whether it be by the officer of the Health Committee or by
-means of provident dispensaries. The two Reports often differ as to the
-means by which the ends are to be reached, and the consideration of the
-means they propose would make matter for many articles. But their main
-difference is as to the constitution of the authority which will apply
-their principles to practice.
-
-They both agree in making the County Council the source of the authority
-and in taking the county as the area. The Majority would create, by a
-somewhat intricate system of co-optation and nomination, a “Public
-Assistance Authority,” with local “assistance committees,” to deal with
-all cases of need. The Minority would authorize the existing committees
-of the Council--the Education, the Health, the Asylums, and the Parks
-Committees--to deal with such cases of need as may meet them in their
-ordinary work. The Majority would create an _ad hoc_ authority, for the
-purpose of giving such relief; the Minority would leave relief to the
-direction of committees whose primary concern is education or health,
-the feeble-minded or the old. The Majority is, further, at great pains
-to establish a Voluntary Aid Council, which shall be representative of
-the charitable funds and charitable bodies of the area. This council is
-to have a recognized position, and to work in close co-operation with
-the Public Assistance authority. The Minority, though willing to use
-voluntary charity, suggests no plan for its control or organization.
-This omission in a scheme otherwise so complete is somewhat remarkable.
-The administration of the Poor Law may account for most of the mischief
-in the condition of the people, but the administration of charity is
-also to a large extent responsible. This extent of charity is unknown.
-In London alone it is said to amount to more than £7,000,000 a year, and
-much money is given of which no record is possible. Hitherto all
-attempts at organization have failed, and it is quite clear that no
-organization can be enforced. The Majority Report suggests a scheme by
-which charitable bodies and persons may be partly tempted and partly
-constrained to co-operate with official bodies. Mr. Nunn, in an
-interesting note, suggests a further development of a plan by which they
-might be given a more definite place in the organization of the future.
-The establishment of Public Welfare Societies in so many localities is a
-proof that charitable forces are drawing together, and gives hope that
-if a place is found for them in the established system they may become
-powerful for good and not for mischief.
-
-The recommendations, however, which we are now considering are not
-dependent on the establishment of a Voluntary Aid Council; they depend
-on the principles, as to which both Reports agree. Those principles
-satisfy the suggested test. If relief in every case be subordinate to
-treatment, if it be given with care and with full consideration for each
-individual, there must be good hope that the relief will help and not
-demoralize, stimulate and not antagonize the recipient. Everything,
-however, depends on securing an authority and administrators who are
-willing and able to apply the principles to action. The Majority aim, by
-the substitution of nomination and co-optation for direct election, to
-get an authority which will do with new wisdom the old duties of Boards
-of Guardians. The Minority evidently fear that, if any body of people is
-established as a relief agency, no change in the method of appointment
-will prevent the intrusion of the old abuses. The Majority believe that
-it is the persons on the present Boards which have caused the breakdown,
-and that if all Boards were as good as the best Boards there would have
-been no need for the Commission. The Minority, on the other hand,
-believe that it is the system which is at fault, and that a single
-authority created to deal with destitution only must fail when it is
-called on to deal with many-sided human nature in its various struggles
-and trials.
-
-The difference is one on which much may be said on both sides. It may be
-argued that a committee and officials whose special and daily duty it is
-to deal with cases of distress will become experts in such dealing; and
-it may be equally argued that experts tend to think more of the
-perfection of their system than of the peculiar needs of individuals, so
-that their action becomes rigid and incapable of growth. The Charity
-Organization Committees are such experts, and although they have done
-service not always recognized, they have become unpopular because they
-have seemed to be more careful as to their methods than as to the needs
-of the poor. It may be argued that the Education and Health and other
-committees have neither the time nor the experience to administer relief
-to the cases of distress with which their duties bring them into
-contact; and it may equally be argued that it is because they have in
-view education or health that their ways of relief will be elastic and
-human, and therefore guided to the best ends. It may be argued that, as
-the important matter is to check the use of public funds by necessitous
-persons, therefore it is the better plan to have in each county one
-authority skilled in dealing with such persons. It may, on the other
-hand, be argued that as the more important matter is to prevent any one
-becoming a necessitous person, therefore it is the better plan to let
-those authorities which have dealings with people as to education, or
-health, or any other object, deal with them also when they are
-threatened or overtaken by distress. Knowledge is more necessary than
-skill, and the people who need their neighbour’s guidance do not form a
-special class in the community. Society is better regarded as a body of
-co-operators than as a community divided into “an assistance body” and
-“the assisted”.
-
-The Majority Report in its recommendation is discounted by the fact that
-the Boards of Guardians--an _ad hoc_ body--have failed; and the Minority
-Report is discounted by the fact that there is a science of relief for
-which long training is necessary. Both alike seem conscious that success
-must really depend on the character of the administrators; the Majority
-therefore recommend many precautions as to the appointment of clerks and
-relieving officers; the Minority frankly leave the control of relief in
-the hands of a registrar, whose duty it will be to register every case
-of relief recommended by any committee, to assess the amount which ought
-to be repaid, and to proceed to the recovery of the amount. The
-registrar would therefore, by means of his own officials, make inquiries
-into the circumstances of every case, and would put his administration
-of out relief or of, as it is called, “home aliment” on a basis of
-uniform and judicial impartiality.
-
-The Minority Report has the advantage of scientific precision, but it is
-somewhat hard on the spirit of compromise so long characteristic of
-English procedure, and it takes small account of the disturbance which
-may be caused by the vagaries of weak human nature, and it leaves
-charity without any control. The Majority has the advantage of securing
-some continuity with present practices, but in the ingenious attempt to
-conciliate diverse opinions and to put new pieces on to the old garment,
-some rents seem to have been made which it will be hard to fill.
-
-The public will, during the next few months, be called upon to decide as
-to the authority to direct the relief of the poor. The decision cannot
-be easily made, and ought not to be attempted without much time and
-thought. One of the tests by which the two systems may be tried during
-the necessary delay is, I submit, whether (1) an _ad hoc_ committee with
-its subject expert officials or (2) committees appointed for special
-objects with an independent expert official, are the more likely to
-administer relief without spreading demoralization, and to stimulate
-energy without rousing animosity.
-
-
- THE ABLE.
-
-II. The failure of the present system with the able, the vagrant, the
-loafer, and the unemployed, who are physically and mentally strong, is
-the most marked; and reform is an immediate necessity. The Government
-can hardly go through another Session without doing something to prevent
-the growth of pauperism among comparatively young men, to check the
-habit of vagrancy which threatens to become violent, and to meet the
-demands of the honest unemployed.
-
-The present system deals with the able-bodied by means of the
-workhouse--the labour yard, the casual ward, the test workhouse--and
-also by means of out relief and the Unemployed Workmen’s Act. The
-Commission--Majority and Minority--condemn each of these means.
-
-_The workhouse_, we are told, creates the loafer. “The moment this
-class of man”--i.e., the easy-going, healthy fellow who feels no call
-to work--“becomes an inmate so surely does he deteriorate into a worse
-character still”; and we read also that “the features in the present
-workhouse system make it not only repellent (as is perhaps necessary),
-but also, as is unnecessary, degrading. Of all the spectacles of human
-demoralization now existing in these islands, there can scarcely be
-anything worse than the scene presented by the men’s day ward of a
-large urban workhouse during the long hours of leisure on week-days
-or the whole of Sundays. Through the clouds of tobacco-smoke that
-fill the long low room, the visitor gradually becomes aware of the
-presence of one or two hundred wholly unoccupied males, of every
-age between fifteen and ninety--strong and vicious men, men in all
-stages of recovery from debauch, weedy youths of weak intellect, old
-men dirty and disreputable ... worthy old men, men subject to fits,
-occasional monstrosities or dwarfs, the feeble-minded of every kind,
-the respectable labourer prematurely invalided, the hardened, sodden
-loafer, and the temporarily unemployed man who has found no better
-refuge. In such places there are congregated this winter certainly more
-than 10,000 healthy, able-bodied men.”
-
-_The labour yard_, we learn, tends to become the habitual resort of the
-incapables, and “a stay there will demoralize even the best workmen”.
-“In short,” says the Minority Report, “whether as regards those whom it
-includes or those whom it excludes for relief, the labour yard is a
-hopeless failure, and positively encourages the worst kind of
-under-employment.” The expense of this failure is so great that in one
-yard the stone broken cost the Guardians £7 a ton.
-
-_Casual wards_ have long been known as the nurseries of a certain class
-of vagrant--men and women who become familiar with their methods and
-settle down to their use. They fail as resting-places for honest seekers
-after work as they travel from town to town, and they fail also--even
-when made harsher than prisons--to stimulate energy. Poor Law reformers,
-like Mr. Vallance, have through many years called for their abolition.
-
-_Test workhouses_ represent the supreme effort of the ingenuity of Poor
-Law officials, and are still recommended to Guardians. In these
-establishments everything which could possibly attract is excluded. The
-house is organized after the fashion of a prison, although the officials
-have neither the training nor the knowledge considered to be necessary
-for men who hold their fellow-men in restraint; hard and uncongenial
-work is enforced; the diet is of the plainest, and no association during
-leisure hours is permitted. The test is so severe that the house is apt
-to remain empty till the Guardians, overborne by the expense, admit
-inmates too weak to bear the strain, who therefore break down the
-system. The inspectors claim credit for success, because applications
-are prevented, but the Minority Report deals with this claim in an
-admirably written examination of the whole position. It is no success,
-for on account of the severity more men are driven on to the streets to
-provoke the charity of the unthinking; and it is a failure if such
-treatment adds to the sum of envy, hatred and malice.
-
-The Commissioners of 1834 aimed at abolishing _out-door relief_ for the
-able-bodied, and to this end the central authority and its inspectorate
-has worked, but exceptions have been allowed “on account of sudden or
-urgent necessity,” and now it is reported that 10,000 different men,
-mostly between the ages of twenty-five and fifty-five, receive such
-relief in the course of the year, while at least 10,000 or 20,000 more
-able-bodied men are allowed out relief by the special authority of the
-Local Government Board. These numbers tend to increase, and will go on
-increasing, because nothing is done to give them “such physical or
-mental restorative treatment as will fit them for employment”.
-
-The means, therefore, by which the Poor Law has attempted to deal with
-the able-bodied may be said to have disastrously failed. Distress has
-grown, and the people have been demoralized. Ill-will threatens to
-become violent. The nation, in a hurry to do something, passed the
-Unemployed Act of 1905, and the Commissioners deal faithfully with the
-work of the Distress Committees created under that Act. There is much in
-the work which is suggestive, and many recommendations, such as those
-which affect the use of labour and farm colonies, are founded on their
-experience. But the Commissioners are unanimous in the conclusion that
-relief works are economically useless. “Either,” they say, “ordinary
-work is undertaken, in which case it is merely forestalled ... or else
-it is sham work, which we believe to be even more demoralizing than
-direct relief.” “Municipal relief works” (to which the work given by
-district councils has approximated) “have not assisted, but rather
-prejudiced, the better class of workman ... they have encouraged the
-casual labourers by giving them a further supply of the casual work
-which is so dear to their hearts and so demoralizing to their character.
-They have encouraged and not helped the incapables; they have
-discouraged and not helped the capables.”
-
-The present system of dealing with the able-bodied, whether by the means
-adopted by the Poor Law or by those introduced under the Unemployed Act,
-fails under our test. It does not relieve those who need relief, it
-spreads wide demoralization, and it stirs ill-will.
-
-The Commissioners recognize the failure, and recommend a new system. The
-two Reports agree in their main recommendations. There is need for a
-check to be placed on the employment of boys “in uneducative and
-blind-alley occupations,” and for the better education of children, both
-in elementary and continuation schools. There should be a national
-system of labour exchanges working automatically all over the country,
-so that workers permanently displaced might easily pass to new
-occupations, travelling expenses, if necessary, being paid or advanced
-out of the common purse, and so that the need of work might be tested by
-the offer of a situation. The Minority Report would enforce on certain
-employers the use of the register. Both Reports agree that the work
-given out by Government departments and by local authorities might be
-regularized, so that most public work would be done when there was least
-demand for labour by private employers. If at any time afforestation was
-undertaken, this also might be put on the market as the labour barometer
-showed labour to be in excess of the demand. Both agree also that there
-should be some scheme of unemployment insurance, and that with this
-object subsidies might be given to the unemployment funds of trade
-unions.
-
-These recommendations, if adopted, might be expected to do much to
-prevent many of the evils of casual labour and unemployment from falling
-on future generations; but to meet existing needs the Commissioners
-recommend emigration and industrial training in institutions, some close
-to the homes of the workers, some in the country, some farm colonies
-from which workers would be free to come and go, some detention colonies
-in which they would be detained for more or less long periods.
-
-There would thus be established, says the Majority Report, in every
-county four organizations with the common object of maintaining or
-restoring the workmen’s independence: (_a_) An organization for
-insurance against unemployment, (_b_) a labour exchange, (_c_) a
-voluntary aid committee, (_d_) an authority which will deal with
-individuals, according to their needs, by emigration, by migration, or
-by means of day training institutions, farm colonies and detention
-colonies. The Minority would secure the same provision by means of one
-organization in each county.
-
-The workman who, being out of work or unfit for any work on the labour
-register, or for whom no work is possible, would be referred to the
-official who, by inquiry, would decide whether he should be trained,
-mentally or physically, in some near institution, or whether he should
-be sent to some special and more distant labour colony, his family
-receiving sufficient money for their daily support. If, having had a
-fair opportunity, he refused to work, or if he resumed the practice of
-mendicity or vagrancy, he would, by a magistrate’s order, be committed
-to a detention colony, where, again, he would be given the opportunity
-during three or four years of gaining the power of self-support.
-
-This in a few words represents the dealing practically recommended by
-both Reports. It meets the test which the present system fails to meet.
-The relief is in every case provided which need demands, and, as it is
-accompanied by training, demoralization is prevented. At the same time,
-as no relief is given without training, every one is stimulated, while
-no one can have a sense of injustice. Even those committed to detention
-colonies are so committed that they may have a chance of restoration.
-The scheme, it will be observed, deals only with those mentally and
-physically fit to earn their own living. Those not so fit must be
-classed among the “unable,” and receive treatment which may be compared
-with that recommended for the feeble-minded.
-
-The two Reports thus agree in their main recommendations, though there
-are important differences which demand subsequent consideration. The
-principal difference is that, whereas the Majority Report would make the
-authority controlling the use of training institutions subject to the
-county council, the Minority would make it subject only to a central
-department, such as the Board of Trade or a Labour Minister, who would
-appoint an official in every county who would superintend the labour
-registry, the organization for insurance against unemployment, and also
-the use of the training institutions.
-
-The weight of argument would seem to lie with the Minority’s
-recommendation. One authority--with whom might easily be associated an
-advisory board from the employers and workmen of the district, and a
-council representing local charities--having the control of the labour
-registry, would be best fitted to deal with individuals wanting work;
-and a national authority, having knowledge of training institutions all
-over the country, would have the best opportunity for putting a man in
-the institution most likely to meet his needs.
-
-It might, indeed, be said in conclusion of the whole matter that the
-recommendations of the Majority Report as to the able-bodied might be
-adopted, with the substitution of a national for a local authority in
-the control of the use and management of the training institutions; or
-that those of the Minority might be adopted, with certain modifications
-and additions suggested in the Majority Report.
-
-
- THE FIRST THING TO BE DONE.
-
-When there is such a body of agreement, when that body of agreement
-applies to the treatment of the able-bodied whose needs are most
-pressing, and when the recommendations can be adopted with very little
-interference with existing machinery, the obvious course seems to be the
-immediate dealing with the unemployed.
-
-There is always a danger lest public interest should be diverted to
-discuss principles, and it may be that the advocates of a “new Poor Law”
-and those advocating “no Poor Law” may fill the air with their cries
-while nothing is done for the poor, just as the advocates of different
-principles of religious education have prevented knowledge reaching the
-children. The first thing to do before this discussion begins, and
-before the Guardians and their friends, obtrusively or subtly, make
-their protest felt, is, I submit, to take the action which affects the
-able-bodied. There is no doubt that there should be some form of more
-continuous education enforced on boys and girls up to the age of
-eighteen. There is no doubt that there should be labour registries, some
-form of unemployment insurance, and some regularization of industry,
-which must be undertaken by a national authority. It would not be
-unreasonable to ask that the same national authority should organize
-training institutions, and through its own local official select
-individuals for training. The Guardians, inasmuch as they would be
-relieved of the care of casual wards and of provision in their
-workhouses for the physically and mentally strong, might fairly be
-called on to provide the necessary payment to keep the families during
-the period when the wage-earners were in training. This treatment of the
-able-bodied in a thorough way is suggested by the Report, and offers a
-compact scheme of reform, which may be carried through as a whole
-without dislocating existing machinery.
-
-If this be successfully done, then another step might later be taken in
-dealing with the children or with the sick; and, last of all, when the
-public mind has become familiar with the respective needs of different
-classes, it might be decided whether, as the Majority recommend, there
-should be a special relieving body, or whether, as the Minority
-recommend, relief should be undertaken by other bodies in the course of
-their own particular work.
-
-The public, or at any rate the political, mind is always most interested
-in machinery, and when the cry of “rights” is raised passion is likewise
-roused. If proposals are now made to abolish Guardians the interest
-excited will distract attention, and many forces will be moved for their
-protection.
-
-The chief thing at present is, it seems to me, to draw the public mind
-to consider the condition of the people as it is laid bare in this
-Report, to make them feel ashamed that the Poor Law has allowed, and
-even encouraged, the condition, and to be persistent in insisting on
-reform. The way to reform is never the easy or short way; it always
-demands sacrifice, and the public will not make the hard sacrifice of
-thought till they feel the sufferings and wrongs of the people. The
-public will, I believe, be made both to feel and to think if the first
-thing proposed is a complete scheme for dealing with the able-bodied on
-lines recommended by both Reports.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- WIDOWS WITH CHILDREN UNDER THE POOR LAW.[1]
-
- BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT.
-
- September, 1910.
-
- [1] A Paper read at the Church Congress, Cambridge.
-
-
-The last time that I addressed this Congress of “discreet and learned
-persons” was three years ago at Yarmouth, when I read a paper on “The
-Ethics of the Poor Law”. It was not a specially good nor interesting
-paper, but it brought me both letters and interviews, with the result
-that now the lives of many people, both children and old folk, are
-better and happier. God grant that this evening’s discussion may be as
-fruitful.
-
-First let us face the magnitude of the subject for discussion--“Widows
-with Children,” not out-of-works, not illegitimate, not deserted wives,
-all these classes are excluded, and our subject narrowed down to married
-women, with their legitimate offspring, who have lost the family’s
-bread-winner. Of these, to quote the Poor Law Commissioners’ Report,[2]
-in January, 1907, there were 34,749 widows and 96,342 children in
-receipt of relief. The large majority of these persons were receiving
-assistance in their own homes, there being only 1240 widows and 2998
-children in receipt of indoor relief in the workhouses.
-
- [2] Majority Report, pp. 35, 36.
-
-Let us, then, follow some of these 96,342 children into their homes, and
-see what the nation is paying for:--
-
-The first case is quoted from the Majority Report:[3]--
-
- (4) “Widow with seven children, none working. Received 10s. per
- week relief. Rent £5 10s. Said to be paid by friends. I visited the
- home, and found it in a very dirty, I might say filthy, condition.
- The woman is a sloven. She went about the house in a dazed manner.
- I tried to get particulars of the way she spent her money, but
- found it impossible. One of the children was at home from school
- ill, but had not been seen by a doctor. It is obvious ... that a
- family of eight persons could not live on 10s. per week.”
-
- (5) “Mrs. W., a widow with five children, receives 10s. per week.
- She is a notorious drunkard, and has lately been turned out of
- a house in a street where drunkards abound, because her drunken
- habits disturbed the whole street. When we called she refused to
- open the door; the relieving officer concluded she was drunk.”
-
- [3] Majority Report, p. 150.
-
-That the Local Government Board inspectors are and have been fully aware
-that such conditions exist is shown again and again by their own words.
-
-Mr. Baldwyn Fleming said:[4]--
-
- “There were many cases receiving outdoor relief where the
- circumstances ... were very undesirable.... The relieving officers
- were well acquainted with the cases.”
-
- [4] _Ibid._, p. 151.
-
-Mr. Wethered reported:--
-
- “Some were clean and tidy, but in very many instances the rooms were
- dirty, ill kept, and sometimes verminous”.
-
-Mr. Bagenal’s experience speaks of the out-relief class as “Bankrupt in
-pocket and character,” and describes their homes in these words:--
-
- “Cleanliness and ventilation are not considered of any account.
- The furniture is always of the most dilapidated kind. The beds
- generally consist of dirty palliasses or mattresses with very
- scanty covering. The atmosphere is offensive, even fetid, and the
- clothing of the individuals--old and young--is ragged and filthy.
- The children are neglected, and furnish the complaints of the
- National Society for Prevention of Cruelty to Children.”
-
-Mr. Williams said:--
-
- “I found far too much intemperance, and sometimes even drunkenness, in
- cases in which out-relief was being granted.... Closely allied to it
- were filth, both of persons and surroundings, and sadder even was the
- neglect and resultant cruelty to the children, who were ill-fed and
- ill-clad.”
-
-“Exceptional cases!” I hear you say; “why dwell on them?” So I will read
-you the words of the Majority Report, ever ready to take the lenient
-view of the work of the Guardians. Such cases, it reports, “occur with
-sufficient frequency to be a very potent influence in perpetuating
-pauperism and propagating disease”.
-
-Perhaps, however, figures will convey more startlingly the facts. In
-order to classify the investigators divided the mothers into four
-classes[5]--I., good; II., mediocre; III., very unsatisfactory, i.e.,
-slovenly and slipshod; IV., bad, i.e., drunkards, immoral, wilfully
-neglecting their children.
-
- [5] Minority Report, p. 753.
-
-The percentages in the rural districts were 19 per cent in the third
-class, 6 per cent in the fourth. “In the towns conditions were, as a
-rule, much worse.” In one urban union 18 per cent came under Class IV.
-In another great union the appalling percentage rose to 22 per cent. To
-sum up, the number of children on out relief on 1 January, 1908, in
-“very unsatisfactory” homes in England and Wales, was more than 30,000;
-while 20,000 were being paid for in homes “wholly unfit for children”.
-“We can add nothing,” say the Commissioners, “to the force of these
-terrible figures.”
-
-Neither are the evils only moral ones. “Investigation,” write the
-authors of the Minority Report, “as to the physical condition of these
-outdoor relief children in London, Liverpool, and elsewhere brings to
-light innumerable cases of untreated sores and eczema, untreated
-erysipelas and swollen glands, untreated ringworm, heart disease, and
-phthisis,” a seed crop the products of which are the unemployed and
-unemployable.
-
-But now I would propose that we leave these haunts of evil and go to see
-the home of a respectable widow who is endeavouring to bring up her
-children to be God-fearing and industrious.
-
- “Mother a seamstress, earning about 9s. a week, and the Board of
- Guardians granting another 6s. Four children (eleven, nine, six,
- and two) made happy by the motherly love of a steady, methodical
- and careful woman, who, however, cannot support them except by
- working unceasingly, as well as by getting charitable help towards
- their clothes from the Church, country holidays from the Children’s
- Country Holiday Fund, official help in dinners from the Educational
- Authority, and medical help from the health visitor or nurse
- engaged by the Town Council.”
-
-What a confusion of sources, what want of inquiry, what danger of
-overlapping; five organizations to aid the same family, three of them
-State supplied, two supported by religious or philanthropic persons. On
-this confusion, which is not only extravagant to the ratepayers, but
-corrupting to the character of the recipients, the Minority Report lays
-great stress.
-
-Time forbids me to give more examples, but with this vision of wholesome
-family affection let us read with attention the following words from the
-Minority Report:--[6]
-
- “In the vast majority of cases the amount allowed by the Guardians is
- not adequate”. “The children are under-nourished, many of them poorly
- dressed, and many barefooted.... The decent mother’s one desire is
- to keep herself and her children out of the workhouse. She will, if
- allowed, try to do this on an impossibly inadequate sum, until both
- she and her children become mentally and physically deteriorated.”...
- “It must be remembered,” adds a medical expert, “that semi-starvation
- is not a painful process, and its victims do not recognize what is
- happening.”
-
- [6] Minority Report, p. 747.
-
-Do not all of us who know our parishes know that woman? Her poverty, her
-strenuousness, her patience, her fatigue, her hopefulness, her periods
-of hopelessness, and above, below, around all her Mother-love and her
-faith in God--and what is the result of her efforts, her heroism?
-Children strong, healthy, skilled, able to support her in her old age
-and themselves rear a family worthy of such noble moral ancestry? No!
-her reward will be to see her children weakly men and undergrown girls,
-all alike in having no stamina, among the first to be pushed out of the
-labour market. All the love, all the industry, all the heroism ever
-showered by devoted mothers cannot take the place of milk and bread and
-air and warmth.
-
-But, it may be asked, “Why does this careful mother so dread the
-workhouse; there, at least, although she herself would be deprived of
-her freedom, she would know that her children were well cared for!” To
-reply to this question it will be necessary once more to turn to the
-ponderous Blue Book and search the 1238 pages for descriptions of what
-goes on behind the great walls of those pauper palaces.
-
-It is true that the widow has not read the reports nor even heard of the
-Poor Law Commission and its colossal labours, worthy of the gratitude
-and reverence of all who love their country. But these things filter out
-though not couched in official language. “I can’t a-bear of them to go,
-ma’am,” says some work-beaten mother. “There’s Mrs. Jones, she lost her
-baby when they had to go in, as her husband was took with galloping
-consumption, and her Billy got bad eyes and Susie seemed to lose all her
-gaiety like.” “No! I’d rather go hungry than see them that way and not
-be able to kiss ’em when they cries.” But is it true? It is
-understandable that individual homes which the Guardians only subsidize
-may not always be all that they could wish, but when the children are
-entirely under their care surely what this poor woman alleges cannot be
-true. Alas! it is far less than the truth. Let us read again and see how
-the children, not being babies, fare when they are kept in the
-workhouses.
-
-The following are extracts:[7]--
-
- “The children are not kept separate from the adult inmates. The
- children’s wards left on our minds a marked impression of confusion
- and defective administration.... The eyes of some of the children
- seemed suspiciously ‘weak’ and in two or three cases to be
- suffering from some serious inflammation.”
-
- “The chief defect here, as in so many workhouses, is in the
- accommodation for the children. The girls use the sewing-room as
- a day-room. The older children go to school one and a half miles
- distant, taking bread and butter or jam with them, and dining on
- their return when the other inmates have their tea. The dining-hall
- is used by all inmates at the same time.... Altogether, there is
- great need for reform in the treatment of the children.”
-
- [7] Majority Report, pp. 186, 187.
-
-It is true that children of school age maintained in the workhouses
-attend the public elementary schools, save for 651 who are still
-educated within workhouse walls, but the school hours account only for
-about one-third of the children’s waking existence, and during the other
-two-thirds, which include the long winter evenings, Saturdays and
-Sundays, and all school holidays, the workhouse is still their only
-home.
-
- “We cannot,” says the Minority Report,[8] “too emphatically express
- our disagreement with those who accept this [the attendance of
- children reared in workhouses at public elementary schools] as any
- excuse for retaining children in the workhouse at all.... We paid
- special attention to this point of the provision for children on
- our visits to workhouses, large and small, in town and country, in
- England, Wales, Scotland and Ireland. We saw hardly any workhouse
- or poorhouse in which the accommodation for children was at all
- satisfactory. We unhesitatingly agree with the Inspector of the
- Local Government Board, who gave it to us as his opinion that ‘no
- serious argument in defence of the workhouse system is possible.
- The person who would urge that the atmosphere and associations of
- a workhouse are a fit up-bringing for a child merely proves his
- incapacity to express an intelligent opinion upon the matter.’”
-
- [8] Minority Report, pp. 802, 803.
-
- “We are strongly of opinion,” says the Majority Report,[9] “that
- effective steps should be taken to secure that the maintenance of
- children in the workhouse be no longer recognized as a legitimate
- way of dealing with them.”
-
- [9] Majority Report, p. 187.
-
-This evil is of long standing; for a dozen years the pressing necessity
-for the removal from such surroundings of these State-dependent children
-has been represented to successive Presidents of the Local Government
-Board, and to Boards of Guardians, and the saddest fact of all is that,
-at the date of the latest Local Government Board Return, 24,175 children
-(more than one-third of the total number who are entirely maintained out
-of the rates) are still being reared in this unsuitable environment,
-actually a larger number than in any preceding year since 1899.
-
-To all those gentlemen who have read the Royal Commissioners’ Report I
-must apologize for quoting it so largely. Those who have not read it
-will recognize something of the extreme interest of its contents and
-take it for their winter’s reading.
-
-But to return again to the Widows and Children on out relief. The
-Majority Report says:--
-
- “The Guardians give relief without knowing whether the recipients
- can manage on it; they go on giving it without knowing how they are
- managing on it.” “In short, there is a widespread system of trying
- to compensate for inadequacy of knowledge by inadequacy of relief.”
-
-This is a severe condemnation both of the Guardians and the Local
-Government Board, whose inspectors we know had been long aware of the
-facts. Moved by the outcry caused by the publication of these
-revelations, a circular on the “Administration of Outdoor Relief” was
-issued by the Central Authority last March to the Boards of Guardians,
-calling on them for greater discrimination in the selection of cases and
-the adoption of uniform principles.
-
-That these demands were not unnecessary is shown by the following
-instances of unequal treatment given in the Reports:--
-
- “In one case a widow with four dependent children, and one boy
- earning 15s. a week, with a total income to the family of 25s.,
- received 7s. from the Guardians, bringing their total up to 32s. a
- week for six persons. One Board gives 6d. and 5 lb. of flour per
- week for each child; another family received 5s. a week, bringing
- their total to 51s. 6d. per week; another 6s. a week for the mother
- and three children (all little tots) with ‘no other known income’.”
-
-The action of Boards on this circular has been varied. Some have
-declared themselves “satisfied with their proceedings,” and that “no
-alteration is required”. Others have set to work to settle a scale of
-payments for certain defined cases; but though every one must rejoice
-that a circular (though a belated one) has been issued from the Local
-Government Board, and that the Guardians are moving, yet the proposals
-do not seem to me to meet the case. The world cannot be divided into
-good or bad, white or black--infinite are the shades of grey. More, much
-more, than adequacy or uniformity of payment is required. Many classes
-of help are needed. I would suggest as possible solutions of this
-difficult problem (and my long experience of thirty-three years’ life in
-Whitechapel does not allow me to minimize the difficulty) the following
-plans:--
-
-I.--The children could be boarded out with their own mothers. We have to
-travel back to Egypt to see how well it succeeded when tried on Moses,
-and it succeeded because it obtains for the child the one essential
-basis of all education--i.e. Love. The plan is based on quite a simple
-principle.
-
-Women have to be engaged by the State to rear children--it is done in
-workhouses, barrack schools, scattered homes, village communities, and
-in boarding-out. Why should not some of the women so engaged be the
-children’s own mothers? The mother so employed must be of good
-character, and have thrifty, home-making virtues, the same sort of
-qualities, in short, as are sought for in the foster parents of
-boarded-out children. She would be moved into the country, or into a
-healthy suburb, and, if her own family is not large enough adequately to
-employ her, she could have one or two more children or babies sent to
-her. She would be under close inspection, and the Boarding-out Committee
-would make her feel that, though the children were her own, yet it was
-the duty of the State to see that she did her duty to them on a high
-plane.
-
-For some families this seems to me the best of all possible solutions,
-but I have to recognize that it is not practicable except for
-self-respecting worthy women.
-
-II.--To suit those affectionate mothers who are too untutored to do
-without set tasks of employment and daily supervision, there might be
-some sort of modification of the plan. Some twenty of these women could
-be placed in small cottages, or tenements in a quadrangle, and employed
-for part of the day at one of the giant official institutions for the
-infirm or imbecile which are scattered all over the country. The
-children could be kept at school for dinner, and care taken that the
-women’s hours of labour were short enough to enable them to home-make
-morning and evening when the children return from school.
-
-III.--For other women, who, as the Report says, are “too ignorant to
-be effective mothers,” and yet whose only thought is their children,
-teaching colonies might be established, the mothers putting themselves
-into training, with the hope of being ultimately counted as worthy to
-rear their own children at the expense of the State--a goal to strive
-for when they have mastered the skilled trade of “mothering”.
-
-IV.--For women who are already employed at suitable work, special
-arrangements could be made as the condition of their receiving
-out-relief, either concerning their hours of labour or to secure the
-household assistance necessary to maintain their children as children of
-every class ought to be kept. I can imagine certain employers, such as
-the ever public-spirited Mr. Cadbury, being willing to arrange shifts of
-labour to suit these needs.
-
-V.--From other mothers the children should be removed altogether, and
-for these children I should counsel emigration, for all workers can
-cite cases of the ruin of young people, when they reach wage-earning
-ages, by bad parents claiming their rights over them.
-
-To turn these suggestions into facts would take much work, thought,
-patience, prayer. “Each case,” as the Majority report says, “seems to
-call for special and individual attention.” But is it not worth while?
-Can we as Christians allow the present condition of things to go on?
-
-Gentlemen, there are 178,520 children in your parishes being more or
-less supported by the State. Do the clergy know them? What have the
-clergy done about them? Have many joined the Board of Guardians? Have
-they remonstrated at the inadequacy of the relief given? Have they made
-themselves even acquainted with the facts of Poor Law administration in
-their unions? The other day, I, by chance, met a clergyman--a nice man,
-vicar of a big church in a large watering-place. His conversation showed
-he was alert and up-to-date on all controversial matters, even to the
-place of a comma in the Lord’s Prayer, but to my questions as to how the
-Poor Law children were dealt with in his parish he had to reply, and he
-did so unashamed, “I don’t know”. I remember as a child thinking that it
-was a cruel injustice to punish the man for breaking the Sabbath, when
-he did not know that there was a law to command him to keep it, and now,
-looking back down the vista of many years’ experience, I understand that
-Moses but expressed in a detail the law of God which affects the whole
-of social life. The man was punished because he did not know. At least
-he bore the penalty of his own ignorance, but in this case it is the
-children who are punished because of our ignorance.
-
-No! the clergy have not known hitherto; but now they can know. The facts
-are before them in that vast and fascinating storehouse of knowledge
-bound in blue, and, having learnt, they can speak; and speaking, what
-will they say?
-
-Will they blame the Guardians? Will they scold the Local Government
-Board? Will they shrug their shoulders and talk about “the difficulties
-of social problems in a complex civilization,” or will each say to
-himself, “Thou art the man” whose fault this is, and then speak and work
-to get things altered?
-
-Gentlemen, you tell us often that children, child-bearing,
-child-teaching, child-rearing, child-loving is the vocation of my sex.
-I agree with you. I want no better calling myself than home-making and
-child protection, and therefore you will not take it amiss that I, a
-woman, speak boldly for the children’s sake. You have joined in the
-neglect of these State-dependent children hitherto. You have allowed
-them by your ignorance to be injured. Are you now going to injure them
-further by sitting helplessly down before these terrible revelations?
-The whole world knows how England treats State-supported children, its
-national assets, the representatives of those the Master took up in
-His arms--the whole world waits to see what England will do. It is for
-you to lead. Are you going to accept the facts as irremediable, or by
-getting them altered thus pay your vows to the Lord?
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE PRESS AND CHARITABLE FUNDS.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- July, 1906.
-
- [1] From “The Independent Review”. By permission of Messrs. Fisher
-Unwin & Co.
-
-
-The Press had been the Church’s ablest ally in its effort to fulfil the
-apostolic precept, and teach the nation to remember the poor. The social
-instinct may be native to humanity, but it requires an impulse and a
-direction. The Press has again and again stirred such an impulse and
-given such direction. Charity was never more abundant, and methods of
-relief were never more considered.
-
-The Press has been the ally of the Church in creating the better world
-of the present. But the Press, caught in these later years (as so many
-persons and bodies have been caught) by the lust of doing and the praise
-thereof, has aspired to be an administrator of relief. It has not been
-content with the rôle of a prophet or of a teacher, it has taken a place
-alongside of Ladies Bountiful, Relief Committees, and Boards of
-Guardians. It has invaded another province, and rival newspapers have
-had their own funds, their own agents, and their own systems of relief.
-
-The result is probably an increase in the volume of money given by the
-readers of the papers. A large fund may, however, be a fallacious test
-of sympathy. The money subscribed under the pressure of appeal may have
-been diverted from other objects; and gifts are sometimes made, not for
-the relief of the poor so much as for the relief of the givers. People
-have been known to give, that they may enjoy themselves more
-comfortably; and they may relieve their feelings by a gift, so as to be
-free to spend a family’s weekly income on their own dinner. A large fund
-is not, therefore, a sufficient evidence of increased sympathy.
-
-But let it be granted that the Press action has brought more money to
-the service of the poor. The question is: Has it been for good?
-
-
- I.
-
-The first characteristic of a Press fund is that, when a newspaper
-undertakes the administration of relief, it has to create its own
-machinery. It may begin by sending down to the distressed district a
-clever young man with a cab-load of tickets. Nothing seems easier than
-to give to those who ask, and so money is poured into the hands of
-applicants, or sent to the clergy for distribution. A rough experience
-soon enforces the necessity of inquiry and organization. In West Ham, in
-the winter of 1904-5, when the Borough Council was spending £28,000 on
-relief, when the Guardians had 20,000 persons on their out-relief lists
-and 1300 men in the stone yard, the Press funds were distributed without
-any inquiry or any attempt at co-operation. I gather a few notes from
-reports made at the time by a resident in the district.
-
- “Mr. C---- received a large sum from the _D. T._ He relieved 400
- regularly; and there was no interchange of names.”
-
- “I found one street in which nearly every one had relief.”
-
- “I was asked to visit a starving case on Sunday; and found a good
- dinner stowed away under the table.”
-
- “One man in receipt of 47s. a week in wages received twelve tickets
- from the _D. N._ on Christmas Eve, and did not turn up to his work for
- four days, though extra pay was offered for Boxing Day.”
-
- “A man,” says a relieving officer, “came to me on Friday and had
- 3s. He went to the Town Hall and got 4s. His daughter got 3s. from
- the same source; his wife 5s. from a Councillor, and late the same
- night a goose.”
-
-Another relieving officer reported:--
-
- “Outside my office a 4-lb. loaf could be bought for 1d., and a 2s.
- relief ticket for two pots of beer.”
-
- “The public-houses did far better when the relief funds were at
- work.”
-
- “My impression is, that more than 500 people who were in receipt of
- out relief in my district received relief from the funds; but we
- were never consulted.”
-
- “The relieving officers had to be under police protection for four
- months.”
-
-Such an experience naturally forced the newspapers to consider their
-ways. The system of doles was abandoned, and local organizations were
-established to give relief in some approved method. Let it be granted,
-without prejudice, that the administration was made so effective as to
-justify a report of good work to the subscribers to the fund. Let it be
-granted that a large number of the unemployed were given work, that
-families were emigrated, and that the hands of existing agencies were
-strengthened. There are still two criticisms which may be directed
-against the Press position as an administrator of relief. The first is,
-that the experience by which it learns wisdom is disastrous to the
-people. The waste of money is itself serious, but that is a small matter
-alongside of the bitter feeling, the suspicion, the loss of heart, the
-loss of self-respect, the lying, which are encouraged when gifts are
-obtained by clamour and deceit. Gifts may be poisons as well as food,
-and gifts badly given make an epidemic of moral disease.
-
-The second criticism is, that the organization, when it is created,
-disturbs, displaces, and confuses other organizations, while it is not
-itself permanent. The Press action leaves, it may be said, a trail of
-demoralization, and does not remain sufficiently long in existence to
-clear up its own abuses.
-
-
- II.
-
-Another characteristic of a Press fund is, that a newspaper raises its
-money by word pictures of family poverty. Its interviewers break in on
-the sacredness of home. They come to the poor man’s house without the
-sympathy of long experience, without any friendly introduction, with an
-eye only to the “copy” which may best provoke the gifts of their
-readers. They write about the secrets of sorrow and suffering. They make
-public the bitterness of heart which is precious to the soul, and thus
-intermeddle with the grief which no stranger can understand. Their tales
-lower the standard of human dignity; they make the poor who read the
-tales proud of conditions of which they should be ashamed, and they make
-the rich think of the distress rather than of the self-respect of their
-neighbours.
-
-The effects of the Press method of raising money by uncovering the
-secrets of private sorrow may be summed up under three heads.
-
-(_a_) It increases poverty. Poverty comes to be regarded as a sort of
-domestic asset. The family which can make the greatest show of suffering
-has the greatest chance of relief, and examples are found of people who
-have made themselves poor, or appear poor, for the sake of the fund.
-
-(_b_) It degrades the poor. A subtle effect of this advertisement of
-private suffering is, that people so advertised lose their self-respect.
-They, as it were, like to expose themselves, and make a show of what
-ought to be hidden; they glory in their shame, and accept at others’
-hands what they themselves ought to earn. They beg, and are not ashamed;
-they are idle, and are not self-disgraced. They are content to be
-pitied.
-
-(_c_) It hardens the common conscience. A far-reaching effect of these
-tales of suffering heaped on suffering is, that the public demands more
-and more sensation to move it to benevolence. The natural human instinct
-which makes a man care for a man is weakened; and he who yesterday
-shrank from the thought of a sorrowing neighbour, is to-day hardly moved
-by a tale of starvation, anguish, and death.
-
-Feeling, we are taught, which is acted on and not actively used, becomes
-dulled; and the Press tales which work on the feeling of their readers
-at last dry up the fountain of real charity. The public in a way finds
-its interest, if not its enjoyment, in the news of others’ suffering.
-
-
- III.
-
-A third characteristic of a Press fund is, the daily bold advertisement
-of the amount received. Rival funds boast themselves one against
-another; and rivalry is successful in drawing in thousands and tens of
-thousands of pounds. The magnitude of these sums is, however, always
-misleading; and people for whom the money is subscribed think there is
-no end to the resources for their relief. The demand is increased;
-people pour in from the country to share the benefit; workmen lay down
-their tools to put in their claims; energy is relaxed; greed is
-encouraged; and, when it is found that the relief obtained is small,
-there are suspicion and discontent. The failure of the funds which
-depend on advertisement suggests the wisdom of the Divine direction,
-that charity should be in secret.
-
-Such are some of the criticisms which I would offer on the Press funds.
-I grant that they apply to all “funds”; and most of us who have tried to
-“remember the poor” have seen our work broken by the intrusion of some
-outside and benevolent agency. The truth is, that the only gift which
-deserves the credit of charity is the personal gift--what a man gives at
-his own cost, desiring nothing in return, neither thanks nor credit.
-What a man gives, directed by loving sympathy with a neighbour he knows
-and respects, this is the charity which is blessed; and its very
-mistakes are steps to better things. A “fund” cannot easily have these
-qualities of charity. Its agents do not give at their own cost; its
-gifts cannot be in secret; it cannot walk along the path of friendship;
-it is bound to investigate. When, therefore, any “fund” assumes the ways
-of charity, when it claims irresponsibility, when it expects gratitude,
-when it is unequal and irregular in its action, it justifies the strange
-cry we have lately heard: “Curse your charity”.
-
-A “fund,” voluntary or legal--it seems to me--should represent an effort
-to do justice, and should follow the ways of justice. Its object should
-be, not to express pity, or even sympathy, and it should not ask for
-gratitude. Its object is to right wrong, to redress the unfairness which
-follows the triumph of success, and give to the weak and disherited a
-share in the prosperity they have done their part to create. A “fund”
-because its object is to do justice, ought to follow scientific lines;
-it ought to be guided by sound judgment; it ought to be administered by
-skilled officials; and it ought to do nothing which can lower any man’s
-strength and dignity. On the contrary, it ought to do everything to open
-to the lowest the way of honourable living. Its action must be just, and
-seem to be just; it must represent the mind, not of one class only, but
-of all classes.
-
-There have been “funds” which more or less approach this ideal. The
-Mansion House Fund of 1903-4 issued a Report which stands as a model of
-what is possible; and its ideal is that of the ablest Poor Law
-reformers. Press funds created by excitement, and directed in a hurry,
-will hardly reach such an ideal. They will neither by their genesis nor
-by their action represent the ways of justice.
-
-The Press, I submit, deserts its high calling when it offers itself as a
-means by which its readers may easily do their duty to the poor. The
-relief of the poor can never be easy--the easiest way is almost always
-the wrong way. The Press, when it makes it possible for rich people to
-satisfy their consciences by a donation to its “funds” lets them escape
-their duty of effort, of sacrifice, and of personal sympathy. It spoils
-the public, as foolish parents spoil children by taking away the call to
-effort.
-
-The Press has great possibilities in teaching people to remember the
-poor. It might educate the national conscience to make a national
-effort to remove the causes of want of employment, physical weakness,
-and drunkenness. It might rouse the rich to the patriotism which the
-Russian noble expressed, when he said that “the rights of property must
-give way to national needs”. It might set the public mind to think of
-a heart of the Empire in which there should be no infant of days, no
-young man without hope, and no old man without the means of peace.
-The Press has done much. It seems to me a loss if, for the sake of the
-immediate earthly link, if for the sake of creating a “fund” to relieve
-present distress, it misses the eternal gain--the creation of a public
-mind which will prevent any distress.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- WHAT IS POSSIBLE IN POOR LAW REFORM.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- 22 September, 1909.
-
- [1] From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-The Archbishop of Canterbury did good service in the House of Lords in
-forcing upon public attention the condition of the people as has been
-revealed by the Poor Law Commission. There was only a small attendance
-of Peers to hear his statement, and the public mind has hardly been
-stirred. The imagination is not trained in England. For want of it, as
-Lord Goschen used to say, our fathers lost America, and for want of it
-we are likely to blunder into social trouble. The Lords, who are so keen
-in defence of property, do not realize that there are greater dangers to
-property in the presence of the unemployed than in the weapons forged by
-the Budget, and the public mind forgets in the summer the “bitter cries”
-which every winter rise from broken homes and shattered lives.
-
-But the facts remain as they have been stated by the Archbishop. There
-is poverty; there is distress; the community suffers grievous loss while
-strong men lose their power to work and hearts are hardened by want. All
-the time “out relief is administered so as to foster and encourage dirt,
-disease, and immorality, and the workhouse accommodation for the aged is
-in some cases so dreary as to be absolutely appalling, while in others
-it is palatial”. The Archbishop “absolutely challenged the statement
-that these difficulties could be met except by a new system under a new
-law”. The whole evidence showed that things are radically wrong, and
-rendered it impossible to argue that “we are getting on well enough”.
-
-Mr. Burns rests in the progress under the Guardians’ administration
-during the last sixty years. “In-door pauperism has dropped from 62 to
-26 per 1000, out-door pauperism from 54 to 16, and child pauperism from
-26 to 7 per 1000,” while “the cost per head of in-door paupers has risen
-from £7 18s. to £13 5s. and out-door pauperism from £3 11s. to £6 1s.
-5d.” Striking figures, but they do not alter the facts which the
-inquiries of the Commissioners have brought to light. There are still
-workhouses which are hot-beds of corruption; there are still thousands
-of children brought up under pauper influences, which the boasted
-education for a few hours a week in an elementary school cannot stem;
-there are still feeble-minded people of both sexes who, for want of
-care, increase the number of lunatics and criminals; there are still
-thousands of children who cannot be properly clothed or fed on the
-pittance of out relief; there are still strong men and women, stirred by
-a deterrent system to become enemies of society, and to defy, by
-idleness, the authority which would, by severity, force them to work.
-Let any one whose mind Mr. Burns’s figures satisfy dip into the pages of
-the Poor Law Commission Report, and certainly his heart will be
-indignant.
-
-“No greater indictment” it has been truly said, “has ever been published
-against our civilization.”
-
-Progress indeed cannot be judged by comparative figures. In 1850 it
-would have marked a great change if pauperism had dropped from 62 to 26
-per 1000, but in 1910 it may be that 26 per 1000 constitutes as heavy a
-burden. Truth depends on relation. The social conscience has become much
-more sensitive. This generation cannot brook wrongs which previous
-generations brooked. Our self-respect is wounded by the thought of
-poverty which our care might remove. Poverty itself is recognized to be
-something worse than want of food. Every citizen is necessary, not only
-that he may work for the commonwealth, but that he may contribute by his
-thoughtful interest to make government efficient and human. The standard
-by which individual value is judged has been raised. Figures are not by
-themselves measures of progress, because every unit in the course of
-years changes its value, and to-day, as compared with sixty years ago,
-each man, woman and child may be said to have a worth which has
-increased tenfold. Official figures do not recognize worth and are
-therefore irritating; they increase and do not allay bitterness.
-
-Something then must be done, and the debate in the House of Commons
-suggests something which might be done immediately. The Prime Minister
-and the Government might at once adopt certain recommendations on which
-there is general agreement, and which would not involve the immediate
-substitution of a new body of administration in the place of the
-Guardians. It might, for instance, 1. establish compulsory continuation
-schools; 2. make adequate provision for the feeble-minded; and 3.
-develop some method of training for the able-bodied and able-minded who
-have lost their way in the industrial world.
-
-There is general agreement as to the treatment of the feeble-minded, as
-to the training of the young, and as to the way of discipline for the
-unemployed.
-
-The public has hardly recognized what is involved in the neglect of the
-measures recommended for the care of the feeble-minded. They do not know
-how much crime, how much poverty, and how much drunkenness may be traced
-to this cause, or they would not expect the laws which assume
-strong-mindedness to be effective. What effect can prison have on
-characters too feeble to resolve on reformation? What appeal to
-independence can have weight with those who cannot reason? Evidence
-abounds in the pages of Reports, and the best thought of the times has
-agreed on the recommendations. If these recommendations were put into a
-Bill and adopted a reform would be achieved which would cut deeply into
-the burden of unemployment and vice under which the nation now labours.
-
-Then again as to the training of the young. Compulsory continuation
-schools might be established.
-
-It is grievous to reflect that while the country is expending
-£23,000,000 on education, there should be a large body of men and women
-without any resource other than that of the mechanical use of their
-hands and without any interest to satisfy their minds. It may be that
-something is wrong in our elementary schooling, but it is hard to
-realize how the boy who leaves school to-day, a good reader and writer,
-and of clean habits, can become the dull, ignorant, and almost helpless
-man of thirty or thirty-five who stands among the unemployed at the
-table of the Relief Committee. Nevertheless it is so, and the tale of
-his descent has been often told. The boy, free of school, throws off
-school pursuits as childish things. He will have no more to do with
-books or with learning. He takes a situation where he can get the
-largest wages, and where least call is made on mental effort. He has
-money to spend and he spends it on the pleasures which give the most
-excitement. At the age of eighteen or twenty he is no longer wanted as a
-boy, and he has no skill or intelligence which would fit him for
-well-paid work as a man. He becomes a casual labourer, or perhaps gets
-regular employment in some mechanical occupation. Before he is forty, he
-is very frequently among the “unemployed,” his hands capable only of
-doing one sort of work, and his head incapable of thinking out ways or
-means. His schooling has been practically wasted and he is again a
-burden on the community.
-
-All inquiry goes to show that neglected boyhood is the chief source of
-“the unemployed”. Care in securing good places for boys when they leave
-school, and offers of technical teaching may do something, but these
-means do not serve to create the intelligent labourer, on whom, more
-than on the skilled artisan, the wealth of the country depends. “No
-skilled labourer,” Mr. Edison is reported to have said, “is better than
-the English, and no unskilled labourer is worse.” The intelligent
-labourer is one who does common work so as to save money; one who can
-understand and repeat instructions; one who can rise to an emergency;
-one who serves others’ interests and finds others’ interests.
-
-Our labourers have not this intelligence because the boy’s mind, just
-opened at school, has been allowed to close; he has been taken away from
-learning just when it was becoming interesting. The obvious remedy is
-compulsory continuation schools, and these have been recommended again
-and again by investigators and committees.
-
-Let it be enacted that young persons under eighteen cannot be employed
-unless their employers allow time for attendance at such schools on
-three days a week, and receive a certificate of attendance--let it be
-made obligatory on all young persons engaged in industrial work that
-they attend such schools. Great employers like Messrs. Cadbury have
-found it in their interest to make such attendance compulsory on the
-young persons they employ. A Departmental Committee would soon discover
-the best way of enforcing compulsion, and the Government by this simple
-means would do much to stop unemployment and poverty at its source.
-
-Some method of training the able-bodied and able-minded unemployed might
-be developed.
-
-These form a distinct class. They cannot be helped by relief, and they
-are demoralized by relief works. They passed through boyhood without
-getting the necessary equipment for life; they have, in a sort of way, a
-claim for such equipment, and failing such they must be a burden to the
-community. There are some ready to respond at once; there are others
-who, by long neglect, have become indolent and defiant. The first need
-to be put on farms or in shops where they will receive training.
-
-Hollesley Bay is an example of such a farm, though the experiment has
-unfortunately been confused by the introduction of men who receive
-simple doles of work. But among the hundreds of married men with decent
-homes, and bearing good reports from employers, there are many in whom
-capacity is dormant. Pathetic indeed is their appeal, as worn in body
-and mind, ragged in clothing, they tell of work lost “because motors
-have taken the place of horses,” “because machinery has been
-introduced,” because “boys do men’s work”; pathetic is the appeal of men
-who, having lost their way in life, can see nothing before them but
-endless casual jobs, in which they will lose any strength they gain by
-the fresh air and food of Hollesley. If only they could be told that by
-learning to work and use their brains, they would be given a chance on
-the land or in the Colonies. If only they could realize that they might,
-as others have done, become fit to occupy one of the cottages on the
-estate, how surely they would throw their hearts into the work and feel
-the joy of seeing things grow under their hands. There is no need of
-controversial legislation. Training farms or shops could be provided,
-and if the decision be deferred as to whether the control of the
-training farm or shops should be local or national, it might be agreed
-that the experiment should be made by the Board of Trade or the Board of
-Agriculture.
-
-If the latter department took charge of the Colony, admitted only
-unemployed men fitted for agriculture, trained them, and put them in the
-way of taking up holdings, an experiment would be tried of immense value
-for future legislature.
-
-Then, as to the other able-bodied and able-minded unemployed who have
-become idle and almost enemies of society. It has long been agreed that
-it is necessary to detain them for periods of three or four years,
-during which they would be given the opportunity of learning to work.
-The place of detention would not be a prison, but a School of Industry,
-in which their capacities would be developed and their self-respect
-encouraged. The organization of such a place of discipline might involve
-thought, but its establishment need involve the Government in no long
-controversy. The Poor Law Commission and the Vagrancy Commission are at
-one in urging the necessity, and it must be obvious to anyone that until
-some means is discovered for removing from “the unemployed” the “idle
-and vagrant class,” the public mind will never AGREE TO WISE DEALING
-WITH THE PROBLEM.
-
-Here then is something possible, something which even a Government so
-burdened as the present might accomplish. The direct effect would be
-great, if boys were checked on their way to the ranks of the unemployed;
-if some untrained men and women were taken from the streets and restored
-trained to the labour market; if the feeble-minded and the idle were
-removed from unwise sympathy and unfair abuse. The indirect effect would
-also be great, as the conviction would spread that the Government was
-indeed taking a matter in hand which has been year by year postponed.
-There would be more hope of peace and good-will between rich and poor.
-When so much is at once possible, is it reasonable that nothing should
-be done till a complete scheme has been devised?
-
-It does not seem to be over-sanguine to believe that there are earnest
-men among the younger M.P.’s who, putting party aside, will agree to do
-what has been shown to be possible for the young people, the
-feeble-minded, and the unemployed.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- CHARITY UP TO DATE.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- February, 1912.
-
- [1] From “The Contemporary Review”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-The tender mercies of the thoughtless, as of the wicked, are often
-cruel, and charity when it ceases to be a blessing is apt to become a
-curse; A Mansion House fund we used in old days to count among the
-possible winter horrors of East London. The boldly advertised details of
-destitution, the publication of the sums collected, the hurried
-distribution by irresponsible and ignorant agents, and the absence of
-any policy, stirred up wild expectation and left behind a trail of
-bitterness and degradation. The people were encouraged in deception, and
-were led on in the way which ends in wretchedness.
-
-In 1903 a Committee was formed which used a Mansion House fund to
-initiate a policy of providing honourable and sufficiently paid work
-which would, at the same time, test the solid intention of unemployed
-and able-bodied applicants. The report of that Committee has been
-generally accepted, and has indeed become the basis of subsequent action
-and recommendations. It seemed to us East Londoners as if the bad time
-had been passed, and that henceforth charitable funds would flow in
-channels to increase fruitfulness and not in floods to make devastation.
-
-The hope has been disappointed. Funds inaugurated by newspapers, by
-agencies, or by private persons have appeared in overwhelming force, and
-have followed in the old bad ways. The heart of the public has been torn
-by harrowing descriptions of poverty and suffering, which the poor also
-read and feel ashamed. The means of relief are often miserably
-inadequate. A casual dinner eaten in the company of the most degraded
-cannot help the “toiling widows and decent working-men,” “waiting in
-their desolate homes to know whether there is to be an end to their
-pains and privations”. Two or three hours spent in fields hardly clear
-of London smoke, after a noisy and crowded ride, is not likely to give
-children the refreshment and the quiet which they need for a recreative
-holiday.
-
-Much of the charity of to-day, it has to be confessed, is mischievous,
-if not even cruel, and to its charge must be laid some of the poverty,
-the degradation, and the bitterness which characterize London, where, it
-is said, eight million sterling are every year given away. Ruskin, forty
-years ago, when he was asked by an Oxford man proposing to live in
-Whitechapel what he thought East London most wanted, answered, “The
-destruction of West London”. Mr. Bernard Shaw has lately, in his own
-startling way, stated a case against charity, and we all know that the
-legend on the banner of the unemployed, “Curse your charity,” represents
-widely spread opinion.
-
-But--practically--what is the safe outlet for the charitable instinct?
-The discussion of the abolition of charity is not practical. People
-are bound to give their money to their neighbours. Human nature is
-solid--individuals are parts of a whole--and the knowledge of a
-neighbour’s distress stirs the desire to give something, as surely
-as the savour of food stirs appetite. But as in the one case the
-satisfaction of the appetite is not enough unless the food builds up
-the body and strength, so in the other case the charity which relieves
-the feelings of the giver is not enough unless it meets the neighbour’s
-needs. Those needs are to-day very evident, and very complex. Our rich
-and ease-loving society knows well that a family supported on twenty
-shillings a week cannot get sufficient food, and that even forty
-shillings will not provide means for holidays--for travel or for study.
-There will be children whose starved bodies will never make strong
-men and women; and there will be men and women who live anxious and
-care-worn lives, who cannot enjoy the beauties and wonders of the world
-in which they have been placed.
-
-There are ghastly facts behind modern unrest, which are hardly
-represented by tales of destitute children and the sight of ragged
-humanity congregated around the free shelters. The needs are obvious,
-and they are very complex. The man whose ragged dress and haggard face
-cries out for food, has within him a mind and a soul fed on the crumbs
-which fall from the thoughts of the times, and he is a member of society
-from which he resents exclusion. Relief of a human being’s need must
-take all these facts into account. It must not give him food, at the
-expense of lowering his self-respect; it must not provide him with
-pleasure at the expense of degrading his capacity for enjoying his
-higher calling as a man, and it must not be kind at the expense of
-making independence impossible. The man who is stirred by the knowledge
-of his neighbour’s needs must take a deal of trouble.
-
-The only safe outlet for the charitable instinct is, it may be said,
-that which is made by thinking and study. The charity which is
-thoughtless is charity out of date. It is always hard to be up to date,
-because to be so involves fresh thinking, and it is so much easier to
-say what has been said by previous generations, and to imitate the deeds
-of the dead benefactors. They who would really serve their neighbour’s
-needs by a gift must bring the latest knowledge of human nature to bear
-on the applicant’s character, and treat it in relation to the structure
-of society as that structure is now understood. They must be students of
-personality and of the State. They must consider the individual who is
-in need or the charitable body which makes an appeal, as carefully as a
-physician considers his case; they must get the facts for a right
-diagnosis, and bring to the cure all the resources of civilization. The
-great benefactors of old days were those who thought out their
-actions--as, for instance, when Lady Burdett-Coutts met the need of work
-by building amid the squalor of East London a market beautiful enough to
-be a temple, or as Lord Shaftesbury when he inaugurated ragged
-schools--but new ages demand new actions, and the spiritual children of
-the great dead are not they who act as they acted, but those who give
-thought as they gave thought.
-
-The charity which does not flow in channels made by thought is the
-charity which is mischievous. People comfort themselves and encourage
-their indolence by saying they would rather give wrongly in ten cases
-than miss one good case. The comfort is deceptive. The gift which does
-not help, hinders, and it is the gifts of the thoughtless which open the
-pitfalls into which the innocent fall and threaten the stability of
-society. Such gifts are temptations to idleness, and widen the breach
-between rich and poor. When people of good-will, in pursuit of a good
-object, do good deeds which are followed by cries of distress and by
-curses there is a tragedy.
-
-Charity up to date, whether it be from person to person or through
-some society or fund, must be such as is approved by the same close
-thinking as business men give to their business, or politicians to
-their policy. The best form of giving must always, I think, be that
-from person to person. Would that it were more used--would that those
-whose feelings are stirred by the sight of many sick folk were content
-to try and heal one! There are always individuals in need at our own
-door--neighbours, workpeople, relatives, servants; there is always
-among those we know some one whose home could be made brighter, or
-whose sickness could be lightened; there are tired people who could
-be sent on holiday, boys or girls who could be better educated. Gifts
-which pass from person to person are something more than ordinary
-gifts. “The gift without the giver is bare,” and when the giver’s
-thought makes itself felt, the gift is enriched. The best form of
-charity, therefore, is personal, and if for some reason this be
-impossible, then the next best is that which strengthens the hands of
-persons who are themselves in touch with neighbours in need, such as
-are the almoners of the Society for the Relief of Distress, the members
-of the Charity Organization Committees, or the residents in Settlements.
-
-The personal gift, inspired by good-will and directed by painstaking
-thought, is the best form of charity, but people who have learnt what
-organizations and associations can do will not be content unless those
-means also are applied to the relief of their neighbours. The
-consequence is the existence of numberless societies for numberless
-objects. “Which of them may be said to represent charity up to date?”
-The answer I submit is, “Those which approve themselves to thoughtful
-examination”.
-
-Appeals which touch the feelings of the readers, with well-known names
-as patrons and hopeful forecasts, should not be sufficient to draw
-support. The would-be subscriber must leisurely apply his mind, and
-weigh the proposals in the light of modern knowledge. The giving a
-subscription involves a large responsibility; it not only withdraws from
-use money which, as wages, would have employed useful labour, but it may
-actually be a means of doing mischief. As one familiar with the working
-of many charities, I would appeal for more thoughtfulness on the part of
-all subscribers. People must think for themselves and judge for
-themselves; but perhaps, out of a long experience, I may suggest a few
-guiding principles.
-
-I. Charities should aim at encouraging growth rather than at giving
-relief. They should be inspired by hope rather than by pity. They should
-be a means of education, a means of enabling the recipient to increase
-in bodily, mental, or spiritual strength. If I spend twenty shillings on
-giving a dinner or a night’s lodging to twenty vagrants, I have done
-nothing to make them stronger workers or better citizens, I have only
-kept poverty alive; but if I spend the same sum in sending one person to
-a convalescent hospital, he will be at any rate a stronger man, and if
-during his stay at the hospital his mind is interested in some
-subject--in something not himself--he will probably be a happier man.
-Societies which devote a large income to providing food and clothing do
-not in the long run reduce the number of those in want, while Societies
-which promote the clearing of unhealthy areas, the increase of open
-space about town dwellings, greater accessibility to books and pictures,
-gradually raise people above the need of gifts of food and clothing.
-Hospitals which do much in restoring strength to the sick would do more
-if they used their reputation and authority to teach people how to avoid
-sickness, and to make a public opinion which would prevent many diseases
-and accidents. The distinguished philanthropist who used to say she
-would rather give a poor man a watch than a coat was, I believe, wiser
-than another philanthropist who condemned a poor woman for spending her
-money on buying a picture for her room. It is more important to raise
-self-respect and develop taste than just to meet physical needs.
-
-Charities intruding themselves upon the intimacies of domestic life have
-by their patronage often dwarfed the best sort of growth. Warnings
-against patronizing the poor are frequent, but many charities are by
-their very existence “patronizing,” and many others, by sending people
-to collect votes, by requiring expressions of their gratitude, and by
-the attitude of their agents, do push upon the poor reminders of their
-obligations. They belong to a past age, and have no place in the present
-age, where they foster only a cringing or rebellious attitude. It has
-been well said that, “a new spirit is necessary in dealing with the
-poor, a spirit of humility and willingness to learn, rather than
-generosity and anxiety to teach”. This is only another form of saying
-that charities must be educational, because no one can educate who is
-not humble. Our schools, perhaps, will have further results when the
-teachers cease to call themselves “masters!”
-
-II. Charities should, I think, look to, if not aim at, their own
-extinction. Their existence, it must be remembered, is due to some
-defect in the State organization or in the habits of the people.
-Schools, for instance, were established by the gifts of good-will to
-meet the ignorance from which people suffered, and when the State itself
-established schools the gifts have been continued for the sake of
-methods and experiments to meet further needs which the State has not
-yet seen its way to meet. Charities, in this case, have looked, or do
-look, to their own extinction when the State, guided by their example,
-may take up their work. They have been pioneers, original, daring by
-experiment to lead the way to undiscovered good. Relief societies have,
-in like manner, shown how the State may help the poor by means which
-respect their character, by putting work within their reach, by
-emigrating those fit for colonial life, by giving orphan children more
-of the conditions of a family home. There are others which have looked,
-or still look, to their extinction, not in State action, but in
-co-operation with other societies with which they now compete.
-Competition may be the strength of commerce, but co-operation is
-certainly the strength of charity, and wise are those charities which
-are content to sink themselves in common action and die that they may
-rise again in another body. The Charity Organization Societies in some
-of the great cities have in this way lost themselves, to live again in
-Social Welfare Councils and Civic Leagues. There are, finally, other
-charities which, by their own action, tend to make themselves
-unnecessary. The Children’s Country Holiday Fund, for instance, by
-giving country holidays to town children, and by making the parents
-contribute to the expense, develop at once a new desire for the peace
-and beauty of the country and a new capacity for satisfying this desire.
-When parents realize the necessity of such holiday and know how it can
-be secured, this Fund will cease to have a reason for existence.
-
-Charities are many which fulfil this condition, but charities also are
-many which do not fulfil it. They seem to wish to establish themselves
-in permanence, and go on in rivalry with the State and with one another.
-There is waste of money, which might be used in pioneer work, in doing
-what is equally well done by others; there is competition which excites
-greed and imposition, and there is overlapping. Very little thought is
-wanted to discover many such charities which now receive large incomes
-from the public.
-
-A wise observer has said: “A charity ought every twenty-five years to
-head a revolution against itself”. Only by some such means can it be
-brought into adjustment with the new needs of a new time, only by some
-such means will it clear off excrescences and renew its youth. But,
-failing such power of self-reform, it is worthy of consideration whether
-every twenty-five years each charity should not be compelled to justify
-its existence before some State Commission.
-
-III. Charities should keep in line with State activities. The
-State--either by national or by municipal organization--has taken over
-many of the duties which meet the needs of the people. Ignorance,
-poverty, disease and dullness have all been met, and the means by which
-they are being met are constantly developed. The Church, it may be said,
-has so far converted the State, and a cheerful payer of rates may
-perhaps deserve the same Divine commendation as the cheerful giver. But
-State organizations, however well considered and well administered, will
-always want the human touch. They will not, like the charities, be
-fitful because dependent on subscribers and committees, but they will
-not, like charities, temper their actions to individual peculiarities
-and feelings. Charities, therefore, I think, do well when they keep in
-line with State activities. They may, for instance, working in
-co-operation with the Guardians, undertake the care of the families when
-the bread-winner is in the infirmary, or superintend the management of
-industrial colonies to which the unemployed may be sent, or provide
-enfeebled old people with pensions until the age when they are eligible
-for the State pension. They may, in connexion with the School and
-Education authorities, support the Care Committees who look after the
-interest of children in elementary schools, or, like Mrs. Humphry Ward’s
-society, give guidance in play during the children’s leisure hours. They
-may also, in conjunction with the Sanitary Authorities, work for the
-increase of health and the wiser use of playgrounds and means of
-recreation. Men and women of good-will may, I believe, find boundless
-opportunities if they will serve on Municipal bodies or on the
-Committees appointed by such bodies to complement their work.
-
-It may, indeed, be a further indictment against charities that much of
-the good-will which might have improved and humanized State action has
-by them been diverted. If, for instance, the passion of good-will which
-now finds an outlet in providing free shelters and dinners for the
-starving, or orphanages for destitute children, had gone to improve
-Casual Wards and Barrack Schools, many evils would have been prevented.
-At any rate, it may be said that charities working alongside of the
-State organizations would become stronger, and State organizations
-inspired by the charities would become more humane. It costs more,
-doubtless, to work in co-operation with others, and to subject self-will
-to the common will as a member of a Board of Guardians, than to be an
-important member of a charitable committee, but in charity it is cost
-which counts.
-
-Charity--to sum up my conclusion--represents a very important factor in
-the making of England of to-morrow. The outbreak of giving, of which
-there has been ample evidence this Christmas, may represent increased
-good-will and more vivid realization of responsibility for those
-afflicted in mind, body, or estate, or it may represent the impatience
-of light-hearted people anxious to relieve themselves and get on to
-their pleasures. Society is out of joint because the wealth of the rich
-and the poverty of the poor have been brought into so great light. It
-seems intolerable that when wealth has to invent new ways of
-expenditure, there should be families where the earnings are
-insufficient for necessary food, where the children cannot enjoy the
-gaiety of their youth, where the boys and girls pass out through
-unskilled trades to pick up casual labour and casual doles. The needs
-are many, but the point I wish to urge is that charity which intends to
-help may hinder. No gift is without result, and some of the gifts are
-responsible for the suffering, carelessness, and bitterness of our
-times. Charity up to date is that which gives thought as well as money
-and service. The cost is greater, and many who will even deny themselves
-a pleasure so as to give a generous cheque cannot exercise the greater
-denial of giving their thought. “There is no glory,” said Napoleon,
-“where there is no danger;” and we may add, there is no charity where
-there is no thought, and thought is very costly.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- WHAT LABOUR WANTS.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- May, 1912.
-
- [1] From “The Daily News”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Working men have become, we are often told, the governing class. They
-form a large part, perhaps the majority, of the electorate, and theirs
-is the obligation of making the laws and directing the policy on which
-depend the safety and honour of the nation. They have come into an
-inheritance built up at great cost, and on them lies the responsibility
-for its care and development.
-
-Working-men, in order that they may fulfil their obligation and deliver
-themselves of their responsibility, may rightly, I think, urge a moral
-claim on the community for the opportunities by which to fit themselves
-for the performance of their duties. They enjoy by the sacrifice of
-their ancestors the inestimable privilege of freedom, but the value of
-freedom depends on the power to take advantage of its possibilities: the
-right to run in a race is all very well, but it is not of great use if
-the runner’s legs and arms are crippled. Freedom, in fact, implies the
-capacity to do or enjoy something worth doing or enjoying. The working
-classes, who, as members of a free nation, have been entrusted with the
-government of the nation, cannot do what is worth doing or what they are
-called to do if their bodies are weakened by ill health and their minds
-cribbed and cabined by ignorance. How can they whose childhood has been
-spent in the close, smoky, and fœtid air of the slums, whose bodies have
-been weakened in unhealthy trade, take their share in the support or
-defence of the nation? How can they who have learned no history, whose
-minds have had no sympathetic training, whose eyes have never been
-opened to the enjoyment of beauty, understand the needs of the people or
-grasp the mission of the Empire? Working men have thus a moral claim
-that they shall have the opportunity to secure health and knowledge,
-sanitary dwellings, open spaces, care in sickness and the prevention of
-disease, schools, university teaching, and easy access to all those
-means of life which make for true enjoyment.
-
-But when such opportunities have been provided, poverty often prevents
-their use. This excuse does not, indeed, hold universally, and it is
-much to be wished that the Labour Press and other makers of Labour
-opinion would more often urge the importance of taking advantage of
-the provided means for health and knowledge. They may have reason for
-stirring men against the unfairness of an economic system and uniting
-them in a strike against the ways of capital, but success would be
-of little value unless the men themselves become stronger and wiser.
-Many workmen--for example, those engaged in the building trades--have
-abundant leisure during the winter. It would be well, if they, as well
-as those who consume hours in attending football matches, would spend
-some time in developing their capacities of mind and body. Labour
-indeed needs a chaplain who will preach that power comes from what a
-man is, and not only from what a man has. The Labour Press, with its
-voice reiterating complaints, and its eyes fixed on “possessions,”
-makes reading as dreary as the pages of a society or financial journal.
-
-But this is digression, and the fact remains that poverty does in the
-case of thousands and hundreds of thousands of families prevent the
-possibility of using the means necessary for the development of their
-capacities. A wage of 20s. a week cannot permit schooling for the
-children up to the age of fifteen; it will not, indeed, provide
-sufficient food for the healthy life even of a small family. It can give
-no margin for the little recreations by which the powers of the mind are
-renewed, and does not allow for the leisure during growing years which
-is necessary to the making of the mind. It leaves the breadwinner
-fretted by anxiety lest in days of sickness or unemployment the wolf may
-enter the door and destroy the home.
-
-The mass of labourers are, in a word, too poor to be healthy or wise;
-they are not fit to take a part in government, and they have not the
-opportunity to make themselves fit. Their work is often costly though it
-is cheap, and their votes are worthless though gained by much
-canvassing. Wages which are not a living wage unfit workmen for their
-duty in the government of the nation.
-
-Does this fact justify a moral claim for a living wage to be fixed and
-enforced by the community? Ought a wage sufficient for the support of
-manhood to be a first charge on the product of labour and capital? The
-answer has in effect been given by the establishment of Wages Boards.
-There are now four trades in which a wage judged by a representative
-committee to be a living wage is enforced, and the same principle has
-lately been applied to the mining industry. The extension to other
-trades--if the experiment succeeds--can only be a matter of time. The
-claim of labour has been admitted, and the immediate question is, what
-is likely to be the result. Employers who are forced to give a higher
-wage will certainly require a higher standard of work. From one point of
-view this is all to the good. The acceptance of low-class work is as
-costly to the nation as it is degrading to the worker; it is a common
-loss when workers make constant mistakes for want of intelligence, and
-prove themselves to be not worthy a living wage. Every one is the better
-for the discipline which is required by the service of men; it is likely
-to make the nation richer and the workers more self-respecting, if they
-are free to fit themselves to take their part in government. It will, in
-economic language, probably tend to decrease the cost of production, and
-therefore the cost of living.
-
-But there is another point of view. The raising of the standard of work
-will at once throw out the less able, the unskilful, the ignorant, and
-the lazy. Is this for good or for evil? “For good,” is the answer I
-offer. It is well to face facts. Legislation and philanthropy have often
-done mischief by treating the unemployed as one class. If they are
-recognized as those not worth a living wage then it is clear that either
-they must be fitted to earn such a wage, or be segregated in colonies
-where their labour will be subsidized. They have a claim on such
-treatment. Some by the want of care in their youth, or by some change of
-fashion, have no marketable skill. It seems only fair that they should
-have the chance of acquiring some other skill. Some, because they are
-lazy and work-shy, are inclined to prey upon their poor working
-neighbours. It seems only fair that they should be taken off the market
-and shut up till they learn habits of industry. Some, because they are
-weak in body or mind, can never earn sufficient for their upkeep. It
-seems only fair that they should be kept, not in workhouses or on
-inadequate out relief, but in colonies where their labour would go
-towards their own support, and sympathetic guardianship, by necessary
-subsidies, prevent them from starving.
-
-Labour has a moral claim that labourers be given the opportunity of
-becoming free men--free to use and enjoy their manhood. English people
-made great sacrifices to secure freedom for the negroes, and religious
-people, to accomplish this object, dared to interfere in politics. The
-position to-day is more serious when those who are not free are called
-on to be governors of the nation, and religious people may again do well
-to interfere in politics to secure that working men may have the
-opportunity of developing the capacities which they have received for
-the service of mankind.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- OUR PRESENT DISCONTENTS.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- February, 1913.
-
- [1] From “The Nineteenth Century and After”. By permission of the
-Editor.
-
-
-“History,” we are told, “has often been the record of statesmen’s
-illusions,” and to one into whose mind over thirty years’ memories of
-East London have been burnt, it seems as if this generation concerning
-itself about foreign aggression, and the grouping of European Powers,
-were walking in the vain shadow of such an illusion. It is spending
-millions annually on armaments against a possible enemy, and grudges a
-comparatively small sum against the evils which are even now eating into
-the strength of the nation.
-
-Strikes and rumours of strikes are shaking the foundations of the wealth
-by which our Dreadnoughts are built and our great Empire
-secured--political apathy and indifference to the commonwealth mock
-fervid appeals for patriotic self-sacrifice--railing accusations are
-hurled by the rich that workmen loaf and drink, and by the tyranny of
-trades unions ruin trade; and the equally railing accusations are urged
-by workmen that the rich in their luxury are content to plunder the poor
-and live in callous indifference to the wrongs they see; and to crown
-all the other evidences of discontent, violent speeches and lawless
-conduct are weakening the old calm confidence in the stability of the
-social structure which has been built up by the elaborate care of many
-generations.
-
-An enemy has got a footing in the heart of the Empire, and is causing
-this disturbance. He has evaded our fleet and our forts, and he has the
-power to destroy our power. The nation, like a dreamer awakening, is
-shaking itself as it becomes conscious of another danger than that of
-foreign fleets and armies. It is beginning to be anxious about its
-social condition and is asking somewhat fitfully, What is to be done?
-What is the cause of the present discontent? What are the remedies?
-
-Many causes are suggested. It may be that education, having developed
-the people’s capacities for enjoyment, has increased the area of
-discontent, and those who used to sit placidly in the shadow now demand
-a ray of the abundant sunshine. It may be that the frantic pace at
-which the modern world moves has stimulated the demand for excitement
-and made men impatient for change; it may be that the popular
-philosophy of the street and the Press, eclipsing older philosophies
-of the Church and the chair, impels men and nations to put their own
-interests before other interests--to retaliate blow for blow, and to
-become proud of pride. When nations, classes, or individuals seek first
-to protect themselves, then the other things, greed, panic, suspicion,
-and strife, are soon added.
-
-All these causes may operate, but they would not, I think, be dangerous,
-if it were not for the fact of poverty. Ideas, philosophies, and
-feelings have only stirred mankind when they have been able to appeal to
-facts, and agitators would now agitate in vain if conditions did not
-agitate more eloquently. Mean streets and ailing bodies jar upon the
-more widely spread sense of joy, and the long hours of labour and the
-small wages stir an anger which becomes ready to upset society in order
-that the greater number might profit in the scramble. Poverty, as far as
-I can see, is the root cause of the prevailing discontent, the door by
-which the enemy enters and the fortress from which he sends out
-suspicion and strife to compass the nation’s ruin. Poverty! And our
-national income is £1,844,000,000, and the nation’s accumulated wealth
-is the almost inconceivable sum of £13,762,000,000.
-
-The voice of the times--would that it had a Gladstone for its
-interpreter--is one that calls every one, be he patriot or business man,
-or even a pleasure-lover, to set himself to help in the eviction of
-poverty. If there be any fighting spirit--any chivalry left, here is the
-object for its attack; if there be any enlightened selfishness, here is
-the field for its exercise. Poverty, if it be not destroyed, will
-destroy the England of our hopes and our dreams.
-
-The curious thing is that the public mind which speaks through the
-Press hardly realizes what is meant by poverty. There is much talk
-on the subject--numberless volumes are issued, and charities are
-multiplied, but what is in the minds of speakers, writers, and givers
-is obviously destitution. They think of the ragged, broken creatures
-kept waiting outside the doors of the shelter, and they have mental
-pictures of squalid rooms and starving children. Many and many a time
-visitors have come to Whitechapel expecting to see whole streets
-occupied by the ragged and the wretched, and they have been almost
-disappointed to find such misery the exception. There are, indeed, many
-thousands of people destitute, but they form only a fraction of the
-poor, and could, as the Poor Law Commissioners have shown, be lifted
-out of the condition by action at once drastic and humane. Why that
-action has not even been attempted is one of the many questions which
-the Local Government Board has to answer. But my present point is that,
-if all the destitute were removed, the poverty which is at the back of
-our present discontent would remain.
-
-Mr. Seebohm Rowntree, whose opinion has been supported by subsequent
-social explorers and by scientific research, concludes that 3s. a week
-for an adult and 2s. 3d. for a child is necessary to keep the body in
-physical repair, the food being chosen simply to get the most nutrition
-for the least money, without any regard to appetite or pleasure. The
-rent for a family, even if one room be considered sufficient, can hardly
-be less than 4s. a week in a town, and if household sundries are to
-include fuel, light, and clothing for a family of five persons, 4s. 11d.
-is a moderate sum. It thus seems as if the smallest income on which it
-would be possible for an average family to exist is 21s. 8d. a week.
-
-Mr. Charles Booth, Mr. Rowntree, and other subsequent investigators have
-shown that 30 per cent. of the town population have an income below or
-hardly above that sum, and as the wages of agricultural labourers
-average in England 18s. 3d. a week, in Scotland 19s. 3d., and in Ireland
-10s. 11d., it is fair to conclude that the estimate of the towns may be
-applied to the whole kingdom, and that at least 12,000,000 of the
-45,000,000 people are living on incomes below the poverty line.
-
-Mr. Chiozza Money, in his “Riches and Poverty” approaching the subject
-from another side, justifies the conclusion. He shows that a population
-amounting to 39,000,000 persons is dependent on incomes of less than
-£160 a year--say 60s. a week, and absorbs £935,000,000 of the national
-income; that 4,100,000 persons depend on incomes between £160 and £700
-per annum, and absorb £275,000,000 of the national income; and that the
-comparatively small number of 1,400,000 dependent on incomes over £700 a
-year absorb the mighty sum of £634,000,000. In other words, more than
-one-third of the entire income of the United Kingdom is enjoyed by
-one-thirtieth of its people.
-
-In the light of these facts it is not incredible that 30 per cent of the
-population live in the grip of actual poverty. “The United Kingdom
-contains,” it may be said in truth and shame, “a great multitude of poor
-people veneered with a thin layer of the comfortable and rich.”[2]
-
-The broad fact which stands out of these figures is that, when 21s. 8d.
-is taken as the sum necessary so that an average family may keep body
-and soul together, 12,000,000 people must give up in despair, and many
-other millions, depending on wages of 30s. or even 40s. a week, live
-anxious days. And this despair or anxiety is not on account of life, in
-all its multitudinous aspects, but only as to the maintenance of simple
-physical efficiency.
-
- [2] These and other figures are put together very lucidly by Mr. Will
-Reason in a little shilling book, “Poverty” published by Headly Bros.,
-which I commend to all as a good introduction to the subject.
-
- Let us, says Mr. Rowntree, clearly understand what physical
- efficiency means. A family living upon the scale allowed for in
- this estimate must never spend a penny on railway fare or omnibus.
- They must never go into the country unless they walk. They must
- never purchase a halfpenny newspaper or buy a ticket for a popular
- concert. They must write no letters to absent children, for they
- cannot afford to pay the postage. They must never contribute
- anything to their church or chapel or give any help to a neighbour
- which costs them money. They cannot save nor can they join sick
- clubs or trade unions, because they cannot pay the necessary
- subscriptions. The children must have no pocket-money for dolls,
- marbles, and sweets. The father must smoke no tobacco and must
- drink no beer. The mother must never buy any pretty clothes for
- herself or for her children. Should a child fall ill, it must be
- attended by the parish doctor; should it die, it must be buried by
- the parish. Finally, the wage-earner must never be absent from his
- work for a single day.
-
-A few parents of heroic mould may have succeeded in bringing up children
-to healthy and useful manhood and womanhood on small wages. Tales of
-such are repeated in select circles, but these families generally belong
-to a generation less open to temptation than the present. There are now
-few, very few, parents who, with an uncertain wage of 30s. a week, never
-spend a penny for the sake of pleasure, taste, or friendship. The result
-is that their own or their children’s physical health and well-being are
-sacrificed. The boys are rejected when they offer themselves as
-soldiers, the infant mortality is high, and the girls unprotected are
-more ready to become the victims of vice. The saddest of all experiences
-of life among the poor is the gradual declension of respectable families
-into the ranks of the destitute, when loss of work finds them without
-resources in body or skill.
-
-It is the poverty of the great multitude of the working people and not
-the destitution of the very poor which is the force of the present
-discontent. This is not realized even by Mrs. George Kerr, whose book,
-“The Path of Social Progress,” seems to me one of the best of those
-lately published on the subject. She speaks of Dr. Chalmers as having
-advocated a policy “which still holds the field,” and is the “only
-scheme which actually did diminish poverty”. But this policy aimed at
-diminishing a poverty which was practically destitution, and its method
-was to strengthen the people in habits which would enable them to live
-independent lives on wages of 20s. a week. Mrs. Kerr herself talks of
-the importance of a wife averaging her husband’s wages, so that if her
-husband as a painter earns 36s. a week for four months the family
-expenditure ought to be limited within 18s. a week, and she evidently
-condemns as waste the purchase of a perambulator or bicycle. The methods
-she advocates by which character may be raised and strengthened are
-admirable, and the lead given by Dr. Chalmers cannot be too closely
-followed, but they have reference to destitution and not to the poverty
-from which working people suffer whose wages reach a more or less
-uncertain 30s. or 40s. a week.
-
-Destitution, in the crusade against which philanthropists and Poor Law
-reformers are so well engaged, does not indeed affect the present
-discontent, except in so far as the presence of the destitute is a
-warning to the workman of his possible fate. A mechanic is, perhaps,
-earning 30s. a week, or even more; he, by great frugality on his own
-part, or by almost miraculous management on his wife’s part, just
-succeeds in keeping his family in health; he sees the destitute in their
-wretchedness, he hears of many who are herded in the prison-like
-workhouses, and he feels that if he loses his work, if illness overtakes
-him or his wife, their fate must be his fate. The destitute may be a
-burden to the nation, but they are also a danger, in so far as they by
-their examples rouse a dangerous mood in thousands of workpeople whose
-wages hardly lift them out of the reach of poverty, and give them no
-opportunity by saving to make the future secure.
-
-The cure of destitution, necessary though it be on humane and economic
-grounds, is not the remedy for the present discontent. If all people
-incapable of earning a living were cared for under the best conditions,
-if by careful selection according to the straitest sect of the eugenists
-all the people engaged in work were fit for their work, if by better
-education and more scientific physical training every child were fully
-developed, or if by moral and religious impulse all citizens were to
-become frugal and self-restrained, there would still be the poverty
-which is the source of danger so long as the share of the national
-income which comes to the workers is so small. The greatest need of the
-greatest number is a larger income.
-
-It is, I think, fair to say that on their present income the majority of
-our people can neither enjoy themselves rationally nor give an
-intelligent vote as joint governors of the nation. They have not the
-freedom which takes pride in self-government.
-
-There are, it must be evident, few signs of rational enjoyment in the
-vastly increased pleasure-seeking of to-day. The people crowd into the
-country, but only a few people find anything in nature which is theirs.
-They pass by the memorials of great men and great events, and seldom
-feel a thrill of national pride. They wander aimlessly, helplessly
-through museums and picture-galleries, the things they see calling out
-little response in their minds. They have a limited and often perverted
-taste for music, and have so little conversation that on holidays they
-are silent or shout senseless songs. They get a short-lived excitement
-out of sport, so that for a whole countryside the event of a year is a
-football match and the chief interest of a Press recording the affairs
-of the Empire is the betting news. The recreations of the people and
-their Bank Holiday pleasures, at a time when the universal mind is
-stirring with a consciousness of new capacity, and the world is calling
-more loudly than ever that its good things should be enjoyed, give cause
-for some anxiety. Where there is no rational enjoyment there is likely
-to be discontent and mischief.
-
-The people cannot enjoy themselves so as to satisfy their nature because
-of poverty. They began to work before they had time to enjoy learning
-and before they had become conscious of their capacities and tastes.
-They have been crushed from their youth upwards by the necessity of
-earning a livelihood, and have never had the leisure to look at the
-beautiful world in which they have been placed. They have from their
-childhood been caught in the industrial machine, and have been swept
-away from the things which as men and women they were meant to enjoy.
-They have been too poor to find their pleasure in hope or in memory,
-enough for them if they have been able to snatch at the present and
-passing excitement.
-
-Poverty is the enemy of rational enjoyment, and it also prevents the
-freedom which has pride in self-government. The people cannot be said to
-be keen to take a part in the government of their country, they are
-almost ready to accept a despot if they could secure for themselves more
-health and comfort. There is evident failure to grasp great principles
-in politics, and a readiness to accept in their stead a popular cry.
-Parties are judged by their promises, and national interests are often
-put below private interests; motives which are untrue to human nature
-are charged against opponents, and the “mob spirit” has an easy victory
-over individual judgment. The votes of the people may be at any moment
-fatal to the commonwealth.
-
-Poverty is to a large extent the cause of this weakness in
-self-government and of the consequent danger to the nation. People whose
-minds have been crushed under the daily anxiety about the daily bread
-have little thought for any object but “how to live,” and thus they are
-apt to lose the power of vision. They see money as the only good, and
-they are disposed to measure beauty, tradition, and work in its terms.
-The pictures of “the happy homes of England” and the tales of her
-greatness have for them little meaning. “What are our homes that we
-should fight for them?” “What has England done for us?” The welfare of
-the nation is nothing alongside that of their own class; their chief
-want is security from starvation.
-
-Some conception of the nation as a whole is necessary to kindle interest
-in self-government, and modern poverty is gradually blotting out the old
-conception which grew up when people loved the countryside, where the
-fields laughed and sang with corn and the cottages nestled in gardens,
-and when they had leisure to enjoy the tales of their fathers’ great
-deeds. Some knowledge is also necessary if those who give votes have to
-decide on policies which affect international relations, and hold firmly
-to principles in dark as well as in bright times. But how can the men
-and women have such knowledge who have been driven by the poverty of
-their homes to go to work as children, and have had no leisure in which
-to read history or to dream dreams? Of course they vacillate and of
-course they fall victims to shallow philosophy.
-
-The people, in a word, because of poverty, are not free. They are “cogs
-in a great machine which uses human lives as the raw stuff out of which
-to fashion material wealth”. They are by fear of starvation compelled to
-be instruments of production almost as much as if they were under a law
-of slavery. They do not live for an end in themselves, but for an end
-for which others desire to use them.
-
-The poverty of the multitude of workpeople, which limits their
-capacities for enjoyment and for self-government, and is divided only by
-a very thin partition from the destitution of squalor and starvation,
-is, I believe, the chief source of our present discontent, and of the
-bitterness which makes that discontent dangerous. The “cares of this
-life” equally with “the deceitfulness of riches” are apt to choke that
-communion with an ideal which is the source of healthy progress.
-
-Schemes of relief and charity do not aim to reach this poverty. What,
-then, is to be done? “Give more education, and better education,” is the
-reply of the best reformers. “Let there be smaller classes in the
-elementary school, so that each child’s personality may be developed by
-the teacher’s personality.” “Let more attention be given to physical
-training.” “Let compulsory continuous education prevent the appalling
-wastage which leaves young people to find their interests in the
-excitement of the street.” Yes, a system of more and of better education
-would send out men and women stronger to labour and more fit both for
-the enjoyment and business of life. But poverty still stands in the way
-of such a system of education. The family budget of the mass of the
-people cannot keep the boy or girl away from work up to the age of
-fifteen or sixteen, nor can it allow the space and leisure necessary for
-study, for reading, and for intellectual recreation.
-
-What, then, is to be done? The answer demands the best thought of our
-best statesmen. There are, doubtless, many things possible, and no one
-thing will be sufficient. But by some means or other the great national
-income must be so shared that the 39,000,000 of poor may have a larger
-proportion.
-
-We have lately been warned against careless talk about rights. It may,
-therefore, be inaccurate to say that 39,000,000 out of 45,000,000
-citizens have a right to more than half of the eighteen hundred million
-pounds of income. But it is as inaccurate to say that 6,000,000 citizens
-have a right to the half of the eighteen hundred million pounds which
-they now receive. What are called “rights” have been settled by law on
-principles which seemed to the lawmakers of the time the best for the
-commonwealth. It is law made by our ancestors by which it is possible to
-transfer the property of the dead to the living, providing thereby a
-foundation on which stands the mighty accumulation of £13,762,000,000.
-It is, indeed, by such laws that the capitalist who has saved a small
-sum is able to go on increasing that sum to millions. There is no
-natural right by which the poor may be said to have a claim on wealth or
-the rich to possess wealth.
-
-Law which has determined the lines which the present distribution of the
-national income follows might determine others which would make the poor
-richer and the rich poorer. Law has lately, by a system of insurance and
-pensions, given some security for illness, old age, and unemployment; it
-has in some trades fixed a minimum wage.
-
-This principle might be extended. The consequent better organization of
-labour and its improved capacity would secure larger wages for efficient
-workers and probably reduce the cost of production for the benefit of
-consumers, but doubtless the number of the unemployed would be
-increased. Their inefficiency would not earn the minimum wage. For
-these, training or a refuge would have to be provided in farm colonies,
-industrial schools, or detention colonies, in accordance with the
-suggestion of the Poor Law Commissioners.
-
-The law might, by taxing the holders of the accumulated wealth of the
-nation, subsidize education, so that no child by want of food and
-clothing should be driven from school before the age of fifteen or
-sixteen. It might, by securing for the poor as well as for the rich an
-abundant provision of air-space and water for the healthy and adequate
-care and attention for the sick, reduce the death-rate among the
-39,000,000 poor people to the level of that which now obtains among the
-6,000,000 richer people. “Health before all things” has long been on the
-banner of politicians, and though much has been done much more remains
-to be done. There is no reason why the death-rate of a poor district
-should be higher than that of a rich district.
-
-Law, to offer one other example, might do more “to nationalize
-luxuries”. In an article on “Practicable Socialism,” which, as the
-first-fruits of an experience gained by my wife and myself in ten years
-of Whitechapel life, the Editor of this Review accepted in April, 1883,
-I suggested that legislation might provide for the people not what they
-_want_ but what they _need_. Much has been done in this direction during
-the last thirty years; but still there is not the free and sufficient
-provision of the best music in summer and winter, of the best art, of
-the best books--there is not even the adequate supply of baths and
-flower-gardens, which would bring within the reach of the many the
-enjoyments which are the surest recreations of life.
-
-It is thus possible to give examples of laws which would bring to the
-poor the use of a larger share of the national income. It is not easy to
-frame laws which, while they remove the burden and the danger of
-poverty, may by encouraging energy and self-respect develop industrial
-resourcefulness. But it ought not to be beyond statesmen’s power to
-devise such measures.
-
-The point, however, which I desire to make clear is that if the poor are
-to become richer the rich must become poorer. Increase of production
-followed by an increased national income has under the present laws--as
-has been shown in the booming trade of recent years--meant that the rich
-have become richer. The present income is sufficient to assure the
-greater health and well-being of the whole population, but the rich must
-submit to receive a smaller proportion.
-
-This proposition rouses much wrath. Its advocates are charged with
-preaching spoliation and robbery, with setting class against class, and
-with destroying the basis on which national prosperity is settled. The
-taxation which compels the rich to reduce their expenditure on holidays
-and luxuries may seem hard, and the fear lest the tax which this year
-takes 5 per cent of their income will be further increased may induce
-panic among certain classes; but it is harder for the poor to go on
-suffering for want of the means of life, and there is more reason for
-panic in the thought that the mass of the people remain indifferent to
-the national greatness. The tax, it must be remembered, which reduces
-the expenditure of the rich on things which perish in their using--on
-out-of-season foods, on aimless locomotion, and the excitements of
-ostentation--and at the same time makes it possible for the poor to
-spend more on food and clothing, increases the work of working people.
-The millions of money, for example, taken from the rich to supply
-pensions for the poor have enabled the old people to spend money on
-food and clothing, which has been better for the nation’s trade than
-money spent on luxuries. It is a striking fact that if the people used
-what is held to be a bare sufficiency of woollen and cotton goods, the
-demand for these goods would be increased threefold to sixfold. The
-transference, therefore, of more of the national income from the few
-rich to the many poor need not alarm patriots.
-
-The tax-collectors’ interference with the use of the accumulated wealth,
-now controlled by a comparatively small number of the people, is much
-less dangerous to the national prosperity than the discontent which
-arises from poverty. A proposition which offers security for the nation
-at the cost of some sacrifice by a class should, it might be expected,
-be met to-day by the more powerful members of society as willingly as in
-old days the nobles met the call to battle. But the powerful members of
-modern society hate the doctrine of taxation, and the hatred becomes a
-sort of instinct which draws them towards any alternative policy which
-may put off the evil day. If they give, their gifts are generous,
-frequently very generous, but often unconsciously they have regarded
-them as a sort of ransom which they threaten they will not pay if taxes
-are imposed, doing thereby injustice to their generosity. The rich do
-not realize the meaning of poverty, its wounds to human nature, or its
-dangers to the nation.
-
-Poverty, I would submit is at the root of our present discontent, not
-the poverty which the Poor Law and charity are to relieve, but the
-poverty of the great mass of the workers. Out of this poverty rises the
-enemy which threatens our peace and our greatness, and this poverty is
-due not to want of trade or work or wealth, but to the want of thought
-as to the distribution of our enormous national income. When the meaning
-of poverty is realized, the courage and the sacrifice which in the past
-have so often dared loss to avert danger will hardly fail because the
-loss to be faced is represented by the demand-note of the tax-collector.
-Gifts cannot avert the danger, repression will increase the danger, and
-the preachers who believe in the coming of the Kingdom must for the old
-text, “God loveth a cheerful giver,” substitute as its equivalent, “God
-loveth a cheerful taxpayer”.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- SECTION V.
-
- SOCIAL SERVICE.
-
-Of Town Planning--The Mission of Music--The Real Social Reformer--Where
-Charity Fails--Landlordism Up-to-date--The Church and Town Planning.
-
-
-
-
- OF TOWN PLANNING.[1]
-
- BY MRS. S. A. BARNETT.
-
- January, 1911.
-
- [1] From “The Cornhill Magazine”. By kind permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Much has been said lately about town planning. Conferences have been
-held, speeches have been made, articles have been written, papers have
-been read, and columns of newspaper-notices have appeared, and yet I am
-daring to occupy eleven pages of the CORNHILL MAGAZINE to try and add a
-few more remarks to what has already been so well and so forcibly put
-forth.
-
-But in apology for the presumption, it can be said that what I want to
-say does not entrench upon the province of the architect, the surveyor,
-or the artist. The questions of traffic-congestion, density of
-population, treatment of levels, arrangement of trams, water or gas,
-relation of railway termini or docks to thoroughfares, organization of
-periodic excess of street usage, relative positions of municipal
-buildings, harmony of material and design, standardization of streets
-and road grading, appreciation of scale; on these matters I will not
-write, for on them contributions, interesting, dull, suggestive, or
-learned, have been abundantly produced, and “are they not written in the
-Book of the Chronicles” of the great Conference held last month under
-the auspices of the Royal Institute of British Architects? And are not
-their potentialities visible beneath the legal phraseology of Mr. John
-Burns’ Town-planning Act of last Parliament?
-
-It is so delightful to realize that some of the best brains of this and
-other countries are turning their thoughts to the solution of what Mr.
-T. S. Horsfall (who for many years was a voice crying in the wilderness)
-demanded as the elemental right of every human being, “the conditions of
-a healthy life”. It is comforting to know that others are doing the
-thinking, especially when one is old, and can recall one’s passionate,
-youthful indignation at the placid acceptance of stinking courts and
-alleys as the normal homes for the poor, when the memory is still vivid
-of the grand day when one portion of the network of such courts, in St.
-Jude’s parish, was swept away, and a grave, tall, carefully planned
-tenement building, erected by the public-spirited kindness of the late
-Mr. George M. Smith, arose in its stead, “built to please Barnett as an
-experiment”.
-
-Some five-and-twenty years ago, when old Petticoat Lane was pulled down,
-my husband sent in to the Local Authority a suggestion of laying the
-area out so that Commercial Road should be continued right through to
-Bishopsgate; the letter and plans were merely acknowledged and the
-proposal ignored. Five years ago we filled one of the rooms in the
-Whitechapel Exhibition with plans of how East London might be improved,
-but it elicited only little interest, local or otherwise; and now last
-month, but a few years later, all the walls of Burlington House were
-covered with town-planning exhibits, drawings, plans, and designs, and
-its floor space amply supplied with models from all parts of the world.
-
-And the thought given is so fresh, so unconventional, and so full of
-characteristics, that one came away from a careful study of that great
-Exhibition with a clear sense of the individualities of the various
-nations, as they had stated their ideals for their towns. Some in broad
-avenues, great piazzas, parallel streets, careful to adopt Christopher
-Wren’s ideal, that “gardens and unnecessary vacuities ... be placed out
-of the town”. Some in fairy cities, girt with green girdles of open
-space, tree-lined roads, parks designed for quiet as well as for play,
-waterways used for pleasure locomotion as well as for business traffic,
-contours considered as producers of beauty, the view as well as the
-shelter planned for. Some with scrupulous care for the history of the
-growth of the city, its natural features, the footmarks left by its
-wars, each utilized with due regard to modern requirements and the
-tendencies of the future. Some glorying in the preservation of every
-scrap which could record age or civic history, others blatantly
-determined to show that the old was folly, and that only of the
-brand-new can it be said “the best is yet to be”.
-
-The imagination is stirred by the opportunities which the Colonies
-possess, and envy is mixed with gratitude that they will have the chance
-of creating glorious cities warned by the Old Country’s mistakes, and
-realizing by the progress of economic science that the flow of humanity
-is ever towards aggregation. The “Back-to-the-land” cry falls on ninety
-irresponsive ears to ten responsive ones, for the large majority of
-human beings desire to live in juxtaposition with mankind. It behoves
-thinkers all the more, therefore, to plan beautiful cities, places to
-live as well as to work in, and enough of them to prevent a few becoming
-so large as to absorb more than a healthy share of national life and
-wealth.
-
-But if all of us may think imperially, it is given to most of us only to
-act locally, and, therefore, I will convey your minds and mine back from
-the visions of town planning amid the plains of Canada, the fiords and
-mountains of British Columbia, the high lands and broad velds of Africa,
-the varied beauties of wood, hill, and sea of Australia and New Zealand,
-back from the stimulating, almost intoxicating, vision of the work lying
-before our great Colonies, to the sobering atmosphere of a London or a
-Manchester suburb, with its miles of mean streets already built, or its
-open fields and new-made roads, laid out as if under the ruler of the
-office-boy.
-
-Whoever undertakes the area to be laid out, whether it is the
-municipality or a public land company, should see that the planning is
-done on a large scale. The injury wrought to towns hitherto has been
-often due to the narrowness of personal interests and the limitation of
-the acres dealt with, both of which dim the far sight. The almost
-unconscious influence of dealing with a wide area is shown in existing
-schemes, which have been undertaken by owners of large estates, whether
-the area be planned for an industrial village, such as Mr. Lever’s at
-Port Sunlight, or for a housing-reform scheme like Mr. Cadbury’s at
-Bournville; or to accommodate the leisured, as the Duke of Devonshire’s
-at Eastbourne, or the artistic, as Mr. Comyns Carr’s at Bedford Park; or
-to create a fresh commercial city, as conceived by Mr. Ebenezer Howard
-at Letchworth; or to house all classes in attractive surroundings as at
-the Hampstead Garden Suburb. Whatever be the purpose, the fact of a
-large area has influenced them all. It has had, as it were, something of
-the same effect as the opportunity of the Sistine Chapel had on Michael
-Angelo. The population to be accommodated was large enough to require
-its own places of worship, public halls, or clubs, its schools, and
-recreation-grounds. So the lines were drawn with a generous hand, and
-human needs considered, with a view to their provision within the
-confines of the estate, instead of being treated as the organ-grinder,
-and advised to seek satisfaction in the next street--or accommodation on
-neighbouring land.
-
-The idea of town or suburb planning has not yet found its way into the
-minds which dominate local Public Authorities, but a few examples will
-doubtless awaken them to the benefits of the Act, if not from the
-æsthetic, yet from the economic point of view, and then borough or ward
-boundaries will become as unnoticeable for town-planning purposes as
-ecclesiastical parish ones now are for educational administration.
-
-Foremost among the problems will be the allotment of different positions
-of the area under consideration to different classes of society, or
-perhaps it would be better to say different standards of income.
-
-No one can view with satisfaction any town, whether in England, America,
-or the Colonies, where the poor, the strenuous, and the untutored live
-as far as possible removed from the rich, the leisured, and the
-cultivated. The divorce is injurious to both. Too commonly is it
-supposed that the poor only suffer from the separation, but those who
-have the privilege of friendships among the working-people know that the
-wealthy lose more by not making their acquaintance than can possibly be
-computed.
-
-“I often advise you to make friends,” said the late Dr. Jowett to a body
-of undergraduates assembled in Balliol Hall to hearken to my husband and
-Mr. C. S. Loch, as they spoke of the inhabitants of East or South London
-in the early ’seventies, but “now I will add further advice: Make some
-of your friends among the poor.”
-
-Excellent as the advice is, it is hardly possible to follow when certain
-classes live at one end of the town, and other classes dwell in the
-extreme opposite district. It may be given to the few to create
-artificial methods of meeting, but to the large mass of people, so long
-as they live in separate neighbourhoods, they must remain ignorant of
-each other to a very real, if undefinable, loss--the loss of
-understanding, mutual respect, and that sense of peace which comes when
-one sits in the parlour and knows the servants are doing their best, or
-works in the kitchen and knows that those who govern are directed by a
-large-hearted sympathy. Again and again in 1905-6, when the idea of
-provision being made for all classes of society in the Hampstead Garden
-Suburb was being submitted to the public, I was told that the cultivated
-would never live voluntarily in the neighbourhood of the industrial
-classes, but I was immensely surprised when I laid the scheme before a
-leading workman and trade-unionist to be told:--
-
-“It is all very nice as you say it, Mrs. Barnett, but I’m mistaken if
-you will find any self-respecting workman who cares to bring his family
-to live alongside of the rich. They’re a bad example with their
-pleasure-loving sons and idle, vain daughters, always thinking of
-dressing, and avoiding work and natural duties as if they were sins.”
-
-The acceptance of society newspaper paragraphs and divorce reports as
-accurate and exhaustive accounts of the lives of the leisured, even by
-thinking workmen, serves as an additional evidence of the need of common
-neighbourhood to correct so dangerous and disintegrating a view.
-
-There can be no doubt but that Part III of the Housing Act of 1890 is,
-in so far as it affects recent town development, responsible for much of
-this lamentable ignorance, for under its powers provision can only be
-made to house the industrial classes, and thus whole neighbourhoods have
-grown up, as large in themselves as a small provincial town occupied by
-one class, or those classes the range of whose difference is represented
-by requiring two or three bedrooms, a “kitchen,” or a “parlour cottage”.
-
-That this segregation of classes into distinct areas is unnecessary as
-well as socially dangerous, is evidenced by many small English towns,
-such as Wareham, Godalming, Huntingdon, where the grouping together of
-all sorts of people has taken place under normal conditions of growth,
-as well as in the Garden Suburb at Hampstead, where the areas to house
-people of various degrees of income were clearly defined in the original
-plan, and have been steadfastly adhered to. In that estate the rents
-range from tenements of 3s. 3d. a week to houses standing in their own
-gardens of rentals to £250 a year, united by cottages, villas, and
-houses priced at every other figure within that gamut. The inhabitants
-can dwell there as owners, or by renting their dwellings, or through the
-welcoming system and elastic doors of the co-partners, or as weekly
-tenants in the usual way. No sort of difficulty has arisen, and the
-often-expressed fears have proved groundless. Indeed, the result of the
-admixture of all classes has been a kindlier feeling and a richer
-sympathy, as people of varied experience, different educational
-standards, and unequal incomes feel themselves drawn together in the
-enjoyment of good music, in the discussion of social problems, in the
-preparation by their children of such a summer’s day festival as the
-“Masque of Fairthorpe,” or to enjoy the unaffected pleasure of the
-public open spaces and wall-less gardens.
-
-In England we have not yet reached the gorgeous, riotous generosity of
-the Americans, who plan parks by the mile, and cheerfully spend, as
-Boston did, £7,500,000 for a girdle of parks, woods, meadows, sea and
-lake embankments; or vote, as Chicago did, £3,600,000 for the creation
-of a connected system of twenty-two parks; but we in humbler England
-have some ground for congratulation, that, as a few years ago a
-flowerless open space was counted adequate, now a well-kept garden is
-desired; but on the definition of their uses and the difficulties of
-their upkeep something has yet to be said.
-
-Every one has seen derelict open spaces, squares, crescents,
-three-angled pieces of ground deliberately planned to create beauty, but
-allowed to become the resting places of too many weary cats or disused
-household utensils, the grass neither mown, protected, nor re-sown. “The
-children like it kept so,” people say, but I doubt if they do. In
-Westminster there are two open spaces, one planted and cared for, the
-other just an unkept open space. Both face south, both overlook the
-river, both are open free, but the children flock into the garden,
-leaving the open space drearily empty. It is to be regretted, for their
-noise, even when it is happy shouting and not discordant wrangling, is
-disturbing to those whose strenuous lives necessitate that they take
-their exercise or rest without disturbance. But, on the other hand, the
-children are entitled to their share of the garden, and those
-“passionless reformers,” order, beauty, colour, may perhaps speak their
-messages more effectually into ears when they are young.
-
-The solution of the difficulty has been found by the Germans in their
-thoughtful planning of parks, and few things were more delightful in the
-Town-planning Exhibition than the photographs of the children paddling
-in the shallow pools, making castles (I saw no sign of fortifications!)
-in the sand, playing rough running games on gravel slopes, or quieter
-make-believes in the spinneys, all specially provided in specially
-allocated children’s areas. Isolated instances of such provision are
-existent in our English parks, but the principle, that some people are
-entitled to public peace as well as others to public play, is not yet
-recognized, and that there should be zones in which noise is permitted,
-and zones in which silence must be maintained is as yet an inconceivable
-restriction. So the children usually shout, race, scream, or squabble
-amid the grown-ups, kept even in such order as they are by the fear of
-the park-keeper, whom their consciences encourage them to credit with
-supernatural powers of observation. He is usually a worthy, patient man,
-but an expensive adjunct, and one who could sometimes be dispensed with
-if the children’s “sphere of influence” were clearly defined. The
-promiscuous presence of children affects also both the standard of cost
-of the upkeep of open spaces, although the deterioration of their
-standard is more often due to the lapse of the authority who created
-them.
-
-It is because the changes of circumstances so frequently affect
-disastrously the appearance of public spaces that I would offer for
-consideration the suggestion that they should be placed under the care
-of the municipality, under stringent covenants concerning their uses,
-purposes, maintenance, and reservation for the inhabitants of special
-dwellings. This step would not, of course, be necessary where the owner
-or company still holds the land, but in cases where the houses for which
-the square or joint garden was provided have each strayed into separate
-ownership, and their ground-rents treated only as investments, then
-everyone’s duty usually becomes no one’s duty, and the garden drops into
-a neglected home for “unconsidered trifles”. I could quote instances of
-this, not only in East London, but in Clifton, Reading, Ventnor, York,
-or give brighter examples of individual effort and enthusiasm which have
-awakened the interest of the neighbours to take pride in the appearance,
-and pay towards the upkeep, of their common pleasance.
-
-The arguments in favour of the municipality having the care of these
-publicly enjoyed or semi-private open spaces would be the advantages of
-a higher gardening standard, the economy of interchange of roots, seeds,
-and tools, the benefit of a staff large enough to meet seasonal needs,
-the stimulating competition of one garden against another, and the
-additional gift of beauty to the passers-by, who could thus share
-without intrusion the fragrance of the flowers and the melody of
-symphonies in colour.
-
-“But how can the public enjoy the gardens when they are usually behind
-walls?” I hear that delightful person, the deadly practical man, murmur;
-and this brings me to another question, “Are walls round open spaces
-necessary?”
-
-English people seem to have adopted the idea that it is essential to
-surround their parks and gardens with visible barriers, perhaps because
-England is surrounded by the sea--a very visible line of demarcation;
-but, in the stead of a dancing joy, a witchful barrier, uniting while it
-separates, they have put up grim hard walls, ugly dividing fences,
-barriers which challenge trespass, and make even the law-abiding citizen
-desire to climb over and see what is on the other side.
-
-It is extraordinary how firmly established is the acceptance of the
-necessity of walls and protection. Nearly thirty-five years ago, when
-the first effort was made to plant Mile End Road with trees, and to make
-its broad margins gracious with shrubs and plants, we were met by the
-argument that they would not be safe without high railings. I recall the
-croakings of those who combated the proposal to open Leicester Square to
-the public, and who of us has not listened to the regrets of the
-landowner on the expense entailed by his estate boundary fences?
-
-If you say, “Why make them so high, or keep them up so expensively, as
-you do not preserve your game? Why not have low hedges or short open
-fences, over which people can see and enjoy your property?” he will look
-at you with a gentle pity, thinking of you as a deluded idealist, or
-perhaps his expression will change into something not so gentle as it
-dawns on him that, though one is the respectable wife of a respectable
-Canon, yet one may be holding “some of those--Socialist theories”.
-
-Not long ago I went at the request of a gentleman who owned property,
-with his agent to see if suggestions could be made to improve the
-appearance of his estate and the happiness of his tenants. The gardens
-were small enough to be valueless, but between and around each were
-walls, many in bad repair.
-
-“The first thing I should do would be to pull down those walls, and let
-the air in; things will then grow, self-respect as well as flowers,” I
-said.
-
-“What!” exclaimed the agent, “pull down the walls? Why, what would the
-men have to lean against?” thus conjuring up the vision one has so often
-seen of men leaning listlessly against the public-house walls, a sight
-which the possession of a garden, large enough to be profitable as well
-as pleasurable, ought to do much to abolish.
-
-It is difficult to find arguments for walls. In many towns of America
-the gardens are wall-less, the public scrupulously observing the rights
-of ownership. In the Hampstead Garden Suburb all the gardens are
-wall-less, both public and private. The flowers bloom with the
-voluptuous abundance produced by virgin soil, but they remain untouched,
-not only by the inhabitants, which, of course, is to be expected, but by
-the thousands of visitors who come to see the realization of the
-much-talked-of scheme, and respect the property as they share its
-pleasures.
-
-In town-planning literature and talk much is said about houses, roads,
-centre-points to design, architectural features, treatment of junctions,
-and many other items both important and interesting; but the tone of
-thought pervading all that I have yet read is that it is the healthy and
-happy, the respectable and the prosperous, for whom all is to be
-arranged. It takes all sorts to make a world, and the town planner who
-excludes in his arrangements the provision for the lonely, the sick, the
-sorrowful, and the handicapped will lose from the midst of the community
-some of its greatest moral teachers.
-
-The children should be specially welcomed amid improved or beautiful
-surroundings, for the impressions made in youth last through life, and
-on the standards adopted by the young will depend the nation’s welfare.
-A vast army of children are wholly supported by the State, some 100,000,
-while to them can be added nearly 200,000 more for whom the public purse
-is partly responsible. In town planning the needs of these children
-should be considered, and the claims of the sick openly met.
-
-Hospitals are intended to help the sick poor, so, in planning the town
-or its growth, suitable sites should be chosen in relation to the
-population who require such aid; but in London many hospitals are
-clustered in the centre of the town, are enlarged, rebuilt, or improved
-on the old positions, though the people’s homes and workshops have been
-moved miles away; thus the sick suffer in body and become poorer in
-purse, as longer journeys have to be undertaken after accidents, or when
-as out-patients they need frequent attention.
-
-The wicked, the naughty, the sick, the demented, the sorrowful, the
-blind, the halt, the maimed, the old, the handicapped, the children are
-facts--facts to be faced, facts which demand thought, facts which should
-be reckoned with in town planning--for all, even the first-named, can be
-helped by being surrounded with “whatsoever things are pure, whatsoever
-things are lovely, and whatsoever things are of good report”.
-
-Every one who has been to Canada must have been struck with the evidence
-of faith in educational appreciation which the Canadians give in the
-preparation of their vast teaching centres.
-
-“What impressed me greatly,” said Mr. Henry Vivian in his speech at the
-dinner given in his honour on his return from the Dominion, “was the
-preparation that the present people have made for the education of the
-future people,” and he described the planning of one University, whose
-buildings, sports-grounds, roads, hostels, and gardens were to cover
-1300 acres. Compare that with the statement of the Secretary of a
-Borough Council Education Authority, who told me the other day, with
-congratulatory pleasure, that long negotiations had at last obtained one
-acre and a quarter for the building of a secondary school and a
-hoped-for three acres some distance off for the boys’ playground.
-
-The town planning of the future will make, it is to be hoped, generous
-provision for educational requirements, and not only for the inhabitants
-of the immediate locality. As means of transit become both cheaper and
-easier, it will be recognized as a gain for young people to go out of
-town to study, into purer air, away from nerve-wearing noise, amid
-flowers and trees, and with an outlook on a wider sky, itself an
-elevating educational influence both by day and night.
-
-The need of what may be called artificial town addition can only concern
-the elder nations, who have, scattered over their lands, splendid
-buildings in the centre of towns that have ceased to grow. As an
-example, I would quote Ely. What a glorious Cathedral! kept in dignified
-elderly repair, its Deans, Canons, Minors, lay-clerks, and choir, all
-doing their respective daily duties in leading worship; but, alas! there
-the population is so small (7713 souls) that the response by worshippers
-is necessarily inadequate--the output bears no proportion to the return.
-Beauty, sweetness, and light are wasted there and West Ham exists, with
-its 267,000 inhabitants, its vast workshops and factories, its miles of
-mean streets of drab-coloured “brick boxes with slate lids”--and no
-Cathedral, no group of kind, leisured clergy to leaven the heavy dough
-of mundane, cheerless toil.
-
-If town planning could be treated nationally, it might be arranged that
-Government factories could be established in Ely. Army clothiers,
-stationery manufactories, gunpowder depôts would bring the workers in
-their train. A suitable expenditure of the Public Works Loans money
-would cause the cottages to appear; schools would then arise, shops and
-lesser businesses, which population always brings into existence, would
-be started; and the Cathedral would become a House of Prayer, not only
-to the few religious ones who now rejoice in the services, but for the
-many whose thoughts would be uplifted by the presence in their midst of
-the stately witness of the Law of Love, and whose lives would be
-benefited by the helpful thought and wise consideration of those whose
-profession it is to serve the people.
-
-Pending great changes, something might perhaps be done if individual
-owners and builders would consider the appearance, not only of the house
-they are building, but of the street or road of which it forms a part. A
-few months ago, in the bright sunshine, I stood on a hill-top, facing a
-delightful wide view, on a newly developed estate, and, pencil in hand,
-wrote the colours and materials of four houses standing side by side.
-This is the list:--
-
-No. 1 HOUSE.--Roof, grey slates; walls, white plaster with red brick;
-yellow-painted woodwork; red chimneys.
-
-No. 2 HOUSE.--Roof, purpley-red tiles; walls, buff rough cast;
-brown-painted woodwork; yellow chimneys.
-
-No. 3 HOUSE.--Roof, orangey-red tiles; walls, grey-coloured rough cast;
-white-painted woodwork; red chimneys.
-
-No. 4 HOUSE.--Roof, crimson-red tiles; walls, stone-coloured rough cast;
-peacock-blue paint; red chimneys.
-
-This bare list tells of the inharmonious relation of colours, but it
-cannot supply the variety of tones of red, nor yet the mixture of lines,
-roof-angles, balcony or bow projections, one of which ran up to the top
-of a steep-pitched roof, and was castellated at the summit. The road was
-called “Bon-Accord”. One has sometimes to thank local authorities for
-unconscious jokes.
-
-My space is filled, and even a woman’s monologue must conclude some
-time! But one paragraph more may be taken to put in a plea for space for
-an Open-air Museum. It need not be a large and exhaustive one, for there
-is something to be said for not making museums “too bright and good for
-human nature’s daily food”. There might be objects of museum interest
-scattered in groups about the green girdle which the young among my
-readers will, I trust, live to see round all great towns; or an open-air
-exhibit on a limited subject might be provided, as the late Mr. Burt
-arranged so charmingly at Swanage; or the Shakespeare Gardens, already
-started in some of the London County Council parks, might be further
-developed; or the more ambitious schemes of Stockholm and Copenhagen
-intimated; but whichever model is adopted the idea of open-air museums
-(which might be stretched to include bird sanctuaries) is one which
-should find a place in the gracious environment of our well-ordered
-towns when they have come under the law and the gospel of the
-Town-planning Act.
-
- HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE MISSION OF MUSIC.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- July, 1899.
-
- [1] From “International Journal of Ethics”. By permission of the
-Editor.
-
-
-“We must have something light or comic.” So say those who provide music
-for the people, and their words represent an opinion which is almost
-universal with regard to the popular taste. The uneducated, it is
-thought, must be unable to appreciate that which is refined or to enjoy
-that which does not make them laugh and be merry.
-
-Opinions exist, especially with regard to the tastes and wants of the
-poor, by the side of facts altogether inconsistent with those opinions.
-There are facts within the knowledge of some who live in the East End of
-London which are sufficient, at any rate, to shake this general opinion
-as to the people’s taste in music.
-
-In Whitechapel, where so many philanthropists have tried “to patch with
-handfuls of coal and rice” the people’s wants, the signs of ignorance
-are as evident as the signs of poverty. There is an almost complete
-absence of those influences which are hostile to the ignorance, not,
-indeed, of the mere elements of knowledge (the Board Schools are now
-happily everywhere prominent), but to the ignorance of joy, truth, and
-beauty. Utility and the pressure of work have crowded house upon house;
-have filled the shops with what is only cheap, driven away the
-distractions of various manners and various dresses, and made the place
-weary to the body and depressing to the mind.
-
-Nevertheless, in this district a crowd has been found willing, on many a
-winter’s night, to come and listen to parts of an oratorio or to
-selections of classical music. The oratorios have sometimes been given
-in a church by various bodies of amateurs who have practised together
-for the purpose; the concerts have been given in schoolrooms on Sunday
-evenings by professionals of reputation. To the oratorios men and women
-have come, some of them from the low haunts kept around the city by its
-carelessly administered charity, all of them of the class which, working
-for its daily bread, has no margin of time for study. Amid those who are
-generally so independent of restraint, who cough and move as they will,
-there has been a death-like stillness as they have listened to some fine
-solo of Handel’s. On faces which are seldom free of the marks of care,
-except in the excitement of drink, a calm has seemed to settle and tears
-to flow, for no reason but because “it is so beautiful!” Sometimes the
-music has appeared to break gradually down barriers that shut out some
-poor fellow from a fairer past or a better future than his present: the
-oppressive weight of the daily care lifts, other sights are in his
-vision, and at last, covering his face or sinking on his knees, he makes
-prayers which cannot be uttered. Sometimes it has seemed to seize one on
-business bent, to transport him suddenly to another world, and, not
-knowing what he feels, has forced him to say, “It was good to be here”.
-A church filled with hundreds of East Londoners, affected, doubtless, in
-different ways, but all silent, reverent, and self-forgetful, is a sight
-not to be forgotten or to be held to have no meaning. To the concerts
-have crowded hard-headed, unimaginative men, described in a local paper
-as being “friends of Bradlaugh”. These have listened to and evidently
-taken in difficult movements of Beethoven, Schumann, and Chopin. The
-loud applause which has followed some moments of strained, rapt
-attention has proclaimed the universal feeling.
-
-With a knowledge of the character of the music, the applications for
-admission have increased, and the announcement of a hope that the
-concerts might be continued the following winter, and possibly also
-extended to weekday evenings, has brought from some of those present an
-expression of their desire for other high-class music. The poor quarters
-of cities have been too long treated as if their inhabitants were
-deficient in that which is noblest in human nature. Human beings want
-not something which will do, but the best.
-
-If it be asked what proof there be that such music has a permanent
-effect on the hearers, the only answer is that people do not always know
-how they have been most influenced. It is the air unconsciously breathed
-which affects the cure much more often than the medicine so consciously
-taken. Music may most deeply and permanently affect those who themselves
-can express no appreciation with their words or show results in their
-lives. Like the thousand things which surrounds the child and which he
-never notices, music may largely serve in the formation of character and
-the satisfaction of life. That the performance of this music in the East
-End is not followed by expressions of intelligent appreciation or by
-immediate change of life is no proof of its failure to influence. The
-fact that crowds come to listen is sufficient to make the world
-reconsider its opinion that the people care only for what is light or
-laugh-compelling. There is evidently in the highest music something
-which finds a response in many minds not educated to understand its
-mysteries nor interested in its creation. This suggests that music has
-in the present time a peculiar mission.
-
-“Man doth not live by bread alone,” expresses a truth which even those
-will allow who profess themselves careless about present-day religion.
-There is in human beings, in those whom the rich think to satisfy by
-increased wages and improved dwellings, a need of something beyond. The
-man who has won an honourable place, who by punctuality, honesty, and
-truthfulness has become the trusted servant of his employer, is often
-weary with the very monotony of his successful life. He has bread in
-abundance, but, unsatisfied, he dreams of filling quite another place in
-the world, perhaps as the leader daring much for others, perhaps as the
-patriot suffering much for his class and country, or perhaps as the poet
-living in others’ thoughts. There flits before him a vision of a fuller
-life, and the vision stirs in him a longing to share such life. The
-woman, too, who in common talk is the model wife and mother, whose days
-are filled with work, whose talk is of her children’s wants, whose life
-seems so even and uneventful, so complete in its very prosaicness, she,
-if she could be got to speak out the thoughts which flit through her
-brain as she silently plies her needle or goes about her household
-duties, would tell of strange longings for quite another sort of life,
-of passions and aspirations which have been scarcely allowed to take
-form in her mind. There is no one to whom “omens that would astonish
-have not predicted a future and uncovered a past”.
-
-Beyond the margin of material life is a spiritual life. This life has
-been and may still be believed to be the domain of religion, that which
-science has not known and can never know, which material things have not
-helped and can never help. It has been the glory of religion to develop
-the longing to be something higher and nobler by revealing to men the
-God, Who is higher than themselves.
-
-Religion having abdicated this domain to invade that of science has
-to-day suffered by becoming the slave of æsthetic and moral precepts.
-Her professors often yield themselves to the influence of form and
-colour or boast only of their morality and philanthropy.
-
-It is no wonder, therefore, that many who are in earnest and feel that
-neither ritualism nor philanthropy have special power to satisfy their
-natures, reject religion. But they will not, if they are fair to
-themselves, object to the strengthening of that power which they must
-allow to have been a source of noble endeavour and of the very science
-whose reign they acknowledge. The sense of something better than their
-best, making itself felt not in outward circumstance but inwardly in
-their hearts, has often been the spring of effort and of hope. It is
-because the forms of present-day religion give so little help to
-strengthen this sense, that so many now speak slightingly of religion
-and profess their independence of its forms. Religion, in fact, is
-suffering for want of expression.
-
-In other times men felt that the words of the Prayer Book and phrases
-now labelled “theological” did speak out, or at any rate did give some
-form to their vague, indistinct longing to be something else and
-something more; while the picture of God, drawn from the Bible history
-and Bible words, gave an object to their longing, making them desire to
-be like Him and to enjoy Him for ever.
-
-In these days, however, historical criticism and scientific discoveries
-have made the old expressions seem inadequate to state man’s longings or
-to picture God’s character. The words of prayers, whether the written
-prayers of the English Church or that rearrangement of old expressions
-called “extempore prayer,” do not at once fit in with the longings of
-those to whom, in these later days, sacrifice has taken other forms and
-life other possibilities. The descriptions of God, involving so much
-that is only marvellous, jar against minds which have had hints of the
-grandeur of law and which have been awed not by miracles but by
-holiness. The petitions for the joys of heaven do not always meet the
-needs of those who have learnt that what they are is of more consequence
-than what they have, and the anthropomorphic descriptions of the
-character of God make Him seem less than many men who are not jealous,
-nor angry, nor revengeful.
-
-Words and thoughts alike often fail to satisfy modern wants. While
-prayers are being said, the listless attitude and wandering gaze of
-those in whose souls are the deepest needs and loftiest aspirations,
-proclaim the failure. Religion has not failed, but only its power of
-expressing itself. There lives still in man that which gropes after God,
-but it can find no form in which to clothe itself. The loss is no light
-one. Expression is necessary to active life, and without it, at any
-rate, some of the greater feelings of human nature must suffer loss of
-energy and be isolated in individuals. Free exercise will give those
-feelings strength; the power of utterance will teach men that they are
-not alone when they are their best selves.
-
-The world has been moved to many a crusade by a picture of suffering
-humanity, and the darkness of heathenism calls forth missionaries of one
-Church and another. Almost as moving a picture might be drawn of those
-who wanting much can express nothing. Here are men and women, bone of
-our bone, flesh of our flesh: they have that within them which raises
-them above all created things, powers by which they are allied to all
-whom the world honours, faculties by which they might find unfailing
-joy. But they have no form of expression and so they live a lower life,
-walking by sight, not by faith, giving rein to powers which find their
-satisfaction near at hand, and developing faculties in the use of which
-there is more of pain than joy. The power which has been the spring of
-so much that is helpful to the world seems to be dead in them; that
-sense which has enabled men to stand together as brothers, trusting one
-another as common possessors of a Divine spark, seems to be without
-existence. A few may go on walking grimly the path of duty, but for the
-mass of mankind life has lost its brightness. Dullness unrelieved by
-wealth, and loneliness undispersed by dissipation, are the common lot.
-In a sense more terrible than ever, men are like children walking in the
-night with no language but a cry. He that will give them the means once
-more to express what they really are and what they really want will
-break the bondage.
-
-The fact that the music of the great masters does stir something in most
-men’s natures should be a reason for trying whether music might not, at
-any rate partially, express the religious life of the present day.
-
-There is much to be said in favour of such an experiment. On the one
-side there is the failure of existing modes of expression. The
-prettinesses of ritualism and the social efforts of Broad Churchism,
-even for the comparatively small numbers who adopt these forms of
-worship, do not meet those longings of the inner life which go beyond
-the love of beauty and beyond the love of neighbours. The vast majority
-of the people belong to neither ritualism nor Broad Churchism; they
-live, at best, smothering their aspirations in activity; at worst, in
-dissipation, having forsaken duty as well as God. Their morality has
-followed their religion. In the East End of London this is more
-manifest, not because the people of the East are worse than the people
-of the West, but because the people of the East have no call to seem
-other than they are. Amid many signs hopeful for the future there is
-also among East Londoners, unblushingly declared at every street-corner,
-the self-indulgence which robs the young and weak of that which is their
-right, education and protection; the vice which saps a nation’s strength
-is boasted of in the shop and flaunted in the highways, and the
-selfishness which is death to a man is often the professed ground of
-action.
-
-Morality for the mass of men has been dependent on the consciousness of
-God, and with the lack of means of expression the consciousness of God
-seems to have ceased. On this ground alone there would be reason for
-making an experiment with music, if only because it offers itself as a
-possible means of that expression which the consciousness of God
-supports. And, on the other side, there is the natural fitness of music
-for the purpose.
-
-In the first place, the great musical compositions may be asserted to
-be, not arrangements which are the results of study and the application
-of scientific principles, but the results of inspiration. The master,
-raised by his genius above the level of common humanity to think fully
-what others think only in part, and to see face to face what others see
-only darkly, puts into music the thoughts which no words can utter and
-the descriptions which no tongue can tell. What he himself would be, his
-hopes, his fears, his aspirations, what he himself sees of that holiest
-and fairest which has haunted his life, he tells by his art. Like the
-prophets, having had a vision of God, his music proclaims what he
-himself would desire to be, and expresses the emotions of his higher
-nature.
-
-If this be a correct account of the meaning of those great masterpieces
-which may every day be performed in the ears of the people, it is easy
-to see how they may be made to serve the purpose in view. The greatest
-master is a man with much in him akin to the lowest of the human race.
-The homage all pay to the great is but the assertion of this kinship,
-the assertion of men’s claim to be like the great when the obstructions
-of their mal-formation and mal-education shall be trained away. Men
-generally will, therefore, find in that which expresses the thoughts of
-the greatest the means of expressing their own thoughts. The music which
-enfolds the passions that have never found utterance, that have never
-been realized by the ordinary man, will somehow appeal to him and make
-him recognize his true self and his true object. Music being itself the
-expression of the wants of man, all who share in man’s nature will find
-in it an expression for longings and visions for which no words are
-adequate. It will be what prayers and meditations now so often fail to
-be, a means of linking men with the source of the highest thoughts and
-efforts, and of enabling them to enjoy God, a joy which so few now
-understand.
-
-More than this, the best existing expression of that which men have
-found to be good has been by parables, whose meanings have not been
-limited to time or place but are of universal application. Heard by
-different people and at different times, parables have given to all
-alike a conception of that which eye cannot see nor voice utter; each
-hearer in each age has gained possibly a different conception, but in
-the use of the same words all have felt themselves to be united. The
-parable of the prodigal son has represented the God who has been won to
-love by the sacrifice of Christ and also the God who freely forgives.
-Such forms of expression it is most important to have in an age when
-movement is so rapid that things become old as soon as they are new,
-separating to-morrow those who have stood together to-day, and when at
-the same time the longing for unity is so powerful that the thought of
-it acts as a charm on men’s minds.
-
-In some degree all art is a parable, as it makes known in a figure that
-which is unknown, revealing the truth the artist has felt to others just
-in so far as they by education and surroundings have been qualified to
-understand it. Titian’s picture of the Assumption helped the mediæval
-saint to worship better the Virgin Mother, and also helps those of our
-day to realize the true glory of womanhood.
-
-But music, even more than painting and poetry, fulfils this condition.
-It reveals that which the artist has seen, and reveals it with no
-distracting circumstance of subject, necessary to the picture or the
-poem. The hearer who listens to a great composition is not drawn aside
-to think of some historical or romantic incident; he is free to think of
-that of which such incidents are but the clothes. Age succeeds to age;
-the music which sounded in the ears of the fathers sounds also in the
-ears of the children. Place and circumstance force men asunder, but
-still for those of every party or sect and for those in every quarter of
-the world the great works of the masters of music remain. The works may
-be performed in the West End or in the East End--the hearers will have
-different conceptions, will see from different points of view the vision
-which inspired the master, but will nevertheless have the sense that the
-music which serves all alike creates a bond of union.
-
-Music then would seem fitted to be in this age the expression of that
-which men in their inmost hearts most reverence. Creeds have ceased to
-express this and have become symbols of division rather than of unity!
-Music is a parable, telling in sounds which will not change of that
-which is worthy of worship, telling it to each hearer just in so far as
-he by nature and circumstance is able to understand it, but giving to
-all that feeling of common life and assurance of sympathy which has in
-old times been the strength of the Church. By music, men may be helped
-to find God who is not far from any one of us, and be brought again
-within reach of that tangible sympathy, the sympathy of their
-fellow-creatures.
-
-There is, however, still one other requisite in a perfect form of
-religious expression. The age is new and thoughts are new, but
-nevertheless they are rooted in the past. More than any one acknowledges
-is he under the dominion of the buried ages. He who boasts himself
-superior to the superstitions of the present is the child of parents
-whose high thoughts, now transmitted to their child, were intertwined
-with those superstitions. Any form of expression therefore which aims at
-covering emotions said to be new must, like these emotions, have
-associations with the past. A brand new form of worship, agreeable to
-the most enlightened reason and surrounded with that which the present
-asserts to be good, would utterly fail to express thoughts and feelings,
-which, if born of the present, share the nature of parents who lived in
-the past. It is interesting to notice how machines and institutions
-which are the product of the latest thought bear in their form traces of
-that which they have superseded; the railway carriage suggests the
-stage-coach, and the House of Commons reminds us of the Saxon
-Witanagemot. The absolutely new would have no place in this old world,
-and a new form of expression could not express the emotions of the inner
-life.
-
-Music which offers a form in which to clothe the yearnings of the
-present has been associated with the corresponding yearnings of the
-past, and would seem therefore to fulfil the necessary condition. Those
-who to-day feel music telling out their deepest wants and proclaiming
-their praise of the good and holy, might recognize in the music echoes
-of the songs which broke from the lips of Miriam and David, of Ambrose
-and Gregory, and of those simple peasants who one hundred years ago were
-stirred to life on the moors of Cornwall and Wales.
-
-The fact that music has been thus associated with religious life gives
-it an immense, if an unrecognized power. The timid are encouraged and
-the bold are softened! When the congregation is gathered together and
-the sounds rise which are full of that which is and perhaps always will
-be “ineffable,” there float in, also, memories of other sounds, poor
-perhaps and uncouth, in which simple people have expressed their prayers
-and praises; the atmosphere, as it were, becomes religious, and all feel
-that the music is not only beautiful, but the means of bringing them
-nearer to the God after Whom they have sought so long and often
-despaired to find.
-
-For these reasons music seems to have a natural fitness for becoming the
-expression of the inner life. The experiment, at any rate, may be easily
-tried. There is in every parish a church with an organ, and arrangements
-suitable for the performance of grand oratorios; there are concert halls
-or schoolrooms suitable for the performance of classical music. There
-are many individuals and societies with voices and instruments capable
-of rendering the music of the masters. Most of them have, we cannot
-doubt, the enthusiasm which would induce them to give their services to
-meet the needs of their fellow-creatures.
-
-Money has been and is freely subscribed for the support of missions
-seeking to meet bodily and spiritual wants; music will as surely be
-given by those who have felt its power to meet that need of expression
-which so far keeps the people without the consciousness of God. Members
-of ethical societies, who have taught themselves to fix their eyes on
-moral results, may unite with members of churches who care also for
-religious things. Certain it is that people who are able to realize
-grand ideals will be likely in their own lives to do grand things, and
-doing them make the world better and themselves happier.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE REAL SOCIAL REFORMER.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- January, 1910.
-
- [1] From “The Manchester Weekly Times”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-The world is out of joint. Reformers have in every age tried to put it
-right. But still Society jerks and jolts as it journeys over the road of
-life. The rich fear the poor, the poor suspect the rich, there is strife
-and misunderstanding; children flicker out a few days’ life in sunless
-courts, and honoured old age is hidden in workhouses; people starve
-while food is wasted in luxurious living, and the cry always goes up,
-“Who will show us any good?”
-
-The response to that cry is the appearance of the Social Reformer.
-Philanthropists have brought forward scheme after scheme to relieve
-poverty, and politicians have passed laws to remove abuses. Their
-efforts have been magnificent and the immediate results not to be
-gainsaid, but in counting the gains the debit side must not be
-forgotten. Philanthropists weaken as well as strengthen society; law
-hinders as well as helps. When a body of people assume good doing as a
-special profession, there will always be a tendency among some of their
-neighbours to go on more unconcerned about evil, and among others to
-offer themselves as subjects for this good doing. The world may be
-better for its philanthropists, but when after such devotion it remains
-so terribly out of joint the question arises whether good is best done
-by a class set apart as Social Reformers.
-
-There is an often-quoted saying of a monk in the twelfth century: “The
-age of the Son is passing, the age of the Spirit is coming”. He saw that
-the need of the world would not always be for a leader or for a class of
-leaders, but rather for a widely diffused spirit.
-
-The present moment is remarkable for the number of societies, leagues,
-and institutions which are being started. There never were so many
-leaders offering themselves to do good, so many schemes demanding
-support. The Charities Register reveals agencies which are ready to deal
-with almost any conceivable ill, and it would seem that anyone desiring
-to help a neighbour might do so by pressing the button of one of these
-agencies. The agencies for each service are, indeed, so many, that other
-societies are formed now for their organization, and the would-be
-good-doer is thus relieved even from inquiring as to that which is the
-best fitted for his purpose.
-
-The hope of the monk is deferred, and it seems as if it were the
-leaders and not the spirit of the people which is to secure social
-reform. The question therefore presses itself whether the best
-social reformers are the philanthropists. Specialists always make
-a show of activity, but such a show is often the cover of widely
-spread indolence. Specialists in religion--the ecclesiastics--were
-never more active than when during the fifteenth century they built
-churches and restored the cathedrals, but underneath this activity
-was the popular indifference which almost immediately woke to take
-vengeance on such leaders. Specialists in social reform to-day--the
-philanthropists--raise great schemes, but many of their supporters are
-at heart indifferent. It really saves them trouble to create societies
-and to make laws. It is easier to subscribe money--even to sit on a
-committee--than to help one’s own neighbour. It is easier to promote
-Socialism than to be a Socialist. Activity in social reform movements
-may be covering popular indifference, and there is already a sign of
-the vengeance which awakened indifference may take in the cry dimly
-heard, “Curse your charity”.
-
-Better, it may be agreed, than great schemes--voluntary or legal--is the
-individual service of men and women who, putting heart and mind into
-their efforts, and co-operating together, take as their motto “One by
-One”; but again the same question presses itself in another form: Should
-the individual who aspires to serve his generation separate himself from
-the ordinary avocations of Society, and become a visitor or teacher?
-Should the business man divide his social reforming self from his
-business self, and keep, as he would say, his charity and his business
-apart?
-
-The world is rich in examples of devoted men and women who have given
-up pleasure and profit to serve others’ needs. The modern Press
-gives every day news of both the benefactions and the good deeds of
-business men who, as business men, think first, not of the kingdom of
-heaven, but of business profits. This specialization of effort--as the
-specialization of a class--has its good results; but is it the best,
-the only way of social reform? Is it not likely to narrow the heart of
-the good-doer and make him overkeen about his own plan? Will not the
-charity of a stranger, although it be designed in love and be carried
-out with thought, almost always irritate? Is it not the conception
-of society, which assumes one class dependent on the benevolence of
-another class, mediæval rather than modern? Can limbs which are out
-of joint be made to work smoothly by any application of oil and not
-by radical resetting? Is it reasonable that business men should look
-to cure with their gifts the injuries they have inflicted in their
-business, that they should build hospitals and give pensions out of
-profits drawn from the rents of houses unfit for human habitation, and
-gained from wages on which no worker could both live and look forward
-to a peaceful old age? Is it possible for a human being to divide his
-nature so as to be on the one side charitable and on the other side
-cruel?
-
-The question therefore as to the best Social Reformer, still waits an
-answer. Before attempting an answer it may be as well to glance at the
-moral causes to which social friction is attributed. Popular belief
-assumed that the designed selfishness of classes or of individuals lies
-at the root of every trouble. Bitter and fiery words are therefore
-spoken. Capitalists suspect the aspiring tyranny of trade unions to be
-compassing their ruin, workmen talk of the other classes using “their
-powers as selfish and implacable enemies of their rights”. Rich people
-incline to assume that the poor have designs on their property, and the
-poor suspect that every proposal of the rich is for their injury. The
-philosophy of life is very simple. “Every one seeketh reward,” and the
-daily Press gives ample evidence as to the way every class acts on that
-philosophy. But nevertheless experience reveals the good which is in
-every one. Mr. Galsworthy in his play, “The Silver Box,” pictures the
-conflict between rich and poor, between the young and the old. The pain
-each works on the other is grievous, there is hardness of heart and
-selfishness, but the reflection left by the play is not that anyone
-designed the pain of the other, but that for want of thought each
-misunderstood the other, and each did the wrong thing.
-
-The family whose members are so smugly content with the virtue which has
-secured wealth and comfort, whose charities are liberally supported, and
-kindness frequently done, where hospitality is ready, would feel itself
-unfairly charged if it were abused because it lived on abuses, and
-opposed any change which might affect the established order. The labour
-agitator, on the other hand, feels himself unfairly charged when he is
-attacked as designing change for his own benefit and accused of enmity
-because of his strong language. It may be that his words do mischief,
-but in his heart he is kindly and generous. There are criminals in every
-class, rich men who prey on poor men, and poor men who prey on rich men,
-but the criminal class is limited and the mass of men do not intend
-evil. The chief cause of social friction is, it may be said, not
-designed selfishness so much as the want of moral thoughtfulness. The
-rogue of the piece is not the criminal, but--you--I--every one.
-
-The recognition of this fact suggests that the best Social Reformer is
-not the philanthropist or the politician so much as the man or the woman
-who brings moral thoughtfulness into every act and relation of daily
-life.
-
-There is abundance of what may be called financial thoughtfulness, and
-people take much pains, not always with success--to inquire into the
-soundness of their investments and the solvency of their debtors. The
-Social Reformer who feels the obligation of moral thoughtfulness will
-take as much pains to inquire whether his profits come by others’ loss.
-He may not always succeed, but he will seek to know if the workers
-employed by his capital receive a living wage and are protected from the
-dangers of their trade. He will look to it that his tenants have houses
-which ought to make homes.
-
-There is much time spent in shopping, and women take great pains to
-learn what is fashionable or suited to their means. If they were morally
-thoughtful they would take as much pains to learn what sweated labour
-had been used so that things might be cheap; what suffering others had
-endured for their pleasure. They might not always succeed, but the fact
-of seeking would have its effect, and they would help to raise public
-opinion to a greater sense of responsibility.
-
-Pleasure-seekers are proverbially free-handed, they throw their money to
-passing beggars, they patronize any passing show which promises a
-moment’s amusement; greater moral thoughtfulness would not prevent their
-pleasure, but it would prevent them from making children greedy, so that
-they might enjoy the fun of watching a scramble, and from listening to
-songs or patronizing shows which degrade the performer. Gwendolen, in
-George Eliot’s “Daniel Deronda,” did not realize that the cruelty of
-gambling is taking profit by another’s loss, and so she laid the
-foundation of a tragedy. Pleasure-seekers who make the same mistake are
-responsible for some of the tragedies which disturb society.
-
-The Social Reformers who will do most to fit together the jarring joints
-of Society are, therefore, the man and woman who, without giving up
-their duties or their business, who without even taking up special
-philanthropic work are morally thoughtful as to their words and acts.
-They are, in old language, they who are in the world and not of the
-world. If any one says that such moral thoughtfulness spells bankruptcy,
-there are in the examples of business men and manufacturers a thousand
-answers, but reformers who have it in mind to lead the world right do
-not begin by asking as to their own reward. It is enough for them that
-as the ills of society come not from the acts of criminals who design
-the ills, but from the thousand and million unconsidered acts of men and
-women who pass as kindly and respectable people, they on their part set
-themselves to consider every one of their acts in relation to others’
-needs.
-
-The real Social Reformer is therefore the business man, the customer,
-the pleasure-seeker, who in his pursuits thinks first of the effect of
-those pursuits on the health and wealth of his partners in such
-pursuits. The spirit of moral thoughtfulness widely spread among rich
-and poor, employers and employed, better than the power of any leader or
-of any law, will most surely set right a world which is out of joint.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- WHERE CHARITY FAILS.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- January, 1907.
-
- [1] From “Pearson’s Weekly”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-I do not think that anyone will dispute the fact that our charity, taken
-as a whole, is administered in a somewhat wasteful and haphazard
-fashion. At the same time, however, I question whether the public is
-alive to the full extent of the evil arising from the utter lack of
-system in our administration of charity.
-
-For it is not merely the question of the waste of the public’s money,
-though that is bad enough; it is the far graver matter of the
-depreciation of our greatest national asset, character, by injudicious
-and indiscriminate philanthropy.
-
-Owing to the absence of any supreme charitable board or authority, and
-the lack of co-operation between charitable bodies, it is very tempting
-to a poor man to tell a lie to draw relief from many sources. He gets
-his food and loses his character.
-
-Indeed, I have no hesitation in saying that the present system directly
-encourages mendacity and mendicity, and, unless remedied, must
-inevitably affect the moral fibre of the nation.
-
-The want of co-operation already alluded to is, of course, at the root
-of the evil, so far as waste of money is concerned, and I am often asked
-why charitable bodies will not co-operate. My answer is that it is very
-often a case of pride in results. Officials do not wish to share the
-credit of their work; they want to be able to claim to their subscribers
-that they have spent more money or relieved more cases than their rival
-round the corner, just as hospitals are led to regard the number of
-patients they treat as the criterion of their usefulness.
-
-However, although I hold that hospitals might well extend their sphere
-from the cure to the prevention of disease, by taking more part in
-teaching people the laws of health and influencing them to keep such
-laws in their homes, I am not concerned with that question here, and
-mention hospitals only to introduce my first suggestion for charity
-reform.
-
-The operations for the King’s Hospital Fund have shown what can be done
-to check waste by bringing about a saving of £20,000 a year in the
-hospitals’ bills for provisions, etc.
-
-Until the King’s Hospital Fund was instituted there was no general
-knowledge of the comparative expenditure of hospitals on food, etc.,
-with the result that some paid exorbitant prices for certain articles
-and some for others. The action of the King’s Fund has equalized
-expenditure, with the result I have stated.
-
-Now it occurs to me that another board like the King’s Hospital Fund
-would be able to bring about a similar saving in the administration of
-other charities which now compete to the loss of money subscribed by the
-public for the public, and, as I have said, to the detriment of
-character.
-
-Such a Board would check waste and extravagance engendered by
-competition, and it could be brought into being as swiftly and
-effectively as was the King’s Hospital Fund.
-
-So much for an immediate measure, but I suggest as a more certain method
-that every twenty-five years or so there should be an inquiry by some
-authority, either national or local, into every philanthropic
-institution.
-
-The terms of reference of such inquiry might be: firstly, the economic
-and business-like character of the management; secondly, the way in
-which co-operation was welcomed, and whether something more could not be
-done for further co-operation; and lastly, the institution might be
-tried by the standard of its usefulness to its surroundings. For,
-remember, every charity which really exists for the public good ought to
-test itself by this question, “Is our aim that of self-extinction?” The
-truest charity, that is to say, should aim to remove the causes, not the
-symptoms of evil.
-
-But many shirk this self-inquisition, and linger on breeding mendicity,
-after their place has been taken by State or municipal organizations, or
-after they have ceased to fulfil any useful purpose.
-
-It may be that this public authority I suggest would not at once effect
-very much, but a public inquiry provides facts for public opinion to
-work upon, and thus inevitably brings reform.
-
-My final words, however, must again be as to the mischief liable to be
-done to character by thoughtless charity. People should think most
-carefully and solemnly before they give, lest they do more harm than
-good, and until our charity is properly organized and supervised, I fear
-that much money will be wasted on undeserving cases and in unnecessary
-and extravagant expenses of administration.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- LANDLORDISM UP TO DATE.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- August, 1912.
-
- [1] From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-“The position of landlord and tenant is often one of opposing
-interests.” This remark from the first number of the “Record” of the
-Hampstead Garden Suburb must commend itself as true to all readers of
-the daily Press. The “Record,” however, in two most interesting
-articles, shows that with landlordism up to date it need no longer be
-true. The Hampstead Garden Suburb Trust, of which Mr. Alfred Lyttelton
-is president, and Mrs. S. A. Barnett hon. manager, is the landlord of
-263 acres--shortly to be increased by another 400 acres, most of which
-will be worked in conjunction with the Co-Partnership Tenants. To meet
-the needs of the 25,000 people who will ultimately be housed on this
-unique estate the whole has been laid out with a view to the comfort of
-the people, including in the idea of “comfort” not only well-built
-houses with gardens, but also the opportunities for the interknowledge
-of various classes which alike enriches the minds of rich and poor. A
-visit to the estate suggests the multitudinous interests which have been
-considered. The houses are grouped around a central square, on which
-stand the church, the chapel, and the institute, and it is so planned
-that from the cottages at 5s. 6d. a week, as from the mansions with
-rentals of from £100 to £250 a year, the inhabitants alike enjoy beauty
-either of gardens, tree-planted streets, public open spaces, or glimpses
-over the distant country.
-
-The Hampstead Garden Suburb Trust, as the leading article in the
-“Record” says, “has done what any other far-seeing and enlightened
-landlord has done,” with the difference that its pecuniary interest in
-the financial success of the scheme is limited by a self-obtained Act of
-Parliament to 5 per cent. In a summary, which it is well to quote, the
-doings of this up-to-date landlord are gathered together:--
-
- “As a landlord the Trust has laid out and maintains the open
- spaces, the tennis courts, the wall-less gardens with their
- brilliant flowers, the restful nooks, the village green, which,
- with the secluded woods, can be enjoyed in common by rich and
- poor, simple and learned, young and old, sources of ‘joy in widest
- commonalty spread’.
-
- “As a landlord the Trust has given the sites for both the
- Established Church and the Free Church, each standing on the
- Central Square in equally prominent positions, worthy of the
- beautiful buildings their respective organizations have erected.
-
- “As a landlord the Trust has given the site for the elementary
- school, and has spared no pains to obtain a building adapted to the
- best and most carefully thought-out methods of modern education.
-
- “As a landlord the Trust has built the first section of the
- Institute, with the conviction that their hope of bringing into
- friendly relations all classes of their tenants will be furthered
- by the provision of a centre where residents and neighbours can be
- drawn together by intellectual interests. Although the Institute
- is not yet two years old, the Trust has already organized and
- maintained many activities, a full report of which is to be found
- in subsequent pages of the ‘Record’.
-
- “As a landlord the Trust has built three groups of buildings which
- they counted necessary towards the completion of their civic
- ideal: (_a_) Staff cottages, so that the men employed on the estate
- should be housed suitably and economically; (_b_) a group of homes
- where the State-supported children and others needing care and
- protection should live under suitable and adequate administration,
- and share the privileges and pleasures of the suburb; (_c_)
- motor-houses, with dwellings for the drivers, so that the richer
- people may have their luxury, and the poorer their habitations near
- their work.
-
- “As a landlord the Trust conceives ideas for the public good
- and presses them on companies and others in the hope of their
- achievement. It was thus that the Improved Industrial Dwellings
- Company, Limited, built (from Mr. Baillie Scott’s designs) the
- beautiful quadrangle of Waterlow Court, where working ladies find
- the advantages of both privacy and a common life.
-
- “As a landlord the Trust is pushing forward negotiations with a
- view to obtaining a first-rate Secondary School, the directors
- believing that the provision of high-class education meets a need
- not usually considered when an estate is being developed, and that
- the school site should not be limited to the minimum necessary
- ground subsequently bought at an inflated price.
-
- “As a landlord the Trust welcomes the public spirit and civic
- generosity of any of their tenants, taking special pride, perhaps,
- in the beautiful shops, the ‘Haven of Rest’ for the old and
- work-weary, and the club house (so admirably planned and alive with
- social and pleasurable activities), the tennis courts, the bowling
- greens, the children’s gardens, the skating rink--each and all
- established and held for co-operative pleasure and joint use by
- their chief tenants, the co-partners.”
-
-This record of what has already been done prepares the reader to read
-with new interest the second article, “An Ideal--and After,” by Mr.
-Raymond Unwin, who now stands at the head of “town-planners”. He shows
-the great principles which have to be considered in planning town
-extensions, which principles have generally been forgotten in the growth
-of London suburbs. He then gives a plan of the 412 acres which lie
-between the Finchley and the Great North Road, and are about to be
-incorporated in the Hampstead Garden Suburb. He shows what direction the
-roads should take so as to secure readiness of access to the railway
-stations, and at the same time leave the Central Square with its fine
-buildings dominating and giving beauty to the whole neighbourhood. He
-shows also how other heights should be occupied by churches or public
-buildings, and he proposes that another centre (and another will be
-needed when it is remembered that the estate is nearly four miles long)
-“should approximate more nearly to the Market Place or Forum, where the
-main lines of traffic will meet, and to which access from all parts will
-be made easy”. The articles make fascinating reading and lay hold of
-that pioneer instinct which has helped to make Englishmen such good
-Colonists. If the reading arouses some indignation at the lost chances
-of London, the fact that Mr. Unwin, on behalf of the Trust, and the
-co-partnership tenants are dealing with this great estate, in
-conjunction with the Finchley District Council, gives some hope. In
-years to come our children will see that the Hampstead Garden Suburb
-Trust as a pioneer landlord did notable work in avoiding current
-mistakes and in pointing the way for other metropolitan districts to
-follow. Out of eighty-two authorities in Greater London only
-twenty-seven have so far started to avail themselves of the powers of
-the Housing and Town-Planning Act, and meanwhile the jerry-builder is at
-large, uncontrolled, and very actively at work.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- THE CHURCH AND TOWN PLANNING.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- August, 1912.
-
- [1] From “The Guardian”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Every year we are told that so many churches have been added to London.
-Every year a volume is published by the Bishop of London’s Fund with
-pictures of these churches--buildings of conventional character, showing
-in their mean lines and sterile decoration the trail of the order to
-limit their cost to £8000 or £9000. Every year we see London extending
-itself in long straight ranks of small houses, where no tower or spire
-suggests to men the help which comes of looking up, and no hall or
-public building calls them to find strength in meeting together.
-
-Town-planning is much discussed, and the discussion has taken shape in
-an Act of Parliament; but meantime the opportunities are being lost for
-doing what the discussions and the Act declare to be necessary for
-health and happiness. Hendon is probably the most highly favoured
-building land nearest to London. It has undulating ground, where gentle
-hills offer a wide prospect towards the west; it has fine trees whose
-preservation might secure grace and dignity to the neighbourhood; and it
-has also a large sheet of water, the reservoir of the Brent, whose banks
-offer to young and old recreation for body and for spirit. A few years
-ago town-planning might have secured all these advantages, and at the
-same time provided houses and buildings which would have helped to make
-social life a fair response to the physical surroundings. But while talk
-is spent on the advantages of variety in buildings, of the importance of
-securing a vista which street inhabitants may enjoy, and of the value of
-trees and open spaces, straight roads are being cut at right angles
-across the hills, trees are being felled, and nothing has been done to
-prevent what will soon become slum property extending alongside the
-lake. Willesden, as it may be seen from Dollis Hill--a chess-board of
-slate roofs--is an object lesson as to the future of London if builders
-and owners and local authorities go on laying out estates with no
-thought but for the rights of private owners.
-
-What, however, it may be asked, can the Church do? “Agitate--protest?”
-Yes, the Church, familiar with the lives of inhabitants of mean streets,
-can speak with authority. It can tell how minds and souls are dwarfed
-for want of outlook, how pathetic is the longing for beauty shown in the
-coloured print on the wall of the little dark tenement, how hard it is
-to make a home of a dwelling exactly like a hundred other dwellings, how
-often it is the dullness of the street which encourages carelessness of
-dirt and resort to excitement--how, in fact, it is the mean house and
-mean street which prepare the way for poverty and vice. The voice of joy
-and health is not heard even in the dwellings of the righteous. The
-Church might help town-planning as it might help every other social
-reform, by charging the atmosphere of life with unselfish and
-sympathetic thought. But the question I would raise is whether the
-Church is not called to take more direct action in the matter of
-town-building. Its policy at present seems to build a church for every
-4,000 or 5,000 persons as they settle on the outskirts of London. The
-site is generally one given by a landlord whose interests do not always
-take in those of the whole neighbourhood. The building itself aims
-primarily at accommodating so many hundreds of people at a low cost per
-seat, and outside features are regarded as involving expenses too great
-for present generosity. This policy which has not been changed since
-Bishop Blomfield set the example of building the East London district
-churches, is, I believe, prejudicial to Church interests, as it
-certainly is to the dignity of the neighbourhood in which they stand.
-
-The Church might help much in town-planning if it would change its
-policy, and, instead of dropping unconsidered and trifling buildings at
-frequent intervals over a new suburb, build one grand and dominant
-building on some carefully chosen site to which the roads would lead.
-The Directors of the Hampstead Garden Suburb as a private company have
-shown what is possible. They have crowned the hill at the base of which
-20,000 people will soon be gathered, with the Church, the Chapel, and
-the public Institute. This hill dominates the landscape for miles round,
-and is the obvious centre of a great community of people. The Church by
-adopting a like policy would at once give a character to a new suburb,
-the convergence of roads would be marked, and order would be brought
-into the minds of builders planning out their different properties. The
-architects would be conscious of the centre of the circle in which they
-worked, and the houses would fall into some relation with the central
-building. Every one would feel such a healthy pride in the grandeur of
-the central church that it would be more difficult for things mean and
-unsightly to be set up in its neighbourhood. The church buildings in the
-City of London, or those which are seen towering over some of the newer
-avenues in Paris, or those familiar in our country towns and in
-villages, often seem as if they had brought together the inhabitants and
-were presiding over their lives. They look like leaders and suggest that
-the world is a world of order. The Bishop of London’s Fund, or the
-authorities who direct the principal building policy, and spend annually
-thousands of pounds in its pursuit, have thus a great opportunity of
-giving direction to the expansion of London. They might by care in the
-selection of sites, and by generous expenditure at the direction of a
-large-visioned architect, do for the growing cities or towns of to-day
-what the builders of the past did for the cities and towns of their
-time. The Church by its direct action might thus give a great impetus to
-town planning, the need of which is in the mouths of all reformers.
-
-But it may be asked whether the Church ought to contribute to the making
-of beauty at the cost of its own efficiency. Has not the State one duty
-and the Church another? Without answering the question it is I think
-easy to show that a new policy would cost less money, and be more
-efficient in promoting worship. It is obviously no more costly to build
-one magnificent building for £25,000 or £30,000 than to build three
-ordinary buildings at £8000 or £9000 each, while the maintenance of the
-three, with the constant expense of repairs, must be considerably
-greater.
-
-And if it be asked whether one grand and generous and dignified building
-will attract more worshippers than three of the ordinary type, my answer
-is “Yes, and the worshippers will be assisted to a reverent mind and
-attitude”. I speak what I know as a vicar for thirty years of a district
-church in East London. The building was always requiring repair, its
-fittings were oppressively cheap, and there were twelve other churches
-within much less than “a Sabbath day’s journey”. There is no doubt that
-the people preferred and were more helped by worship in the finer and
-better served parish churches. I used to feel what an advantage it would
-have been if the parish church, endowed and glorified with some of the
-money spent on the district churches, could have been the centre of a
-large staff of clergy, and have offered freely to all comers the noblest
-aids to worship. A feeling of patronage is incompatible with a feeling
-of worship, and the district church, with its constant need of money and
-its mean appearance, is always calling for the patronage of the people.
-The grandly built and imposing building, which gives the best and asks
-for nothing, provokes not patronage but reverence. There is, I believe,
-great need for such places of worship, as there is also need for meeting
-halls where in familiar talk and with simple forms of worship the clergy
-might lead and teach the people; but I do not see the need for the cheap
-churches, which are not dignified enough to increase habits of
-reverence, and often pretend to an importance which provokes
-impertinence.
-
-The Church has been powerful because it has called on its members to put
-their best thought and their best gifts into the buildings raised for
-the worship of God. It owes much to the stately churches and sumptuous
-cathedrals, for the sake of which men of old made themselves poor; and
-to-day the hearts of many, who are worn by the disease of modern
-civilization, are comforted and uplifted as in the greatness of these
-buildings they forget themselves. The Church is as unwise as it is
-unfaithful when it puts up cheap and mean structures. It is not by
-making excuses--whether for its members who keep the best for their own
-dwellings or for itself when it takes an insignificant place in the
-streets--that the Church will command the respect of the people. It must
-prove its faith by the boldness of its demand. But I have said enough to
-show that the Bishop of London’s Fund would serve its own object of
-providing the best aid to worship, if it would respond to the call of
-the present and seize the opportunity of taking a lead in town-planning.
-Church policy--as State policy--is often best guided by the calls which
-rise for present needs, and if our leaders, distrusting “their own
-inventions,” would set themselves to assist in town-planning it might be
-given them to do the best for the Church as well as for the health and
-wealth of the people.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- SECTION VI.
-
- EDUCATION.
-
-The Teacher’s Equipment--Oxford University and the Working People, _two
-articles_--Justice to Young Workers--A Race between Education and Ruin.
-
-
-
-
- THE TEACHER’S EQUIPMENT.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- March, 1911.
-
- [1] From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Liberals must be somewhat disappointed that a Liberal Government has
-done so little for education. The reforms for which they stand--their
-hopes for the nation--depend on the increase of knowledge and
-intelligence among the people. The establishment of Free Trade, wise
-economy and wise expenditure, and the support of the statesmanship which
-makes for peace, all presuppose an instructed electorate. But the
-present Government has passed no measure to strengthen the foundation on
-which Liberalism rests; attempts, indeed, were made to settle the
-religious difficulty, but ever since those attempts were wrecked by the
-House of Lords, Ministers have been content to do nothing, although
-outside the religious controversy they might have launched other
-attempts laden with important reforms and safe to reach their port. The
-administration of the law as it stands has doubtless been vigorous; able
-and public-spirited officials have seen that everything which the law
-requires has been done, and every possible development effected, but the
-Liberal Government has done nothing to improve the Law. Minister of
-Education succeeds Minister of Education, years of opportunity roll by,
-while children still leave school at an age when their education has
-hardly begun, while compulsory continuation schools still wait to be
-started, while great--not to say vast--endowments are absorbed in the
-objects of the wealthier classes, while the provision for the equipment
-of teachers is unsatisfactory.
-
-The equipment of the teachers is confessedly the most important item in
-any programme of education, as it is upon the teacher rather than upon
-the building or the curriculum that the real progress of education
-depends. That equipment, as far as elementary schools are concerned, is
-now given in training colleges, and especially in residential colleges.
-Young men and women, that is to say, who have been through a secondary
-school, and also shown some aptitude for teaching, receive, largely at
-Government expense, two years’ instruction and training in colleges
-which are managed either by religious denominations or by local
-educational authorities. In the colleges the staff is mostly occupied in
-giving the knowledge which forms part of a general education, and very
-little time is spent in training or in the study of problems of the
-child life.
-
-
- TRAINING COLLEGES.
-
-The system is unsatisfactory on many grounds. (1) The rivalry between
-denominational and undenominational colleges stirs the keenest
-partisanship. When in his annual statement Mr. Runciman began to talk
-about the number of students in the different colleges he had, he said
-with some irony, “to drop the subject, knowing how far the religious
-controversy is likely to interest this House”. (2) The system is most
-costly, and every year, including building grants, an amount of
-something like half a million of money is paid for the training--or, to
-speak more accurately, for the ordinary education of young men and women
-who may feel no call for teaching and cannot be really bound to take it
-up for their life’s work. (3) It breeds a feeling of indignation among
-those who do not get employment, and there is now an agitation because
-the State does not find work for those whom it has selected to receive a
-special training, and bound, even though it be by an ineffective bond,
-to follow a particular calling. (4) It brings together a body of
-students whose outlook to the future is identical, it encourages,
-therefore, narrow views, and breeds the exclusive professional spirit in
-a profession whose usefulness depends on its power to assimilate the
-thought of the time and to sacrifice its interest for wider interests.
-The training college system as a means of equipping teachers for their
-work is not satisfactory, and the Archbishop of Canterbury was well
-justified when he said: “The thing which mattered most in the
-educational work in England to-day was the question of the training
-colleges”.
-
-
- THEIR REFORM OR THEIR ABOLITION.
-
-The reforms suggested generally follow the lines of further expenditure
-on buildings or on staff, but such expenditure would not remove the
-objections. The money annually spent is very large--equal to the
-gross income of Oxford University--and if more were spent there is no
-very effective way of securing that the best among the teachers so
-trained would remain in the profession; the men would still take up
-more remunerative work, and the women would still marry. The rivalry
-between denominational and undenominational would continue, and the
-protest of conscientious objectors--religious or secular--as each
-further expense was proposed would increase difficulties. If the number
-turned out of the training colleges were larger there would be a more
-widely spread sense of wrong among the unemployed, who would with
-difficulty recognize that something else was wanting in a teacher than
-the certificate of a training college. But most fatal of all to the
-proposed extension or improvement of the system, is the objection that
-the more and the stronger the colleges become, the more deeply would
-the professional spirit be entrenched, and the more powerful would be
-the influence of the teaching class in asserting its rights.
-
-
- SUBSTITUTION OF A BETTER WAY OF TRAINING.
-
-The reform might, I submit, follow the line of restriction and proceed
-towards the ultimate abolition of the residential colleges in their
-present form. The way is comparatively simple. Let the children from
-elementary schools be helped--as, indeed, they now are--by scholarships
-to enter secondary schools, and go on to University colleges, or to the
-Universities. Equal opportunity for getting the best knowledge would
-thus be open to children of all classes. Let any over the age of
-nineteen who have passed through a college connected with some
-University, or otherwise approved as giving an education of a general
-and liberal character, be eligible to apply for a teachership, and if,
-after a period of trial in a school--say for three or six months--they,
-on the report of the inspector and master, have shown an aptitude for
-teaching, then let them, at the expense of the State, be given a year’s
-real training in the theory and practice of teaching. Teachers are, it
-must be remembered, born and not made. One man or woman who, without any
-experience, is placed over a class will at once command attention, while
-another with perhaps greater ability will create confusion. Those who
-are not born to it may indeed learn the tricks of discipline, and, like
-a drill-sergeant, command obedience and keep order. Many of the
-complaints which are heard about the unintelligence and the want of
-interest in children who have come from schools where to the visitor’s
-eye everything seems right are due, I believe, to the fact that the
-teachers have not been born to the work. They have trusted to the rules
-they have learnt and not to the gift of power which is in themselves.
-They teach as the scribes and not with authority. Let, therefore, the
-men and women who have this power be those whom the State will train;
-let it give them not, as at present, a few weeks in a practising school,
-but experience in a variety of schools in town and in country, and under
-masters with different systems; let them be made familiar with the last
-thoughts on child life, and with all the many different theories of
-education. The State will in this way draw from all classes in the
-community the men and the women best fitted to teach, and it will give
-them a training worthy the name. The teachers will have the best
-equipment for their work.
-
-The advantages of this proposal to get rid of the training colleges as
-they now are may be summarized: (1) There will be an end of the
-religious difficulty where at present it is most threatening. The
-children with scholarships will go to the schools and University
-colleges they elect just as do the children who are aiming at other
-careers. The State in the training it provides will have nothing to do
-with the special training required for giving religious knowledge--as
-such training would naturally be given by the different denominations at
-their own expense. (2) The half million of money annually spent on
-training colleges would not be required for the training now proposed.
-It cannot, however, be said that the money would be returned to the
-taxpayers; education--if the nation is to be saved--must become more and
-more costly, but it may be said that the greater part of this sum and
-the existing buildings would be used for the general education of
-persons taken from all classes of the community and preparing to walk in
-all sorts of careers. (3) There would be no body of men and women with
-the grievance that, having been selected at an early age, trained as
-teachers, and bound to a profession, no work was provided. Every one
-would have had the best sort of education for any career, and only one
-year, after a fair time for choice and probation, would have been given
-to special training. (4) The danger of professionalism would be
-lessened. Men and women educated in schools and colleges alongside of
-other students with other aims, would, by their association, gain a
-wider outlook on life, and would be freed from the influences which tend
-now to force them into an organization for the defence of their rights.
-If afterwards they did join such organizations they would do so with a
-wider consciousness of their relation to a body larger than their own,
-and to a knowledge greater than they themselves had acquired.
-
-A substantial number of young persons do even under present conditions
-spend their three years with the Government scholarship at Universities
-or University colleges, and the experience thus gained illustrates the
-advantage to intending students of mixing with persons intended for
-other careers.
-
-Here, then, I submit, is a way of reform in what is confessedly the most
-important part of our system of education. It might be undertaken at no
-extra expense, and with small dislocation of existing institutions. The
-one thing necessary is zeal for education among our political leaders.
-The best students of the social problem tell us the remedy for the
-unrest is education, and anyone considering the signs of the times in
-England will say also that there must be more education if employers and
-employed, if statesmen and people, if the pulpit and the pew are to
-understand one another. The chief Minister in any Government, the
-Minister on whose zeal and ability all the others depend for the
-ultimate success of their work, is the Minister of Education. If he is
-zealous he will find a way of equipping the teachers.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- OXFORD UNIVERSITY AND THE WORKING PEOPLE.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- FIRST ARTICLE.
-
- February, 1909.
-
- [1] From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-Oxford last year invited seven working men to act with seven members of
-the University on a Committee appointed to consider what the University
-can do for the education of working people. The step is notable--Oxford
-and Cambridge have long done something to make it possible for the sons
-of workmen, by means of scholarships, to enter the colleges, to take
-degrees, and, as members of the University, to climb to a place among
-the professional classes. Oxford, in appointing this Committee, has
-taken a new departure, and aimed to put its resources at the disposal of
-people who continue to be members of the working classes.
-
-The report of the Committee, of which the Dean of Christ Church was
-Chairman, and Mr. Shackleton, M.P., Vice-Chairman, forms a most
-interesting pamphlet, which may be obtained for a shilling from any
-bookseller or the Clarendon Press. It tells of the purpose, the history,
-and the endowments of the University, and it also gathers together
-evidence of the demand which is being raised by working people for
-something more than education in “bread and butter” subjects. This
-evidence is summed up in the following report:--
-
-The ideal expressed in John Milton’s definition of education, “that
-which fits a man to perform justly, skilfully, and magnanimously, all
-the duties of all offices,” is one which is, we think, very deeply
-embedded in the minds of the working classes, and we attribute part of
-the failure of higher education among them in the past, to the feeling
-that, by means of it their ablest members were being removed to spheres
-where they would not be available for the service of their fellows. What
-they desire is not that men should escape from their class, but that
-they should remain in it and raise the whole level. The eleven millions
-who weave our clothes, build our houses, and carry us safely on our
-journeys demand university education in order that they may face with
-wisdom the unsolved problems of their present position, not in order
-that they may escape to another.... To-day in their strivings for a
-fuller life, they ask that men of their own class should co-operate as
-students with Oxford in order that, with minds enlarged by impartial
-study, they in their turn may become the public teachers and leaders,
-the philosophers and economists of the working classes. The movement,
-which is thus formulated in a report signed by seven representative
-workmen, is fraught with incalculable possibilities.
-
-The sum of happiness in the nation might be vastly increased, and
-politics might be guided by more persistent wisdom. The great sources of
-happiness which rise within the mind and are nourished by contact with
-other minds are largely out of reach of the majority of the people.
-These sources might be brought within their reach. The working classes
-whose minds are strengthened by the discipline of work, might have the
-knowledge which would interest them in the things their hands make; they
-might, in the long monotonies of toil, be illuminated by the thoughts of
-the great, and inspired by ideals; they might be introduced to the
-secrets of beauty, and taught the joy of admiration. They might be
-released from the isolation of ignorance, so that, speaking a common
-language, and sharing common thoughts, they would have the pleasure of
-helping and being helped in discussions with members of other classes on
-all things under the sun.
-
-The workman knows about livelihood; he might know also about life, if
-the great avenues of art, literature, and history, down which come the
-thoughts and ideals of ages, were open to him. He might be happy in
-reading, in thinking, or in admiring, and not be driven to find
-happiness in the excitement of sport or drink. The mass of the people it
-is often said are dumb, so that they cannot tell their thoughts; deaf,
-so that they cannot understand the language of modern truth; and blind,
-so that they cannot see the beauty of the world.
-
-The speaker, in Mr. Lowes Dickenson’s dialogue, condemns this generation
-when he says, “their idea of being better off is to eat and drink to
-excess, to dress absurdly, and to play stupidly and cruelly”.
-
-The majority of the people, it must be admitted, cannot have the best
-sort of happiness, that which comes from within themselves, from the
-exercise of their own thoughts, and from the use of their own faculties.
-For want of knowledge the sum of happiness is decreased, and for want of
-the same knowledge the dangers of war and social troubles are increased.
-The working people have now become the governing class in the nation. Up
-to now, the acting governors--the majority which controls the
-Government--have cajoled them by party cries, by appeals to passion, and
-by the familiar blandishments of expert canvassers, to fall in with
-their policy. But every year working people are forming their own
-opinions, and making their opinions felt, both in home and foreign
-policy. They will break in upon the international equilibrium, so
-delicately poised amid passions and prejudices; they will decide the use
-of the Dreadnoughts and the armies of the world; they will settle
-questions of property and of tariff; they will form the authority which
-will have to control individual action for the good of the whole. How
-can they possibly carry this responsibility if they have no wider
-outlook on life, no greater knowledge of men, no more power of
-foresight, no more respect for tradition than that which they already
-possess?
-
-How shortsighted is the policy which spends millions on armaments, and
-leaves them to become destructive in ignorant hands. How important for
-national security is a knowledge “in widest commonalty spread”. Oxford,
-to a large extent, possesses this knowledge and the means of its
-distribution.
-
-“The national Universities, which are the national fountainheads of
-national culture,” as one workman has said, have been regarded as the
-legitimate preserves of the leisured class. They have helped the rich to
-enjoy and defend their possessions, they have given them out of their
-resources the power to see and to reason; they have made them wise in
-their own interests; they have given to one class, and to the recruits
-who have been drawn to that class from the ranks of the workman, the
-knowledge in which is happiness and power. The question arises, should
-Oxford, can Oxford, give the same gifts to working people while they
-remain working people? The answer of the report is an unequivocal “Yes”.
-
-In the first place the University has inherited the duty of educating
-the poor. Its colleges have in many cases been founded for poor
-scholars, and its tradition is that poverty shall be no bar to learning.
-
-In the next place its long-established custom, of bringing men into
-association in pursuit of knowledge, is one which peculiarly fits it
-to help workmen, whose strength lies in that power of association
-which has covered some districts of England with a network of
-institutions--industrial, social, political, and religious. Men who
-have joined in the discussions of the workshop, been members of the
-committee of a co-operative store, and acted as officials of a
-friendly society, have had in some ways a better preparation for
-absorbing the teaching of the University on life, than is given in the
-forms and playing field of a public school. The tutor of a class of
-thirty-nine working people at N---- who read with him, the regular
-session through, a course of Economic History, reports that the work
-was excellent, and a visitor from Oxford was impressed “by the high
-level of the discussion and the remarkable acumen displayed in asking
-questions”.
-
-In the last place, the University has the money. The total net receipts
-of the Universities and colleges--apart from a sum of £178,000 collected
-from the members of the Universities and colleges--is £265,000. Of this
-sum, £50,000 is given in scholarships and exhibitions to boys who for
-the most part have been trained in the schools of the richer classes,
-and of this sum £34,000 is given yearly without reference to the
-financial means of the recipient. The report does not analyse the
-expenditure of this large income, except in so far as to suggest that
-some of the scholarship and fellowship money might be diverted to the
-more direct service of working people’s education. Common sense,
-however, suggests that there must be many possible economies in the
-management of estates, in the overlapping of lecturers, and in the
-expense on buildings. The experience of the Ecclesiastical Commission
-has shown how much may be gained if estates are removed from the care of
-many amateur corporations, and placed under a centralized and efficient
-management. The knowledge, too, that some colleges have ten times the
-income of others, without corresponding difference in the educational
-output, suggests that money may be saved.
-
-Oxford seems to be compelled, both by its traditions, its customs, and
-its money to do something for the education of the working people. The
-question whether it can do so, is answered by the scheme which the
-report recommends; that a committee be formed in Oxford, consisting of
-working-class representatives, in equal numbers with members of the
-University; that this Committee should draw up a two years’ curriculum,
-select the tutors, who must also have work in Oxford, and settle the
-localities in which classes shall be held; that students at these
-classes be admitted to the diploma course; that half of the teachers’
-salary be paid by the University, and the other half by the Committee of
-the locality in which the classes are held. The report, with a view to
-bringing working people under the influence of Oxford itself, further
-recommends that colleges be asked to set aside a number of scholarships
-or exhibitions, to enable selected students from the tutorial classes to
-reside in Oxford, either in Colleges, in University Halls, as
-non-collegiate students, or at Ruskin Hall.
-
-These recommendations have certain advantages and certain shortcomings,
-the consideration of which must be deferred to another article.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- OXFORD UNIVERSITY AND THE WORKING PEOPLE.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- SECOND ARTICLE.
-
- February, 1909.
-
- [1] From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
-The points in the scheme which Oxford proposes to adopt for bringing its
-resources to the services of working people are: The appointment of
-representative workmen on the Committee responsible for the object. The
-offer of a working University tutor to a locality where a class of
-thirty workpeople has been formed, willing to adopt one of the two
-years’ courses which the committee has approved. The recognition of the
-students of these classes as eligible for a diploma in Economics,
-Political Science, etc. The open door, so that students selected from
-the classes may be able to enter and to reside in the University.
-
-Two questions arise: Will the scheme attract workmen? Will it get the
-sympathetic, if not the enthusiastic, support of the University?
-
-1. Will it attract workmen? Workmen, apart from the demand that they, as
-a class, should share in the joy and the power of knowledge, have learnt
-that they must have educated men of their own class to direct their own
-organizations. There are 1,153 trade unions, 389 friendly societies,
-2,646 co-operative societies, and many other councils or congresses,
-most of which employ paid officers who are daily discharging duties of
-the utmost responsibility and delicacy, and which make demands on their
-judgment of men and knowledge of economic and political principles, as
-great or greater than those made on the Civil servant in India or in
-this country. Workmen want officials who, familiar with their point of
-view, will have the knowledge and experience to convince educated
-opponents of the justice of their contentions. The education which
-Oxford can give by broadening a man’s knowledge and strengthening his
-judgment, would make him a more efficient servant of his own society,
-and a more potent influence on the side of industrial peace.
-
-Will workmen accept the offer which Oxford makes? Much shyness and
-prejudice have to be overcome. Oxford is often associated with opinions
-foreign to the democratic ideal. The manners of University men sometimes
-suggest that they are superior persons, and a reputation for expensive
-trifling is widely spread. Workmen are afraid that their young men in
-the University atmosphere may be alienated from their class, grow
-ashamed of their belongings, and put on artificial manners. They doubt
-whether the teaching may not be of a kind directed in the interest of
-property, and they fear lest there may be too many temptations to
-idleness and to play. They do not want, as one Labour leader has said,
-“good democratic stuff spoiled by Oxford lecturers, who may give our
-people a shoddy notion of respectability, and a superficial idea of
-things which can be shown by the airs and graces of book learning”.
-
-Oxford is thus suspect; but, on the other hand, the place has immense
-attraction, as is proved by the fact that so many Trade Unions send
-their men to study at Ruskin College.
-
-“What,” it was asked of one of their students, “do you get here you
-could not have got in a college in your own town?”
-
-“I get Oxford,” was his reply; and it is evident in much talk that, even
-when Oxford is “suspect,” it has a great hold on the workman’s mind.
-There may be shyness, but it is only shyness that may be overcome by
-trust.
-
-The place of workmen, therefore, on the University committees must be an
-assured place, and not one allowed as a favour or on sufferance. Their
-voices must be heard as to the subjects to be taught, and as to the
-teachers who are chosen; they must be able to make their influence felt
-in the University, which, as it is national, is their University. The
-local centres where classes are given must, in the same way, be locally
-controlled and independent of University control. The committees of
-these centres must have full choice of the place and time of their
-meetings, select from the list the courses of study to be followed, and
-approve the tutor. They must, indeed, have the same character as club or
-co-operative classes, while, through the Oxford tutor, the course of
-studies and the examination, light is let in from the University. The
-life must be in the local centres, but it must draw its air from Oxford.
-
-The problem as to the admission of working people to residence is more
-difficult. The proposal is that, by means of scholarships, they should
-be enabled to live in colleges or in halls, or as non-collegiate
-students. The difficulty would be got over if enough students could come
-to be a support to one another. There must always be a fear lest, if
-they be few in number, they may either lose their independence or else
-go to the extreme of protest. The University can, however, get over this
-difficulty by providing sufficient money to bring up a sufficient number
-of men, who will strengthen one another and influence the corporate life
-of the place. The question whether students should reside in colleges,
-in halls, or in lodgings may be left to solve itself. If they are to
-reside in colleges, the present system of erecting new buildings, with
-suites of expensive rooms, might well be checked. Simpler buildings,
-adapted to the needs of workmen students, would save money, bring
-together types of men in one community, and not detract from the beauty
-of the city.
-
-The schemes will, I believe, attract workmen if the University
-takes pain to subordinate itself, and trusts to truth rather than
-to power. Workmen, if once their suspicion--justified, it must be
-allowed--be allayed, will find that there is in Oxford more sympathy
-with their point of view than can possibly be found in any other
-English community. Oxford men have, as a rule, open minds, and many
-of their younger Fellows are close and devoted students of social
-questions. Many working men have already experienced what Mr. Crooks
-experienced when, at a meeting in a college hall, having hurled some
-stinging sentences at the superiority which University men assumed,
-his remarks were received, “not with boot-jacks, but with cheers”
-Friendships between working men and members of the University are soon
-formed--both are used to living in associations, both have a love of
-free discussion, both, to a larger extent than other Englishmen, are
-believers in equality. The scheme, if the University wishes it, will
-attract workmen.
-
-2. The other question is, Will the scheme win the support of the
-University? A statute has already been passed appointing a committee
-consisting of working-class representatives, and it has been agreed that
-tutorial-class students may be admitted to the diploma course. The
-University can hardly do more. It cannot alter its constitution, which
-to a large extent leaves the government in the hands of college
-nominees, with an ultimate appeal to members of the University,
-scattered throughout the country. Its total income is only £24,000 a
-year, and it has no power to enforce adequate contributions from the
-colleges, although their total income from endowments is £265,000 a
-year. The University itself, unless it be reformed by Act of Parliament,
-or unless the colleges voluntarily endow it with the power and the
-means, can do very little to carry out the scheme.
-
-Will the Colleges act in the matter? Will they pass over to the control
-of the University a fair portion of the money they now spend either on
-scholarships and fellowships confined to boys from a few schools, or on
-the maintenance of choirs and tutors, or on new buildings? It is not
-enough that one or two colleges make a grant to support some workmen’s
-centre. Workmen will resent the patronage of a college. The money must
-be transferred to the University, the tutors must have a University
-standing, and the scholarships, which enable men to reside in Oxford,
-must be both ample and numerous. The University has, so far as it can,
-acted on the recommendation of the report. Will the Colleges rise to the
-opportunity, and enable Oxford to give the people the knowledge they
-need, for the satisfaction of their own lives and the security of the
-nation?
-
-The Colleges as yet have given little sign of a will to do anything but
-strengthen their own independence, and make provision for students
-prepared in the public schools. In one or two instances, fellowships
-have been given to men who have become lecturers under the University
-Extension Scheme, but the example has not been followed.
-
-For many years pupil teachers from the elementary schools have come to
-Oxford for their training; one or two colleges have given scholarships;
-but again the example has not spread, and the inspector has had to
-complain of the scant provision which has been made for the men’s
-advantage.
-
-A plan was once initiated by which parties of teachers and others were
-accommodated in colleges during the long vacation, and tasted some of
-the advantages of Oxford life and teaching. The plan worked excellently;
-it removed the reproach that for six months in the year the greatest
-educational capital of the nation is allowed to lie idle. But there was
-little enthusiasm; the energy of the few residents who were responsible
-was, after a few years, worn out, if not by opposition, by apathy.
-
-The colleges have as yet shown little power of adapting themselves to
-the education of the new governing class. It may be that they will be
-roused by this report, and that something adequate may be done.
-
-The point I would urge is that the something be adequate--a few classes
-scattered about the country, a few men admitted to Oxford, will court a
-failure, and justify condemnation of the attempt.
-
-The colleges have their opportunity, but beyond the colleges is my
-friend Bishop Gore, now Bishop of Oxford, with his demand for a
-Commission, and beyond the Bishop is the rising power of labour, with
-its tendency, if it be not checked by University influence, to use all
-national endowments for material rather than spiritual ends.
-
-The Bishop’s case for a commission is broadly based on the impossibility
-of working the present constitution of the University for its efficient
-government; on the mischievous waste which spends the resources of fine
-minds and unique surroundings on boys, many of whom are capable of doing
-little more than play; on the folly of subsidizing with scholarships and
-fellowships one set of schools, and one or two types of knowledge; on
-the expensive habits which the system fostered. The case was not
-answered, and cannot be answered. The report of the committee is the
-first response to its call, and, as the Bishop said in a speech at
-Toynbee Hall, it has given him a hope for which he has long waited.
-
-The next response ought to be an appeal from the University itself for a
-Commission which will enable it to order the resources of Oxford as a
-whole, and apply its powers so as to carry out fully the recommendations
-of the report.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- JUSTICE TO YOUNG WORKERS.
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- 8 November, 1909.
-
-
-Thirty years ago the “bitter cry” of the poor disturbed the public mind.
-Housing has since been improved. Technical teaching has since been
-established. The expenditure on the Poor Law has been greatly increased.
-General Booth has raised the money for his social scheme. Philanthropy
-has redoubled its efforts, and taken new forms. But still the “bitter
-cry” is raised. The number of the unemployed is greater than ever. There
-is more vagrancy, which the Prison Commissioners complain is adding to
-the inmates of the prisons, and the amount spent on poor relief goes up
-by leaps and bounds. Royal Commissions, Departmental Committees,
-philanthropic conferences, scientific professors have been facing the
-problem which every year becomes more threatening to the national
-welfare. Their recommendations are many. The striking fact is that in
-one recommendation they all concur. The one thing which they agree to be
-necessary is further training for young people between the ages of
-thirteen and seventeen.
-
-The report of the Consultative Committee of the Board of Education,
-lately published, gives the final word on the subject. The reports begin
-by showing that out of the 2,000,000 children in England and Wales who
-have passed their fourteenth birthday, and are still under seventeen
-years of age, only one in four receives on week-days any continued
-education. “The result is a tragic waste of early promise.” The children
-go out of the elementary schools, which have been built up at immense
-expense, and before they reach the age of seventeen, when the technical
-schools may be entered, many have acquired desultory habits, and lost
-the power of study. Released from school, they become idle and lawless,
-or they enter “blind alley” employments, and for the sake of high
-immediate wages, miss the chance of ultimate responsible employment. The
-Committee agree with the Poor Law Commissioners, “that the results of
-the large employment of boys in occupations which offer no opportunity
-of employment as men are disastrous,” and go on to quote the Minority
-Report: “The nation cannot long persist in ignoring the fact that the
-unemployed, and particularly the under-employed, are thus being daily
-created under our eyes out of bright young things, for whose training we
-make no provision”.
-
-The Committee having brought out this extravagant waste of money and
-effort and young life, sets itself to consider a remedy. It suggests
-improvements in the day schools by giving a larger place in the
-curriculum to subjects which train the hand and eye, and develop the
-constructive powers. It further suggests that steps should be taken to
-prolong the school life of children, and it will be a surprise to many
-readers that under the age of thirteen years 5,300 every year pass out
-of school, and that the extension of the age to fourteen would involve
-the addition of 150,000 children to the registers. These numbers do not
-include the scholars now partially exempted from school attendance by
-the wisdom or unwisdom of managers, who may be estimated as numbering
-some 48,000 children, between thirteen and fourteen years of age. The
-Committee add their opinion that the law which permits half-time in the
-textile districts should be materially changed, and it goes on to
-recommend that “no children under sixteen should be allowed to leave the
-day school unless they could show to the satisfaction of the local
-education authority that they were going to be suitably occupied, and
-that such exemptions should only continue so long as they remained in
-suitable employment”.
-
-This recommendation follows on evidence of how large a proportion of
-boys and girls enter forms of employment “which discourage the habit of
-steady work, lessen the power of mental concentration, and are
-economically injurious to the community, and deteriorating in their
-effect on individual character”. Employment or apprenticeship Committees
-have been formed, whose members spare no pains in advising the older
-scholars, and the parents of such scholars, in the choice of an
-occupation. They have done enough to show how much more might be done
-could the advice be driven home with more system and authority. If the
-recommendation were made the law, no child under sixteen would be
-allowed to enter upon industrial life without sufficient guidance, both
-as to the choice of a place, and as to continued education.
-
-“Continued education,” whatever be the improvements in the day school or
-the laudation of exemption from attendance, comes thus to be regarded as
-the one thing necessary. “It is clear to the Committee that the lack of
-continued educational care during the years of adolescence is one of the
-deeper causes of national unemployment.”
-
-Continuation schools have greatly developed during late years. They are
-more frequent, they offer teaching which is more attractive and more
-adapted to the social needs of the neighbourhoods in which they have
-been opened. Educational authorities and private organizations have
-taken pains to commend the schools and make them known. Employers have
-in some cases required attendance at continuation schools as a condition
-of employment, and in other cases have encouraged attendance by giving
-off-time, by payment of fees, and by the offer of prizes. Workpeople
-have taken pleasure in visiting the schools, and when they are
-represented on the management, get rid of some suspicions, often to
-become enthusiastic supporters.
-
-Continuation schools may thus be said to have passed the period of
-experiment, and it is now recognized that the curriculum should neither
-be that of the old night-school, nor of the modern recreation evening.
-It should aim rather at providing a good general education, to equip men
-and women for intelligent citizenship, as well as to supply workers with
-technical knowledge, and with that adaptability which is one of the most
-valuable possessions of workpeople under modern conditions. It cannot
-too often be repeated that the aim of education is not to make machines,
-but to make men and women. People who know how to think and to reason,
-who have capacities for enjoyment which do not need the stimulus of
-excitement, will be more valuable citizens, and when they lose one form
-of work, will more readily take to another.
-
-The right sort of continuation school is now known. Such schools
-increase yearly in number, and the attendances also increase, but the
-Committee has been led to the conclusion that voluntary methods alone
-will not solve the problem. There must be recourse to compulsory powers.
-In many districts the authorities are apathetic, in other districts
-voluntary methods are powerless against the ignorance and indifference
-of the people. The majority of employers, moreover, are indifferent,
-failing to recognize that closer care for the educational interest of
-their young employés would enhance their own profit, and the pupils are
-often too tired to attend any school. The law at present says, “Children
-are compelled to attend school till the age of thirteen,” it therefore
-creates the impression that at the age of thirteen the obligation
-ceases. The law alone can remove this impression, and it must in the
-future say: “Young people are compelled to attend continuation schools
-till the age of seventeen”.
-
-The Committee, in coming to the conclusion that a compulsory system is
-necessary, has been confirmed in the conclusion by the elaborate
-organization of day and evening schools (continuation) in Germany and
-Switzerland, and by the movement in France for the extension of
-educational opportunities during the years following the conclusion of
-the day-school course. The Committee has also discovered signs of the
-growth of opinion in England in favour of such a course, and this
-Government has already adopted it in the Scotch Act of 1908. Out of
-eighty-nine witnesses examined on this question sixty declared
-themselves in favour of this compulsion, and of the twenty-nine who
-objected, many modified their objections. The Committee felt themselves
-justified in recommending that the example of the Scotch Act be
-followed, and that every local education authority should be required to
-establish suitable continuation classes, and that attendance should be
-made compulsory for all young persons under seventeen, when the local
-education authority make by-laws to that effect.
-
-The obligation for the satisfactory working of the compulsion would be
-thrown primarily on the employer. Every employer would be bound to
-supply the officer of the education authority with the names of young
-people in his employ; to arrange the hours of work so as to make it
-possible for them to attend classes on certain days or nights without
-causing the overstrain of their bodies; it would be his duty to inspect
-the attendance cards of pupils at the classes; and he would be forbidden
-under penalties to keep in his employment anyone not in regular
-attendance.
-
-The local authority would be called on to draw up its by-laws with due
-regard to the character of the employment in various districts, so as to
-cause as little inconvenience as possible to trade, and avoid any
-physical overstrain to pupils. All street selling by boys and girls
-under seventeen would be prohibited, except in the case of those who
-were formerly licensed, and this licence would be forfeited unless the
-holders’ attendance card proved the necessary attendance at the
-continuation school.
-
-The Committee make special suggestions as to girls in urban districts,
-and generally as regards rural districts. Various needs demand various
-provisions. The point, however, which stands out most clearly is that
-after all needs have been weighed, and after all objections have been
-considered, a system of compulsory continuation classes is recommended
-both in the interests of the young people, who, for want of such
-classes, miss the fruit of their education, and in the interest of the
-community, who have to bear the burden of the unemployed.
-
-Germany and Switzerland have established compulsory continuation
-schools; Scotland has now followed their example. The Consultative
-Committee has now shown that England is ready, and has suggested a
-practicable scheme. Will the men and women whose hearts are torn, and
-whose national pride is wounded by the sight of so many workers unable
-to earn a living wage, and whose reason tells them that their unemployed
-are often incompetent, because their training stopped and licence began
-at thirteen years of age, and whose minds have now been informed by
-figures that it is for want of care during the most critical period of
-their lives that loafers and vagrants are made--will the men and women
-who thus feel and know make the Government understand that this one
-thing it is necessary shall be taken in hand without further delay?
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
-
-
- A RACE BETWEEN EDUCATION AND RUIN.[1]
-
- BY CANON BARNETT.
-
- March, 1912.
-
- [1] From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.
-
-
- I.
-
-“Twenty years too late” is the reflection suggested by the report of the
-success of the Universities’ Experiment of Tutorial Classes for Working
-People. The present industrial situation needs, it may be agreed, a
-working-class able to take large and generous views, capable of shaping
-not only a class but a national policy, trained to separate the
-essential from the unessential, and to act consistently on principles
-tried and proved in the history of the past. The old Universities have
-the resources for giving the people this equipment. They have wealth;
-they have teachers penetrated by the traditions accumulated in Oxford
-and Cambridge; they exist, we are told, to give liberal culture a
-broader outlook, a historical perspective. The Universities, roused by
-the Workers’ Education Association, have, by means of the Tutorial
-Classes, achieved notable success. They have offered to groups of twenty
-or thirty working people in the great towns means by which they might
-enter a larger life, feel the years which are behind, and get a grasp of
-eternal principles. The means have been seized with surprising
-eagerness. Men after a hard day’s work have been found week after week
-at the tutors’ tables for the study of economics, political philosophy,
-or history; they have kept up attendance for three years, and they have
-learnt, to quote the words of some who attended a summer meeting in
-Balliol College, “the wonderful development which has taken place in my
-mind” now “that my prejudices have been dispelled and mental horizon
-widened”--that “study is a pleasure rather than a task”.
-
-The students, in a word, receive a share of that larger education which
-the Universities exist to give. But success over so small an area,
-affecting only a few thousand men, but serves to show what might have
-been if the movement had commenced twenty years earlier.
-
-The working people have now come into power, and they have many wrongs
-to put right. The anxious question is, Will they use their power more
-wisely and more generously than the capitalist class? There is not much
-sign of a wide and generous outlook in a policy which assumes that war
-is the necessary attitude of employed and employers. There is not much
-evidence of an inspiring vision of society when there is so little
-recognition of the interdependence of all sorts and conditions of men.
-There is not much grasp of principle among those who begin a strike,
-which must involve untold suffering, as if it were a holiday. The
-working people may have wrongs to bear, they may have splendid qualities
-of faithfulness to comrades and endurance under hardships, but they can
-hardly be said to have that knowledge of humanity which makes them
-humble before the best, with a capacity for judgment and a standard by
-which to apply it.
-
-The race in all nations seems to be one between Education and Ruin. The
-Universities who are especially responsible for national education have
-too late begun to share their resources with working people, and the
-success of their long-delayed start has only served to encourage the
-formation of the rival Central Labour College. This College is thus
-described by Mr. Rowland Kenney: “It makes no pretence of giving a
-‘broad’ education.... Its teaching is frankly partisan. History is dealt
-with as a record of the struggles which have taken place in social
-groups, because of the conflicting interests of the various classes that
-have from time to time divided society.... Its key to the interpretation
-of Sociology is class interest; dividing the social groups into the
-owners and non-owners of property, it points out the common interest of
-all those who work for wages.... It absolutely cuts out any idea of
-conciliation as a final solution of labour problems.” The College, in
-the name of education, appears to be using its forces to block the way
-to peace and goodwill which it is largely the object of education to
-keep open. It preaches a class war, treats every member of the middle
-class as “suspect,” and bitterly opposes the Workers’ Education
-Association because its Council includes University men. This College is
-said to supply the brains behind the labour revolt.
-
-The Universities, hating to be reformed, and allowing the misuse of
-their resources by undergraduates, sometimes described by Rhodes
-scholars as “British babes,” have been unable to do their part for the
-nation. They have stood aside from elementary education, only coldly
-tolerating the establishment of training colleges in their
-neighbourhood, and only timidly following a few of their members when
-they have led the way in the extension of University teaching. It may
-almost be said that they have lost influence over public opinion, and
-that their mission of raising the tone of democracy, of clarifying human
-sympathies and elevating human preferences have passed to other hands. A
-recent visitor to India remarked on his return that many of its
-difficulties seemed due to its government by “unreformed Oxford,” and
-reflecting on the strike, one is led to say that some of its most
-disturbing features are due to unreformed Universities.
-
-
- II.
-
-There is something more needed, if not demanded, than a rise of wages. A
-few more shillings a week would soon be absorbed by men whose first use
-of leisure is in the enjoyment of somewhat sordid forms of sport. The
-men are hardly to be blamed for what are condemned as low tastes and
-brutal pleasures. They are what their environment has made them, and a
-mining village is not likely to develop a love of home-making, a taste
-for beauty, or any joy in the use of the higher faculties of admiration,
-hope, and love. The long, grimy rows of houses, without any distinctive
-features by which a man might recognize and become proud of his home.
-The absence of gardens which would call him to enjoy nature and be its
-fellow-worker; the want of a bathroom other than a tub in the
-sitting-room, by which to feel clean from the dirt of the day; the
-meanness of such public buildings as are provided--the church, the
-library, or the meeting-hall--do not provoke his soul to admiration or
-stir up a thirst for knowledge; such surroundings are likely to make the
-miner content with his pigeons, his dogs, and his football matches. Why,
-it may be asked, have not more owners done what some owners have done,
-and make a Bournville or a Port Sunlight for the workpeople. If out of
-the average 10 per cent profits, it is impossible to provide an
-appreciable addition to the men’s weekly wages, it is not impossible to
-provide better and pleasanter housing. Why is it that owners and
-managers, who by many acts have shown themselves to be people of
-goodwill, have been content that workmen should live under conditions
-which unfit them to enjoy the best things: why is it that with all their
-charity they miss their opportunity? The fault lies, I believe, largely
-with the Church--Established and Free. The Church has too often gone on
-preaching a mediæval system, it has not moved with the times, and does
-not recognize that goodwill to-day must find other ways of charity than
-those trodden by our fathers, when they built almshouses and provided
-food or clothing. It has allowed a business man to be hard in his
-business, if he is easy in response to charitable appeals. But times
-have changed, and we no longer hope for a society in which rich people
-are kind to poor people; we rather think of a society where employers
-and employed share justly the profits of work; where there is no
-dependent class, and all find pleasure in the gifts of character which
-follow the full growth of manhood in rich and poor. If the Church
-recognized some such conception of society it would aim to humanize
-business relations and teach investors to ask, as Bishop Stubbs (whose
-“Social Creed,” lately published in the “Times,” well repays study)
-suggests, “Not only whether a business is _safe_ to pay, but whether the
-business _deserves_ to pay”. Coal-owners, under the Church’s influence,
-might substitute for such villages as Tonypandy, villages such as
-Earswick, and then every increase of wages would mean that widening of
-human interests which helps to satisfy the individual and to increase
-the stability of the nation.
-
- ------------------------------------
-
-The strike is doing vast mischief, as it dislocates trade, spreads
-poverty, and embitters class relationships. But all its mischief may be
-outweighed if it forces people to think. Our prosperity, the triumphs of
-machinery, the daily provision of opinions by an ubiquitous Press, have
-encouraged a self-satisfied and easy-going spirit. We do not take pains
-to make up our minds; we do not try to think our rivals’ thoughts;
-employers do not put themselves in the men’s place, and the men do not
-put themselves in the employers’ place; none of us put ourselves in the
-Germans’ place when they are angry at our policy. The greatest danger of
-the time is the forgetfulness of danger, the light-heartedness of the
-people, and the want of seriousness which prefers enjoyment to study,
-and the carelessness which, for example, goes on refusing to consider
-the Insurance Act, saying, “It will never come into force”. People will
-not think. The Tariff Reform agitation has done untold good in making,
-at any rate, a few people think out the meaning of Free Trade. The
-strike will do good if it makes people--masters and men--think out the
-interdependence of trade--whence it is that profits come--what is the
-relation between home and foreign trade--what is the duty which a trade
-bears to the State--what is the justification for a strike or a lock-out
-which cripples the State--and what are the calls for State interference.
-Professor William James declares that the secret and glory of our
-English-speaking race “consists in nothing but two common habits carried
-into public life--habits more precious, perhaps, than any that the human
-race has gained.... One of them is the habit of trained and disciplined
-good temper towards the opposite party when it fairly wins its innings.
-The other is that of fierce and merciless resentment towards every man
-or set of men who break the public peace.” The strike and its sufferings
-will not be in vain if by making us think it strengthens our hold on
-those heirlooms.
-
- SAMUEL A. BARNETT.
-
-
- PRINTED IN GREAT BRITAIN BY THE UNIVERSITY PRESS, ABERDEEN
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER'S NOTES
-
-
-The following changes have been made to the text as printed:
-
- 1. Footnotes have been placed close to their respective markers and
- renumbered sequentially within each chapter.
- 2. Page 5: 'When, however we come to the third constituent' ... A
- comma has been inserted after 'however'. [There is extra space
- in the line as printed, where a comma would be expected.]
- 3. Page 32 (footnote): 'Fom' changed to 'From'.
- 4. Page 50: Changed ’ to ” after 'respect'. [Quote opens with “]
- 5. Page 54: Changed 'some unmeaning task, work die unfreed,' to '...
- taskwork, die unfreed'. [The reference is to the poem 'A
- Summer Night' by Matthew Arnold: 'Their lives to some unmeaning
- taskwork give,' ...]
- 6. Page 95 (bottom line): 'Henrietta A. Barnett' changed to
- 'Henrietta O. Barnett'.
- 7. Page 137: 'labouror' changed to 'labourer'. [The spelling has
- been checked in a facsimile (not e-text) of the 1834 document
- being quoted]
- 8. Page 141: 'satifies' changed to 'satisfies'.
- 9. Page 156: 'The corresponding mortality ... it between two and
- three times' changed to 'is between ...'.
- 10. Page 205: Removed quote mark before 'Mr. Williams said:'
- 11. Page 212: 'motthering' changed to 'mothering'.
- 12. Page 230: Footnote index 1 inserted in front of 'From “The
- Contemporary Review”'.
- 13. Page 249: 'between £160 and £200 per annum' changed to 'between
- £160 and £700'. [Figures verified from the work cited: Riches
- and Poverty, by E. Chiozza Money (1905), p. 42.]
- 14. Page 271: Inserted comma after 'Why' in 'Why what would the men
- have to lean against?'
- 15. Page 328: '5·300' changed to '5,300'.
- 16. Page 332 (bottom line): 'Samuel H. Barnett' changed to 'Samuel A.
- Barnett'.
-
-The following anomalies in the printed text are noted, but no change has
-been made:
-
- 1. Inconsistent hyphenations, spellings and punctuation have been
- retained as printed, where not definitely erroneous. [These are
- discrete essays, written at different times by two hands and
- reprinted from a range of publications.]
- 2. In the children’s writings quoted in Chapter 4, all non-standard
- spelling, punctuation and grammar have been retained as
- printed.
- 3. Table of contents: Chapter 33 begins on page 327, not 320 as
- printed. Chapter 34 begins on page 333, not 327.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/64825-0.zip b/old/64825-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index e4d60f8..0000000
--- a/old/64825-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/64825-h.zip b/old/64825-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 3f38fa7..0000000
--- a/old/64825-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/64825-h/64825-h.htm b/old/64825-h/64825-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 740b35e..0000000
--- a/old/64825-h/64825-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,14291 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- Practicable Socialism: New Series, by Samuel A. Barnett and Henrietta O. Barnett&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-<!--Stylesheet-->
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; }
- h2, h3 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em;
- page-break-before: auto; margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 0.5em;}
- h2.nobreak { page-break-before: avoid; margin-top: 4em; }
- h4 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.0em;
- page-break-before: auto; margin-top: 2em; }
- h4.subsecthead {margin-bottom: 1.0em; }
- .noth3 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em;
- page-break-before: auto; margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 0.5em;}
- .noth4 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.0em;
- page-break-before: auto; margin-top: 2em; }
- .pagenum { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: gray;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 1.5em; margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0em; text-align: justify;}
- sup { vertical-align: top; font-size: 0.6em; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- abbr { border-bottom-width: thin; border-bottom-style: dotted; text-decoration: none;
- border-bottom: none; }
- .ol_1 li {padding-left: 1em; text-indent: -1em; }
- ol.ol_1 {padding-left: 0; margin-left: 6.94%; margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em; list-style-type: decimal; }
- div.footnote p {text-align: justify; text-indent: 3.5em; font-size: 80%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- div.footnote .label { display: inline-block; width: 0em; text-indent: -1.5em; text-align: right; }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .section { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- div.figcenter p { text-align: center; text-indent: 0; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .w50 { width:50%; }
- @media handheld { .w50 { margin-left:25%; width:65%; } }
- .w100 { width:100%; }
- .table0 { margin: auto; margin-top: 2em; width: 90%; font-size: 90%; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .sp4 { margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- .sp4plus4 { margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 4em; }
- .pbsp4 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em; }
- .sp2 { margin-top: 2em; }
- p.firstpara { text-indent: 0em; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 0em; }
- p.sp1para { text-indent: 1.5em; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 0em; }
- p.sp05para { text-indent: 1.5em; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0em; }
- p.spacedpara { margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .noindent p{ text-indent: 0em; margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0em; }
- span.ellipsis {letter-spacing: 0.5em; }
- .hang p{ text-indent: -2em; margin-left: 2em; }
- hr.full { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; }
- @media handheld { hr.full { display: none; } }
- .hr50 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 25%; width: 50%; margin-right: 25%; }
- .hr25 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 37%; width: 25%; margin-right: 38%; }
- .hr15 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 42%; width: 15%; margin-right: 43%; }
- .title { font-size: 100%; margin-bottom: 4em; }
- .subtitle {font-size: 60%;}
- .halftitle { font-size: 140%; text-align: center; }
- .fs120 { font-size: 120%; }
- .fs110 { font-size: 110%; }
- .fs100 { font-size: 100%; }
- .fs90 { font-size: 90%; }
- .fs80 { font-size: 80%; }
- .fs75 { font-size: 75%; }
- .fs70 { font-size: 70%; }
- .toccol1 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; padding-right: 1em; }
- .toccol2 { vertical-align: top; text-align: left; padding-right: 1em; }
- .toccol2a { vertical-align: top; text-align: left; padding-right: 1em; text-indent: 0.7em; }
- .toccol3 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; }
- .superscr { text-decoration: none; }
- .sig p{ margin-right: 2em; text-align: right; }
- .bq p{ margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; line-height: 110%; }
- .bq2 p{ line-height: 110%; }
- .synopsis p{ text-indent: -2em; margin-left: 2em; font-size: 80%; }
- .subhead p{ text-align: center; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.5em;}
- .evenlinesp div{ margin-top:0.25em; margin-bottom:0.25em; }
- .gesperrt { letter-spacing: 0.2em; }
- .byline h3, h4{ text-align: center; font-weight: bold; margin-bottom:2.0em;}
- .box { border: solid; border-width: 0.1em; padding: 1em; display: block;
- text-align: center; margin-left: 15%; margin-right: 15%}
- .p106 p{font-size:90%; }
- .p106a {margin-left: 3em; margin-top: 1em; }
- .p133 p{ text-align: center; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- .p152 p{ text-align: left; text-indent: -3em; margin-left: 3em; margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0em; }
- .tnbox { background-color:#C4F8E1; border:0.25em solid silver; padding: 0.5em;
- margin:2em 10% 0 10%; }
- </style>
- </head>
-
-<!--End stylesheet-->
-
- <body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Practicable Socialism, by Samuel Agustus Barnett</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<table style='min-width:0; padding:0; margin-left:0; border-collapse:collapse'>
- <tr><td>Title:</td><td>Practicable Socialism</td></tr>
- <tr><td></td><td>New Series</td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Samuel Agustus Barnett and Henrietta Octavia Weston Barnett</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: March 15, 2021 [eBook #64825]</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Fay Dunn and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive)</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM ***</div>
-
-<!--Cover-->
-
-<div class='figcenter w50'>
- <img src="images/cover.jpg" alt="Practicable Socialism: New Series, by Canon Barnett (the late) and Mrs. S. A. Barnett" class="w100" />
-</div>
-
-<div class="tnbox">
-<p class="noth3">Transcriber's note</p>
-<p>An earlier volume of essays by the same authors, titled "Practicable Socialism: Essays on Social Reform", was released
-as Project Gutenberg ebook number 64263, available at https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/64263.</p>
-</div>
-
-<!--Book list-->
-
-<hr class="full sp4" />
-
-<div class="section byline">
-
-<p class="noth3">SOCIOLOGY, SOCIALISM, ETC.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="hang">
-
-<p class="sp05para">THE ANNUAL CHARITIES REGISTER AND DIGEST: being a
-Classified Register of Charities in or available for the Metropolis,
-together with a Digest of Information respecting the Legal and Voluntary
-Means for the Prevention and Relief of Distress and the Improvement
-of the Condition of the Poor. 8vo, 5s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">UNEMPLOYMENT: a Problem of Industry. By <span class="sc">W. H. Beveridge</span>,
-Stowell Civil Law Fellow of University College, Oxford, 1902-1909.
-8vo, 9s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">EXPERIMENTS IN INDUSTRIAL ORGANISATION. By <span class="sc">Edward
-Cadbury</span>. With a Preface by <span class="sc">W. J. Ashley</span>, M.A. Crown 8vo, 5s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">TOWN PLANNING, with Special Reference to the Birmingham Schemes.
-By <span class="sc">George Cadbury</span>, Jun. With Diagrams, Photographs, Charts, and
-Maps. 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">SOCIAL WORK. By the Rev. <span class="sc">W. E. Chadwick</span>, D.D., B.Sc., Vicar of St.
-Peter’s, St. Albans. Crown 8vo, 1s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">SOCIOLOGY APPLIED TO PRACTICAL POLITICS. By <span class="sc">J. Beattie
-Crozier</span>, LL.D. 8vo, 9s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">ANTI-CHRISTIAN SOCIALISM. By the Rev. <span class="sc">C. L. Drawbridge</span>, M.A.
-Crown 8vo, paper covers, 6d. net; cloth, 1s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">REGENERATION: being an Account of the Social Work of the Salvation
-Army in Great Britain. By Sir <span class="sc">Rider Haggard</span>. Cr. 8vo, 2s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE INDUSTRIAL SYSTEM. By <span class="sc">John Atkinson Hobson</span>, M.A. 8vo,
-7s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">TWENTIETH CENTURY SOCIALISM: What It Is Not; What It Is;
-How It May Come. By <span class="sc">Edmond Kelly</span>, M.A., F.G.S. Crown 8vo,
-7s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">AN INQUIRY INTO SOCIALISM. By <span class="sc">Thomas Kirkup</span>, LL.D. Cr. 8vo,
-4s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE REAL DEMOCRACY (First Essays of the Rota Club). By <span class="sc">J. E. F.
-Mann</span>, <span class="sc">N. J. Sievers</span> and <span class="sc">R. W. T. Cox</span>. Crown 8vo, 4s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">CHARITABLE RELIEF. By the Rev. <span class="sc">Clement F. Rogers</span>, M.A.
-Crown 8vo, 2s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">INDUSTRIAL EFFICIENCY: a Comparative Study of Industrial Life in
-England, Germany and America. By <span class="sc">Arthur Shadwell</span>, M.A., M.D.
-Crown 8vo, 6s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">LECTURES ON THE INDUSTRIAL REVOLUTION OF THE
-EIGHTEENTH CENTURY IN ENGLAND. Popular Addresses,
-Notes and other Fragments. By <span class="sc">Arnold Toynbee</span>. With a Reminiscence
-of the Author by <span class="sc">Lord Milner</span>. Crown 8vo, 2s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE FAMILY AND THE NATION: a Study in Natural Inheritance and
-Social Responsibility. By <span class="sc">William Cecil Dampier Wheetham</span>, M.A.
-F.R.S., and <span class="sc">Catherine Durning Wheetham</span>. 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">HEREDITY AND SOCIETY. By <span class="sc">William Cecil Dampier Wheetham</span>,
-M.A., F.R.S., and <span class="sc">Catherine Durning Wheetham</span>. 8vo, 6s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">TRADES FOR LONDON BOYS AND HOW TO ENTER THEM.
-Compiled by the <span class="sc">Apprenticeship and Skilled Employment Association</span>,
-Westminster. 8vo, paper covers, 1s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">TRADES FOR LONDON GIRLS AND HOW TO ENTER THEM.
-Compiled by the <span class="sc">Apprenticeship and Skilled Employment Association</span>,
-Westminster. 8vo, 1s. net.</p>
-
-</div>
-<hr class="hr25" />
-<div class="byline">
-
-<p class="noth4">BY SIDNEY WEBB.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="hang">
-
-<p class="sp05para">LONDON EDUCATION. Crown 8vo, 2s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">GRANTS IN AID: A Criticism and a Proposal. 8vo, 5s. net.</p>
-
-</div>
-<hr class="hr25" />
-<div class="byline">
-
-<p class="noth4">BY SIDNEY AND BEATRICE WEBB.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="hang">
-
-<p class="sp05para">THE HISTORY OF TRADE UNIONISM. With Map and full Bibliography
-of the Subject. 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">INDUSTRIAL DEMOCRACY: a Study in Trade Unionism. 8vo, 12s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">ENGLISH POOR LAW POLICY. 8vo, 7s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE BREAK-UP OF THE POOR LAW: being Part <abbr title="1">I.</abbr> of the Minority
-Report of the Poor Law Commission. Edited, with Introduction. 8vo,
-7s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE PUBLIC ORGANISATION OF THE LABOUR MARKET: being
-Part <abbr title="2">II.</abbr> of the Minority Report of the Poor Law Commission. Edited,
-with Introduction. 8vo, 5s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">PROBLEMS OF MODERN INDUSTRY: Essays. 8vo, 5s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE HISTORY OF LIQUOR LICENSING IN ENGLAND, PRINCIPALLY
-FROM 1700 TO 1830. Crown 8vo, 2s. 6d. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE STATE AND THE DOCTOR. 8vo, 6s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE PREVENTION OF DESTITUTION. 8vo, 6s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">ENGLISH LOCAL GOVERNMENT FROM THE REVOLUTION TO
-THE MUNICIPAL CORPORATIONS ACT. 8vo.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE PARISH AND THE COUNTY. 16s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE MANOR AND THE BOROUGH. 2 vols. 25s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">THE STORY OF THE KING’S HIGHWAY. 7s. 6d. net.</p>
-
-</div>
-<hr class="hr25" />
-<div class="byline">
-
-<p class="noth4">BY WILLIAM MORRIS.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="hang">
-
-<p class="sp05para">A DREAM OF JOHN BALL, AND A KING’S LESSON. 16mo, 2s. net.
-<i>Pocket Edition.</i> Fcap. 8vo, gilt top, 2s. net; leather, 3s. net.</p>
-<p class="sp05para">NEWS FROM NOWHERE; or, An Epoch of Rest. Being some Chapters
-from an Utopian Romance. Fcap. 8vo, paper covers, 1s. net; gilt top,
-cloth, 2s. net; leather, 3s. net.</p>
-
-</div>
-<hr class="hr25" />
-
-<div class="nf-center">
- <div>LONGMANS, GREEN AND CO., <span class="sc">39 Paternoster Row, London, E.C.</span>,</div>
- <div><span class="sc">New York, Bombay, Calcutta, and Madras.</span></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-
-<!--Half-title page-->
-<div class="section sp4 halftitle">
-PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Boxed advert-->
-<div class="section pbsp4">
- <div class="box nf-center">
- <div class="evenlinesp">
- <div class="fs120 gesperrt">THE MAKING OF THE BODY.</div>
- <div><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. BARNETT.</span></div>
- <div><i>With 113 Illustrations. Crown 8vo</i>, 1<i>s.</i> 9<i>d.</i></div>
- </div>
-
- <hr class="hr15" />
-
- <div class="evenlinesp">
- <div>LONGMANS, GREEN AND CO.,</div>
- <div class="nf-center fs80">LONDON, NEW YORK, BOMBAY, CALCUTTA, AND MADRAS.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp4" />
-
-<!--Frontispiece-->
-<div class="section sp4">
-
-<div class="figcenter w50">
-<img src="images/frontispiece.jpg" alt="" class="w100" />
-<div class="w100">
-<div class="fs90 noindent">PORTRAITS OF CANON AND MRS. S. A. BARNETT<br /></div>
-<div class="fs80 noindent">Painted by Sir Hubert von Herkomer, R.A.; given to them by many friends,
-and presented by the Right Honourable Herbert H. Asquith, K.C., M.P., at Toynbee Hall, on November 20th, 1908.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Title page-->
-
-<div class="section sp4">
-<h1><span class="title">PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM</span><br /><br /><span class="subtitle"><i>NEW SERIES</i></span></h1>
-</div>
-
-<div class="fs70 nf-center">
- <div class="sp4">BY</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="evenlinesp">
- <div class="nf-center">
- <div class="fs110"><span class="sc">CANON S. A. BARNETT (the late)</span></div>
- <div class="fs70">AND</div>
- <div class="fs110"><span class="sc">Mrs. S. A. BARNETT</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="sp4plus4 nf-center"><i>WITH FRONTISPIECE</i></div>
-
-<div class="evenlinesp">
- <div class="nf-center">
- <div class="gesperrt">
- <div class="fs110">LONGMANS, GREEN AND CO.</div>
- <div class="fs90">39 PATERNOSTER ROW, LONDON</div>
- </div>
- <div class="fs80">
- <div>FOURTH AVENUE &amp; 30<span class="fs75">TH</span> STREET, NEW YORK</div>
- <div>BOMBAY, CALCUTTA, AND MADRAS</div>
- </div>
- <div class="fs100">1915</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Introduction-->
-<div class="section">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_v">v</span>
- <h2>INTRODUCTION.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">The</span> first edition of <span class="sc">Practicable Socialism</span> was printed in
-1888, the second in 1894. Now, twenty-one years afterwards, a new
-series is issued, but the most important of the two authors, alas! has
-left the world, and it therefore falls to me to write the introduction
-alone.</p>
-
-<p>In selecting the papers for this volume, out of a very great deal of
-material, the principle followed has been to print those which deal
-with reforms yet waiting to be fully accomplished. It would have been
-easier and perhaps pleasanter to have taken the subjects dealt with
-in the previous volumes, and by grouping subsequent papers together,
-have shown how many of the reforms then indicated as desirable and
-“practicable,” had now become accepted and practised. But so to do
-would not have been in harmony with our feelings. My husband counted
-the sin of “numbering the people” as due to a debased moral outlook,
-and the contemplation of “results” as tending to hinder nobler efforts
-after that which is deeper than can be calculated. Of him it is
-truthful to quote “His soul’s wings never furled”.</p>
-
-<p>The papers have been grouped in subject sections, and though the ideas
-have for many years been set forth by him in various publications, in
-most instances the writings here reproduced are under six years old. In
-a few cases, however, I have used quite an old paper, thinking it gave,
-with
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_vi">vi</span>hopeful vision, thoughts which later lost their freshness as they
-became accomplished facts.</p>
-
-<p>The book begins with <a href="#ch01" title="Go to Chapter 1"><i>The Religion of the
-People</i></a> and <a href="#ch02" title="Go to Chapter 2"><i>Cathedral Reform</i></a>, for Canon Barnett held with unvarying certainty that—to quote
-his own words—“there is no other end worth reaching than the knowledge
-of God, which is eternal life,”—and that “organizations are only
-machinery of which the driving power is human love, and of which the
-object is the increase of the knowledge of God”. To this test our plans
-and undertakings were constantly brought. “Does our work give ‘life’
-by bringing men nearer to God and nearer to one another.” “In the
-knowledge of what ‘life’ is, let us put our work to the test.” “Do the
-Church Services release divine hopes buried under the burden of daily
-cares?” “Do the new buildings refine manners?” “Does higher teaching
-tend to higher thoughts about duty?” “Does our relief system help
-to heal a broken dignity as well as to comfort a sufferer?” “Do our
-entertainments develop powers for enjoying the best in humanity past
-and present?”</p>
-
-<p>That the Church should be reformed to make it the servant of all who
-would lead the higher life, was the hope he cherished throughout many
-years spent in strenuous efforts to obtain a social betterment. He
-writes: “The great mass of the people, because they stand apart from
-all religious communions, may have in them a religious sense, but their
-thought of God is not worked through their emotions into their daily
-lives. They do not know what they worship, and so do not say with
-the psalmist, ‘My soul is athirst for the living god,’ or say with
-Joseph, ‘How can I do this great wickedness, and sin against God?’ The
-spiritualization
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_vii">vii</span>of life being necessary to human peace and happiness, the problem which
-is haunting this generation is how to spiritualize the forces which are
-shaping the future.”</p>
-
-<p>My husband urged that the reform of the Church would tend to solve that
-problem. “The Church by its history and organization has a power no
-other agency can wield. If more freedom could be given to its system of
-government and services, if it could be made directly expressive of the
-highest aspirations of the people, it is difficult to exaggerate the
-effect it might have. In every parish a force would be brought to bear
-which might kindle thought, so that it would reach out to the highest
-object; which might stir love, so that men would forget themselves in
-devotion to the whole; and which might create a hope wherein all would
-find rest. The first need of the age is an increase of Spirituality,
-and the means of obtaining it is a Reformed Church.”</p>
-
-<p>The papers under <a href="#sect2" title="Go to Section 2"><i>Recreation</i></a> might almost as well
-have been placed in the Education Section, so strongly did my husband feel that recreation
-should educate. Only a few months before his illness he wrote: “The
-claim of education is now primarily to fit a child to earn a living,
-and therefore he is taught to read and write and learn a trade. But
-if it were seen that it is equally important to fit a child to use
-well his leisure, many changes would be made.” And such changes he
-argued would increase, not lessen, the joy of holidays, an opinion
-which my experience as Chairwoman of the Country-side Committee of the
-Children’s Country Holiday Fund abundantly supports.</p>
-
-<p>In the Section for <a href="#sect3" title="Go to Section 3"><i>Settlements</i></a> and their work,
-only three papers will be found, for so much has been written and spoken of Toynbee Hall and
-kindred centres of usefulness,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_viii">viii</span>that it seems almost unnecessary to reproduce the same thoughts. Yet in
-view of the fact that questions are often asked as to the genesis of
-the idea, I have put in <a href="#ch10" title="Go to Chapter 10">one of the first papers</a> (1884) that my husband
-wrote after we had had nine years’ experience of the work of University
-men among the poorest and saddest people, in which he suggested the
-scheme of Toynbee Hall, and also a paper of mine written nine years
-after its foundation, in which I chat of the <a href="#ch11" title="Go to Chapter 11"><i>Beginnings of Toynbee Hall</i></a>.</p>
-
-<p>Between the first and the <a href="#ch12" title="Go to Chapter 12">third paper</a> there is
-a stretch of twenty-one busy years, 1884-1905, and the article bears the marks of Canon
-Barnett’s intense realization of the need of higher education, and his
-almost passionate demand for it on behalf of the industrial classes.
-“Social Reform,” he writes, “will soon be the all-absorbing interest as
-the modern realization of the claims of human nature and the growing
-power of the people will not tolerate many of the present conditions
-of industrial life<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. The well-being of the future depends on the
-methods by which reform proceeds. Reforms in the past have often been
-disappointing. They have been made in the rights of one class, and
-have ended in the assertion of rights over another class. They have
-been made by force, and produced reaction. They have been done for the
-people, not by the people, and have never been assimilated. The method
-by which knowledge and industry may co-operate has yet to be tried,
-and one way in which to bring about such co-operation is the way of
-University Settlements.”</p>
-
-<p>So many are the changes which affect <a href="#sect4" title="Go to Section 4"><i>Poverty and Labour</i></a>,
-so rapidly have they come about, and so keen and living an interest did Canon
-Barnett feel with every step
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_ix">ix</span>that the great army of the disinherited took towards social justice,
-that it has been difficult to select which papers on which subject to
-reprint, but I have chosen the most characteristic, and also those
-connected with the reforms which most influenced character and life.
-In this Section also some of the many papers which Canon Barnett wrote
-on Poor Law Reform have been admitted. I know that the activities of
-the Fabian Society and the “Break up of the Poor Law” organization
-have rendered some of the ideas familiar, but many of the Reforms he
-advocated are not yet accomplished, and to those who are conversant
-with the subject, his large, sane, unsensational statement of the
-case, as it appeared to him, will be welcome,—all the more so because
-for nearly thirty years he was a member of the Whitechapel Board of
-Guardians, the Founder of the Poor Law Conferences, and had both
-initiated and carried out large administrative reforms. He also had
-a very deep and probing tenderness for the character of individual
-paupers, and a sensitive shrinking from wounding their self-respect
-or lowering the dignity of their humanity, an attitude of mind which
-influenced his relation to schemes sometimes made by paper legislators
-who considered the poor in “the lump” instead of “one by one”.</p>
-
-<p>Of the <a href="#sect5" title="Go to Section 5">Social Service Section</a> there is but little to
-say. <a href="#ch27" title="Go to Chapter 27"><i>The Real Social Reformer</i></a>
-contains guiding principles, <a href="#ch26" title="Go to Chapter 26"><i>The Mission of Music</i></a> is
-an interesting and curious output from a man with no ear for tune or
-time or harmony, and <a href="#ch30" title="Go to Chapter 30"><i>The Church on Town Planning</i></a> is but an example of
-how eagerly he desired that the Church should guide as well as minister
-to the people. <a href="#ch28" title="Go to Chapter 28"><i>Where Charity Fails</i></a> is another plea that the kindly
-intentioned should not injure the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_x">x</span>character of the recipient, and that the crucial question, “Is our
-aim the self-extinction of our organization,” should be borne in
-mind by the Governors and enthusiastic supporters of even the best
-philanthropic agencies.</p>
-
-<p>The <a href="#sect6" title="Go to Section 6"><i>Educational</i></a> Section might have been much larger,
-but the papers selected bear on the three sides of the subject which my husband in
-recent years thought to be the most important. <a href="#ch31" title="Go to Chapter 31"><i>The Equipment of the Teachers</i></a>
-but carried on the ideals towards which he ever pressed,
-from the days when as a Curate at St. Mary’s, Bryanston Square, he
-taught the monitors of the Church Schools, through the days when the
-first London Pupil Teachers’ Centre had its birthplace in Toynbee Hall,
-through the days when he established the Scholarship Committee whose
-work was to select suitable pupil teachers and support them through
-their University careers in Oxford and Cambridge, through the days when
-he rejoiced at the abandonment of the vast system of pupil teachers,—to
-the days when he demanded that teachers for the poorest children should
-be called from the cultivated classes, and take their calling as a
-mission, to be recognized and remunerated, as an honoured profession
-undertaken by those anxious to render Social Service.</p>
-
-<p>The article <a href="#ch33" title="Go to Chapter 33"><i>Justice to Young Workers</i></a> deals
-with the vexed question of
-Continuation Schools, attendance at which Canon Barnett thought should
-be compulsory, since he believed that economic conditions would more
-readily change to meet legally established educational demands than was
-possible, when, in the interwoven complexity of business, one unwilling
-or ten indifferent employers could throw any complicated voluntary
-organization out of gear.</p>
-
-<p>The two articles on <a href="#ch32" title="Go to Chapter 32"><i>Oxford and the Working People</i></a> and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xi">xi</span><a href="#ch34" title="Go to Chapter 34"><i>A Race between Education and Ruin</i></a>
-only inadequately represent the
-thought he gave to the matter, or the deeply rooted, great branched
-hopes he had entwined round the reform of the University,—but for many
-reasons he felt it wiser to stand aside and watch younger men wield the
-sword of the pen. So his writings on this subject are few, but that
-matters less than otherwise it would have done, because the group of
-friends who have decided to establish “Barnett House” in his memory
-are among those in Oxford who shared his work, cared for his plans,
-and believed in his visions, created as they were on knowledge of the
-industrial workers and the crippling conditions of their lives. So as
-“Barnett House” is established and grows strong, and in conjunction
-with the Toynbee Hall Social Service Fellowship will bring the
-University and Industrial Centres into closer and ever more sympathetic
-relationship, it is not past the power of a faith, however puny and
-wingless, to imagine that the reforms my husband saw “darkly” may be
-seen “face to face,” and in realization show once more how “the Word
-can be made flesh”.</p>
-
-<p>In some Sections I have included papers from my pen, not because I
-think they add much to the value of the book, but because my husband
-insisted on the previous volumes of <span class="sc">Practicable Socialism</span>
-being composed of our joint writings as well as illustrative of our
-joint work, or to use his words in the 1888 volume: “Each Essay is
-signed by the writer, but in either case they represent our common
-thought, as all that has been done represents our common work”.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara">HENRIETTA O. BARNETT.</p>
-
-</div>
-<p><i>17 July, 1915.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Table of contents-->
-<div class="section">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiii">xiii</span>
- <h2>CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-<table class="table0" summary="Contents">
-<colgroup>
-<col width="5%" />
-<col width="5%" />
-<col width="52%" />
-<col width="33%" />
-<col width="4%" />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol3 fs75">PAGE</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th class="toccol2" colspan="3"><span class="sc"><a href="#sect1" title="Go to Section 1">Religion.</a></span></th>
- <th class="toccol2">&nbsp;</th>
- <th class="toccol3">&nbsp;</th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2a">1.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Religion of the People</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_1" title="Go to Page 1">1</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2a">2.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Cathedral Reform</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_17" title="Go to Page 17">17</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2a">3.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Cathedrals and Modern Needs</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_32" title="Go to Page 32">32</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th class="toccol2" colspan="3"><span class="sc"><a href="#sect2" title="Go to Section 2">Recreation.</a></span></th>
- <th class="toccol2">&nbsp;</th>
- <th class="toccol3">&nbsp;</th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2a">4.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Children’s Country Holiday Fun’</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Mrs. S. A. Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_41" title="Go to Page 41">41</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2a">5.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Recreation of the People</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_53" title="Go to Page 53">53</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2a">6.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Hopes of the Hosts</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Mrs. S. A. Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_70" title="Go to Page 70">70</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2a">7.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Easter Monday on Hampstead Heath</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_74" title="Go to Page 74">74</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2a">8.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Holidays and Schooldays</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_77" title="Go to Page 77">77</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Failure of Holidays</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_83" title="Go to Page 83">83</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2a">9.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Recreation in Town and Country</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Mrs. S. A. Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_89" title="Go to Page 89">89</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th class="toccol2" colspan="3"><span class="sc"><a href="#sect3" title="Go to Section 3">Settlements.</a></span></th>
- <th class="toccol2">&nbsp;</th>
- <th class="toccol3">&nbsp;</th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">10.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Settlements of University Men in Great Towns</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_96" title="Go to Page 96">96</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">11.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Beginnings of Toynbee Hall</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Mrs. S. A. Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_107" title="Go to Page 107">107</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">12.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Twenty-one Years of University Settlements</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_121" title="Go to Page 121">121</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th class="toccol2" colspan="3"><span class="sc"><a href="#sect4" title="Go to Section 4">Poverty and Labour.</a></span></th>
- <th class="toccol2">&nbsp;</th>
- <th class="toccol3">&nbsp;</th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">13.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Ethics of the Poor Law</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Mrs. S. A. Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_132" title="Go to Page 132">132</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">14.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Poverty, Its Cause and Cure</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_143" title="Go to Page 143">143</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">15.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Babies of the State</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Mrs. S. A. Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_150" title="Go to Page 150">150</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">16.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Poor Law Reform</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_167" title="Go to Page 167">167</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">17.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Unemployed</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Mrs. S. A. Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_178" title="Go to Page 178">178</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiv">xiv</span>&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">18.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Poor Law Report</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_184" title="Go to Page 184">184</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">19.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Widows with Children under the Poor Law</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Mrs. S. A. Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_203" title="Go to Page 203">203</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">20.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Press and Charitable Funds</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_215" title="Go to Page 215">215</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">21.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">What is Possible in Poor Law Reform</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_222" title="Go to Page 222">222</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">22.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Charity up to Date</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_230" title="Go to Page 230">230</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">23.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">What Labour Wants</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_241" title="Go to Page 241">241</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">24.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Our Present Discontents</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_246" title="Go to Page 246">246</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th class="toccol2" colspan="3"><span class="sc"><a href="#sect5" title="Go to Section 5">Social Service.</a></span></th>
- <th class="toccol2">&nbsp;</th>
- <th class="toccol3">&nbsp;</th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">25.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Of Town Planning</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Mrs. S. A. Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_261" title="Go to Page 261">261</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">26.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Mission of Music</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_276" title="Go to Page 276">276</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">27.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Real Social Reformer</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_288" title="Go to Page 288">288</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">28.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Where Charity Fails</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_294" title="Go to Page 294">294</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">29.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Landlordism up to Date</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_297" title="Go to Page 297">297</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">30.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Church and Town Planning</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_301" title="Go to Page 301">301</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <th class="toccol2" colspan="3"><span class="sc"><a href="#sect6" title="Go to Section 6">Education.</a></span></th>
- <th class="toccol2">&nbsp;</th>
- <th class="toccol3">&nbsp;</th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">31.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">The Teachers’ Equipment</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_307" title="Go to Page 307">307</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">32.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Oxford University and the Working People</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#Page_314" title="Go to Page 314">314</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2" id="contents">33.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">Justice to Young Workers</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#P327" title="Go to Page 327">320</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="toccol1">&nbsp;</td>
- <td class="toccol2">34.</td>
- <td class="toccol2">A Race between Education and Ruin</td>
- <td class="toccol2"><i>Canon Barnett</i></td>
- <td class="toccol3"><a href="#P333" title="Go to Page 333">327</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Section 1-->
-<div class="section">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_1">1</span>
- <h2 id="sect1">SECTION <abbr title="1">I.</abbr><br /> <br />RELIGION.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class="synopsis">
-<p class="firstpara"><a href="#ch01" title="Go to Chapter 1">The Religion of the
-People</a>—<a href="#ch02" title="Go to Chapter 2">Cathedral
-Reform</a>—<a href="#ch03" title="Go to Chapter 3">Cathedrals and Modern Needs.</a></p>
-</div>
-
-<h3 title="THE RELIGION OF THE PEOPLE." id="ch01">THE RELIGION OF THE PEOPLE.<a href="#f11" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>July, 1907.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f11">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch01" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From the “Hibbert Journal”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">The</span> people are not to be found in places of worship; “the
-great masses,” as Mr. Booth says, “remain apart from all
-forms of religious communion”. This statement is admitted
-as true, but yet another statement is continually made and
-also admitted, that “the people are at heart religious”.
-What is meant by this latter statement? The people are
-certainly not inclined to assert their irreligion. Mr.
-Henderson, who as a labour leader speaks with authority,
-says, “I can find no evidence of a general desire among the
-workers to repudiate the principles of Christianity”. And
-from my own experience in East London I can testify to
-the growth of greater tolerance and of greater respect for
-the representatives of religion. Processions with banners
-and symbols are now common, parsons are elected on public
-bodies, and religious organizations are enlisted in the army
-of reform. But this feature of modern conditions is no proof
-that men and women are at heart religious. It may only
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_2">2</span>imply a more respectful indifference, a growth in manners
-rather than in spiritual life. Does the statement mean that
-the people are kind, and moved by the public spirit? This
-again is true. There is widely spread kindness: rough lads
-are generous—one I knew gave up his place to make room
-for a mate whose need was greater; weak and weary women
-watch all night by a neighbour’s sick-bed; a poor family
-heartily welcomes an orphan child; workmen suffer and
-endure private loss for the sake of fellow-workmen. The
-kindness is manifest; but kindness is no evidence of the
-presence of religion. Kindness may, indeed, be a deposit
-of religion, a habit inherited from forefathers who drew into
-themselves love from the Source of love, or it may be something
-learnt in the common endurance of hardships. Kindness,
-generosity, public spirit cannot certainly be identified
-with the religion which has made human beings feel joy in
-sacrifice and given them peace in the pains of death.</p>
-
-<p>Before, however, we conclude that the non-church-going
-people are religious or not religious, it may be well to be
-clear as to what is meant by religion. I would suggest as
-a definition that religion is thought about the Higher-than-self
-worked through the emotions into the acts of daily life.
-This definition involves three constituents: (1) There must
-be use of thought—the power of mental concentration—so
-that the mind may break through the obvious and the conventional.
-(2) There must be a sense of a not-self which is
-higher than self—knowledge of a Most High whose presence
-convicts the self of shortcoming and draws it upward. (3)
-There must be such a realization of this not-self—such a
-form, be it image, doctrine, book, or life—as will warm the
-emotions and so make the Higher-than-self tell on every
-act and experience of daily life. These constituents are, I
-think, to be found in all religions. The religious man is he
-who, knowing what is higher than himself, so worships this
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">3</span>Most High that he is stirred to do His will in word and
-deed. The Mohammedan is he who, recognizing the
-Highest to be power, worships the All-powerful of Mohammed,
-whom in fear he obeys, and with the sword forces
-others to obey. The Christian is he who, recognizing the
-Most High to be love, worships Christ, and for love of
-Christ is loving to all mankind. Are these three constituents
-of religion to be found among the people?</p>
-
-<p>1. They are using their powers of thought. There is a distinct
-disposition to think about unseen things. The Press which circulates
-most widely has found copy in what it calls Mr. Campbell’s “New
-Theology”. The “Clarion” newspaper has published week after week
-letters and articles which deal with the meaning of God. There is
-increasing unrest under conditions which crib and cabin the mind; men
-and women are becoming conscious of more things in heaven and earth
-than they can see and feel and eat. They have a sense that the modern
-world has become really larger than the old world, and they resent
-the teaching which commits them to one position or calling. They
-have, too, become critical, so that, using their minds, they measure
-the professions of church-goers. Mr. Haw has collected in his book,
-“Christianity and the Working Classes,” many workmen’s opinions on
-this subject. Witness after witness shows that he has been thinking,
-comparing things heard and things professed with things done. It is not
-just indifference or self-indulgence which alienates the people from
-church or chapel or mission; it is the insincerity or inconsistency
-which they themselves have learnt to detect. Huxley said long ago that
-the greatest gift of science to the modern world was not to be found in
-the discoveries which had increased its power and its comfort, so much
-as in the habit of more scientific thinking which it had made common.</p>
-
-<p>The people share this gift and have become critical. They
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">4</span>criticize all professions, theological or political. They
-criticize the Bible, and the very children in the schools have
-become rationalists. They also construct, and there are few
-more interesting facts of the time than the strength of trades
-unions, co-operative and friendly societies, which they have
-organized. Even unskilled labour, ever since the great Dock
-strike, has shown its power to conceive methods of amelioration,
-and to combine for their execution. The first constituent
-of religion, the activity of thought, is thus present
-amid the non-church-going population.</p>
-
-<p>2. This thought is, I think, directed towards a Higher-than-self;
-it, that is to say, goes towards goodness. I would
-suggest a few instances. Universal homage is paid to the
-character of Christ. He, because of His goodness, is exalted
-above all other reformers, and writers who are bitter against
-Christianity reverence His truth and good-will. Popular
-opinion respects a good man whatever be his creed or
-party; it may not always be instructed as to the contents
-of goodness, but at elections its votes incline to follow the
-lead of the one who seems good, and that is sometimes
-the neighbouring publican whose kindness and courtesy are
-experienced. In social and political thought the most
-significant and strongest mark is the ethical tendency. Few
-proposals have now a chance of a hearing if they do not
-appeal to a sense of justice. Right has won at any rate a
-verbal victory over might. In late revivals there has been
-much insistence on the need of better living, on temperance,
-on payment of debts and fulfilment of duty, and the reprints
-which publishers find it worth their while to publish are
-penny books of Seneca, Marcus Aurelius, and other writers
-on morals.</p>
-
-<p>People generally—unconsciously often—have a sense of
-goodness, or righteousness, as something which is higher
-than themselves. They are in a way dissatisfied with their
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">5</span>own selfishness, and also with a state of society founded on
-selfishness. There is a widely spread expectation of a
-better time which will be swayed by dominant goodness.
-The people have thus, in some degree, the second constituent
-of religion, in that they have the thought that the
-High and Mighty which inhabits Eternity is good.</p>
-
-<p>3. When, however, we come to the third constituent, we
-have at once to admit that the non-church-going population
-has no means of realizing the Most High in a form which
-sustains and inspires its action. It has no close or personal
-touch or communion with this goodness; no form which,
-like a picture or like a common meal, by its associations of
-memory or hope rouses its feelings; nothing which, holding
-the thought, stirs the emotions and works the thought into
-daily life. The forms of religion, the Churches, the doctrines,
-the ritual, the sacraments, which meant so much to their
-fathers and to some of their neighbours, mean nothing to
-them. They have lost touch with the forms of religious
-thought as they have not lost touch with the forms of
-political thought.</p>
-
-<p>Forms are the clothes of thought. Forms are lifeless,
-and thought is living. Unless the forms are worn every
-day they cease to fit the thought, as left-off clothes cease
-to fit the body. English citizens who have gone on wearing
-the old forms of political thought can therefore go on talking
-and acting as if the King ruled to-day as Queen Elizabeth
-ruled 300 years ago, but these non-church-going
-folk, who for generations have left off wearing the forms
-of religious thought, cannot use the words about the Most
-High which the Churches and preachers use. They have
-breathed an atmosphere charged by science—they are
-rationalists, they have a vision of morality and goodness
-exceeding that advocated by many of the Churches. They
-have themselves created great societies, and their votes have
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">6</span>made and unmade governments. When, therefore, they
-regard the Churches, the doctrines of preachers, and all the
-forms of religion, not as those to whom by use they are
-familiar or by history illuminated, but as strangers, they
-see what seem to them stiff services, irrational doctrine,
-disorganized and unbusinesslike systems, and the self-assertion
-of priests and ministers. They, with their yearnings
-to touch goodness, find nothing in these forms which makes
-them say, “There, that is what I mean,” and go on stirred
-in their hearts. They who have learnt to think turn away
-sadly or scornfully from teaching such as that of the Salvation
-Army about blood and fire, where emotion is without
-thought. Those who manage their own affairs resent
-membership in religious organizations where all is managed
-for them. They want a name for the Most High of whom
-they think as above and around themselves, but somehow
-the doctrines about Christ, whom they respect for His work
-2000 years ago, do not stir them up as if He were a present
-power. The working classes, says Dr. Fairbairn in his
-“Religion in History and Modern Life,” are alienated because
-“the Church has lost adaptation to the environment
-in which it lives”.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps, however, some one may say, “Forms are unimportant”.
-This may be true so far as regards a few rarely
-constituted minds, but the mass of men are seldom moved
-except through some human or humanized form. The
-elector may have his principles, but it is the candidate he
-cheers, it is his photograph he carries, it is his presence
-which rouses enthusiasm, and it is politicians’ names by
-which parties are called. The Russian peasant may say
-his prayers, but it is the ikon—the image dear to his fathers—which
-rouses him to do or to die. The Jews had no
-likeness of Jehovah, but the book of the law represented to
-them the thought and memories of their heart, and they
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">7</span>bound its words to their foreheads, their poets were stirred
-to write psalms in its praise, and by the emotions it raised
-its teaching was worked into their daily acts. A non-religious
-writer in the “Clarion” bears witness to the same
-fact when he says, “All effective movements must have
-creeds. It is impossible to satisfy the needs of any human
-mind or heart without some form of belief.” The Quaker
-who rejects so many forms has made a form of no-form,
-and his simple manner of speech, his custom of dress or
-worship, often moves him to his actions.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Gladstone bears testimony to the place of form in
-religion. “The Church,” he says, “presented to me Christianity
-under an aspect in which I had not yet known it,
-<span class="ellipsis">..</span>. its ministry of symbols, its channels of grace, its unending
-line of teachers forming from the Head a sublime
-construction based throughout on historic fact, uplifting
-the idea of the community in which we live, and of the
-access which it enjoys through the living way to the presence
-of the Most High.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Gladstone found in the Anglican Church a form of
-access to the Most High, and through this Church the
-thoughts of the Most High were worked into his daily life.
-Others through the Bible, the sacraments, humanity, or
-through some doctrine of Christ have found like means of
-access. Forms are essential to religion. Forms, indeed,
-have often become the whole of religion, so that people
-who have honoured images or words or names have forgotten
-goodness and justice—they wash the cup and platter and
-forget mercy and judgment; they say “Lord, Lord,” and
-do not the will of the Lord. Forms have often become
-idols, but the point I urge is that for the majority of mankind
-forms are necessary to religion. “Tell me thy name,”
-was the cry of Jacob, when all night he wrestled with
-an unknown power which condemned his life of selfish
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">8</span>duplicity; and every crisis in Israelitish history is marked
-by the revelation of a new name for the Most High. The
-Samaritans do not know what they worship; the Jews
-know what they worship,—was the rebuke of Christ to a
-wayward and ineffective nation. Even those Athenians to
-whom God was the Unknown God had to erect an altar to
-that God.</p>
-
-<p>The great mass of the people, because they have no form
-and stand apart from all religious communions, may have
-in them a religious sense, but their thought of God is not
-worked through their emotions into their daily lives. They
-do not know what they worship, and so do not say with the
-Psalmist, “My soul is athirst for the living God,” or say
-with Joseph, “How can I do this wickedness, and sin
-against God?” They have much sentiment about brotherhood,
-and they talk of the rights of all men; but they are
-not driven as St. Paul was driven to the service of their
-brothers, irrespective of class, or nation, or colour. They
-have not the zeal which says, “Woe is me if I preach not
-the Gospel”. They endure suffering with patience and meet
-death with submission, but they do not say, “I shall awake
-after His likeness and be satisfied”. The majority of
-English citizens would in an earthquake behave as brave
-men, but they have not the faith of the negroes who in
-the midst of such havoc sang songs of praise.</p>
-
-<p>The three constituents I included in the definition are
-all, I submit, necessary. Thought without form does not
-rouse the emotions. Form without thought is idolatry, and
-is fatal to growth. Emotion without thought has no abiding
-or persistent force. Religion is the thought of a
-Higher-than-self worked through the emotions into daily
-life.</p>
-
-<p>With this definition in mind I now sum up my impressions.
-The religion of the majority of the people is, I think,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">9</span>not such as enables them to say, “Here I take my stand.
-This course of life I can and will follow. This policy must
-overcome the world.” It is not such either as keeps down
-pride and egotism, and leads them to say as Abram said to
-Lot, “If you go to the right I will go to the left”. It does
-not make men and women anxious to own themselves
-debtors and to give praise. It does not drive them to greater
-and greater experiments in love; it does not give them
-peace. It is not the spur to action or the solace in distress.
-It has little recognition in daily talk or in the Press. One
-might, indeed, live many years, meet many men, and read
-many newspapers and not come into its contact or realize
-that England professes Christianity.</p>
-
-<p>When I ask my friends, “How does religion show itself
-in the actions of daily life?” I get no answer. There
-seems to be no acknowledged force arising from the conception
-of the Most High which restrains, impels, or rests
-men and women in their politics, their business, or their
-homes. There are, I suggest, three infallible signs of the
-presence of religion—calm courage, joyful humility, and a
-sense of life stronger than death. These signs are not
-obvious among the people.</p>
-
-<p>The condition is not satisfactory. It is not unlike that
-of Rome in the first century. The Roman had then forsaken
-his old worship of the gods in the temples, notwithstanding
-the official recognition of such worship and the
-many earnest attempts made for its revival. There was
-then, as now, something in the atmosphere of thought which
-was stronger than State or Church. There was then, as
-now, an interest in teachers of goodness who held up a
-course of conduct far above the conventional, and the
-thoughts of men played amid the new mysteries rising in
-the East. The Romans were restless, without anchorage
-or purpose. They were not satisfied with their bread and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">10</span>games; they walked in a dense shadow, and had no light from home. Into
-their midst came Christianity, giving a new name to the Most High,
-and stirring men’s hearts to do as joyful service what the Stoics had
-taught as dull duty.</p>
-
-<p>In the midst of the English people of to-day there are Churches and
-societies of numerous denominations. Their numbers are legion. In
-one East-London district about a mile square there were, I think, at
-one time over twenty different religious agencies. Their activity
-is twofold. They work from without to within, or from within to
-without—from the environment to the soul, or from the soul to the
-environment.</p>
-
-<p>1. The work from without to within, resolves itself into an endeavour
-to draw the people to join some religious communion. The environment
-which an organization provides counts for much, and influences
-therefrom constantly pass into the inner life. Membership in a Church
-or association with a mission often brings men and women into contact
-with a minister who offers an example of a life devoted to others’
-service. It opens to them ways of doing good, of teaching the children,
-of visiting the poor, and of joining in efforts for social reform. It
-affords a constant support in a definite course of conduct, and makes
-a regular call on the will to act up to the conventional standard,
-and it brings to bear on everyday action an insistent social pressure
-which is some safety against temptation. Sneers about the dishonesty
-of religious professors are common, but, as a matter of fact, the most
-honest and reputable members of the community are those connected with
-religious bodies.</p>
-
-<p>Those bodies have various characters, with various forms of doctrine
-and of ritual. Human beings, if they are true to themselves, cannot all
-adopt like forms; there are some
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">11</span>men and women who find a language for their souls in a
-ritual of colour and sound, there are others who can worship
-only in silence; there are some who are moved by one form
-of doctrine, and others who are moved by another form.
-Uniformity is unnatural to man, and the Act of Religious
-Uniformity has proved to be disastrous to growth of thought
-and goodwill. Progress through the ages is marked by the
-gradual evolution of the individual, and the strongest society
-is that where there are the most vigorous individualities.
-If this be admitted, it must be admitted also that the growth
-of vigorous denominations, and not uniformity, is also the
-mark of progress.</p>
-
-<p>But, it may be said, denominations are the cause of half
-the quarrels which divide society, and of half the wars which
-have decimated mankind. This is true enough. The denominations
-are now hindering the way of education, and
-it was as denominations that Catholics and Protestants
-drowned Europe in thirty years of bloodshed. It is, however,
-equally true to say that nationalities have been the
-cause of war, and that the way of peace is hard, because
-French, Germans, and British are so patriotically concerned
-for their own rights. Nationalities, however, become strong
-during the period of struggle, and they develop characteristics
-valuable for the whole human family; but the
-end to which the world is moving is not a universal empire
-under the dominance of the strongest, it is to a unity in
-which the strength of each nationality will make possible
-the federation of the world. In the same way denominations
-pass through a period of strife; they too develop their
-characteristics; and the hope of religion is not in the
-dominance of any one denomination, but in a unity to which
-each is necessary.</p>
-
-<p>The world learnt slowly the lesson of toleration, and at
-last the strong are feeling more bound to bear with those
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">12</span>who differ from themselves. There is, however, dawning
-on the horizon a greater lesson than that of toleration of
-differences: it is that of respect for differences. As that
-lesson prevails, each denomination will not cease to be
-keen for its own belief; it will also be keen to pay honour
-to every honest belief. The neighbourhood of another denomination
-will be as welcome as the discovery of another
-star to the astronomer, or as the finding of a new animal to
-the naturalist, or as is the presence of another strong personality
-in a company of friends. The Church of the future
-cannot be complete without many chapels. The flock of
-the Good Shepherd includes many folds.</p>
-
-<p>The energy of innumerable Churches and missions is daily
-strengthening denominations, and they seem to me likely
-to stand out more and more clearly in the community.
-One advantage I would emphasize. Each denomination
-may offer an example of a society of men and women living
-in reasonable accord with its own doctrine—not, I ask
-you to reflect, just a community of fellow-worshippers, but,
-like the Quakers, translating faith into matters of business
-and the home. Mediaeval Christians sold all they had and
-lived as monks or nuns. Nineteenth century Christians
-were kind to their poorer neighbours. Twentieth century
-Christians might give an example of a society fitting a time
-which has learnt the value of knowledge and beauty, and
-has seen that justice to the poor is better than kindness.
-Every generation must have its own form of Christianity.</p>
-
-<p>The earnest endeavour of so many active men and women
-to increase the strength of their own denomination has
-therefore much promise: provided always, let me say, they
-do not win recruits by self-assertion, by exaggeration, or by
-the subtle bribery of treats and blankets. Each denomination
-honestly strengthened by additional members is the
-better able to manifest some aspect of the Christian life,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">13</span>and, in response to the call of that life, more inclined to reform
-the doctrines and methods which tend to alienate a
-scientific and democratic generation.</p>
-
-<p>Such denominations are, I submit, those most likely to
-reform themselves, and as they come to offer various
-examples of a Christian society, where wealth is without
-self-assertion, where poverty is without shame, where unemployment
-and ignorance are prevented by just views of
-human claims, and where joy is “in widest commonalty
-spread,” all the members of the community will in such examples
-better find the name of the Most High, and feel the
-power of religion. “If,” says Dr. Fairbairn, “religion were
-truly interpreted in the lives of Christian men, there is no
-fear as to its being believed.” “What is wanted is not
-more Christians but better Christians.”</p>
-
-<p>2. The activity of ministers and missionaries is, as I have
-said, twofold. Besides working from without to within by
-building up denominations, it also works from within to
-without by converting individuals. Members of every
-Church or mission are, in ordinary phrase, intent “to save
-souls”. Their work is not for praise, and is sacred from any
-intrusion. Spirit wrestles with spirit, and power passes
-by unknown ways. Souls are only kindled by souls. Conversion
-opens blind eyes to see the Most High, but it is not
-in human power to direct the ways of conversion. The
-spirit bloweth where it listeth. There are, however, other
-means by which eyes may be opened at any rate to see, if
-only dimly, and some of these means are under human control.
-Such a means is that which is called higher education
-or university teaching, or the knowledge of the humanities.</p>
-
-<p>I would therefore conclude by calling notice to the much
-or the little which is being done by this higher education.
-The people are to a large extent blind because of the overwhelming
-glory of the present. They see nothing beyond
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">14</span>the marvellous revelations of science—its visions of possessions
-and of power, and its triumphs over the forces of
-nature. They are occupied in using the gigantic instruments
-which are placed at the command of the weakest, and they
-are driven on by some relentless pressure which allows no
-pause on the wayside of the road of life. They see power
-everywhere—power in the aggressive personalities which
-heap money in millions, power in the laboratory, power in
-the market-place, power in the Government; but they do
-not see anything which satisfies the human yearning for
-something higher and holier; they cannot see the God
-whose truth they feel and whose call they hear. Many of
-them look to the past and surround themselves with the
-forms of mediaeval days, and some go to the country,
-where, in a land of tender shades and silences, they try to
-commune with the Most High.</p>
-
-<p>But yet the words of John the Baptist rise eternally true,
-when he said to a people anxiously expectant, some with
-their eyes on the past, and some with their eyes on the
-future, “There standeth one among you”. The Most High,
-that is to say, is to be found, not in the past with its mysteries,
-its philosophies, and its dignity of phrase or ritual, and not
-in the future with its vague hopes of an earthly Paradise, but
-in the present with its hard facts, its scientific methods, its
-strong individualities, and the growing power of the State.
-The kingdom of heaven is at hand; the Highest which
-every one seeks is in the present. It is standing among us,
-and the one thing wanted is the eye to see.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Haldane, in the address to the students of Edinburgh
-University, has described the character of the higher teaching
-as a gospel of the wide outlook, as a means of giving a
-deeper sympathy and a keener insight, as offering a vision
-of the eternal which is here and now showing its students
-what is true in present realities, and inspiring them with a
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">15</span>loyalty to the truth as devoted as that of tribesmen to their
-chief. This sort of teaching, he says, brings down from the
-present realities, or from a Sinai ever accompanying mankind,
-“the Higher command,” with its eternal offer of life
-and blessing—that is to say, it opens men’s eyes to see in
-the present the form of the Most High. Higher education
-is thus a part of religious activity.</p>
-
-<p>I am glad to know that my conclusion is shared by Dr.
-Fairbairn, who, speaking of the worker in our great cities,
-and of his alienation from religion, says, “The first thing
-to be done is to enrich and ennoble his soul, to beget in him
-purer tastes and evoke higher capacities”.</p>
-
-<p>I will conclude by calling notice to the much or the little
-which is being done to open the people’s eyes by means of
-higher education. I fear it is “the little”. There are many
-classes and many teachers for spreading skill, there are some
-which increase interest in nature; there are few—very few—which
-bring students into touch with the great minds and
-thoughts of all countries and all ages—very few, that is,
-classes for the humanities. For want of this the souls of
-the people are poor, and their capacities dwarfed; they
-cannot see that modern knowledge has made the Bible a
-modern book, or how the bells of a new age have rung in
-the “Christ that is to be”.</p>
-
-<p>For thirty-four years my wife and I have been engaged
-in social experiments. Many ways have been tried, and
-always the recognized object has been the religion of the
-people—religion, that is, in the sense which I have defined
-as that faith in the Highest which is the impulse of human
-progress, man’s spur to loving action, man’s rest in the
-midst of sorrow, man’s hope in death.</p>
-
-<p>With the object of preparing the way to this religion,
-schools have been improved, houses have been built and
-open spaces secured. Holidays have been made more
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">16</span>healthy, and the best in art has been made more common. But, viewing
-all these efforts of many reformers, I am prepared to say that the
-most pressing need is for higher education. Where such education is
-to begin, what is the meaning of religious education in elementary
-schools, and how it is to be extended, is part of another subject. It
-is enough now if, having as my subject the religion of the people, I
-state my opinion that there is no activity which more surely advances
-religion than the teaching which gives insight, far sight, and wide
-sight. The people, for want of religion, are unstable in their policy,
-joyless in their amusements, and uninspired by any sure and certain
-hope. They have not the sense of sin—in modern language, none of that
-consciousness of unreached ideals which makes men humble and earnest.
-They have not the grace of humility nor the force of a faith stronger
-than death. It may seem a far cry from a teacher’s class-room to the
-peace and power of a Psalmist or of a St. Paul; but, as Archbishop
-Benson said, “Christ is a present Christ, and all of us are His
-contemporaries”. And my own belief is that the eye opened by higher
-education is on the way to find in the present the form of the Christ
-who will satisfy the human longing for the Higher-than-self.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">17</span>
- <h3 title="CATHEDRAL REFORM." id="ch02">CATHEDRAL REFORM.<a href="#f21" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>December, 1898.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f21">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch02" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Nineteenth Century and After”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Cathedrals</span> have risen in popular estimation. They represent
-the past to the small but slowly increasing number
-of people who now realize that there is a past out of which
-the present has grown. They are recognized as interesting
-historical monuments; their power is felt as an aid to worship,
-and some worshippers who would think their honesty
-compromised by their presence at a church or a chapel, say
-their prayers boldly in the “national” cathedral. A trade-union
-delegate, who had been present at the Congress, was
-surprised on the following Sunday afternoon to recognize
-in St. Paul’s some of his fellow delegates. No reformer
-would now dare to propose that cathedrals should be
-secularized.</p>
-
-<p>But neither would any one who considers the power
-latent in cathedral establishments for developing the
-spiritual side of human nature profess himself satisfied. It
-is not enough that the buildings should be restored, so
-that they may be to-day what they were 400 or 500 years
-ago, nor is it enough that active deans should increase
-sermons and services.</p>
-
-<p>A cathedral has a unique position. It holds the imagination
-of the people. Men who live in the prison of mean cares
-remember how as children their thoughts wandered free amid
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">18</span>the lights and shadows of tombs, pillars, arches, and recesses.
-Worshippers face to face with real sorrow, who turn aside
-from the trivialities of ritual, feel that there is in the solemn
-grandeur a power to lift them above their cares.</p>
-
-<p>A cathedral indeed attracts to itself that spiritual longing
-which, perhaps, more than the longing for power or for
-liberty, is the sign of the times. This longing, compared
-with rival longings, may be as small as a mustard-seed, but
-everywhere men are becoming conscious that things within
-their grasp are not the things they were made to reach.
-There is a heaven for which they are fitted, and which is
-not far from any one of them. They like to hear large
-words, and to move in large crowds. They see that
-“dreaming” is valuable as well as “doing”. They feel
-that there is a kinship between themselves and the hidden
-unknown greatness in which they live. The ideal leader of
-the day is a mystic who can be practical.</p>
-
-<p>Men turning, therefore, from churches or chapels which
-are identified with narrow views, and from a ritual which
-has occupied the more vacant minds, are prepared to pay
-respect to the cathedral with its grand associations.</p>
-
-<p>And the cathedrals which thus attract to themselves
-modern hope, and become almost the symbol of the day’s
-movement, are equipped to respond to the demand. They
-have both men and money. They have men qualified to
-serve, and a body of singers qualified to make common the
-best music, and they have endowments varying from £4000
-to £10,000 a year.</p>
-
-<p>A cathedral is attractive by its grandeur and its beauty,
-but it ought to be something more than an historic monument.
-Its staff is ample, and is often active, but it ought
-to be something more than a parish church.</p>
-
-<p>Its government, however, is so hampered that it can
-hardly be anything else, and the energies of the chapter are
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">19</span>spent in efforts to follow the orders of restoring architects.
-The building is cleared of innovations introduced by predecessors,
-who had in view use and not art. Its deficiencies
-are supplied, the dreams and intentions of the early builders
-are discovered, and at last a church is completed such as
-our ancestors would have desired.</p>
-
-<p>The self-devotion of deans or canons in producing this
-result provokes admiration from those who in their hearts
-disapprove. Money is freely given, and, what is often
-harder to do, donations are persistently begged. The time
-and ability of men who have earned a reputation as workers,
-thinkers, or teachers, are spent in completing a monument
-over which antiquaries will quarrel and round which parties
-of visitors will be taken at 6d. a head.</p>
-
-<p>The building has little other use than as a parish church,
-and the ideal, before a chapter, anxious to do its duty, is to
-have frequent communions, services, and sermons, as in the
-best worked parishes. In some cases there is a large response.
-The communicants are many, but, being unknown
-to one another and to the clergy, they miss the strength
-they might have derived by communicating with their
-neighbours in their own churches. The sermons are sometimes
-listened to by crowded congregations, but the people
-are often drawn from other places of worship, and miss the
-teaching given by one to whom they are best known. But
-in most cases the response is small. The daily services,
-supported by a large and well-trained choir of men and
-boys, preceded by a dignified procession of vergers and
-clergy, often help only two or three worshippers. Many of
-the Holy Communions which are announced are not celebrated
-for want of communicants, and the sermons are not
-always such as are suitable for the people.</p>
-
-<p>There are, indeed, special but rare occasions when the
-cathedral shows its possibilities. It may be a choir festival,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">20</span>when 500 or 600 voices find space within its walls to give a
-service for people interested in the various parishes. It may
-be some civic or national function, when the Corporation
-attends in state, or some meeting of an association or
-friendly society, when the church is filled by people drawn
-from a wide area. On all those occasions the fitness of the
-grand building and fine music to meet the needs of the
-moment is recognized, and the citizens are proud of their
-cathedral.</p>
-
-<p>But generally they are not proud. They think—when
-they care enough to think at all—that a building with such
-power over their imagination ought to be more used, and
-that such well-paid officials ought to do more work. “One
-canon,” a workman remarked, “ought to do all that is done,
-and the money of the others could be divided among poor
-curates.” The members of the chapter would probably
-agree as to the need of reform. It is not their conservatism,
-it is the old statutes which stand in the way.</p>
-
-<p>These statutes differ in the various cathedrals, but all
-alike suffer from the neglect of the living hand of the popular
-will which in civil matters is always shaping old laws to
-present needs. Their object seems to be not so much to
-secure energetic action as to prevent aggression. Activity,
-and not indolence, was apparently the danger which
-threatened the Church in those old days.</p>
-
-<p>The Bishop, who is visitor and is called the head of the
-cathedral, cannot officiate—as of right—in divine service;
-he is not entitled to take part in the Holy Communion or
-to preach during ordinary service.</p>
-
-<p>The Dean governs the church, and has altogether the
-regulation of the services; but he can only preach at the
-ordinary services at three festivals during the year.</p>
-
-<p>The Canons, who preach every Sunday, have no power
-over the order or method of the uses of the church.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">21</span>The Precentor, who is authorized to select the music and
-is required to take care that the choir be instructed and
-trained in their parts, must not himself give instruction
-and training.</p>
-
-<p>The Organist, who has to train and instruct the boys, has
-to do so in hours fixed by the Precentor, and in music chosen
-by him.</p>
-
-<p>An establishment so constituted cannot have the vigour
-or elasticity or unity necessary to adapt cathedrals to modern
-needs. It affords, as Trollope discovered, and as most
-citizens are aware, a field for the play of all sorts of petty
-rivalries and jealousies. No official can move without
-treading on the other’s rights. Bishops, Deans, and Canons
-hide their feelings under excessive courtesies. Precentors
-and Organists try to settle their rights in the law courts,
-and the trivialities of the Cathedral Close have become
-proverbial.</p>
-
-<p>The apparent uselessness of buildings so prominent, and
-of a staff so costly, provokes violent criticism. Reformers
-become revolutionists as the Dean, Chapter, and choir daily
-summon congregations which do not appear, and the officials
-become slovenly and careless as they daily perform their
-duties in an empty church. Sacraments may be offered in
-vain as well as taken in vain, and institutions established
-for other needs which go on, regardless of such needs, are
-self-condemned.</p>
-
-<p>If the army or navy or any department of the civil service
-were so constituted, the demand for reform would be insistent.
-“We will not endure,” the public voice would
-proclaim, “that an instrument on whose fitness we depend
-shall be so ineffective. It is not enough that the members
-of the profession are prevented from injuring one another.
-Our concern is not their feelings, but our protection.” It
-is characteristic of the indifference to religious interests that
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">22</span>an instrument, so costly and so capable of use as a cathedral
-establishment, has been left to rust through so many years,
-and that the troubles of a Chapter should be matter for jokes
-and not for indignant anger.</p>
-
-<p>A Royal Commission, indeed, was appointed in 1879.
-It was in the earlier years presided over by Archbishop
-Tait, who showed, both by his constant presence and by
-his lively interest, how deeply he had felt and how much
-he had reflected on this subject. The Commissioners had
-128 meetings, and issued their final report in 1885; but
-notwithstanding the humble and almost pathetic appeal
-that something should be “quickly done” to remedy the
-abuses they had discovered, and forward the uses which
-they saw possible, nothing whatever has been done. The
-position of the Cathedrals still mocks the intelligence of the
-people they exist to serve, and the hopes which the spread
-of education has developed.</p>
-
-<p>The Commissioners recognized the change which had been
-going on in the feeling with regard to the tie which binds
-together the cathedral and the people, and their recommendations
-lead up, as they themselves profess, to “the
-grand conception of the Bishop of a diocese working from
-his cathedral as a spiritual centre, of the machinery there
-supplied being intended to produce an influence far beyond
-the cathedral precincts, of the capitular body being interested
-in the whole diocese, and of the whole diocese having claims
-on the capitular body”.</p>
-
-<p>This conception, apart from its technical phraseology,
-may be taken as satisfactory. “A live Cathedral in a live
-Diocese” is, in the American phrase, what all desire. It
-may be questioned, however, in the light of thirteen years’
-further experience of growing humanity, whether their recommendations
-would bring the conception much nearer
-to realization.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">23</span>Their recommendations are somewhat difficult to generalize.
-The peculiarities and eccentricities in the constitution
-of each cathedral are infinite. Some are on the old
-foundation, with their Deans, Precentors, Chancellors, and
-Prebendaries. Some date from Henry VIII, and have
-only a Dean and a small number of residentiary Canons.
-Some possess statutes which are hopelessly obsolete, and
-one claims validity for a new body of statutes adopted by
-itself. Some are under the control of the chapter only, some
-have minor corporations. Some have striven to act up to
-the letter of old orders, some have statutes which are of no
-legal authority. But the difference of constitution of the
-several cathedrals was by no means the only difficulty with
-which the Commissioners had to contend.</p>
-
-<p>There is the difference in their local circumstances. Some,
-as Bristol and Norwich, are in the midst of large populations;
-some, as Ely and St. David’s, are in small towns or
-amid village people. St. Paul’s, London, stands in a position
-so peculiar that it does not admit of comparison with
-any other cathedral in the kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>There is, further, the difference in wealth and the provision
-of residences for the capitular body; some are rich, and endowed
-with all that is necessary for the performance of
-their duties; some are comparatively poor.</p>
-
-<p>The Commissioners have met these difficulties by considering
-each cathedral separately, and by issuing on each
-a separate report with separate recommendations. There
-is, however, a character and a principle common to all their
-recommendations, by which a judgment may be formed as
-to how far they would, if adopted, fit cathedrals to the
-needs of the time.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><abbr title="1">I.</abbr>—<span class="sc">Central Authority.</span></h4>
-
-<p>The Commissioners were at the outset met by the fact that
-cathedral bodies are stationary institutions in a growing
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">24</span>society. They remain as they had been formed in distant
-days: ships stranded high above the water-line, in which
-the services went on as if the passengers and cargo had not
-long found other means of transit. They felt that even if
-by the gigantic effort involved in parliamentary action the
-cathedrals were reformed in order to suit the changed society
-of the nineteenth century, the reforms would not necessarily
-suit the twentieth century. They saw that there must be a
-central authority always in touch with public opinion, which
-would, year by year, or generation by generation, shape
-uses to needs.</p>
-
-<p>They at once therefore introduced the Cathedral Statutes
-Bill, by which a Cathedral Committee of the Privy Council
-was to be appointed. The Bill did not become law, but the
-provision was admirable. By this means, just as the Committee
-of Council year by year now issues an Education
-Code, by which changes suggested by experience or inquiry
-are introduced into the educational system of the country,
-so this new Committee of Council was, as occasion required,
-to issue new statutes to control or develop the use
-of cathedrals.</p>
-
-<p>A living rule was to take the place of the dead hand.
-Representative men, and not the authority of an individual
-or of an old statute, were henceforth to control this State
-provision for the religious interests of the people, as a
-similar body, with manifest advantage, controls the State
-provision for the secular interests. A Committee of the
-Privy Council made up of the Ministers of the day, being
-professed Christians, together with some experts, is probably
-the best central authority to be devised.</p>
-
-<p>But when the Commissioners further proposed that after
-the expiration of their commission it should remain with
-Deans and Chapters to submit proposals for reform in the
-use of their cathedrals, they at once limited the utility of that
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">25</span>central authority. Is it to be conceived that Deans and Chapters will
-promote necessary reforms? Can they be said to be in touch with the
-people? Will they, if they make wise and far-reaching suggestions, be
-trusted as representatives?</p>
-
-<p>The Commission aimed to create a living authority, and
-then proposed to bind it hand and foot; it set up a body of
-representative men capable of daring and of cautious action,
-and then limited the sphere of such action by the decisions
-of Chapters sometimes concerned for inaction.</p>
-
-<p>The obvious criticism is a testimony to the progress of
-the last few years. Education and the extension of local
-government have made all parties recognise that the voice
-of the people ought to be trusted, and can be trusted.
-Checks and safeguards are no longer thought to be so necessary.
-Interests once jealously preserved by the classes are
-now known to be safe in the hands of the masses. The
-Crown, property, order, are all safe grounded on the people’s
-will.</p>
-
-<p>It seems therefore out of place, in the eyes of the present
-generation, to safeguard every change in the use of the cathedral
-by trusting to those proposed by Dean and Chapter.
-The basis of government must be democratic. The people,
-and not any class, must have the chief voice in their control.
-The County Councils, by means of a committee of professed
-Christians, the Diocesan Council, or any body to which the
-people of the neighbourhood have free access, should be that
-empowered to bring suggestions before the central authority.
-In the Church of England, of which every Englishman is a
-member, and whose Prayer Book is an Act of Parliament,
-there is no new departure in making the County Councils
-the originating bodies to suggest uses for the cathedral.</p>
-
-<p>With the growing interest to which allusion has been
-made, it is not hard to conceive that the call for suggestions
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">26</span>would evoke deeper thought and remind members of secular
-bodies that progress without religion is very hollow. Parliament
-was never more dignified, or better fitted for foreign
-or home policy, than when it held Church government to
-be its most important function. County Councils, called on
-through their committees to submit suggestions for the
-better use of the cathedrals to the Committee of Privy
-Council, might be elevated by the call, and at the same time
-offer advice valuable in itself, and approved by the people
-as coming from their representatives.</p>
-
-<p>The first essential cathedral reform is therefore a central
-authority as recommended by the Commission, which, on
-the initiative of really representative bodies, shall have
-power to make statutes and publish rules of procedure in
-the several cathedrals.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><abbr title="2">II.</abbr>—<span class="sc">The Bishop and His Cathedral.</span></h4>
-
-<p>The Commissioners were evidently struck by the need of
-promoting “earnest and harmonious co-operation between
-the Bishop of the Diocese and the Cathedral Body”. They
-have endeavoured, as they reiterate, “to define and establish
-the relation in which the Bishop stands to the cathedral,
-and have made provision for assuring to him his legitimate
-position and influence”. When, however, reference is made
-to the statutes by which they carry out their intention, they
-seem very inadequate: the Bishop, for instance, is to “have
-the highest place of dignity whenever he is present”; “to
-preach whenever he may think fit”; “to hold visitation
-and exercise any function of his episcopal office whenever
-it may seem good”. He is also empowered to nominate a
-certain number of preachers, and is constituted the authority
-to give leave of absence to the Dean or Canons. The
-Dean, however, is left responsible for the services, in control
-of the officials, and at liberty to develop the use of the church.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">27</span>It is difficult to see how, by such changes, the cathedral
-will become the spiritual centre from which the Bishop will
-work his diocese, and at the same time have harmonious
-relations with the Dean and Chapter. If he uses his full
-powers: gathers week by week diocesan organizations for
-worship, for encouragement, and for admonition; if he is
-often present at the services, if he arranges classes for the
-clergy, devotional meetings for church workers; if he institutes
-sermons and lectures on history or on the signs of
-the times—what is there left for the Dean and Canons to
-do? If he does not do such things, how can he make the
-cathedral the centre of spiritual life?</p>
-
-<p>The Commission was evidently hampered in its recommendation
-by the presence of two dignitaries with somewhat
-conflicting duties. The simple solution is to make the
-Bishop the Dean. He would then have, as by right, all the
-powers it is proposed to confer upon him; he would exercise
-them at all times, without fear of any collision, and he
-would be in name and fact the sole authority in carrying
-out the statutes, and in controlling all subordinate officials.
-He would then be able to make the cathedral familiar to
-every soul in his diocese, associate its building and services
-with every organization for the common good—secular and
-religious—with choral societies, clubs, governing bodies,
-friendly societies, missionary associations, and such like.
-He would, in fact, make the cathedral the centre of spiritual
-life, and he would for ever abolish the petty rivalries and
-jealousies which grow up under divided control, and
-which bring such discredit on cathedral management. He
-would be master, and it is for want of a master that each
-official is now so disposed to magnify the petty privileges
-of his own office. There must be some one who is really
-big, that others may feel their proper place.</p>
-
-<div>
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">28</span>
- <h4 class="subsecthead"><abbr title="3">III.</abbr>—<span class="sc">The Canons and Their Utility.</span></h4>
-</div>
-
-<p>The Commission has little to suggest, save that they
-should be compelled to reside for eight months of the year
-in the neighbourhood of the cathedral, and during three
-months attend morning and evening service, each one
-“habited in a surplice with a hood denoting his degree”.
-They are also, if called on, “to give instruction in theological
-and religious subjects, or discharge some missionary
-or other useful work”. These functions seem hardly sufficient
-for men who are to receive £800 a year, and it is difficult
-to see what virtue there is in mere technical residence,
-or how daily attendance at service is compatible with the
-performance of regular duties as citizens or teachers.</p>
-
-<p>The Canons would better help in making the cathedral
-the centre of spiritual life if they were the Suffragan Bishops
-of the diocese. They would in this case have to receive
-appointment by the Bishop, and take duties assigned by
-him. One might be responsible for the order of the services,
-for the care of the property of the cathedral, and for
-the proper control of the officials. He might, indeed, be
-called the Dean. Another might be a lecturer or teacher for
-the instruction of the clergy, and the others might assist the
-Bishop in those functions which now so largely intrude on
-his time.</p>
-
-<p>The Bishop of the twentieth century looms large in the
-distance. He has a place not given to any of his predecessors,
-as a democratic age has greater need of leaders. He
-is called to new duties and new functions, and the danger
-is that he who might be lifting his clergy on to a higher
-plane, meeting them soul to soul, and comforting them by
-his contagious piety, will be absorbed in organizing, in
-business, or in the performance of functions. Suffragan
-Bishops attached to the cathedral would relieve him from
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">29</span>“such serving tables,” and leave him more free to be a
-father in God to the clergy.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><abbr title="4">IV.</abbr>—<span class="sc">The Fabric and Finance.</span></h4>
-
-<p>The care of the fabrics is more and more recognized as
-a national concern. Not long ago there was a proposal
-put forward by non-Christians for their preservation out of
-local or national resources. The Commissioners’ suggestion
-that a report on their condition should be published at frequent
-intervals shows trust in the readiness of a voluntary
-response, but it is hardly a businesslike recommendation.</p>
-
-<p>The suggestion, already made in this paper, that some
-local representative body, such as the County Council, should
-be the body authorized to initiate reforms in the use of the
-building, would naturally lead to the same body becoming
-responsible for its proper care. It is not hard to conceive
-of such a growing interest as would lead to a ready expenditure
-under the direction of the best advisers. The mass
-of the people are now shut out from contribution; their pence
-are not valued, and even if their gift “be half their living,”
-it opens to them no place on the restoration committee.</p>
-
-<p>If the cathedral is to be the people’s church, its support
-must rest on the people, and this is only possible by means
-of the local bodies which they control.</p>
-
-<p>Finance, as might be expected in a commercial country,
-takes up a large portion of the report. Failure is again and
-again attributed to poverty, and a schedule shows what is
-wanting in each cathedral for the proper payment of officials.
-The total per annum is an increase of £10,876. The
-Commissioners’ happy thought was, “Why not get this
-amount from the Ecclesiastical Commissioners, who have
-profited largely from cathedral property?” They forthwith
-made application and were duly snubbed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">30</span>But the suggestion already made in this paper, for the
-more harmonious management of cathedrals by the absorption
-of the Dean’s functions in that of the Bishop, at once
-solves the financial difficulty. The salaries now given to
-the Deans—probably on an average at least £1000 a year—would
-then be ready for redistribution, and might follow
-the lines suggested by the Commissioners, and would supply
-other gaps due to the depreciation of agricultural values.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">Conclusion.</span></h4>
-
-<p>The Commissioners take into view many details connected
-with the other officials, with the rivalry of Precentor
-and Organist, with the meeting of the greater chapter, and
-with the abolition of the minor corporations existing in
-some cathedrals alongside of the chapter corporation, which
-are in their way important, but which would all fall into
-place under a large scheme of reform.</p>
-
-<p>The essentials of such a scheme are, it is submitted, (1)
-control by a distinguished body, like that of the Committee
-of the Privy Council, which takes its initiative from a
-representative body like that of the County Council; (2)
-the reinstatement of the Bishop as the chief officer of the
-cathedral, with the Canons as his suffragans.</p>
-
-<p>The cathedrals seem to be waiting to be used by the new
-spiritual force which, amid the wreck of so much that is old,
-is surely appearing. There is a widespread consciousness of
-their value—an unexpressed instinct of respect which is not
-satisfied by the disquisitions of antiquarians or the praises
-of artists. Common people as well as Royal Commissioners
-feel that cathedrals have a part to play in the coming time.
-What that part is none can foretell, but all agree that the
-cathedrals must be preserved and beautified, that the
-teaching and the music they offer must be of the best,
-offered at frequent and suitable times, and that they must
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">31</span>be used for the service of the great secular and religious
-corporations of the diocese.</p>
-
-<p>Under the scheme here proposed this would be possible.
-The Bishop, as head of the cathedral, would direct the order
-of the daily worship and teaching, arrange for the giving of
-great musical works, and invite on special occasions any
-active organization. He would have as coadjutors able
-men chosen by himself, who, by lectures, meetings, and
-conferences, would make the building alive with use. He
-would have behind him the committee of the County
-Councils or other local authority, empowered to suggest
-changes in the statutes as new times brought new needs,
-and ready with money as their interest was developed.
-The scheme, at any rate, has the merit of utilizing two
-growing forces—that of the Bishop, and that of local government.
-No scheme can secure that these forces will work
-to the best ends. That, as everything else, must depend on
-the extent to which the growing forces are inspired by the
-spirit of Christ.</p>
-
-<p>A cathedral used as a Bishop would use it would receive
-a new consecration by the manifold uses. Just as the
-silence of a crowd which might speak is more impressive
-than the silence of the dumb, so is the quiet of a building
-which is much used more solemn than the quiet of a building
-kept swept and clean for show. Our cathedrals, being
-centres of activity, would more and more impress those
-who, themselves anxious and careful about many things,
-feel the impulse of the spiritual force of the time. Workmen
-and business-men would come to possess their souls in
-quiet meditation, or to join unnoticed in services of worship
-which express aspirations often too full for words.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">32</span>
- <h3 title="THE CATHEDRALS AND MODERN NEEDS." id="ch03">THE CATHEDRALS AND MODERN NEEDS.<a href="#f31" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>1912.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f31">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch03" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Contemporary Review”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">This</span> generation is face to face with many and hard problems.
-Perhaps the hardest and the one which underlies
-all the others is that which concerns the spiritualizing of
-life. Discoveries and inventions have largely increased the
-attractions of the things which can be seen and heard,
-touched, and tasted. Rich and poor have alike found that
-the world is full of so many things that they ought to be all
-as happy as kings, and the one ideal which seems to command
-any enthusiasm is a Socialistic State, where material
-things will be more equally divided among all classes.</p>
-
-<p>But even so, there is an underlying consciousness that
-possessions do not satisfy human nature. Millionaires are
-seen to miss happiness, and something else than armaments
-are wanted to make the strength of a nation. There is thus
-a widely-spread disposition to take more account of spiritual
-forces, and people who have not themselves the courage to
-forsake all for the sake of an idea speak with sympathy of
-religion and patronize the Salvation Army. There is much
-talk of “rival ideals dominating action,” and the prevalent
-unrest seems to come from a demand, not so much for more
-money as for more respect, more recognition of equality,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">33</span>more room for the exercise of admiration, hope, and love.
-Modern unrest is, in fact, a cry for light.</p>
-
-<p>The problem which is haunting this generation is how to
-spiritualize the forces which are shaping the future; how to
-inspire labour and capital with thoughts which will both
-elevate and control their actions; how to enable rich and
-poor to move in a larger world, seeing things which eyes
-cannot see; how to open channels between eternal sources
-and every day’s need; how to give to all the sense of
-partnership in a progress which is fitting the earth for man’s
-enjoyment and men for one another’s comfort. The spiritualization
-of life being necessary to human peace and happiness;
-its accomplishment is the goal of all reformers, and
-every reform may in fact be measured by its power to
-advance or hinder progress to that goal.</p>
-
-<p>I would suggest that the cathedrals are especially designed
-to help in the solution of the problem. Their attractiveness
-is a striking fact, and people who are too busy
-to read or to pray seem to find time to visit buildings where
-they will gain no advantage for their trade or profession,
-not even fresh air for their bodies. They are recognized
-as civic or national possessions, and working people who
-stand aloof from places of worship, or patronize meeting-houses,
-are distinctly interested in their care and preservation.
-They have an unfailing hold on the popular
-imagination, so that it is always easy to gather a congregation
-to take part in a service, or to listen to a lecture.</p>
-
-<p>“It was not so much what the lecturer said,” was the
-reflection of Mr. Crooks after a lecture in Westminster
-Abbey on English History, “as the place in which it was
-given.”</p>
-
-<p>The cathedrals have thus a peculiar position in the
-modern world, and if it be asked to what the position is due
-I am inclined to answer: to their unostentatious grandeur
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">34</span>and to their testimony to the past. They are high and
-mighty, they lift their heads to heaven, and they open their
-doors to the humblest. They give the best away, and ask
-for nothing, neither praise nor notice. They are buildings
-through which the stream of ages has flowed, familiar to
-the people of old time as of the present, bearing traces of
-Norman strength and English aspirations, of the enthusiasm
-of Catholics and Puritans, of the hopes of the makers of the
-nation. The cathedrals are thus in touch with the spiritual
-sides of life, and make their appeal to the same powers
-which desire before all things to see the fair beauty of the
-Lord, and to commune with man’s eternal mind.</p>
-
-<p>But the cathedrals which make this appeal can hardly be
-said to be well used. There are the somewhat perfunctory
-services morning and afternoon, often suspended or degraded
-during holiday months when visitors are most numerous;
-there are sermons rarely to be distinguished from those
-heard in a thousand parish churches; there is a staff of
-eight or ten clergy who may be busy at good works, but
-certainly do not make their cathedral position their platform;
-and there are guides who for a small fee will conduct
-parties round the church. Among these guides are indeed
-to be found men who have made a study of the building,
-and are able to talk of it as lovers, but the guides for the
-most part give no other information than lists of names and
-dates, sometimes relieved by a common-place anecdote.
-The cathedrals are treated as museums, and not so well as
-the Forum of Rome. The question is: Can they be made
-of greater use in spiritualizing life? I would offer some
-suggestions:—</p>
-
-<p>1. Cathedrals might, I think, be more generally used for
-civic, county and national functions, for intercession at
-times of crisis, and for services in connexion with meetings
-of conferences and congresses. The services might be
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">35</span>especially adapted by music and by speech to deepen the
-effect of the building with its grandeur and memories. The
-use in this direction has increased of late years, and even
-when the service seems to be little more than a church
-parade, those present are often helped by the reminder that
-their immediate concern has a place in a greater whole.
-But the use might be largely extended, so that every
-example of corporate life might be set in the framework
-which would give it dignity. Elections to civic councils
-might be better understood if the newly-elected bodies
-gathered in the grand central building where vulgar divisions
-would be hushed in the greatness, and the ambitions of
-parties lifted up into an atmosphere in which the rivals of
-past days are recognized in their common service to the
-State. The meetings of congresses and conferences—of
-scientific and trade societies—of leagues and unions for
-social reform would be helped by beginning their deliberations
-in a place which would both humble and widen the
-thoughts of the members.</p>
-
-<p>Intercessional services, when guided by a few directing
-words, at which men and women would gather to fix their
-minds on great ideals—on peace—on sympathy with the
-oppressed—on the needs of children and prisoners, would
-gain force from the association of a building where generations
-have prayed and hoped and suffered. And if, as well
-as being more frequent, such use were more carefully considered
-the effect would be much deeper. It is not enough,
-for instance, that the service should always follow the old
-form, and the music be elaborate and the sermon orthodox.
-Consideration might be given so that prayers, and music,
-and speech might all be made to work together with the influences
-of the building to touch the spiritual side of the
-object interesting to the congregation. The soul of the
-least important member of a civic council or a society is
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">36</span>larger than its programme. The cathedral service might
-be, by much consideration, designed to help such souls to
-realize something of the vast horizons in which they move—something
-of the infinite issues attached to their resolutions
-and votes, something of the company filling the past
-and the future of which they are members. The cathedrals,
-by such frequent and well-considered uses, might do much
-to spiritualize life.</p>
-
-<p>2. There are, as I have said, usually eight or ten clergy
-who form the cathedral staff. Many of them are chosen
-for their distinction in some form of spiritual service, and
-all have devoted themselves to that service. They may be
-in other ways delivering themselves of their duties, but they
-as spiritual teachers cannot as a rule be said to identify
-themselves with the cathedral. They do not use all their
-powers to make the building a centre of spiritual life.</p>
-
-<p>I would suggest, therefore, that these clergy attached to
-the cathedral should have classes or lectures on theological,
-social, and historic subjects. They should give their teaching
-freely in one of the chapels of the cathedral, and the
-teaching should be so thorough as to command the attention
-of the neighbouring clergy and other thoughtful people.
-They would also, on occasions, give lectures in the nave
-designed to guide popular thought to the better understanding
-of the live questions of the day, or of the past.</p>
-
-<p>And inasmuch as many of the clergy have been chosen
-for their skill in music, which often at great cost holds a
-high place in cathedral worship, I would suggest that
-regular teaching be given in the relation of music to
-worship. Words, we are often told, do not make music
-sacred, and religion has probably suffered degradation from
-the attachment of high words to low music. There is certainly
-no doubt that the music in many churches is both
-bad in character and pretentious. If teaching were freely
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">37</span>given by qualified teachers in the cathedrals, if examples
-of the best were freely offered, and if the place of music in
-worship were clearly shown, then music might become a
-valuable agent in spiritualizing life.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps, however, the clergy might urge that they could
-not by such teaching deliver themselves of their obligation
-to do spiritual work. They would rather wrestle with
-souls and unite in prayer. But surely if their teaching has
-for its aim the opening of men’s minds to know the truth—the
-enlistment of men’s hearts in others’ service and the
-bringing of the understanding into worship, then their
-teaching will end in the knowledge of others’ souls and
-in acts of common devotion. The cathedral staff might,
-through the cathedral and the position it holds in a city,
-do much to spiritualize life.</p>
-
-<p>3. The great spiritual asset of the cathedral is, however,
-its association with the past, and its living witness that the
-present is the child of the past. This may be called a
-spiritual asset, because it is this conception of the past
-which, as is evident among the Jews and Japanese, is able
-to inspire and control action. The people who see as in a
-vision their country boldly standing and suffering for some
-great principles and hear the voices of the great dead
-calling them “children,” have power and peace within their
-reach.</p>
-
-<p>It is, as I have said, because of some dim consciousness
-of this truth that crowds of visitors flock into the buildings
-and spend a rare holiday in hanging upon the dry words of
-the guides. It is easy to imagine how their readily-offered
-interest might be seized, how guides with fresh knowledge
-and trained sympathy might make the building tell and illustrate
-the tale of the nation’s growth, how the different
-styles of architecture might be made to express different
-stages of thought, how the whole structure might be shown
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">38</span>to be a shell and rind covering living principles, how
-every one might be lifted up and humbled as the building
-told him of England’s search for justice, freedom, and truth.
-It is easy to imagine how such a living interpretation
-might be given to the message of the building, but much
-work would first be necessary.</p>
-
-<p>The cathedral staff would have to be constant learners,
-and take up different sides of interest. They would themselves
-frequently accompany parties and individuals, so that
-in intimate talk they would learn the mind of the people,
-and they would be continually instructing the regular
-guides. Their special duty would be to give at certain
-times short talks on the history, the architecture, and the
-art, so that visitors might be sure that at these times they
-would learn what light new knowledge was throwing on
-the familiar surroundings.</p>
-
-<p>The power of the past is dormant, it is buried beneath
-the insistent present, but it is not dead, and it is conceivable
-that thoughtful and devoted effort might rouse it to
-speak through the buildings which have witnessed the
-highest aspirations of successive ages. If such effort succeeded,
-and if the people of to-day could be helped to
-know and feel the England of old days, they would be
-conscious of a spiritual force bearing them on to great
-deeds. They would begin to understand how things which
-are not seen are stronger than things which are seen. The
-cathedrals have in themselves a message which would help
-to spiritualize life, but without interpreters the message can
-hardly be heard.</p>
-
-<p>4. I would add one other suggestion arising from the
-monuments which in every cathedral attract so much
-notice. They are the memorials of men and women
-notable in national or local history who belonged to various
-parties and classes, to different forms of faith and different
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">39</span>professions representing divers qualities and diverse forms
-of service.</p>
-
-<p>It would not be difficult for each cathedral to make a
-calendar of worthies. A lecture every month on one such
-worthy would give an opportunity for taking the minds of
-modern men into the surroundings of the past, where they
-would see clearly the value of character. Familiarity with
-the lives of Saints has been doubtless a great help to many
-lonely and anxious souls, but this hardly applies to those
-who hear sermons on St. Jude, and St. Bartholomew, and
-other Saints of whom little can be known. If, however, from
-its great men and women each cathedral selected twelve,
-for one of whom a day should be set apart each month,
-the people in the locality would gradually become familiar
-with their characters and gain by communion with them.</p>
-
-<p>Thoughts are best revealed through lives, and the attraction
-of personality was never more marked than at the
-present day. Through the lives of the great dead, and
-through the persons of those who walked or worshipped
-within familiar walls, it would be possible to make people
-understand great principles, and gradually become conscious
-of the Common Source from which flows “every
-good and perfect gift”. The dead speak from the walls of
-the cathedral, but they have no interpreter, and the mass
-of the people who are waiting for their message go away
-unsatisfied. A power which would help to spiritualize life
-is unused.</p>
-
-<p>But perhaps it may be urged that if all were done which
-has been suggested, if the minds of visitors were kindled to
-admiration, if the past were made to live and the dead to
-speak, much more would be necessary to spiritualize life.
-Certainly the “spirit bloweth where it listeth,” and only
-they who feel its breath are born again and enter a world
-of power, of peace, and of love.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">40</span>But it may be claimed that some attitudes are better
-than others in which to feel this breath, and that people
-whose pride has been brought low by the beauty of a great
-building, or whose ears have been opened to the voices of
-the past, will be more likely to bow before the Holy Spirit
-than those who have no thought beyond what they can see,
-hear, or touch.</p>
-
-<p>The age, we sometimes say, is waiting for a great leader—a
-prophet who will make dead bones to live. It is well
-to remember that for all redeemers the way has to be
-prepared, and the coming spiritual leader will be helped if
-through our cathedrals people have developed powers of
-communion with the Unseen.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Section 2-->
-<div class="section">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">41</span>
- <h2 id="sect2">SECTION <abbr title="2">II.</abbr><br /> <br />RECREATION.</h2>
-</div>
-<div class="synopsis">
-
-<p class="firstpara"><a href="#ch04" title="Go to Chapter 4">The Children’s Country Holiday
-Fun’</a>—<a href="#ch05" title="Go to Chapter 5">Recreation of the
-People</a>—<a href="#ch06" title="Go to Chapter 6">Hopes of the Hosts</a>—<a href="#ch07" title="Go to Chapter 7">Easter Monday
-on Hampstead Heath</a>—<a href="#ch08" title="Go to Chapter 8, first part">Holidays and School
-days</a>—<a href="#ch08a" title="Go to Chapter 8, second part">The Failure of
-Holidays</a>—<a href="#ch09" title="Go to Chapter 9">Recreation in Town and Country.</a></p>
-
-</div>
-<h3 title="THE CHILDREN’S COUNTRY HOLIDAY FUN’." id="ch04">THE CHILDREN’S COUNTRY HOLIDAY FUN’.<a href="#f41" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>April, 1912.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f41">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch04" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>From
-“The Cornhill Magazine”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Five</span> thousand two hundred and eighty Letters, 872 Sketches,
-199 Collections, all in parcels neatly tied up, the name, age,
-and sex of the writer, artist, or collector clearly written on
-the first page of the covering paper. There they lie, all
-around me, stack upon stack. The sketches are crude but
-extraordinarily vivid and unaffected; the collections are very
-scrappy but show affectionate care; the letters are written
-in childish unformed characters, and are of varying lengths,
-from a sheet of notepaper to ten pages of foolscap, but one
-and all deal with the same subject. What that subject is
-shall be told by a maiden of nine years old:—</p>
-
-<p>“On one Thursday morning my Mother woke me and
-said, ‘To-day is Country Holiday Fun,’ so I got up and put
-my cloes on”.</p>
-
-<p>On that Thursday morning, 27 July, 22,624 happy children
-left London and its drab monotonous streets, and went
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">42</span>for a fortnight’s visit into the country, or by the sea. Oh!
-the joy, the preparation, the excitement, the hopes, the
-fears, the anxieties lest anything should prevent the start;
-but at last, by the superhuman efforts of all concerned, the
-Committee, the ladies, the teachers, and the railway officials,
-the whole gay, glad, big army of little people were successfully
-got off. It is from these 22,624 children, and 21,756
-more who took their places two weeks later, that my 5,280
-letters come; for only those who really choose to write are
-encouraged to do so.</p>
-
-<p>In almost all cases the journey is fully described, the ride
-in the ’bus, the fear of being late, the parcel and how “it
-fell out,” the gentlemen at the station, the porter who gave
-us a drink of water “cause we were all hot,” the gentleman
-who gave the porter 6d. because he said: “This 6d. is for
-you for thinking as how the children would be thirsty”.
-The number that managed to get in each carriage, the boy
-who lost his cap “for the wind went so fast when my head
-was outside looking,” the hedges, the cows, the big boards
-with —— Pills written on them, how “it seemed as if I
-was going that way and the hills and cows and trees were
-going the other way”. It is all told with the fresh force of
-novelty and youth. The names of the Stations and the
-mileage is often noted, as well as the noise. “We shouted
-for joy,” writes a boy of eleven. “We told them it was
-rude to holler so,” writes a more staid girl. “I got tired of
-singing and went to sleep,” records a boy of eight; but the
-journey over there follows the description, often given with
-some awe, of how,—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We all went and were counted together, and there were
-the ladies waiting for us, and the gentleman read out our
-names and our lady’s name and then we went home with
-our right ladies,”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="noindent">
-
-<p>and then, almost without exception, comes the bald but
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">43</span>important statement, “and then we had Tea”. Indeed, all
-through the letters there is frequent mention of the gastronomic
-conditions, which appear to occupy a large place
-among the memories of the country visit. Evidently the
-regularity of the meals makes a change which strikes the
-imagination.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I got up, washed in hot water and had my breakfast.
-It was duck’s egg. I then went out in the fields till dinner
-was ready. I had a good dinner and then took a rest. We
-had Tea. My lady gave us herrings and apple pie for tea,
-then we went on the Green and looked about and then came
-home and had supper and went to bed.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Some letters, especially those written after the first visit
-to the country, contain nothing but the plain unvarnished
-tale of the supply of regular food. One girl burns with
-indignation because</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We girls was sent to bed at 7·30 and got no supper, but
-the boys was let up later and got bread and a big thick bit
-of cheese”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A boy of eight chronicles that</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I had custard for my Tea and some jelly which was
-called corn flour”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>One small observer had apparently discovered the importance
-of meal-times even to the sea itself, for he writes:
-“The sea always went out at dinner time and came back
-when Tea was ready”. I can see my readers smile, but to
-those of us who know intimately the lives of the poor, the
-significance of meals and their regularity occupying so large
-a place in a child’s mind is more pathetic than comic.</p>
-
-<p>From all the letters the impression is gathered of the
-generosity of the poor hostesses to the London children.
-For 5s. a week (not 9d. a day) a growing hungry boy or
-girl is taken into a cottager’s home, put in the best bed,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">44</span>cared for, fed three or four times a day, and often entertained
-at cost of time, thought, or money.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I like the day which was Bank lolyiday Monday because
-it was a very joyafull day. My Lady took me to a Flower
-Show. It was 3d. to go in but she paid, and I had swings
-and saw the flowers, and then we had bought Tea, and a
-man gave away ginger beer.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Another girl of eleven writes:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“My lady took me to Windsor Castle. The first thing
-I saw was the Thames. I went and had a paddled and
-then I went in the Castle and saw a lot of apple trees.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The visits to Windsor are modern-day versions of the
-old story of the Cat who went to see the King and saw
-only “Mousey sitting under the Chair,” for another child
-records:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“There were plenty of orchards with apple trees in it.
-But we would not pick them, or else we would be locked up
-but I went in the Castle and I saw a very large table with
-fifty chairs all round it and a piano and a looking glass
-covered up on the wall.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>One boy who was taken to the lighthouse, though only
-ten, was evidently eager for useful information. He
-writes:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I asked the man how many candlepowers it was but I
-forgot what he said——”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="noindent">
-
-<p>an experience not unknown to his elders and betters!</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>This child records that “when playing on the beach I
-made Buckingham Palace but a big boy came along and
-trod it and so we went home to bed”—an unconscious repetition
-of the often-recorded conclusion of Pepys’ eventful
-days.</p>
-
-<p>One of the small excursionists was taken by her hostess
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">45</span>to see Tonbridge, and writes: “We went to the muzeam
-wear we saw jitnoes of different people”.</p>
-
-<p>The hospitality of the clergymen and their families and
-the goodness of doctors is also often mentioned. Some of
-the children write so vividly that the country vicarage and
-its sweet-smelling flowers, the hot curate and the active
-ladies, rise up as a picture, the “atmosphere” of which is
-kindness and “the values” incalculable. Other children
-merely record the facts—in some cases anticipating time
-and establishing an order of clergywomen.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We asked the Vicar Miss Leigh if we could swim and
-she said No because one boy caught a cold.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We all went to the Reveren to a party.” “Saturday
-mornings we went to the Rectory haveing games, swings,
-sea sawes and refreshments.” “The party by the Church
-was fine.” “They had a Church down there called the
-Salvation Army. I thought there was only one Salvation
-Army.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>One of the Vicars hardly conveyed the impression he
-intended, for the boy writes:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We went to Church in the morning and in the afternoon
-for a walk as the Clergyman told us not to go to Sunday
-School as he wanted us to enjoy ourselves”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>One wonders if the Sunday School organization and the
-“intolerable strain” which would be put on it by London
-visitors was in that vicar’s mind.</p>
-
-<p>The letter that is sent by the Countryside Committee to
-the children before they leave London tells them in simple
-language something about the trees and flowers and creatures
-which they will see during their holiday, and asks
-them to write on anything which they themselves have
-observed or which gave them pleasure to see. This request
-is granted, for the children wrote:—</p>
-
-<div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">46</span></div>
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The trees seemed so happy they danced”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The wind was blowing and the branches of the trees
-was swinging themselves.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The rainbow is made of raindrops and the sun, tears
-and smiles.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“It was nice to sit on the grass and see the trees prancing
-in the breeze.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>These extracts show, in the four small mortals who had
-each spent the ten years of their lives in crowded streets,
-an almost poetic capacity, and the beginning of a power
-of nature sympathy that will be a source of unrecorded
-solace. The sights of the night impress many children,
-the sky seen for the first time uninterrupted by gas lamps.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“When I (aged eleven) looked into the sky one night
-you could hardly see any of the blue for it was light up
-with stars.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I saw a star shoot out of the sky and then it settled in
-a different place.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“One night I kept awake and looked for the stars and
-saw the Big Bear of stars.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“At night the moon looked as if it were a Queen and the
-stars were her Attendants.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The clouds are making way for the moon to come out.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The sun, its rising and setting, is also frequently mentioned.
-One child had developed patriotism to such an
-extent as to write:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“One day I looked up to the Sky and saw the sun was
-rising in the shape of the British Isles”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Alas! What would the Kaiser think?</p>
-
-<p class="sp05para">Another of my correspondents expressed surprise that
-“the moon came from where the sky touched the Earth,”
-an evidence of street-bound horizon.</p>
-
-<p class="sp05para"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">47</span>In other letters the writers record:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I saw the sun set it was like a big silver Eagle’s wing
-laying on a cliff”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“When the sun was setting out of the clouds came something
-that looked like a County Council Steamer”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>That must have been a rather alarming sunset, but
-hardly less so than “the cloud which was like Saint Paul’s
-Cathedral coming down on our heads”.</p>
-
-<p class="sp05para">The animals gave great pleasure and created wonder:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The cows made a grunting noise, the baa lambs made
-a pretty little shriek”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The cows I saw were lazy, they were laying. One was
-a bull who I daresay had been tossing somebody.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I heard a bird chirping it was make a noise like chirp
-chirp twee.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I saw a big dragon fly. It was like a long caterpillar
-with long sparkling transparent wings.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The birds are not like ourn they are light brown.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“There were wasps which was yellow and pretty but
-unkind.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I (aged eleven) saw a little blackbird—its head was off
-by a Cat. I made a dear little grave and so berreyed it
-under the Tree.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The flowers, of course, come in for the greatest attention
-and after them the trees are most usually referred to:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I (aged nine) know all the flowers that lived in the
-garden, but not all those who lived in the field”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Stinging nettles are a nuisance to people who have
-holes in their boots.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The Pond is all covered with Rushes. These had flowers
-like a rusty poker.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">48</span></div>
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I picked lots of flowers and always brought them
-home—”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="noindent">
-
-<p>shows influence of the Selborne Society in teaching children
-not to pick and throw away what is alive and growing.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The Cuckoo dines on other birds.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“There was one bird called the squirrel.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Only gentlemen are allowed to shoot pheasants as they
-are expensive.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We caught fish in the river some were small others about
-2 feet long.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Butterflies dont do much work.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The trunk of the oak is used for constructing furniture,
-coffins and other expensive objects.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>But my readers will be weary, so I will conclude with the
-pregnant remark of a little prig, who writes:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I think the country was in a good condition for <em>I</em> found
-plenty of interesting things in it.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>One or two of my small correspondents show an early
-disposition to see faults and remember misfortunes.</p>
-
-<p>“There was no strikes on down there but there was a
-large number of wasps,” was the reflection of one evidently
-conscious of the fly in every ointment. Another (aged ten)
-writes:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“<span class="sc">Dear Madam</span>,—When I was down in the country I
-was lying on the couch and a wasp stung me. As I was
-on the common a man chased me, and I fell head first and
-legs after into the prickles, and the prickles dug me and
-hurt me<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. I was nearly scorched down in the country<span class="ellipsis">...</span>.
-One day when I fed the Pigs the great big fat pig bit
-a lump out of my best pinafore. One morning when I was
-in bed the little boy brought the cat up and put it on my
-face. When I was down in the country the Common caught
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">49</span>a light for the sun was always too hot. So I must close
-with my love.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Was there ever such a catalogue of misfortunes compressed
-into one short fortnight? Still, in the intervals she seems
-to have noticed a considerable number of trees, of which she
-makes a list, and adds: “I did enjoy myself”. Poor little
-maiden! Perhaps her elders had graduated in the school of
-misfortunes, and she had learnt the trick of complaining.</p>
-
-<p>A good many children, both boys and girls, were very
-conscious of the absence of their home responsibilities.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I did not see a babbi. I mean to mind it all the time.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The ladys girl dont mind the baby as much as me at
-home. It stops in the garden.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It opens up a whole realm of matters for reflection: the
-baby not dragged hither and thither in arms too small and
-weak for its comfort, and then plumped down on cold or
-damp stones while its over-burdened nurse snatches a brief
-game or indulges in a scamper; the clouding of the elder
-child’s life by unremitting responsibilities, and the effortful
-labour which sometimes wears out love, though not so often
-as could be expected, so marvellous is human nature, and
-its capacity for care and tenderness. “I didn’t have to
-mind no twins,” writes one small boy of nine, “I think
-thems a neusence. I wish Mother had not bought them.”
-But the baby left in a garden! opening its blinking eyes to
-the wonders of sky and flowers and bees and creatures,
-while its elder brothers and sister do their share of work and
-play. This makes a foundation of quiet and pleasure on
-which to build the strenuous days and anxious years of the
-later life of struggle and effort.</p>
-
-<p>The reiteration of the kindness of the cottage hostesses
-would be almost wearisome if one’s imagination did not go
-behind it and picture the scenes, the hard-worked country
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">50</span>woman accepting the suggestion of a child guest with a lively
-appreciation of the usefulness of the 5s.’s which were to
-accrue, but that thought receding as the enjoyment of the
-town child became infectious, until the value given for the
-value received became forgotten, and generous self-costing
-kindnesses were showered profusely.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“My lady she was always doing kind to me.” “Mrs.
-P. washed my clothes before I came home to save Mother
-doing it.” “My lady told Mr. S. to shake her tree for our
-apples.” “The person that Boarded me gave me nice
-thing to bring back.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In some cases the thrifty, tidy ways of the country
-hostesses conveyed their lessons.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“She use to make browan bread and She use to make
-her own cakes and apple turn overs and eggloes and current
-cake.” “The wind came in my room and blew me in the
-night.” “We always had table clothes where I was.” “I
-washed myself well my lady liked it.” “We cleaned our
-teeth down in the country ever morning.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Sometimes examples on deeper matters were observed
-and approved of.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Every morning and dinner and tea we say grace.”
-“The lady told us Sunday School was nice and we went.”
-“We had Church 3 times. Morning noon and night”—</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="noindent">
-
-<p>is not reported with entire approval, but the letter ends:—</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I loved my holidays very much and hope that I can go
-next year to live with the same lady”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A boy writes:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The lady was very kind she never said any naughty
-words to me”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>And another lad reports:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I was fed extremely well and treated with the best
-respect”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">51</span>One little girl had clear views on the proper position
-of man.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“My ladie,” she writes, “had a big pig 4 little ones, 2
-cats. some hens a bird in a cage a apple tree a little boy and
-a Huband.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Sometimes the history of the place has been impressed
-on the children.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I (aged eleven) was very glad I went to Guildford because
-Sir Lancelot and Elaine lived there but its name was
-then Astolat.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“When I (aged eleven) reached Burnham Thorp I felt
-the change of air and I heard the birds sing—and then I
-knew that I should see the place where our great English
-sailor Lord Nelson was born,”—</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="noindent">
-
-<p>he being a character so indissolubly associated with innocent
-country joys.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The letters both begin and end in a variety of ways, for
-though I do not write all the letters which are issued
-to the children by the Countryside Committee of the Children’s
-Country Holiday Fund, it is considered better
-for me as Chairwoman to sign them, so as to give a
-more personal tone to the lengthy printed chat, which
-the teachers themselves open, kindly read and talk about
-to the children, and a copy of which each child can
-have if it so wishes. Thus the reply letters are all sent to
-me, and the vast majority begin “Dear Madam”; but
-some are less conventional, and I have those commencing,
-“Dear Mrs. Barnett,” “Dear Country Holdday Site Commtie,”
-“Dear friend,” “Dear Miss,” while the feeling of personal
-relation was evidently so real to one small boy that he
-began his epistle with “Dear Henrietta”—I delight in that
-letter! Among the concluding words are the following:
-“Your affectionate little friend,” “Your loving pupil,”
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">52</span>“From one who enjoyed,” “Yours gratefully,” “Yours
-truly Friend”.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the regrets at leaving the country are very
-pathetic:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I wish I was in the country now”. “I shall never go
-again; I am too old now.” “I think in the fortnight I had
-more treats than ever before in all my life.” “The blacking
-berries were red then and small. They will be black
-now and big.” “I wish I was with my lady’s baker taking
-the bread round.” “I enjoyed myself very much, I cannot
-explain how much. Please God next year I will come
-again. As I sit at school I always imagine myself roaming
-in the fields and watching the golden corn, and when I
-think of it it makes me cry.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>And those tears will find companions in some of the
-hearts which ache for the joyless lives of our town children,
-weighted by responsibilities, crippled by poverty, robbed of
-their birthright of innocent fun. The ecstatic joy of children
-in response to such simple pleasures tells volumes about
-their drab existence, their appreciation of adequate food,
-their warm recognition of kindness, represent privation and
-surprise. In a deeper sense than Wordsworth used it,
-“Their gratitude has left me mourning”.</p>
-
-<p>I know, and no one better, the countless servants of the
-people who are toiling to relieve the sorrows of the poor and
-their children, but until the conditions of labour, of education,
-and of housing are fearlessly faced and radically dealt
-with, their labour can only be palliative and their efforts
-barren of the best fruit; but articles, as well as holidays,
-must finish, and so I will conclude by another extract:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We had a bottle of Tea and cake and it was 132¾ miles.
-I saw all sorts of things and come to Waterloo Station and
-thank you very much.”</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Henrietta O. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">53</span>
- <h3 title="THE RECREATION OF THE PEOPLE." id="ch05">THE RECREATION OF THE PEOPLE.<a href="#f51" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>July, 1907.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f51">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch05" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Cornhill Magazine”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Work</span> may, as Carlyle says, be a blessing, but work is not
-undertaken for work’s sake. Work is part of the universal
-struggle for existence. Men work to live. But the animal
-world early found that existence does not consist in keeping
-alive. All animals play. They let off surplus energy in
-imitating their own activities, and they recreate exhausted
-powers by change of occupation. Man, as soon as he came
-into his inheritance of reason, recognized play as an object
-of desire, and as well as working for his existence, and perhaps
-even before he worked to obtain power and glory, he
-worked to obtain recreation. A man, according to Schiller’s
-famous saying, is fully human only when he plays.</p>
-
-<p>Work, then, let it be admitted, is undertaken not for
-work’s sake but largely for the sake of recreation. England
-has been made the workshop of the world, its fair fields and
-lovely homesteads have been turned into dark towns and
-grimy streets, partly in the hope that more of its citizens
-may have enjoyment in life. Men toil in close offices under
-dark skies, not just to increase the volume of exports and
-imports, and not always to increase their power, or to win
-honour from one another; they dream of happy hours of
-play, they picture themselves travelling in strange countries
-or tranquilly enjoying their leisure in some villa or pleasant
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">54</span>garden. Men spend laborious days as reformers, on public
-boards or as public servants, very largely so as to release
-their neighbours from the prison house of labour, where so
-many, giving their lives “to some unmeaning taskwork,
-die unfreed, having seen nothing, still unblest”.</p>
-
-<p>Recreation is an object of work. The recreations of the
-people consume much of the fruit of the labour of the
-people. Their play discloses what is in their hearts and
-minds and to what end they will direct their power. Their
-use of leisure is a sign-post showing whether the course of
-the nation is towards extinction in ignorance and self-indulgence,
-or towards greater brightness in the revelation of
-character and the service of mankind. By their idle words
-and by the acts of their idle times men are most fairly judged.</p>
-
-<p>The recreation of the people is therefore a subject of greater
-importance than is always remembered. The country is
-being lost or saved in its play, and the use of holidays
-needs as much consideration as the use of workdays.</p>
-
-<p>Would that some Charles Booth could undertake an inquiry
-into “the life and leisure of the people” to put alongside
-that into their life and work! Without such an inquiry
-the only basis for the consideration which I invite is the
-impression left on the minds of individuals, and all I can
-offer is the impression made on my mind by a long residence
-in East London.</p>
-
-<p>People during the last quarter of a century have greatly
-increased their command of leisure. The command, as
-Board of Trade inspectors remind us, is not sufficient as
-long as the rule of seventy or even sixty hours of work a
-week still holds in some trades. But the weekly half-holiday
-has become almost universal, some skilled trades have secured
-an eight or nine hours’ day, many workshops every year
-close for a week, and the members of the building trades
-begin work late and knock off early during the winter months.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">55</span>There is thus much leisure available for recreation. What
-do the people do? How do these crowds who swarm through
-the streets on Saturday afternoons spend their holiday?</p>
-
-<p>Many visit the public-houses and try to drink themselves
-out of their gloom. “To get drunk,” we have been told,
-is “the shortest way out of Manchester,” and many citizens
-in every city go at any rate some distance along this way.
-They find they live a larger, fuller life as, standing in the
-warm bright bar, they drink and talk as if they were
-“lords”. The returns which suggest that the drink bill of
-a workman’s family is 5s. or 6s. a week prove how popular
-is this use of leisure, and they who begin a holiday by
-drinking probably spend the rest of it in sleeping. The
-identification of rest with sleep is very common, and a
-workman who knows he has a fair claim to rest thinks himself
-justified in sleeping or dozing hour after hour during
-Saturday and Sunday. “What,” I once asked an engineer,
-“should I find most of your mates doing if I called on
-Sunday?” His answer was short: “Sleeping”.</p>
-
-<p>Another large body of workers as soon as they are free
-hurry off to some form of excitement. They go in their
-thousands to see a football-match, they yell with those who
-yell, they are roused by the spectacle of battle, and they
-indulge in hot “sultry” talk. Or they go to some race or
-trial of strength on which bets are possible. They feel in
-the rise and fall of the chance of winning a new stirring of
-their dull selves, and they dream of wealth to be enjoyed in
-wearing a coat with a fur collar and in becoming owners of
-sporting champions. Or they go to music halls—1,250,000
-go every week in London—where if the excitement be less
-violent it still avails to move their thoughts into other
-channels. They see colour instead of dusky dirt, they hear
-songs instead of the clash of machinery, they are interested
-as a performer risks his life, and the jokes make no demands
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">56</span>on their thoughts. The theatres probably are less popular,
-at any rate among men, but they attract great numbers,
-especially to plays which appeal to generous impulses. An
-audience enjoys the easy satisfaction of shouting down a villain.
-The same sort of excitement is that provided on Sunday
-mornings in the clubs, where in somewhat sordid surroundings,
-a few actors and singers try to stir the muddled feelings
-of their audience by appeals, which are more or less vulgar.</p>
-
-<p>There is finally another large body of released workers
-who simply go home. They are more in number than is
-generally imagined, and they constitute the solid part of
-the community. They are not often found at meetings or
-clubs. Their opinions are not easily discovered. Large
-numbers never vote. They go home from work, they make
-themselves tidy, they do odd jobs about the house, they go
-out shopping with their wives, they walk with the children,
-they, as a family party, visit their friends, they sleep, and
-they read the weekly paper. All this is estimable, and the
-mere catalogue makes a picture pleasant to the middle-class
-imagination of what a workman’s life should be. The
-workers get repose, but from a larger point of view it cannot
-be said they return to work invigorated by new thoughts
-and new experiences, with new powers and new conceptions
-of life’s use. Repose is sterilized recreation.</p>
-
-<p>These, it seems to me, are the three main streams which
-flow from work to leisure—that towards drink, that towards
-excitement, and that towards home repose.</p>
-
-<p>There are other workers—an increasing number, but
-small in comparison with those in one of the main streams—who
-use their leisure to attend classes, to study with a
-view to greater technical skill or to read the books now so
-easily bought. There are some who take other jobs, forgetting
-that the wages which buy eight hours’ work should
-buy also eight hours’ sleep and eight hours’ play. There
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">57</span>are many who bicycle, some it may be for the excitement
-of rapid motion, but some also for the joy of visiting the
-country and of social intercourse. There are many who
-play games and take vigorous exercise. There are a few—markedly
-a few—who have hobbies or pursuits on which
-they exercise their less used powers of heart or head or
-limb.</p>
-
-<p>Such is the general impression which long experience
-has left on my mind as to the recreations of the people. It
-is, however, possible to give a closer inspection to some
-popular forms of amusement.</p>
-
-<p>Consider first one of the seaside resorts during the month
-of August. Look at Blackpool, or Margate, or Weston.
-On the Saturday before Bank Holiday £100,000 was drawn
-out of the banks at Blackburn and £200,000 from the banks
-at Oldham, to be spent in recreation, mostly at Blackpool.
-How was it spent?</p>
-
-<p>The sight of the beach of one of these resorts is familiar.
-There is the mass of people brightly coloured and loudly
-talking, broken into rapidly changing groups. There are
-the nigger singers, the buffoons, the acrobats; there are the
-great restaurants and hotels inviting lavish expenditure on
-food. There are bookstalls laden with trashy novels. There
-are the overridden beasts and the overworked maid-servants;
-there is the loafing on the pier, and the sleep after heavy
-meals. Nothing especially wicked, much that shows good-nature,
-but everything so vulgar—so empty of interest, so
-far below what thinking men and women should enjoy, so
-unworthy the expenditure of hundreds of thousands of
-pounds earned by hard work.</p>
-
-<p>Consider again the music hall. Mr. Stead has lent his
-eyes. “If,” he says, “I had to sum up the whole performance
-in a single phrase I should say, ‘Drivel for dregs’.
-For three and a half hours I sat patiently listening to the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">58</span>most insufferable banality and imbecility which ever fell on
-human ears. There was neither beauty nor humour, no appeal
-to taste or to intelligence, nothing but vulgarity and
-stupidity to recreate the heirs of a thousand years of civilization
-and the citizens of an empire on which the sun never
-sets.” And in one year there are some 70,000,000 admissions
-to music halls in London! Consider, too, the football
-fields or the racecourses. The crowd of spectators is often
-100,000 to 200,000 persons. What can they find worthy
-the interest of a reasonable creature? Would they be present
-if it were not for the excitement of gambling, the mind-destroying
-pleasure of risking their money to get their
-neighbours’ money? “If,” as Sir James Crichton-Browne
-says, “you would see the English physiognomy at its worst,
-go to the platform of a railway station on the day of a
-suburban race meeting when the special trains are starting.
-On most of the faces you detect the grin of greed, on many the
-leer of low cunning, on some the stamp of positive rascality.”</p>
-
-<p>Consider once more the crowds who go to the country in
-the summer. “One of the saddest sights of the Lake
-District during the tourist season,” says Canon Rawnsley,
-“is the aimless wandering of the hard-worked folk who
-have waited a whole year for their annual holiday, and,
-having obtained it, do not know what to do with it. They
-stand with Skiddaw, glorious in its purple mantle of heather,
-on one side and the blue hills of Borrowdale and the shining
-lake on the other, and ask ‘Which is the way to the
-scenery?’” The people, according to this observer, are dull
-and bored amid the greatest beauty. The excursionist finds
-nothing in nature which is his; he reads the handwriting of
-truth and beauty, but understands not what he reads.</p>
-
-<p>But enough of impressions of popular recreations. There
-are brighter sides to notice. There is, for instance, health
-in the instinct which turns to the country for enjoyment.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">59</span>There is hope in the prevalent good temper, in the untiring
-energy and curiosity which is always seeking something
-new. There are better things than have been mentioned
-and there are worse things, but as a general conclusion it
-may, I think, be agreed that the recreations of the people
-are not such as recreate human nature for further progress.
-The lavish expenditure of hardly earned wages on mere
-bodily comfort does not suggest that the people are cherishing
-high political ideals, and the galvanized idleness which
-characterizes so much popular pleasure does not promise for
-the future an England which will be called blessed or be
-itself “merrie”.</p>
-
-<p>England in her great days was “Merrie England”. Many
-of our forefathers’ recreations were, judged by our standard,
-cruel and horribly brutal. They had, however, certain
-notable characteristics. They made greater demands both
-on body and mind. When there were neither trains nor
-trams nor grand stands people had to take more exertion to
-get pleasure, and they themselves joined in the play or in
-the sport. Their delight, too, was often in the fellowship
-they secured, and “fellowship,” as Morris says, “is life and
-lack of fellowship is death”. Our fathers’ sports, even if
-they were cruel—and the “Book of Sports” shows how
-many were not cruel but full of grace—had often this virtue
-of fellowship. Their pageants and spectacles—faithfully
-pictured by Scott in his account of the revels of Kenilworth,
-were not just shows to be lazily watched; they enlisted the
-interest and ingenuity of the spectators, and stirred their
-minds to discover the meaning of some allegory or trace
-out some mystery.</p>
-
-<p>The recreations which made England “merrie” were
-stopped in their development by the combined influence of
-puritanism and of the industrial revolution. Far be it from
-me to consider as evil either the one or the other. In all
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">60</span>progress there is destruction. The puritan spirit put down
-cruel sports such as bull baiting and cock fighting, and with
-them many innocent pleasures. The industrial revolution
-drew the people from their homes in the fields and valleys,
-established them in towns, gave them higher wages and
-cheaper food. Under the combined influence work took
-possession of the nation’s being. It ruled as a tyrant, and
-the gospel of work became the gospel for the people.</p>
-
-<p>In the latter part of the nineteenth century signs of reaction
-are apparent. Sleary, in Dickens’s “Hard Times,”
-urges on the economist the continual refrain: “The people,
-Squire, must be amused,” and Herbert Spencer, returning
-from America in 1882, declares the need of the “Gospel of
-Recreation”. Recreation has since increased in pace.
-The right to shorter and shorter hours of labour is now admitted,
-and the provision of amusement has become a great
-business. The demand which has secured shorter hours
-may safely be left to rescue further leisure from work; but
-demand has not, as we have seen, been followed by the
-establishment of healthy recreation. A child knows a holiday
-is good, but he needs also to know how to enjoy it or
-he will do mischief to himself or others. The people also
-need, as well as leisure, the knowledge of what constitutes
-recreation.</p>
-
-<p>The subject is not simple, and Professor Karl Groos, in
-his book “The Play of Man,” has with Teutonic thoroughness
-analysed the subject from the physiological, the biological,
-and the psychological standpoints. The book is
-worthy of study by students, but it seems to me that recreation
-must involve (1) some excitement, (2) some
-strengthening of the less used fibres of the mind or body,
-(3) the activity of the imagination.</p>
-
-<p>(1) Recreation must involve some excitement, some appeal
-to an existing interest, some change, some stirring of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">61</span>the wearied or sleeping embers of the mind. Routine
-work, tending to become more and more routine, wears life.
-It is “life of which our nerves are scant,” and recreation
-should revive the sources of life. Most people, as Mr.
-Balfour, look askance at efforts which, under the guise of
-amusing, aim to impart useful culture. Recreation must
-be something other than repose—something more stirring
-than sleep or loafing—it must be something attractive and
-not something undertaken as a duty.</p>
-
-<p>(2) Recreation must involve the strengthening of the less
-used fibres of the mind and the body; the embers which are
-stirred by excitement need to be fed with new fuel, or the
-flames will soon sink into ashes. Gambling and drink,
-sensational dramas, and exciting shows stir but do not
-strengthen the mind. Mere change—the fresh excursion
-every day, the spectacle of a contest—wears out the powers
-of being. “The crime of sense is avenged by sense which
-wears with time.” On the other hand, games well played
-fulfil the condition, and there is no more cheering sight than
-that of playing-fields where young and old are using their
-limbs intent on doing their best. Music, foreign travel,
-congenial society, reading, chess, all games of skill, also
-fulfil the condition, as they make a claim on the activity of
-heart or mind, and so strengthen their fibres. A good
-drama is recreation if the spectator is called to give himself
-to thought and to feeling. He then becomes in a sense a
-fellow creator with the author, he has what Professor Groos
-says satisfies every one, “the joy of being a cause,” or, as he
-explains in another passage, “it is only when emotion is in
-a measure our own work do we enjoy the result”. Recreation
-must call out activity, it fails if it gives and requires
-nothing. We only have what we give. He that would
-save his life loses it.</p>
-
-<p>(3) The last and most notable mark of recreation is the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">62</span>use of the imagination. Recreation comes from within and
-not from without the man. It depends on that a man <em>is</em>
-and not upon what a man <em>has</em>. A child grows tired of his
-toys, a man wearies of his possessions, but there is no being
-tired of the imagination which leaps ahead and every day
-reveals something new. Sleary was wrong when he said,
-“People must be amused”. He should have said, “People
-must amuse themselves”. Their recreation must, that is,
-come from the use of their own faculties of heart and mind.
-“The cultivation of the inner life,” it was truly said in a
-discussion on the hard lot of the middle classes, “is the
-only cure for the commercial tyrannies and class prejudices
-of that class.” The Japanese are the best holiday takers I
-have ever met; they have in themselves a taste for beauty,
-and they go to the country to enjoy the use of that taste.
-A man who because he is interested in mankind sets himself
-on his holiday to observe and study the habits of man;
-or, because he cares for Nature, looks deeper into her
-secrets by the way of plants or rocks or stars; or, because he
-is familiar with history, seeks in buildings and places illustrations
-of the past; a holiday maker who in such ways uses
-his inner powers will come home refreshed. His pleasure
-has come from within; he, on the other hand, who has
-lounged about a pier, moved from place to place, travelled
-from sight to sight, looking always for pleasure from outside
-himself, will come home bored.</p>
-
-<p>If such be the constituents of recreation one reflection
-stands out clearly, and that is the importance of educating
-or directing the demand for amusement. Popular demand
-can only choose what it knows; it could not choose the
-pictures for an art gallery or the best machines for the
-workshop, neither can it settle the amusements which are
-recreative. Children and young people are with great care
-fitted for work and taught how to earn a living; there is
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">63</span>equal need that the people be fitted for recreation, and
-taught how to enjoy their being. They must know before
-they can choose. Education, and not the House of Lords,
-is the safeguard of democratic government.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Dill’s “History of Social Life in the Towns of the
-Roman Empire during the First and Second Centuries”
-shows that there is a striking likeness between the condition
-of those times to that which prevails in England. The
-millionaires made noble benefactions, there were magnificent
-spectacles, there were contests which roused lunatic excitement
-as one of the combatants succeeded in some brutal
-strife, there was lavish provision of games and great enjoyment
-in feasting. The amusement was provided by others’
-gifts, and, as Mr. Dill remarks, the people were more and
-more drawn from “interest in the things of the mind”. The
-games of Rome were steps in the decline and fall of Rome.</p>
-
-<p>The lesson which modern and ancient experience offers
-is that people must be as thoughtfully and as seriously
-prepared for their recreation as for their work.</p>
-
-<p>The first illusion which must, I think, be destroyed is
-that a holiday means a vacation or an empty time. It is
-not enough to close the school and let the children have no
-lessons. It is not enough to enact an eight hours’ day and
-leave the people without resources. If the spirit of toil be
-turned out of men’s lives and they be left swept and garnished,
-there are spirits of leisure that will return which
-may be ten times worse. It is a pathetic sight often presented
-in a playground, when after some aimless running
-and pushing, the children gradually grow listless, fractious,
-and quarrelsome. They came to enjoy themselves and
-cannot. Many a boy for want of occupation for his leisure
-has taken to crime. It is not always love of evil or even
-greed which makes him a thief, it is in the pure spirit of adventure
-that he stalks his prey on the coster’s cart, risks his
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">64</span>liberty and dodges the police. It is because they have no
-more interesting occupation that eager little heads pop out
-of windows when the police make a capture, and eager little
-tongues tell experiences of arrests which baby eyes have
-seen. The empty holiday is a burden to a child, and every
-one has heard of the bus driver who could think of nothing
-better to do on his off day than to ride on a bus beside a
-mate. The idea that, given leisure, the people will find recreation
-is not justified. A kitten may be satisfied with
-aimless play, but a spark disturbs mankind’s clod and his
-play needs direction.</p>
-
-<p>The other illusion which must be dissipated is that
-amusement should call for no effort on the part of those to
-be amused. It is the common mistake of benevolence that
-it tries to remove difficulties, rather than strengthen people
-to surmount difficulties. The gift which provides food is
-often destructive of the powers which earn food. In the
-same way the benevolence which, as among the Romans,
-provides shows, entertainments, and feasts, destroys at last
-the capacity for pleasure. Toys often stifle children’s imaginations
-and develop a greed for possession; children enjoy
-more truly what they themselves help to create, so that
-a bit of wood with inkspots for eyes, which they themselves
-have made, is more precious than an expensive doll. Grown
-people’s amusements to be satisfying must also call out effort.</p>
-
-<p>The shattering of these two illusions leaves society face
-to face with the obligation to teach people to play as well as
-to work. It is not enough to give leisure and leave amusement
-to follow. Neither is it enough to provide popular
-amusement. James I was not a great King but he was a
-collector of wisdom, and he laid down for his son a guide for
-his games as well as for his work. Teachers and parents with
-greater experience might, like the King, guide their children.</p>
-
-<p>(1) It is not, I think, waste of time to watch infants when
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">65</span>at play, to encourage their efforts, to welcome their calls to
-look, and to enter into their imaginings. This watching,
-so usual among the children of the richer classes, is missed
-by the children of the poorer and often leaves a gap in their
-development.</p>
-
-<p>(2) It would not either be wasted expenditure to employ
-game-teachers in the elementary schools, who, on Saturdays
-and out of school hours would teach children games, indoor
-and outdoor, conduct small parties to places of interest, and
-organize country walks or excursions such as are common
-in Swiss schools.</p>
-
-<p>(3) It is, I think, reasonable to ask that the great school
-buildings and playgrounds should be more continually at
-the children’s service. They have been built at great
-expense. They are often the most airy and largest space
-in a crowded neighbourhood. Why should they be in the
-children’s use for only some twenty-five hours a week?
-Why should they be closed during two whole months?
-The experience gained in the vacation schools advocated
-by Mrs. Humphry Ward gives an object lesson in what
-might be done. During the afternoon hours between five
-and seven, and in the summer holidays, the children, with
-the greatest delight to themselves, might be drawn to see
-new things, to use new faculties of admiration or develop
-new tastes. Every child might thus be given a hobby.
-Recreation means, as we have seen, change. If the
-children ended their school days with more interests, with
-eyes opened to see in the country not only a nest to be
-taken but a brood of birds to be watched, with hands
-capable not only to make things but to create beauty, the
-limits within which they could find change would be
-greatly enlarged.</p>
-
-<p>If I may now extend my suggestion to parents I would
-say that those of all classes might do more in planning
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">66</span>holidays for their children. There is now a strong disposition
-to leave all responsibility to the teachers, and parents
-are in the danger of losing parental authority. In the
-holidays is their chance of regaining authority; for every
-day they could plan occupation, put aside time to join in
-some common pursuit, arrange visits, and make themselves
-companions of their own children. The teacher may be
-held responsible, but his work is often spoiled in the idle
-hours of a holiday, when bad books are read, vulgar sights
-enjoyed, low companions found, and habits of loafing developed.
-But it is not only teachers and parents by whom
-children are guided. There is a host of men and women
-who plan treats, excursions, and country holidays. Their
-efforts could, I think, be made more valuable. The
-monster day treats, which give excitement and turn the
-children’s minds in a direction towards the excitements of
-crowds and of stimulants from without, might be exchanged
-for small treats where ten or twenty children in
-close companionship with their guide would enjoy one
-another’s company, find new interests, and store up
-memories of things seen and heard. Tramps through
-England might be organized for elder boys and girls in
-which visits might be paid to historic fields and scenes of
-beauty, and objects of interest sought. Children about to
-be sent to the country by a Holiday Fund might, as is now
-very happily done by a committee in connexion with the
-Children’s Country Holiday Fund, by means of pictures
-and talk be taught what to look for and be encouraged to
-tell of their discoveries. Habits of singing might be developed,
-as among the Welsh or the Swiss. And in a
-thousand ways thought might be drawn to the observation
-of nature. Good people might, if I may say so, give up
-the provision of those entertainments which now, absorbing
-so much of the energy of curates and laywomen, seem only
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">67</span>to prepare the children to look for the entertainment of the
-music halls. They might instead teach children one by one
-to find amusement, each one in his own being.</p>
-
-<p>The hope of the future lies obviously in the training of
-the children, but the elder members of the community
-might also have more chances of growth. Employers, for
-instance, might more generally substitute holidays of
-weeks for holidays of days, and so encourage the workpeople
-to plan their reasonable use. They might also
-enlarge their minds by informing them about the material
-on which they work, whence it comes and whither it goes.
-Miss Addams tells of a firm in Ohio where the hands are
-gathered to hear the reports of the travellers as they return
-from Constantinople, Italy, or China, and learn how the
-goods they have made are used by strange people. In the
-same firm lantern lectures are given on the countries with
-which the firm has dealings, and generally the hands are
-made partners in the thoughts of the heads. “This,” as
-Miss Addams says, “is a crude example of the way in
-which a larger framework may be given to the worker’s
-mind,” and she adds, “as a poet bathes the outer world for
-us in the hues of human feeling, so the workman needs
-some one to bathe his surrounding with a human significance.”
-Employers also, following the example of Messrs.
-Cadbury, might require their young people not only to
-attend evening classes to make them fitter for work, but
-also to attend one class which will fit them to ride hobbies,
-which will carry them from the strain and routine of work
-into other and recreating surroundings. Municipal bodies
-have in these latter days done much in the right direction
-by opening playing fields, picture galleries, and libraries,
-and by giving free performances of high-class music.
-They might perhaps do more to break up the monotony of
-the streets, introducing more of the country into town, and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">68</span>requiring dignity as well as healthiness in the great buildings.
-Such variety adds greatly to the joy of living,
-diverts the minds of weary workers, and stimulates the admiration
-which is one-third of life.</p>
-
-<p>But, after all, improvement starts from individuals, and
-it is the action of individual men and women which will reform
-popular reaction. They must, each one as if the reform
-depended on him alone, be morally thoughtful about
-the amusements they encourage or patronize, and be considerate
-in preparing for their own pleasure. Each one must
-develop his own being, and stir up the faculties of his own
-mind. Each one must practise the muscles of his mind as
-a racer practises the muscles of his legs.</p>
-
-<p>The most completely satisfying recreation is possibly in
-the intercourse of friends, and it is a sad feature in English
-holidays that men and their wives, who are naturally the
-closest friends, seem to find so little pleasure in one another’s
-company. They walk one behind the other in the country,
-they are rarely found together at places of entertainment,
-and they are seldom seen talking with any vivacity. The
-fault lies in the fact that they have not developed their
-own being, they have neither interests nor hobbies nor
-ideas, and so have nothing to talk about save wages, household
-difficulties, and the shortest way home.</p>
-
-<p>Enough, however, in the way of suggestion as to what
-may be done in guiding people towards recreation. Under
-guidance recreations would take another than their present
-character. People, having a wider range of interests, would
-find change within those interests, and cease to turn from
-sensation to sleep and from sleep to sensation. People
-having active minds would look to exercise their minds in
-a game of skill, in searching Nature’s secrets, in spirited
-talk, in some creative activity, in following a thought-provoking
-drama, in the use, that is, of their highest human
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">69</span>faculties. The forms of recreation would be changed. Much
-of the difficulty about what seems Sunday desecration would
-then vanish. The play of the people would no longer be
-fatal to the quiet of the day, or inconsistent with the worship
-which demands the consecration of the whole being. It is
-not recreation so much as the form of recreation which desecrates
-Sunday. This, however, is part of another subject.</p>
-
-<p>As a conclusion of the whole matter I would say how it
-seems to me that Merrie England need be not only in the
-past. The present time is the best of times. There are to-day
-resources for men’s enjoyment such as never existed in
-any other age or country. There are fresh and pure capacities
-in human nature which are evident in many signs
-of energy, of admiration, and of good will. If the resources
-were used, if the capacities were developed, there would soon
-be popular recreations to attract human longings, and encourage
-the hope of a future when the glory of England
-shall not be in its possessions of gold and territory, but in
-a people happy in the full use of their powers of heart and
-of head.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">70</span>
- <h3 title="THE HOPES OF THE HOSTS." id="ch06">THE HOPES OF THE HOSTS.<a href="#f61" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>January, 1886.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f61">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch06" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>From “The Toynbee Journal”.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Certainly</span> a great deal of entertaining goes on in Toynbee
-Hall. From the half-hours spent in the little room, where
-its Entertainment Committee meets, there issue some prominent
-if not exactly big results, and, perhaps, its members
-are not without a hope that deep consequences as well may
-follow. This method of helping people has not been without
-its critics, one of whom uttered the opinion, “that
-the Toynbee Hall plan was to save the people’s souls alive
-by pictures, pianos, and parties,” and though the remark
-was made derisively, there may be some doubt if it was
-altogether without truth: only the speaker should have
-added that it was <em>one</em> of the Toynbee Hall plans, instead of
-using only the definite article.</p>
-
-<p>If the Toynbee Hall aim is to help to make it possible
-that men should carry out the command given long ago of
-“Be ye perfect,” and if, as a modern lover of righteousness
-has put it, “the power of social life and manners is one of
-the great elements in our humanization, and unless we cultivate
-it we are incomplete”; then it is not an error that
-“pictures, pianos, and parties” should be pressed into
-service to fill up some of the incompleteness in the East
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">71</span>London dweller’s life, and to help him to “save his soul
-alive”.</p>
-
-<p>It is one of the saddest facts of life in this crowded, busy,
-tiring, and hurried part of London that it is more difficult
-to keep one’s soul (like one’s plants) alive than it is in gentler
-places, where folk get the aid of some of nature’s beauties,
-and some moments of that outside quiet which help to make
-it possible to fancy “the peace which passeth all understanding”.
-But because Whitechapel is Whitechapel and
-Toynbee Hall is in its midst, more artificial methods for
-gaining and keeping life must be adopted.</p>
-
-<p>It is true that the Entertainment Committee prefer those
-gatherings which can take place out of doors in the country,
-where the guests gain all that comes from the charm of
-being graciously entertained under “the wider sky”; but
-still town parties are not to be despised, and, judging from
-the glad acceptance of those many who “cannot bid again,”
-they are generally enjoyed.</p>
-
-<p>The method of food entertainment is very simple, so
-simple that it sometimes wars against the generous instincts
-of the hosts; but, after careful thought, it has been decided
-that the object of Toynbee Hall entertainments and parties
-will be more surely gained if “plain living and high thinking”
-can be maintained—not to mention the more mundane
-consideration that more friends can be welcomed as guests,
-if each is not so expensive. So the pleasure to be gained
-from rich or dainty food is neglected, and the guests are
-summoned in order to give them pleasures by increasing
-their interests. And among the means of doing this may
-be reckoned the fine thoughts of the great dumb teachers,
-the artists, of which those who care can learn as they turn
-over the portfolios, look at the photograph books, or study
-the gift pictures on the walls. The great in the musical
-world are called upon for offerings as the musically
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">72</span>generous among the friends of Toynbee Hall pass on the
-plaintive ideas of Schumann, or the grand soul-stirring aspirations
-of Beethoven and Mozart.</p>
-
-<p>To give pleasure is now almost universally considered
-to be a righteous duty, and when it is taken into consideration
-that the homes of most East Londoners are too narrow,
-their daily labour too great, and their resources too limited
-to permit them taking pleasure by entertaining in their own
-houses, it cannot but be considered as a gladdening sight
-when the Toynbee reception rooms are full of a happy, an
-amused, and an enjoying company.</p>
-
-<p>To increase interests is not perhaps as yet recognized as
-so deep a human need, but it may be so, none the less for
-this; and to the young or to the much tempted, this opportunity
-of increasing their interests is of untold value.</p>
-
-<p>Most young folk are better educated than their parents,
-and, with a keen sense of enjoyment, a belief in their own
-powers of self-guidance, and a happy blank on their page
-of disappointments, they are eager for “fuller life,” and
-will take its pleasure in some guise, warn their elders never
-so wisely. To give it them free from temptation, and in
-such a form that when the first novelty is worn off, it will
-still be true that “the best is yet to be”; to increase interests,
-until a self-centred and self-seeking existence shows
-itself in its true and despicable colours; to increase scientific
-interests with microscopes, magic lanterns, and experiments;
-literary interests with talks on books, recitations from the
-poets, scenes from Shakespeare; to increase musical interests
-with the aid of glee clubs, string quartettes, and
-solo and chorus songs; to increase interests on all sides
-is the aim of the Entertainment Committee, hoping that
-thus for some “all earth will seem aglow where ’twas but
-plain earth before”.</p>
-
-<p>“The cultivation of social life and manners is equal to a
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">73</span>moral impulse, for it works to the same end<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. It brings
-men together, makes them feel the need of one another, be
-considerate of one another, understand one another.” So
-teaches Matthew Arnold. And the introduction of the
-guests to each other is no neglected feature in the Toynbee
-Hall gatherings. It is for this reason that guests of all
-classes are summoned together, that the hand-worker may
-have sympathy with the head-labourer, that the eager reformer
-may gather hints from the clear-visioned thoughts
-of the untried lad, or that the boy living a club life far removed
-from women’s power, may be introduced to a “ladye
-faire,” who may (if she will) become to him a “sheltering
-cloud by day and a pillar of fire by night,” guiding him
-safely through stonier wastes than ever the old Israelites
-weathered. It is no slight duty this, to introduce one human
-being to another—to help them to pass quickly along the
-dull road of acquaintanceship and out into the sweet valley
-of knowledge and friendship, and there gain, the comfort,
-refreshment, and inspiration, without which it almost seems
-impossible to believe in and hold on to an ideal good.</p>
-
-<p>The highest and noblest thing yet revealed to man is the
-human creature’s soul, “the very pulse of the machine,” and
-if Toynbee Hall parties do something to reveal the depths
-of one creature to another; if they do a little to keep alive
-and weld into solidarity the floating hopes and aspirations,
-which idly live in every human heart, but, alas! so often
-die from loneliness; if they do something to help people
-to care for one another and to see the higher vision; and
-if those thus caring are stirred to take thought for the growth
-and development of the larger, sadder world, then, perhaps,
-the “pictures, pianos, and parties” will not so ill have played
-their part in the work of Toynbee Hall.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Henrietta O. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">74</span>
- <h3 title="EASTER MONDAY ON HAMPSTEAD HEATH." id="ch07">EASTER MONDAY ON HAMPSTEAD HEATH.<a href="#f71" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>April, 1905.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f71">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch07" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Bank Holiday</span> on Hampstead Heath sets moving many
-thoughts. No drunkenness, no bad temper, no brutal
-rowdiness—but where are the family parties? Three-quarters
-of the people seem to be under twenty years of
-age. Where are the family groups such as are found in
-France or in the colder Denmark making pleasure by talk,
-or by gaiety, singing, or dancing, or acting—finding interest
-in things beautiful or new? There were, indeed, some
-families at Hampstead, and perambulators were driven
-through the thickest crowd, every one making room for the
-baby. But the father often looked bored and the mother
-worried. They were doing their duty, giving the children
-pleasure, and getting fresh air. The crowd was a young
-persons’ crowd—boys by themselves, girls by themselves,
-and a smaller number paired. They had come to be
-amused, and the caterers of amusement had established by
-the roadside the shows and shooting-galleries and swings
-such as are to be found within the reach of most crowded
-neighbourhoods. Organ-grinders played, sweets were exposed
-for sale, and the Heath Road was as packed with
-people as Petticoat Lane on a Sunday morning. The people
-wandered over the Heath, but while they wandered they
-seemed listless, or on the watch for anything to occupy
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">75</span>their attention. A few children dancing as every day they
-dance in Whitechapel at once drew together a crowd.
-Golder’s Hill Park, which was never more radiant in its
-beauty, was comparatively empty. The road outside,
-where public-houses had provided various attractions, was
-packed, not by people who were customers but by people
-watching one another and waiting for something to happen.
-But inside the park, where the County Council’s restaurant
-had spread its tables for tea, where from the Terrace there
-is a view of unequalled beauty, where the gardens are rich
-in flowers, there were only a few scattered groups.</p>
-
-<p>The holiday is not a feast of brutality or drunkenness. No
-one need have been offended by sight or sound. The
-Shows, thanks to the County Council regulations, were all
-decent, and there was everywhere the courtesy of good
-temper. An observer, thinking of twenty years ago, would
-say, “What an improvement!” but his next thought would
-be, “How much better things are possible!” In the first
-place, the arrangements for the supply of food might be
-different. In Golder’s Hill itself the regulation that no
-teas should be served on the grass for fear of its injury
-shows a curious ignorance of relative values when, for the
-want of very slight protection, boys are allowed to tear away
-the banks on the side of Spaniard’s Road. The injured
-grass would revive in a month; the torn banks are irreparably
-damaged. There is no reason why the London County
-Council’s restaurants both on Golder’s Hill and in other parts
-of the Heath should not attract people by the daintiness of
-their display, and why the people should not be held by music
-and singing. Family parties would be more likely to frequent
-the place if the elders could be assured of pleasant
-resting-places. How differently, how very much better,
-they manage feeding abroad! People are always hungry
-and thirsty on holidays, and from the public-house to the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">76</span>whelk-stall, from the tea-gardens to the coffee-stand, there
-was evidence of English incapacity to supply the most persistent
-of holiday needs. The first improvement possible
-is, therefore, more dainty and more frequent provision of
-refreshment. The next improvement, which especially applies
-to Golder’s Hill, is the addition of objects of interest.
-There might be an aviary, the greenhouses might be filled
-with flowers and opened, rooms in the house might be
-decorated with pictures of the neighbourhood or with a collection
-of local objects. People who are unconsciously
-taking in memories through their eyes need some illusion;
-they must think they are going to see something they
-understand, if they are to be led to see the better things beyond
-their understanding. Then, surely, some more care
-might be taken of the tender places on the Heath—there
-are acres of grass on which boys may play, who might
-thereby be kept from scouring the surface of the light sand
-soil, making highways through the gorse, opening waterways
-to starve the trees.</p>
-
-<p>These improvements are possible at once. There are
-others longer in the doing which are also necessary.
-People must be educated not only to be wage-earners but
-to enjoy their being. They too much depend on stimulants,
-on some outside excitement always liable to excess. They
-might find pleasure in themselves, in the use of their own
-faculties, in their powers of observation or activity, in their
-own intelligence and curiosity. They might with better
-education be “good company” for themselves and for one
-another. The people possess in Hampstead Heath a property
-a king might envy, but they only partially enjoy its opportunities.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">77</span>
- <h3 title="HOLIDAYS AND SCHOOLDAYS." id="ch08">HOLIDAYS AND SCHOOLDAYS.<a href="#f81" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>July, 1911.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f81">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch08" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Daily Telegraph”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Holidays</span>, as well as schooldays, help to form the minds of
-the citizens. Habits, tastes, friendships, are fixed in the
-hours when restraints are relaxed, and the Will takes its
-shape when it is most free. Our school holidays, when in
-play we commanded or obeyed, when we learnt to know
-the country sights and objects, when, with different companions,
-we travelled to new places, have been largely responsible
-for such satisfaction as we have found in life.</p>
-
-<p>Men and women are what their holidays have made
-them, and a nation’s use of its holidays may almost be said
-to determine its position in the world’s order of greatness.
-A nation whose pleasures are coarse and brutal, whose
-people delight in the excitement of their senses by actions
-in which their minds take no part, and where solitude is unendurable,
-can hardly do great things. It is not likely that
-it will be remembered, as the poets are remembered, by its
-care for any principle of action. It will hardly be generous
-in its foreign policy or happy in its homes.</p>
-
-<p>The use of holidays is thus most important, and everywhere
-there are signs of their increase. The schools for the
-richer classes lengthen the period of their vacations till they
-extend, in some cases, to a quarter of the year. The King
-asked that his Coronation year may be marked by an extra
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">78</span>week of exemption from school. Business people shorten
-hours of business, and workmen’s organizations demand
-more time for holidays. Seaside resorts grow up which live
-mainly by the pleasures of the people, and a vast and increasing
-body of workers find employment in the provision
-of amusement.</p>
-
-<p>More time and more money are being given to holidays.
-Their use or misuse is a matter of importance, and it is reasonable
-to demand that more thought should also be given
-to this subject. People—this fact is often forgotten—need
-to be taught to play as they need to be taught to earn or to
-love. Leisure is as likely to produce weariness as joy, and
-the Devil still finds most of his occupation among the
-idlers.</p>
-
-<p>The public schoolboy who has eight weeks’ vacation, and
-this year an extra week, will hardly be happy if he acquires
-habits of loafing at the seaside shows or picks up acquaintance
-with despisers of knowledge, or comes to think that
-learning is a “grind,” and he certainly will not in after
-years bless his holiday givers. The workman who obtains
-holidays and shorter hours will hardly be the better if he
-spends them in eating and sleeping, or in exciting himself
-over a match or race where he does not even understand
-the skill, or in watching an entertainment which calls for no
-effort of his mind.</p>
-
-<p>Rich people, who can do what they like in the time they
-themselves choose, add excitement to excitement; they
-invent new methods of expenditure; they go at increasing
-speed from place to place; they come nearer and nearer to
-the brinks of vice; they have what they like; and yet, like
-the millionaire in the American tale, they are not happy.
-People need to be taught the use of leisure. The question
-is, how is such teaching practicable<span class="ellipsis">?..</span>. I would offer
-two suggestions: one which may be applied to the schools
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">79</span>of the rich and of the poor, and the other to the free provision
-of means of recreation:—</p>
-
-<p>1. As to schools. The authorities may, it seems to me,
-keep in mind the fact that the children are meant to enjoy
-life as well as to make a living. Enjoyment comes largely
-by the use of the power of imagination. We enjoy ourselves
-before the beauty of nature, before a work of art, in
-listening to music, and in imagining the life of other climes
-and countries. How little is done in any school to develop
-this power of imagination! The great public schools,
-though often they are established in buildings of much
-beauty, rarely do anything to develop in the boys any understanding
-of the beauty. There is but little art in the
-schoolrooms and little attempt to teach the value of pictures.
-There are few flowers about the windows and very often the
-time given to music is grudged by the chief authorities.</p>
-
-<p>The elementary schools have not even the advantage of
-beauty in their buildings, and although the children may be
-taught art, they have their lessons in rooms made ugly by
-decorations, or wearying by untidiness. What wonder is it
-that boys and girls become destructive of the beauty in the
-admiration of which they and others might have found
-pleasure?</p>
-
-<p>The authorities might thus do something by the curriculum
-to make leisure time a happy time, but they might do
-more by making holiday arrangements. Richer parents
-may justly be expected to care for their own children, and
-many seize the opportunity of becoming their playmates, so
-that holiday times develop the memories that bind together
-old and young. But few parents can take themselves from
-business for eight or nine weeks together, and not all
-parents have the knowledge or the sympathy to lead the
-young in their pleasures. A solution might be the arrangement
-by the school authorities of travelling parties—such
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">80</span>as those organized at Manchester Grammar School; or of
-walking tours with some object, such as the collection of
-specimens or the investigation of places of interest,—or of
-holiday homes in the school houses or elsewhere, where,
-under the guidance of sympathetic teachers, the children
-could enjoy freer life and more varied interests than are
-possible in school, or of the interchange of visits between
-the children of English and foreign homes. Once let it be
-realized that the long holiday period—if necessary for the
-teachers—is full of danger for the children, and something
-will be done to make that period healthy as well as happy.</p>
-
-<p>For the children in elementary schools it is easy to make arrangements.
-During the three summer months the curriculum might be like that of
-the Vacation Schools. The buildings, often the only pleasant place in
-a crowded neighbourhood—would thus be in continuous use, while the
-children and teachers could get away for their country or foreign
-holiday, without breaking into any school routine. The children would
-then go into the country prepared to see and enjoy its interests, not
-only in the month of August, but at times when they might play in
-the hayfields, pick the spring flowers, and hear the birds sing. The
-teachers could have, not four, but six weeks’ vacation, in which there
-would be time for a foreign visit when the hotels were less crowded.
-The children, at the end of their fortnight in the country, would
-return, not just to loaf about the streets amid the dirt and the noise
-and degrading temptation, but to take their places in the open and
-pleasant surroundings of the school, with its manifold interests.</p>
-
-<p>The end of the summer would, if this arrangement could
-be carried out, find teachers and children alike refreshed and
-ready for the hard work of the ordinary school routine; and,
-greatest gain of all, the children would have learned how to
-enjoy their leisure. They would have planted memories
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">81</span>which would call for refreshment; they would have developed
-powers of admiration which would need to be used; they
-would have found interests to occupy their thoughts, and they
-would look forward to holidays in which to go to the country—not
-to play “Aunt Sally,” or even to find fresh air
-from town pursuits, but to visit old haunts, discover more
-secrets of nature and taste its quiet. They would, as men
-and women, make “good company” for one another, and
-learn to require some distinction of quiet or beauty to make
-a British holiday. They would find, in the appreciation of
-English scenery, new reasons for being patriots.</p>
-
-<p>Satisfying pleasure, it must always be remembered, comes
-from within, and not from without a man. Outside stimulants
-always fail at last, whether they be drink, shows,
-sensational tales, or games of chance; but the pleasures
-which come from the activity of head, or heart, or of limbs
-last as long as strength and life last.</p>
-
-<p>This leads to the other practicable suggestion which I would
-offer. The Community might provide freely the means
-which would give the people the pleasures which come from
-culture. Much has been done in this direction. Open
-spaces in our great towns have been made more common,
-but their use has not been developed as has been done in
-American cities, where superintendents teach the children
-how to play, and the playgrounds become centres of common
-enjoyments. Museums and picture galleries are sometimes
-provided, but they are still rare and often dull.
-Personal guidance is necessary if the objects in a museum
-are to have any meaning for the ordinary visitor, and the
-pictures in a gallery need to be changed frequently if attention
-is to be held. The Japanese wisely, even in their
-private rooms, have a succession of pictures, relegating
-those not hung to the seclusion of the “Godown”. Music
-is given in the parks and sometimes in the town halls, but
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">82</span>the best is not made common, and much is so poor that it
-fails to reach or express the thoughts which, if deeply buried,
-are to be found in the hearts of common people.</p>
-
-<p>No attempts are made to open dull ears, to listen to good
-music, though teachers in public schools report how it is
-possible by a few talks to make athletes enthusiastic for
-Beethoven. The total amount of good free music is very
-small and certainly not enough to raise the common taste
-and attract minds capable of thought and admiration.</p>
-
-<p>The duty of the Community to provide means of recreation
-is recognized, but too often it has seemed enough if it provides
-amusement which can be measured by popular applause.
-The duty should, I submit, have for its aim the
-provision of such recreation as would gradually lead the
-people in the way of enjoyment, and raise the character of
-all holidays by making them more satisfying to the higher
-demands of human nature.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">83</span>
- <h3 title="THE FAILURE OF HOLIDAYS." id="ch08a">THE FAILURE OF HOLIDAYS.<a href="#f8a1" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p class="spacedpara">May, 1912.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f8a1">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch08a" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Daily Telegraph,” May, 1912. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Eight</span> hundred thousand children are every August turned
-out of the airy and spacious Schools which London has
-built for their use, and for four weeks they can do what
-they like. To the people whose opinions form public
-opinion, “to do what one likes” seems the very essence of
-a holiday. The forgotten fact is that the majority of these
-children do not know what they like. All children, indeed,
-need to be taught to enjoy themselves, just as they are
-taught to earn for themselves; and children whose parents
-are without money to take them to the country or the
-seaside, where nature would give them playmates, and
-without leisure to be referees in their first attempts at
-games, miss the necessary teaching. They get tired of
-trying to find out what they like, tired of waiting for the
-sensation of a street fight or accident, tired of aimless
-play in the parks, tired even of doing what they had
-been told not to do. A few—40,000 of the 800,000—are
-sent by the Children’s Country Holiday Fund to
-spend a fortnight of the month in country cottages; a few
-others go to stay with friends or accompany their parents,
-but the greater number—it is said that 480,000 children
-never sleep one night out of London during the year—have
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">84</span>no other break than a day treat, which, with its intoxicating
-excitements and its distracting noises, can hardly claim to
-be a lesson in the art of enjoyment or to be a fair introduction
-to country pleasures. The August holiday under
-present conditions, cannot be described as a time in which
-working-class children store up memories of childhood’s
-joys, nor does it prepare them as men and women to make
-good use of the leisure gained by shorter hours of labour.</p>
-
-<p>The use of leisure has not, I think, been sufficiently considered
-from a National point of view. It concerns the
-happiness, the health, and also the wealth of the nation.
-If their leisure dissipates the strength of men’s minds, leaves
-them the prey to stimulants, and at the same time absorbs
-the wages of work, there is a continual loss, which must at
-last be fatal. The children’s August holiday, with its dullness
-and its dependence on chance excitements, prepares
-the way for Beanfeasts where parties of men find nothing
-better to do amid the beauty of the country than to throw
-stones at bottles, or for the vulgar futilities of Margate
-sands, Hampstead Heath and the music hall, or for the
-soul-numbing variety of sport.</p>
-
-<p>The recent report issued by the London County Council
-tells the result of an experiment in a better use of the holiday
-by means of Vacation Schools. The word “School” may
-suggest restraint, and put off some of my readers, who are
-apt to think of “heaven as a place where there are no
-masters”. They will say, “Let the children alone”. But
-they do not realize what “letting alone” means for children
-whose homes have no resources in space or interests. They
-do not remember that the schoolhouse is the Mansion of
-the neighbourhood, and that the Vacation School curriculum
-includes visits to the parks and to London sights, such as
-the Zoological Gardens, Hampton Court, and the Natural
-History Museum; manual occupations in which really useful
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">85</span>things are made, painting and cardboard modelling, by which
-the children’s own imaginations have play; lessons on
-nature, illustrated by plants and by pictures, readings from
-interesting books, about which the teachers are ready to
-talk, and organized games. When relieved from the
-trouble of having to choose at what to play, the children
-find untroubled enjoyment. Vacation Schools thus understood
-have no terror, but let the children themselves give
-evidence whether they prefer to be let alone.</p>
-
-<p>In a Battersea Vacation School there was an average attendance
-of 91·6 per cent, and on one day 153 children out
-of 154 on the roll voluntarily attended. “The high rate of
-actual attendance at the Vacation Schools, which compares
-not unfavourably with that of the ordinary day schools, in
-spite of the fact that compulsion is completely absent from
-the former, may be taken as an indication that the London
-child does not know what to do during the long vacation,
-and is anxious and ready to take advantage of any opportunity
-that may be afforded for work and play under conditions
-more healthy and congenial than the street or his
-home can offer.” In another school the teachers report:
-“We had been asked to do our best to keep up the numbers.
-Our difficulty was to keep them down.” “The discipline
-of the boys specially surprised the staff; a hint of possible
-expulsion was quite sufficient in dealing with two or three
-boys reported during the month.”</p>
-
-<p>The children, by their attendance, give the best evidence
-that the Vacation School is in their opinion a good way of
-spending a holiday and the report gives greater detail as to
-the reason. The teachers tell how “listless manners give
-place to animation and energy, and how the tendency prevalent
-among the boys to loaf or aimlessly to idle away
-their holidays was checked by the introduction of an objective,
-the absence of which is chiefly responsible for the loafing
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">86</span>tendency<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. The absence of restraint appears to lead
-to more honourable and more thoughtful conduct, and little
-acts of courtesy and politeness increased in frequency as the
-holidays drew to an end<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. Educationally the children
-benefit in increased manual dexterity, by the creation of
-motive, the training of the powers of observation, and the
-development of memory and imagination<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. In many
-cases <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. new capabilities were discovered, and talents
-awakened by the more congenial surroundings. Some
-children, who at first appeared dull and inattentive, brightened
-up and became most interested in one or more of
-their varied occupations<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. Little chats on the Excursions
-revealed a marked widening of outlook.”</p>
-
-<p>In such testimony as this it is quite easy to find the
-reason why the children so greatly enjoyed themselves.
-They had a variety of new interests and they had the sense
-of “life” which comes in the exercise of new capacities.
-They were never bored and they felt well. The parents,
-whose burden during holidays is often forgotten, seem to
-have expressed great appreciation at the provision for the
-children’s care, and as for the teachers, one goes so far as
-to say that “the kind of experience gained is a teacher’s
-liberal education and training”.</p>
-
-<p>The Report as a result of such testimony, naturally recommends
-an extension of the plan of Vacation Schools, so
-that this summer a greater number may be provided. I
-would, however, submit that the testimony justifies something
-more thorough.</p>
-
-<p>The proposals of the Report assume that holidays must
-fall in the month of August. Now there are many parents
-whose occupation keeps them in town during that month,
-and who cannot therefore take their children to the country.
-August too, is the period when all health resorts are most
-crowded and expensive. And lastly, if holidays are taken
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">87</span>only in this autumn season the country of the spring and
-summer, with its haymaking, its flowers and its birds, remains
-unknown to the children. The obvious change—so
-obvious that one wonders why it has not long ago been
-adopted—is to let some schools take their holidays in the
-months of June and July. But I would myself suggest the
-best plan would be to keep all, or most, of the school
-in session during the whole summer, establishing for the
-three months a summer curriculum on the lines of those
-adopted in the Vacation Schools. The children would then
-be able to go with their friends, or through the Children’s
-Country Holiday Fund for their Country Holiday without
-any interference with the regular school regime; and all,
-while they were at home, would have those resources in the
-school hours which have proved to be powerful to attract
-them from the streets. The teachers, free at last to take
-some of their holidays in June or July, would be able to benefit
-by the lower charges, to get, perhaps, a recreative holiday
-in the Alps instead of one at the English seaside in the
-somewhat stale companionship of a party of fellow-teachers.</p>
-
-<p>This more thorough plan would do for all London children
-everything which Vacation Schools attempt, and it has the
-further advantage that it would put refreshing country visits
-within the reach of more children and teachers.</p>
-
-<p>Middle-class families recognize the necessity of an annual
-visit to the sea or country, as a consequence of which great
-towns exist almost wholly as holiday resorts. The necessity
-of the middle class is much more the necessity of the working
-class, whose children have less room in their houses and
-fewer interests for their leisure. A pressure which cannot
-be resisted will insist that for their health’s sake and for the
-child’s sake, who is the father of the man, the children shall
-have each year the opportunity of breathing for at least a
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">88</span>fortnight country air, and of learning to be Nature’s playmates.
-The only practicable way in which such holidays
-may be provided is by the extension of the holiday period
-to include other than the month of August.</p>
-
-<p>The plan I have suggested would make such extension
-practicable with the least possible interference with school
-work, while it would secure for all children some guidance
-in the use and enjoyment of the leisure, which the experiment
-of Vacation Schools has proved to be so acceptable.
-That guidance, by widening children’s minds and awakening
-their powers of taking notice, would make the country visits
-more full of interests, and develop a love of Nature, to
-be a valuable resource in later life. If the Council’s Report
-succeeds in moving London opinion it may mark a new
-departure in the use and enjoyment of holidays.</p>
-
-<p>It almost seems as if the education given at such cost
-ran to waste during the holidays. There is a call for
-another Charles Booth, to make an inquiry into “the life
-and leisure of the people” which might be as epoch-making
-as that into “the life and labour of the people”. Such an
-inquiry would show, I believe, the need of energetic effort
-if leisure is to be a source of strength and not of weakness
-to national life, a way to recreation and not to demoralization.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">89</span>
- <h3 title="RECREATION IN TOWN AND COUNTRY." id="ch09">RECREATION IN TOWN AND COUNTRY.<a href="#f91" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Recreation and Character.</span></p>
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p class="spacedpara">October, 1906.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f91">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch09" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-A paper written for the Church Congress, and read at its meeting at
-Barrow-in-Furness by the Right Reverend the Lord Bishop of Truro, the late C. W. Stubbs.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">A people’s</span> play is a fair test of a people’s character. Men
-and women in their hours of leisure show their real admiration
-and their inner faith. Their “idle words,” in
-more than one sense, are those by which they are judged.</p>
-
-<p>No one who has reached an age from which he can overlook
-fifteen or twenty years can doubt but that pleasure-seeking
-has greatly increased. The railway statistics show
-that during the last year more people have been taken to
-seaside and pleasure resorts than ever before. On Bank
-Holidays a larger number travel, and more and more
-facilities are annually offered for day trips and evening
-entertainments.</p>
-
-<p>The newspapers give many pages to recording games,
-pages which are eagerly scanned even when, as in the case
-of the “Daily News,” the betting on their results is omitted.</p>
-
-<p>Face to face with these facts we need some principles to
-enable us to advise this pleasure-seeking generation what to
-seek and what to avoid. To arrive at principles one has to
-probe below the surface, to seek the cause of the pleasure
-given by various amusements. Briefly, what persons of all
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">90</span>ages seek in pleasure is (1) excitement, (2) interest, (3)
-memories. These are natural desires; no amount of
-preaching or scolding, or hiding them away will abolish
-them. It is the part of wisdom to recognize facts and use
-them for the uplifting of human nature.</p>
-
-<p>May I offer two principles for your consideration?</p>
-
-<p>1. Pleasure, while offering excitement, should not depend
-on excitement; it should not involve a fellow-creature’s
-loss or pain, nor lay its foundation on greed or gain.</p>
-
-<p>2. Pleasure should not only give enjoyment, it should
-also increase capacities for enjoyment. It should strengthen
-a man’s whole being, enrich memory and call forth effort.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">The Quality of English Playing.</span></h4>
-
-<p>If these principles have a basis of truth, the questions
-arise, “Are the common recreations of the people such as
-to encourage our hope of English progress? Do they make
-us proud of the growth of national character, and give us a
-ground of security for the high place we all long that England
-shall hold in the future?” The country may be lost
-as well as won on her playing fields.</p>
-
-<p>Recreation means the refreshment of the sources of life.
-Routine wears life, and “It is life of which our nerves are
-scant”. The excitement which stirs the worn or sleeping
-centres of a man’s body, mind or spirit, is the first step in
-such refreshment, but followed by nothing else it defeats its
-own ends. It uses strength and creates nothing, and if unmixed
-with what endures it can but leave the partaker the
-poorer. The fire must be stirred, but unless fuel be supplied
-the flames will soon sink in ashes.</p>
-
-<p>It behoves us then to accept excitement as a necessary
-part of recreation, and to seek to add to it those things
-which lead to increased resources and leave purer memories.
-Such an addition is skill. A wise manager of a boys’ refuge
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">91</span>once said to me that it was the first step upwards to
-induce a lad to play a game of skill instead of a game of
-chance. Another such addition is co-operation, that is a
-call on the receiver to give something. It is better for instance
-to play a game than to watch a game. It may, perhaps,
-be helpful to recall the principle, and let it test some
-of the popular pleasures.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">Popular Pleasures.</span></h4>
-
-<p>Pleasure, while offering excitement, should not depend
-on excitement; it should not involve a fellow-creature’s
-loss or pain, nor lay its foundation on greed or gain.</p>
-
-<p>This principle excludes the recreations which, like drink
-or gambling, stir without feeding, or the pleasures which are
-blended with the sorrows of the meanest thing that feels.
-It excludes also the dull Museum which feeds without stirring,
-and makes no provision for excitement. Tried by
-this standard, what is to be said of Margate, Blackpool, and
-such popular resorts, with their ribald gaiety and inane
-beach shows? Of music halls, where the entertainment
-was described by Mr. Stead as the “most insufferable
-banality and imbecility that ever fell upon human ears,”
-disgusting him not so much for its immorality as by the
-vulgar stupidity of it all. Of racing, the acknowledged
-interest of which is in the betting, a method of self-enrichment
-by another’s impoverishment, which tends to sap the
-very foundations of honesty and integrity; of football
-matches, which thousands watch, often ignorant of the
-science of the game, but captivated by the hope of winning
-a bet or by the spectacle of brutal conflict; of monster
-school-treats or excursions, when numbers engender such
-monopolizing excitement that all else which the energetic
-curate or the good ladies have provided is ruthlessly
-swallowed up; shooting battues, where skill and effort give
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">92</span>place to organization and cruelty; of plays, where the interest
-centres round the breaking of the commandments
-and “fools make a mock of sin”.</p>
-
-<p>Such pleasures may amuse for the time, but they fail to
-be recreative in so far as they do not make life fuller, do
-not increase the powers of admiration, hope and love; do
-not store the memory to be “the bliss of solitude”. Of
-most of them it can be easily foretold that the “crime of
-sense will be avenged by sense which wears with time”.
-Such pleasures cannot lay the foundation for a glad old age.</p>
-
-<p>Does this sound as if all popular pleasures are to be condemned?
-No! brought to the test of our second principle,
-there are whole realms of pleasure-lands which the Christian
-can explore and introduce to others, to the gladdening,
-deepening, and strengthening of their lives. May I read the
-principle again?</p>
-
-<p>Pleasure should not only give enjoyment, it should also
-increase the capacity for enjoyment. It should strengthen
-a man’s whole being, enrich memory and call forth effort
-and co-operation.</p>
-
-<p>Music, games of skill, books, athletics, foreign travel, cycling,
-walking tours, sailing, photography, picture galleries, botanical
-rambles, antiquarian researches, and many other recreations too
-numerous to mention call out the growth of the powers, as well as feed
-what exists; they excite active as well as passive emotions; they
-enlist the receiver as a co-operator; they allow the pleasure-seekers
-to feel the joy of being the creating children of a creating God.</p>
-
-<p>As we consider the subject, the chasm between right and
-wrong pleasures, worthy and unworthy recreations, seems
-to become deeper and broader, often though crossed by
-bridges of human effort, triumphs of dexterity, evidences of
-skill wrought by patient practice, which, though calling for
-no thought in the spectator, yet rouses his admiration and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">93</span>provides standards of executive excellence, albeit directed
-in regrettable channels.</p>
-
-<p>Still, broadly, recreations may be divided between those
-which call for effort, and therefore make towards progress,
-and those which breed idleness and its litter of evils; but
-(and this is the inherent difficulty for reformers) the mass
-of the people, rich and poor alike, will not make efforts, and
-as the “Times” once so admirably put it—“They preach
-to each other the gospel of idleness and call it the gospel
-of recreation”.</p>
-
-<p>The mass, however, is our concern. Those idle rich, who
-seek their stimulus in competitive expenditure; those ignorant
-poor, who turn to the examples of brute force for
-their pleasure; those destructive classes, whose delight is
-in slaying or eliminating space; they are all alike in being
-content to be “Vacant of our glorious gains, like a beast
-with lower pleasures, like a beast with lower pains”.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">Our Church and Recreation.</span></h4>
-
-<p>What can the clergymen and the clergy women do?
-It is not easy to reply, but there are some things they need
-not do. They need not promote monster treats, they need
-not mistake excitement for pleasure, and call their day’s
-outing a “huge success,” because it was accompanied by
-much noise and the running hither and thither of excited
-children; they need not use their Institutes and Schoolrooms
-to compete with the professional entertainer, and feel a
-glow of satisfaction because a low programme and a low
-price resulted in a full room; they need not accept the
-people’s standard for songs and recitations, and think they
-have “had a capital evening,” when the third-rate song is
-clapped, or the comic reading or dramatic scene appreciated
-by vulgar minds. Oh! the waste of curates’ time and brain
-in such “parish work”. How often it has left me mourning.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">94</span>What the clergymen and women can do is to show the
-people that they have other powers within them for enjoyment,
-that effort promotes pleasure, and that the use of
-limbs, with (not instead of) brains, and of imagination, can
-be made sources of joy for themselves and refreshment for
-others. Too often, toys, playthings, or appliances of one
-sort or another are considered necessary for pleasure both
-of the young and the mature. Might we not concentrate
-efforts to provide recreation on those methods which show
-how people can enjoy <em>themselves</em>, their own powers and
-capacities? Such powers need cultivation as much as the
-powers of bread-winning, and they include observation and
-criticism. “What did you think of it?” should be asked
-more frequently than “How did you like it?” The curiosity
-of children (so often wearying to their elders) is a
-natural quality which might be directed to observation of
-the wonders of Nature, and to the conclusion of a story
-other than its author conceived.</p>
-
-<p>“From change to change unceasingly, the soul’s wings
-never furled,” wrote Browning; and change brings food and
-growth to the soul; but the limits of interest must be extended
-to allow of the flight of the soul, and interests are
-often, in all classes, woefully restricted. It is no change
-for a blind man to be taken to a new view. Christ had to
-open the eyes of the blind before they could see God’s fair
-world, and in a lesser degree we may open the eyes of the
-born blind to see the hidden glories lying unimagined in
-man and Nature. In friendship also there are sources of
-recreation which the clergy could do much to foster and
-strengthen, and the introduction and opportunities which
-allow of the cultivation of friendship between persons of all
-classes with a common interest, is peculiarly one which
-parsons have opportunities to develop.</p>
-
-<p>And last but not least, there are the joys which come
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">95</span>from the cultivation of a garden—joys which continue all
-the year round, and which can be shared by every member
-of the family of every age. These might be more widely
-spread in town as well as country. Municipalities, Boards
-of Guardians, School Managers, and private owners often
-have both the control of people and land. If the Church
-would influence them, more children and more grown-ups
-might get health and pleasure on the land. I must not entrench
-on the subject of Garden Cities and Garden Suburbs—but
-the two subjects can be linked together, inasmuch as
-the purest, deepest, and most recreative of pleasures can be
-found in the gardens which are the distinctive feature of the
-new cities and suburbs.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">The Clergy and the Press.</span></h4>
-
-<p>If the clergy knew more of the people’s pleasures they
-would yearn more over their erring flocks and talk more on
-present-day subjects. Take horse-racing for instance, who
-can defend it? Who can find one good result of it, and
-its incalculable evils of betting, lying, cheating, drinking?
-Yet the clergy are strangely loth to condemn it! Is it because
-King Edward VII (God bless him for his love of
-peace) encourages the Turf? The King has again and
-again shown his care for his people’s good, and maybe he
-would modify his actions—and the world would follow his
-lead—if the Church would speak out and condemn this
-baneful national pleasure.</p>
-
-<p>It is not for me to preach to the clergy, but they have so
-often preached to me to my edification, that I would in
-gratitude give them in return an exhortation; and so I beg
-you good men to give more thought to the people’s
-pleasures; and then give guidance from the Pulpit and the
-Press concerning them.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Henrietta O. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Section 3-->
-<div class="section">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">96</span>
- <h2 id="sect3">SECTION <abbr title="3">III.</abbr><br /> <br />SETTLEMENTS.</h2>
-</div>
-<div class="synopsis">
-
-<p class="firstpara"><a href="#ch10" title="Go to Chapter 10">Settlements of University Men in Great
-Towns</a>—<a href="#ch12" title="Go to Chapter 12">Twenty-one Years of University
-Settlements</a>—<a href="#ch11" title="Go to Chapter 11">The Beginning of Toynbee Hall</a>.</p>
-
-</div>
-<h3 title="SETTLEMENTS OF UNIVERSITY MEN IN GREAT TOWNS." id="ch10">SETTLEMENTS OF UNIVERSITY MEN IN GREAT TOWNS.<a href="#f101" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f101">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch10" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-A paper read at a meeting in the rooms of Mr. Sidney Ball at St. John’s
-College, Oxford, November, 1883.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara">“<span class="sc">Something</span> must be done” is the comment which follows
-the tale of how the poor live. Those who make the comment
-have, however, their business—their pieces of ground to
-see, their oxen to prove, their wives to consider, and so there
-is among them a general agreement that the “Something”
-must be done by Law or by Societies. “What can I do?” is
-a more healthy comment, and it is a sign of the times that
-this question is being widely asked, and by none more
-eagerly than by members of the Universities. Undergraduates
-and graduates, long before the late outcry, had become
-conscious that social conditions were not right, and that
-they themselves were called to do something. It is nine
-years since four or five Oxford undergraduates chose to
-spend part of their vacation in East London, working as
-Charity Organization Agents, becoming members of clubs,
-and teaching in classes or schools. It is long since a well-known
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">97</span>Oxford man said, “The great work of our time is to
-connect centres of learning with centres of industry”. Freshmen
-have become fellows, since the Master of Balliol recommended
-his hearers, at a small meeting in the College
-Hall, to “find their friends among the poor”.</p>
-
-<p>Thus slowly has men’s attention been drawn to consider
-the social condition of our great towns. The revelations of
-recent pamphlets have fallen on ears prepared to hear. The
-fact that the wealth <em>of</em> England means only wealth <em>in</em> England,
-and that the mass of the people live without knowledge,
-without hope, and often without health has come
-home to open minds and consciences. If inquiry has shown
-that statements have been exaggerated, and the blame badly
-directed, it is nevertheless evident that the best is the privilege
-of the few, and that the Gospel—God’s message to
-this age—does not reach the poor. A workman’s wages
-cannot procure for him the knowledge which means fullness
-of life, or the leisure in which he might “possess his soul”.
-Hardly by saving can he lay up for old age, and only by
-charity can he get the care of a skilled physician. If it be
-thus with the first-class workman, the case of the casual
-labourer, whose strength of mind and body is consumed by
-anxiety, must be almost intolerable. Statistics, which show
-the number in receipt of poor relief, the families which occupy
-single rooms, the death rate in poor quarters, make a “cry”
-which it needs no words to express.</p>
-
-<p>The thought of the condition of the people has made a
-strange stirring in the calm life of the Universities, and
-many men feel themselves driven by a new spirit, possessed
-by a master idea. They are eager in their talk and in their
-inquiries, and they ask “What can we do to help the poor?”</p>
-
-<p>A College Mission naturally suggests itself as a form in
-which the idea should take shape. It seems as if all the
-members of a college might unite in helping the poor, by
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">98</span>adopting a district in a great town, finding for it a clergyman
-and associating themselves in his work.</p>
-
-<p>A Mission, however, has necessarily its limitations.</p>
-
-<p>The clergyman begins with a hall into which he gathers
-a congregation, and which he uses as a centre for “Mission”
-work. He himself is the only link between the college and
-the poor. He gives frequent reports of his progress, and
-enlists such personal help as he can, always keeping it in
-mind that the “district” is destined to become a “parish”.
-Many districts thus created in East London now take their
-places among the regular parishes, and the income of the
-clergyman is paid by the Ecclesiastical Commissioners, the
-patronage of the living is probably with the Bishop, and
-the old connexion has become simply a matter of history.
-Apart from the doubt whether this multiplication of parochial
-organizations, with its consequent division of interests,
-represents a wise policy, it is obvious that a college mission
-does not wholly cover the idea which possessed the college.
-The social spirit fulfils itself in many ways, and no one form
-is adequate to its total expression.</p>
-
-<p>The idea was that all members of the college should
-unite in good work. A college mission excludes Nonconformists.
-“Can we do nothing,” complained one, “as we
-cannot join in building a church?”</p>
-
-<p>The idea was to bring to bear the life of the University
-on the life of the poor. The tendency of a mission is to
-limit efforts within the recognized parochial machinery.
-“Can I help,” I am often asked, “in social work, which is
-not necessarily connected with your church or creed?” A
-college mission may—as many missions have done—result
-in bringing devoted workers to the service of the poor—where
-a good man leads, good must follow—but it is not, I
-think, the form best fitted to receive the spirit which is at
-present moving the Universities.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">99</span>As a form more adequate, I would suggest a Settlement
-of University men in the midst of some great industrial
-centre.</p>
-
-<p>In East London large houses are often to be found; they
-were formerly the residences of the wealthy, but are now
-let out in tenements or as warehouses. Such a house, affording
-sufficient sleeping rooms and large reception rooms,
-might be taken by a college, fitted with furniture, and (it
-may be) associated with its name. As director or head,
-some graduate might be appointed, a man of the right
-spirit, trusted by all parties; qualified by character to guide
-men, and by education to teach. He would be maintained
-by the college just as the clergyman of the mission district.
-Around such a man graduates and undergraduates would
-gather. Some working in London as curates, barristers,
-government clerks, medical students, or business men
-would be glad to make their home in the house for long
-periods. They would find there less distraction and more
-interest than in a West-End lodging. Others engaged
-elsewhere would come to spend some weeks or months of
-the vacation, taking up such work as was possible,
-touching with their lives the lives of the poor, and learning
-for themselves facts which would revolutionize their minds.
-There would be, of course, a graduated scale of payment so
-as to suit the means of the various settlers, but the scale
-would have to be so fixed as to cover the expense of board
-and lodging.</p>
-
-<p>Let it, however, be assumed that the details have been
-arranged, and that, under a wise director, a party of University
-men have settled in East London. The director—welcomed
-here, as University men are always welcomed—will
-have opened relations with the neighbouring clergy,
-and with the various charitable agencies; he will have
-found out the clubs and centres of social life, and he will
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">100</span>have got some knowledge of the bodies engaged in local
-government. His large rooms will have been offered for
-classes, directed by the University Extension or Popular
-Concert Societies, and for meetings of instruction or entertainment.
-He will have thus won the reputation of a man
-with something to give, who is willing to be friendly with
-his neighbours. At once he will be able to introduce the
-settlers to duties, which will mean introductions to friendships.
-Those to whom it is given to know the high things
-of God, he will introduce to the clergy, who will guide
-them to find friends among those who, in trouble and
-sickness, will listen to a life-giving message. Honour men
-have confessed that they have found a key to life in
-teaching the Bible to children, and not once nor twice has
-it happened that old truths have seemed to take new
-meaning when spoken by a man brought fresh from Oxford
-to face the poor. Those with the passion for righteousness
-the director will bring face to face with the victims of sin.
-In the degraded quarters of the town, in the wards of the
-workhouses, they will find those to whom the friendship of
-the pure is strange, and who are to be saved only by the
-mercy which can be angry as well as pitiful. As I write, I
-recall one who was brought to us by an undergraduate out
-of a wretched court, overwhelmed by the look and words of
-his young enthusiasm. I recall another who was taken
-from the police court by a Cambridge man, put to an Industrial
-School, and is now touchingly grateful, not to him,
-but to God for the service. Some, whose spare time is in
-the day, will become visitors for the Charity Organization
-Society, Managers of Industrial and Public Elementary
-Schools, Members of the Committees which direct Sanitary,
-Shoe Black, and other Societies, and in these positions
-form friendships, which to officials, weary of the dull
-routine, will let in light, and to the poor, fearful of law, will
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">101</span>give strength. Others who can spare time only in the
-evening will teach classes, join clubs, and assist in Co-operative
-and Friendly Societies, and they will, perhaps, be surprised
-to find that they know so much that is useful when
-they see the interest their talk arouses. In one club, I
-know, whist ceases to be attractive when the gentleman is
-not there to talk. There are friendly societies worked by
-artisans, which owe their success to the inspiration of University
-men, and there is one branch of the Charity Organization
-Society which still keeps the mark impressed on it,
-when a man of culture did the lowest work.</p>
-
-<p>The elder settlers will, perhaps, take up official positions.
-If they could be qualified, they might be Vestry-men and
-Guardians, or they might qualify themselves to become
-Schoolmasters. What University men can do in local government
-is written on the face of parishes redeemed from
-the demoralizing influence of out-relief, and cleansed by
-well-administered law. Further reforms are already seen
-to be near, but it has not entered into men’s imaginations
-to conceive the change for good which might be wrought
-if men of culture would undertake the education of the
-people. The younger settlers will always find occupation
-day or night in playing with the boys, taking them in the
-daytime to open spaces, or to visit London sights, amusing
-them in the evening with games and songs. Unconsciously,
-they will set up a higher standard of man’s life,
-and through friendship will commend to these boys respect
-for manhood, honour for womanhood, reverence for God.
-Work of such kind will be abundant, and, as it must result
-in the settlers forming many acquaintances, the large rooms
-of the house will be much used for receptions. Parties will
-be frequent, and whatever be the form of entertainment
-provided, be it books or pictures, lectures or reading,
-dancing or music, the guests will find that their pleasure
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">102</span>lies in intercourse. Social pleasure is unknown to those
-who have no large rooms and no place for common
-meeting. The parties of the Settlement will thus be attractive
-just in so far as they are useful. The more means of
-intercourse they offer, the more will they be appreciated.
-The pleasure which binds all together will give force to
-every method of good-doing, be it the words of the
-preacher, spoken to the crowd, hushed, perhaps, by the
-presence of death, or be it the laughter-making tale told
-during the Saturday ramble in the country.</p>
-
-<p>If something like this is to be the work of a College
-Settlement, “How far,” it may be asked, “is it adequate
-to the hope of the college to do something for the poor?”
-Obviously, it <em>affords an outlet for every form of earnestness</em>.
-No man—call himself what he may—need be excluded
-from the service of the poor on account of his views. No
-talent, be it called spiritual or secular, need be lost on
-account of its unfitness to existing machinery. If there be
-any virtue, if there be any good in man, whatsoever is
-beautiful, whatsoever is pure in things will find a place in
-the Settlement.</p>
-
-<p>There is yet a fuller answer to the question. A Settlement
-enables men to <em>live within sight of the poor</em>. Many a
-young man would be saved from selfishness if he were
-allowed at once to translate feeling into action. It is the
-facility for talk, and the ready suggestion that a money gift
-is the best relief, which makes some dread lest, after this
-awakening of interest, there may follow a deeper sleep.
-He who has, even for a month, shared the life of the poor
-can never again rest in his old thoughts. If with these
-obvious advantages, a Settlement seems to want that something
-which association with religious forms gives to the
-mission, I can only say that such association does not make
-work religious, if the workers have not its spirit. If the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">103</span>director be such a man as I can imagine, and if there be
-any truth in the saying that “Every one that loveth
-knoweth God,” then it must be that the work of settlers,
-inspired and guided by love, will be religious. The man in
-East London, who is the simplest worker for God I know,
-has added members to many churches, and has no sect or
-church of his own. The true religious teacher is he who
-makes known God to man. God is manifest to every age
-by that which is the Best of the age. The modern representatives
-of those who healed diseases, taught the ignorant,
-and preached the Gospel to the poor, are those who
-make common the Best which can be known or imagined.
-Christ the Son of God is still the “Christ which is to be”—and
-even through our Best He will be but darkly seen.</p>
-
-<p>That such work as I have described would be useful in
-East London, I myself have no doubt. The needs of East
-London are often urged, but they are little understood.
-Its inhabitants are at one moment assumed to be well paid
-workmen, who will get on if they are left to themselves; at
-another, they are assumed to be outcasts, starving for the
-necessaries of living. It is impossible but that misunderstanding
-should follow ignorance, and at the present
-moment the West-End is ignorant of the East-End. The
-want of that knowledge which comes only from the sight of
-others’ daily life, and from sympathy with “the joys and
-sorrows in widest commonalty spread,” is the source of the
-mistaken charity which has done much to increase the hardness
-of the life of the poor.</p>
-
-<p>The much-talked of East London is made up of miles of
-mean streets, whose inhabitants are in no want of bread or
-even of better houses; here and there are the courts now
-made familiar by descriptions. They are few in number,
-and West-End visitors who have come to visit their
-“neighbours” confess themselves—with a strange irony
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">104</span>on their motives—“disappointed that the people don’t
-look worse”.</p>
-
-<p>The settlers will find themselves related to two distinct
-classes of “the poor,” and it will be well if they keep in
-mind the fact that they must serve both those who, like
-the artisans, need the necessaries for <em>life</em>, and also those
-who, like casual labourers, need the necessaries for <em>livelihood</em>.
-They will not of course come believing that their Settlement
-will make the wicked good, the dull glad, and the poor rich,
-but they may be assured that results will follow the sympathy
-born of close neighbourhood. It will be something, if
-they are able to give to a few the higher thoughts in which
-men’s minds can move, to suggest other forms of recreation,
-and to open a view over the course of the river of life as it
-flows to the Infinite Sea. It will be something if they create
-among a few a distaste for dirt and disorder, if they make
-some discontented with their degrading conditions, if they
-leaven public opinion with the belief that the law which
-provides cleanliness, light and order should be applied
-equally in all quarters of the town. It will be something,
-if thus they give to the one class the ideal of life, and stir
-up in the other those feelings of self-respect, without which
-increased means of livelihood will be useless. It will be
-more if to both classes they can show that selfishness or sin
-is the only really bad thing, and that the best is not “too
-good for human nature’s daily food”. Nothing that is divine
-is alien to man, and nothing which can be learnt at the University
-is too good for East London.</p>
-
-<p>Many have been the schemes of reform I have known,
-but, out of eleven years’ experience, I would say that none
-touches the root of the evil which does not <em>bring helper and
-helped into friendly relations</em>. Vain will be higher education,
-music, art, or even the Gospel, unless they come
-clothed in the life of brother men—“it took the Life to
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">105</span>make God known”. Vain, too, will be sanitary legislation
-and model dwellings, unless the outcast are by friendly
-hands brought in one by one to habits of cleanliness and
-order, to thoughts of righteousness and peace. “What will
-save East London?” asked one of our University visitors
-of his master. “The destruction of West London” was the
-answer, and, in so far as he meant the abolition of the influences
-which divide rich and poor, the answer was right.
-Not until the habits of the rich are changed, and they are
-again content to breathe the same air and walk the same
-streets as the poor, will East London be “saved”. Meantime
-a Settlement of University men will do a little to remove the
-inequalities of life, as the settlers share their best with the
-poor and learn through feeling how they live. It was by
-residence among the poor that Edward Denison learned the
-lessons which have taken shape in the new philanthropy of
-our days. It was by visiting in East London that Arnold
-Toynbee fed the interest which in later years became such
-a force at Oxford. It was around a University man, who
-chose to live as our neighbour, that a group of East Londoners
-gathered, attracted by the hope of learning something
-and held together after five years by the joy which
-learning gives. Men like Mr. Goschen and Professor Huxley
-have lately spoken out their belief that the intercourse of
-the highest with the lowest is the only solution of the social
-problem.</p>
-
-<p>Settlers may thus join the Settlement, looking back to the
-example of others and to the opinions of the wise—looking
-forward to the grandest future which has risen on the horizon
-of hope. It may not be theirs to see the future realized,
-but it is theirs to cheer themselves with the thought of the
-time when the disinherited sons of God shall be received
-into their Father’s house, when the poor will know the
-Higher Life as it is being revealed to those who watch by
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">106</span>the never silent spirit, when daily drudgery will be irradiated
-with eternal thought, when neither wealth nor poverty will
-hinder men in their pursuit of the Perfect life, because everything
-which is Best will be made in love common to all.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="p106">
-
-<p class="sp1para">This paper was reprinted in February, 1884, when the following
-words and names were added.</p>
-
-<p>The following members of the University have undertaken to
-receive the names of any graduates or undergraduates who feel
-disposed to join a “Settlement” shortly or at any future time:—</p>
-
-<div class="p106a noindent">
-
-<p class="spacedpara">The Rev. the Master of University.<br />
-The Hon. and Rev. W. H. Fremantle, Balliol.<br />
-A. Robinson, Esq., New College.<br />
-A. H. D. Acland, Esq., Christ Church.<br />
-A. Sidgwick, Esq., C.C.C.<br />
-W. H. Forbes, Esq., Balliol.<br />
-A. L. Smith, Esq., Balliol.<br />
-T. H. Warren, Esq., Magdalen.<br />
-S. Ball, Esq., St. John’s.<br />
-C. E. Dawkins, Esq., Balliol.<br />
-B. King, Esq., Balliol.<br />
-M. E. Sadler, Esq., Trinity.<br />
-H. D. Leigh, Esq., New College.<br />
-G. C. Lang, Esq., Balliol.<br /></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p><em>Names should be sent in as soon as possible.</em></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="sc">Oxford</span>, Feb., 1884.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">107</span>
- <h3 title="THE BEGINNINGS OF TOYNBEE HALL." id="ch11">THE BEGINNINGS OF TOYNBEE HALL.<a href="#f111" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>1903.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f111">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch11" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “Towards Social Reform”. By kind permission of Messrs. Fisher Unwin.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara">“<span class="sc">How</span> did the idea of a University Settlement arise?”
-“What was the beginning?” are questions so often asked
-by Americans, Frenchmen, Belgians, or the younger generations
-of earnest English people, that it seems worth while
-to reply in print, and to trundle one’s mind back to those
-early days of effort and loneliness before so many bore the
-burden and shared the anxiety. The fear is that in putting
-pen to paper on matters which are so closely bound up
-with our own lives, the sin of egotism will be committed,
-or that a special plant, which is still growing, may be
-damaged, as even weeds are if their roots are looked at.
-And yet in the tale which has to be told there is so much
-that is gladdening and strengthening to those who are
-fighting apparently forlorn causes that I venture to tell it
-in the belief that to some our experiences will give hope.</p>
-
-<p>In the year 1869, Mr. Edward Denison took up his
-abode in East London. He did not stay long nor accomplish
-much, but as he breathed the air of the people he
-absorbed something of their sufferings, saw things from their
-standpoint, and, as his letters in his memoirs show, made
-frequent suggestions for social remedies. He was the first
-settler, and was followed by the late Mr. Edmund Hollond,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">108</span>to whom my husband and I owe our life in Whitechapel.
-He was ever on the outlook for men and women who cared
-for the people, and hearing that we wished to come Eastward,
-wrote to Dr. Jackson, then Bishop of London, when
-the living of St. Jude’s fell vacant in the autumn of 1872,
-and asked that it might be offered to Mr. Barnett, who
-was at that time working as Curate at St. Mary’s, Bryanston
-Square, with Mr. Fremantle, now the Dean of Ripon. I
-have the Bishop’s letter, wise, kind and fatherly, the letter
-of a general sending a young captain to a difficult outpost.
-“Do not hurry in your decision,” he wrote, “it is the worst
-parish in my diocese, inhabited mainly by a criminal population,
-and one which has I fear been much corrupted by
-doles”.</p>
-
-<p>How well I remember the day Mr. Barnett and I first
-came to see it!—a sulky sort of drizzle filled the atmosphere;
-the streets, dirty and ill kept, were crowded with vicious
-and bedraggled people, neglected children, and overdriven
-cattle. The whole parish was a network of courts and
-alleys, many houses being let out in furnished rooms at 8d.
-a night—a bad system, which lent itself to every form of
-evil, to thriftless habits, to untidiness, to loss of self-respect,
-to unruly living, to vicious courses.</p>
-
-<p>We did not “hurry in our decision,” but just before
-Christmas, 1872, Mr. Barnett became vicar. A month later
-we were married, and took up our life-work on 6 March,
-1873, accompanied by our friend Edward Leonard, who
-joined us, “to do what he could”; his “could” being ultimately
-the establishment of the Whitechapel Committee
-of the Charity Organization Society, and a change in the
-lives and ideals of a large number of young people, whom
-he gathered round him to hear of the Christ he worshipped.</p>
-
-<p>It would sound like exaggeration if I told my memories
-of those times. The previous vicar had had a long and disabling
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">109</span>illness, and all was out of order. The church, unserved
-by either curate, choir, or officials, was empty, dirty,
-unwarmed. Once the platform of popular preachers, Mr.
-Hugh Allen, and Mr. (now Bishop) Thornton, it had had
-huge galleries built to accommodate the crowds who came
-from all parts of London to hear them—galleries which
-blocked the light, and made the subsequent emptiness additionally
-oppressive. The schools were closed, the schoolrooms
-all but devoid of furniture, the parish organization
-nil; no Mothers’ meeting, no Sunday School, no communicants’
-class, no library, no guilds, no music, no classes, nothing
-alive. Around this barren empty shell surged the
-people, here to-day, gone to-morrow. Thieves and worse,
-receivers of stolen goods, hawkers, casual dock labourers,
-every sort of unskilled low-class cadger congregated in the
-parish. There was an Irish quarter and a Jews’ quarter,
-while whole streets were given over to the hangers-on of a
-vicious population, people whose conduct was brutal, whose
-ideal was idleness, whose habits were disgusting, and among
-whom goodness was laughed at, the honest man and the
-right-living woman being scorned as impracticable. Robberies,
-assaults, and fights in the street were frequent; and
-to me, a born coward, it grew into a matter of distress when
-we became sufficiently well known in the parish for our presence
-to stop, or at least to moderate, a fight; for then it
-seemed a duty to join the crowd, and not to follow one’s
-nervous instincts and pass by on the other side. I recall
-one breakfast being disturbed by three fights outside
-the Vicarage. We each went to one, and the third was
-hindered by a hawker friend who had turned verger, and
-who fetched the distant policeman, though he evidently remained
-doubtful as to the value of interference.</p>
-
-<p>We began our work very quietly and simply: opened
-the church (the first congregation was made up of six or
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">110</span>seven old women, all expecting doles for coming), restarted
-the schools, established relief committees, organized parish
-machinery, and tried to cauterise, if not to cure, the deep
-cancer of dependence which was embedded in all our
-parishioners alike, lowering the best among them and degrading
-the worst. At all hours, and on all days, and with
-every possible pretext, the people came and begged. To
-them we were nothing but the source from which to obtain
-tickets, money, or food; and so confident were they that
-help would be forthcoming that they would allow themselves
-to get into circumstances of suffering or distress easily foreseen,
-and then send round and demand assistance.</p>
-
-<p>I can still recall my emotions when summoned to a sick
-woman in Castle Alley, an alley long since pulled down,
-where the houses, three stories high, were hardly six feet
-apart; the sanitary accommodation—pits in the cellars; and
-the whole place only fit for the condemnation it got directly
-Cross’s Act was passed. This alley, by the way, was in
-part the cause of Cross’s Act, so great an impression did it
-make on Lord Cross (then Mr. Cross) when Mr. Barnett
-induced him to come down and see it.</p>
-
-<p>In this stinking alley, in a tiny dirty room, all the windows
-broken and stuffed up, lay the woman who had sent for me.
-There were no bedclothes; she lay on a sacking covered
-with rags.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not know you,” said I, “but I hear you want to
-see me.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, ma’am!” replied a fat beer-sodden woman by the
-side of the bed, producing a wee, new-born baby; “we
-don’t know yer, but ’ere’s the babby, and in course she wants
-clothes, and the mother comforts like. So we jist sent round
-to the church.”</p>
-
-<p>This was a compliment to the organization which represented
-Christ, but one which showed how sunken was
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">111</span>the character which could not make even the simplest provision
-for an event which must have been expected for
-months, and which even the poorest among the respectable
-counts sacred.</p>
-
-<p>The refusal of the demanded doles made the people very
-angry. Once the Vicarage windows were broken, once we
-were stoned by an angry crowd, who also hurled curses at
-us as we walked down a criminal-haunted street, and howled
-out as a climax to their wrongs “And it’s us as pays ’em”.
-But we lived all this down, and as the years went by reaped
-a harvest of love and gratitude which is one of the gladdest
-possessions of our lives, and is quite disproportionate to the
-service we have rendered. But this is the end of the story,
-and I must go back to the beginning.</p>
-
-<p>In a parish which occupies only a few acres, and was inhabited
-by 8,000 persons, we were confronted by some of
-the hardest problems of city life. The housing of the people,
-the superfluity of unskilled labour, the enforcement of resented
-education, the liberty of the criminal classes to congregate
-and create a low public opinion, the administration
-of the Poor Law, the amusement of the ignorant, the hindrances
-to local government (in a neighbourhood devoid of
-the leisured and cultured), the difficulty of uniting the unskilled
-men and women, in trade unions, the necessity for
-stricter Factory Acts, the joylessness of the masses, the hopefulness
-of the young—all represented difficult problems, each
-waiting for a solution and made more complicated by the
-apathy of the poor, who were content with an unrighteous
-contentment and patient with an ungodly patience. These
-were not the questions to be replied to by doles, nor could
-the problem be solved by kind acts to individuals nor by
-the healing of the suffering, which was but the symptom of
-the disease.</p>
-
-<p>In those days these difficulties were being dealt with
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">112</span>mainly by good kind women, generally elderly; few men,
-with the exception of the clergy and noted philanthropists,
-as Lord Shaftesbury, were interested in the welfare of the
-poor, and economists rarely joined close experience with
-their theories.</p>
-
-<p>“If men, cultivated, young, thinking men, could only
-know of these things they would be altered,” I used to say,
-with girlish faith in human goodwill—a faith which years
-has not shaken; and in the spring of 1875 we went to Oxford,
-partly to tell about the poor, partly to enjoy “eights
-week” with a group of young friends. Our party was
-planned by Miss Toynbee, whom I had met when at school,
-and whose brother Arnold was then an undergraduate at
-Pembroke. Our days were filled with the hospitality with
-which Oxford still rejoices its guests; but in the evenings
-we used to drop quietly down the river with two or three
-earnest men, or sit long and late in our lodgings in the Turl,
-and discuss the mighty problems of poverty and the people.</p>
-
-<p>How vividly Canon Barnett and I can recall each and all
-of the first group of “thinking men,” so ready to take up
-enthusiasms in their boyish strength—Arnold Toynbee,
-Sidney Ball, W. H. Forbes, Arthur Hoare, Leonard Montefiore,
-Alfred Milner, Philip Gell, John Falk, G. E. Underhill,
-Ralph Whitehead, Lewis Nettleship! Some of these are
-still here, and caring for our people, but others have passed
-behind the veil, where perhaps earth’s sufferings are explicable.</p>
-
-<p>We used to ask each undergraduate as he developed interest
-to come and stay in Whitechapel, and see for himself.
-And they came, some to spend a few weeks, some for the
-Long Vacation, while others, as they left the University and
-began their life’s work, took lodgings in East London, and
-felt all the fascination of its strong pulse of life, hearing, as
-those who listen always may, the hushed, unceasing moans
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">113</span>underlying the cry which ever and anon makes itself heard
-by an unheeding public.</p>
-
-<p>From that first visit to Oxford in the “eights week” of
-1875, date many visits to both the Universities. Rarely
-a term passed without our going to Oxford, where the men
-who had been down to East London introduced us to others
-who might do as they had done. Sometimes we stayed with
-Dr. Jowett, the immortal Master of Balliol, sometimes we
-were the guests of the undergraduates, who would get up
-meetings in their rooms, and organize innumerable breakfasts,
-teas, river excursions, and other opportunities for introducing
-the subject of the duty of the cultured to the poor
-and degraded.</p>
-
-<p>No organization was started, no committee, no society,
-no club formed. We met men, told them of the needs of
-the out-of-sight poor; and many came to see Whitechapel
-and stayed to help it. And so eight years went by—our
-Oxford friends laughingly calling my husband the “unpaid
-professor of social philosophy”.</p>
-
-<p>In June, 1883, we were told by Mr. Moore Smith that
-some men at St. John’s College at Cambridge were wishful
-to do something for the poor, but that they were not quite
-prepared to start an ordinary College Mission. Mr. Barnett
-was asked to suggest some other possible and more excellent
-way. The letter came as we were leaving for Oxford,
-and was slipped with others in my husband’s pocket. Soon
-something went wrong with the engine and delayed the train
-so long that the passengers were allowed to get out. We
-seated ourselves on the railway bank, just then glorified by
-masses of large ox-eyed daisies, and there he wrote a letter suggesting
-that men might hire a house, where they could come
-for short or long periods, and, living in an industrial quarter,
-learn to “sup sorrow with the poor”. The letter pointed
-out that close personal knowledge of individuals among the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">114</span>poor must precede wise legislation for remedying their needs,
-and that as English local government was based on the assumption
-of a leisured cultivated class, it was necessary to
-provide it artificially in those regions where the line of
-leisure was drawn just above sleeping hours, and where the
-education ended at thirteen years of age and with the
-three R’s.</p>
-
-<p>That letter founded Toynbee Hall. Insomnia had sapped
-my health for a long time, and later, in the autumn of that
-year, we were sent to <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Eaux Bonnes</span> to try a water-cure.
-During that period the Cambridge letter was expanded into
-a paper, which was read at a college meeting at St. John’s
-College, Oxford, in November of the same year. Mr. Arthur
-Sidgwick was present, and it is largely due to his practical
-vigour that the idea of University Settlements in the industrial
-working-class quarters of large towns fell not only
-on sympathetic ears, but was guided until it came to fruition.
-The first meeting of undergraduates met in the room of
-Mr. Cosmo Lang now (1908), about to become Archbishop
-of York. Soon after the meeting a small but earnest committee
-was formed; later on the committee grew in size and
-importance, money was obtained on debenture bonds, and
-a Head sought who would turn the idea into a fact. Here
-was the difficulty. Such men as had been pictured in the
-paper which Mr. Knowles had published in the “Nineteenth
-Century Review” of February, 1884, are not met with every-day;
-and no inquiries seemed to discover the wanted man
-who would be called upon to give all and expect nothing.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Barnett and I had spent eleven years of life and work
-in Whitechapel. We were weary. My health stores were
-limited and often exhausted, and family circumstances had
-given us larger means and opportunities for travel. We
-were therefore desirous to turn our backs on the strain, the
-pain, the passion and the poverty of East London, at least
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">115</span>for a year or two, and take repose after work which had aged
-and weakened us. But no other man was to be found who
-would and could do the work; and, if this child-thought was
-not to die, it looked as if we must undertake to try and rear it.</p>
-
-<p>We went to the Mediterranean to consider the matter,
-and solemnly, on a Sunday morning, made our decision.
-How well I recall the scene as we sat at the end of the
-quaint harbour-pier at <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Mentone</span>, the blue waves dancing at
-our feet, everything around scintillating with light and
-movement in contrast to the dull and dulling squalor of the
-neighbourhood which had been our home for eleven years,
-and which our new decision would make our home for
-another indefinite spell of labour and effort. “God help
-us,” we said to each other; and then we wired home to obtain
-the refusal of the big Industrial School next to St.
-Jude’s Vicarage, which had recently been vacated, and
-which we thought to be a good site for the first Settlement,
-and returned to try and live up to the standard which we
-had unwittingly set for ourselves in describing in the article
-the unknown man who was wanted for Warden.</p>
-
-<p>The rest of the story is soon told. The Committee did
-the work, bought the land, engaged the architect (Mr. Elijah
-Hoole), raised the money, and interested more and more
-men, who came for varying periods, either to live, to visit,
-or to see what was being done.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr50" />
-
-<p>On 10 March, 1883, Arnold Toynbee had died. He had
-been our beloved and faithful friend, ever since, as a lad of
-eighteen, his own mind then being chiefly concerned with
-military interests and ideals, he had heard, with the close
-interest of one treading untrodden paths, facts about the
-toiling, ignorant multitude whose lives were stunted by
-labour, clouded by poverty, and degraded by ignorance.
-He had frequently been to see us at St. Jude’s, staying
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">116</span>sometimes a few nights, oftener tempting us to go a day or
-two with him into the country; and ever wooing us with
-persistent hospitality to Oxford. Once in 1879 he had
-taken rooms over the Charity Organization Office in Commercial
-Road, hoping to spend part of the Long Vacation,
-learning of the people; but his health, often weakly, could
-not stand the noise of the traffic, the sullenness of the aspect,
-nor the pain which stands waiting at every corner;
-and at the end of some two or three weeks he gave up the
-plan and left East London, never to return except as our
-welcome guest. His share of the movement was at Oxford,
-where with a subtle force of personality he attracted original
-or earnest minds of all degrees, and turned their
-thoughts or faces towards the East End and its problems.
-Through him many men came to work with us, while others
-were stirred by the meetings held in Oxford, or by the
-pamphlet called the “Bitter Cry,” which, in spite of its exaggerations,
-aroused many to think of the poor; or by the
-stimulating teaching of Professor T. H. Green, and by the
-constant, kindly sympathy of the late Master of Balliol, who
-startled some of his hearers, who had not plumbed the
-depths of his wide, wise sympathy, by advising all young
-men, whatever their career, “to make some of their friends
-among the poor”.</p>
-
-<p>The 10th of March, 1884, was a Sunday, and on the
-afternoon of that day Balliol Chapel was filled with a
-splendid body of men who had come together from all
-parts of England in loving memory of Arnold Toynbee, on
-the anniversary of his death. Dr. Jowett had asked my
-husband to preach to them, and they listened, separating
-almost silently at the chapel porch, filled, one could almost
-feel, by the aspiration to copy him in caring much, if not
-doing much, for those who had fallen by the way or were
-“vacant of our glorious gains”.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">117</span>We had often chatted, those of us who were busy planning
-the new Settlement, as to what to call it. We did not
-mean the name to be descriptive; it should, we thought, be
-free from every possible savour of a Mission, and yet it
-should in itself be suggestive of a noble aim. As I sat on
-that Sunday afternoon in the chapel, one of the few women
-among the crowd of strong-brained, clean-living men assembled
-in reverent affection for one man, the thought
-flashed to me, “Let us call the Settlement Toynbee Hall”.
-To Mr. Bolton King, the honorary secretary of the committee,
-had come the same idea, and it, finding favour with
-the committee, was so decided, and our new Settlement received
-its name before a brick was laid or the plans concluded.</p>
-
-<p>On the first day of July, 1884, the workmen began to
-pull down the old Industrial School, and to adapt such of
-it as was possible for the new uses; and on Christmas Eve,
-1884, the first settlers, Mr. H. D. Leigh, of Corpus, and
-Mr. C. H. Grinling, of Hertford, slept in Toynbee Hall,
-quickly followed by thirteen residents, some of whom had
-been living in the neighbourhood of Whitechapel, some for
-a considerable length of time, either singly or in groups,
-one party inhabiting a small disused public-house, others in
-model dwellings or in lodgings, none of them being altogether
-suitable for their own good or the needs of those
-whom they would serve. Those men had become settlers
-before the Settlement scheme was conceived, and as such
-were conversant with the questions in the air. It was an
-advantage also, that they were of different ages, friends of
-more than one University generation, and linked together
-by a common friendship to us.</p>
-
-<p>The present Dean of Ripon had for many years lent his
-house at No. 3, Ship Street, for our use, and so had enabled
-us to spend some consecutive weeks of each summer at
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">118</span>Oxford; and during those years we had learnt to know the
-flower of the University, counting, as boy friends, some
-men who have since become world-widely known; some
-who have done the finest work and “scorned to blot it with
-a name”; and others who, as civil servants, lawyers, doctors,
-country gentlemen, business men, have in the more
-humdrum walks of life carried into practice the same spirit
-of thoughtful sympathy which first brought them to inquire
-concerning those less endowed and deprived of life’s joys,
-or those who, handicapped by birth, training, and environment,
-had fallen by the way.</p>
-
-<p>As to what Toynbee Hall has done and now is doing, it
-is difficult for any one, and impossible for me, to speak.
-Perhaps I cannot be expected to see the wood for the trees.
-Those who have cared to come and see for themselves
-what is being done, to stay in the house and join in its work,
-know that Toynbee Hall, Whitechapel, is a place where
-twenty University men live in order to work for, to teach,
-to learn of the poor. Since 1884 the succession of residents
-has never failed. Men of varied opinions and many views,
-both political and religious, have lived harmoniously together,
-some staying as long as fifteen years, others remaining
-shorter periods. All have left behind them marks of
-their residence; sometimes in the policy of the local Boards,
-of which they have become members; or in relation to the
-Student Residences; or the Antiquarian, Natural History,
-or Travelling Clubs which individuals among them have
-founded; or by busying themselves with classes, debates,
-conferences, discussions. Their activities have been unceasing
-and manifold, but looking over many years and many
-men it seems to my inferior womanly mind that the best
-work has been done by those men who have cared most
-deeply for individuals among the poor. Out of such deep
-care has grown intimate knowledge of their lives and industrial
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">119</span>position, and from knowledge has come improvement
-in laws, conditions, or administration. It is such care that
-has awakened in the people the desire to seek what is best.
-It is the care of those, who, loving God, have taught others
-to know Him. It is the care of those who, pursuing knowledge
-and rejoicing in learning, have spread it among the
-ignorant more effectively than books, classes or lectures
-could have done. It is the care for the degraded which
-alone rouses them to care for themselves. It is the care for
-the sickly, the weak, the oppressed, the rich, the powerful,
-the happy, the teacher and taught, the employed and the
-employer, which enables introduction to be made and interpretation
-of each other to be offered and accepted. From
-this seed of deep individual care has grown a large crop of
-friendship, and many flowers of graceful acts.</p>
-
-<p>It is the duty of Toynbee Hall, situated as it is at the
-gate of East London, to play the part of a skilful host and
-introduce the East to the West; but all the guests must be
-intimate friends, or there will be social blunders. To quote
-some words out of a report, Toynbee Hall is “an association
-of persons, with different opinions and different tastes;
-its unity is that of variety; its methods are spiritual rather
-than material; it aims at permeation rather than conversion;
-and its trust is in friends linked to friends rather
-than in organization”<span class="ellipsis">...</span>.</p>
-
-<p>It was a crowded meeting of the Universities Settlements
-Association that was held in Balliol Hall in March, 1892,
-it being known that Dr. Jowett, who had recently been
-dangerously ill, would take the chair. He spoke falteringly
-(for he was still weakly), and once there came an awful
-pause that paled the hearers who loved him, in fear for his
-well-being. He told something of his own connexion with
-the movement; of how he had twice stayed with us in
-Whitechapel, and had seen men’s efforts to lift this dead
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">120</span>weight of ignorance and pain. He referred to Arnold
-Toynbee, one of the “purest-minded of men,” and one who
-“troubled himself greatly over the unequal position of
-mankind”. He told of the force of friendship which was
-to him sacred, and “some of which should be offered to
-the poor”. He dwelt on his own hopes for Toynbee Hall,
-and of its uses to Oxford, as well as to Whitechapel; and
-he spoke also of us and our work, but those words were
-conceived by his friendship for and his faith in us, and
-hardly represented the facts. They left out of sight what
-the Master of Balliol could only imperfectly know—the
-countless acts of kindness, the silent gifts of patient service,
-and the unobtrusive lives of many men; their reverence
-before weakness and poverty, their patience with misunderstanding,
-their faith in the power of the best, their tenderness
-to children and their boldness against vice. These are
-the foundations on which Toynbee Hall has been built, and
-on which it aims to raise the ideals of human life, and
-strengthen faith in God.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Henrietta O. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">121</span>
- <h3 title="TWENTY-ONE YEARS OF UNIVERSITY SETTLEMENTS." id="ch12">TWENTY-ONE YEARS OF UNIVERSITY SETTLEMENTS.<a href="#f121" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>June, 1905.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f121">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch12" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The University Review”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Twenty-five</span> years ago many social reformers were set on
-bringing about a co-operation between the Universities of
-Oxford and Cambridge and the industrial classes. Arnold
-Toynbee thought he could study at Oxford during term
-time and lecture in great cities during the vacation. Professor
-Stuart thought that University teaching might be extended
-among working people by means of centres locally
-established. There were others to whom it seemed that
-no way could be so effective as the way of residence, and
-they advocated a plan by which members of the University
-should during some years live their lives among the poor.</p>
-
-<p>Present social reformers have, however, other business
-on hand. They think that something practical is of first
-importance, some alteration in the land laws, which would
-make good houses more possible—some modification of the
-relation between labour and capital, which would spread
-the national wealth over a larger number of people. They
-see something which Parliament or the municipal bodies
-could do, which seems to be very good, and they are not
-disposed to spend time on democratizing the old Universities
-or on humanizing the working-man.</p>
-
-<p>The present generation of reformers claim to be practical,
-but one who belongs to the past generation and is not
-without sympathy with the present, may also claim that
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">122</span>much depends on the methods by which good objects are
-secured. There is truth in the saying that means are more
-important than ends. Many present evils are due to the
-means—the force, the flattery, the haste—by which good
-men of old time achieved their ends. “God forgive all
-good men” was the prayer of Charles Kingsley.</p>
-
-<p>Reformers may to-day pass laws which would exalt the
-poor and bring down the rich, but if in the passing of such
-laws bitterness, anger, and uncharitableness were increased,
-and if, as the result, the exalted poor proved incapable of
-using or of enjoying their power—another giant behaving
-like a giant—where would be the world’s gain? The important
-thing surely is not that the poor shall be exalted,
-but that rich and poor shall equally feel the joy of their
-being and, living together in peace and goodwill, make a
-society to be a blessing to all nations.</p>
-
-<p>Co-operation between the Universities and working men,
-between knowledge and industry, might—it seemed to the
-reformers of old days—make a force which would secure a
-reform not to be reformed, a repentance not to be repented
-of, a sort of progress whose means would justify its end.</p>
-
-<p>The Universities have the knowledge of human things.
-Their professors and teachers have, in some measure, the
-secret of living, they know that life consists not in
-possessions, and that society has other bonds than force or
-selfishness, and they offer in their homes the best example
-of simple and refined living. They have studied the art of
-expression, and can put into words the thoughts of many
-hearts. They look with the eye of science over the fields of
-history, they appreciate tradition at its proper value, and
-are familiar with the mistakes which, in old times, broke up
-great hopes. Their minds are trained to leap from point
-to point in thought. They have followed the struggles of
-humanity towards its ideals, they know something of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">123</span>what is in man, and something of what he can possibly
-achieve.</p>
-
-<p>If these national Universities, with their wealth of knowledge,
-felt at the same time the pressure of those problems
-which mean suffering to the workmen, they would be
-watch-towers from which watchmen would discern the signs
-of the times, those movements on the horizon now as small
-as a man’s hand but soon to cover the sky. If by sympathy
-they felt the unrest, which all over the world is
-giving cause for disquietude to those in authority, they
-would give a form to the wants, and show to those who cry,
-and those who listen, the meaning of the unrest. If they
-were in touch with the industrial classes, they would adapt
-their teaching to the needs and understandings of men,
-struggling to secure their position in a changing industrial
-system, and better acquainted with facts than with theories
-about facts. A democratized University would be constrained
-to give forth the principles which underlie social
-progress, to show the nation what is alterable and unalterable
-in the structure of society—what there is for pride
-or for shame in its past history, what is the expenditure
-which makes or destroys wealth—it would be driven to
-help to solve the mystery of the unemployed, why there
-should be so much unemployment when there must be so
-great a demand for employment if people are to be fitly
-clothed and fed and housed. It would, at any rate, guide the
-nation to remedies which would not be worse than the disease.</p>
-
-<p>“How,” it was once asked of an Oxford professor, “can
-the University be adapted to take its place in modern
-progress.” His answer was “By establishing in its neighbourhood
-a great industrial centre.” The presence, that
-is to say, of workmen would bring the Universities
-to face the realities of the day, raise their policy to something
-more important than that of compulsory Greek, and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">124</span>direct their teaching to other needs than those felt by the
-limited class, whose children become undergraduates or
-listeners to an “extension lecturer”. A committee of the
-University dons has been described as a meeting where
-each member is only a critic, where nothing simple or practical
-has a chance of adoption, and only a paradox gets
-attention. If labour were heard knocking at its doors, and
-demanding that the national knowledge, of which the
-Universities are the trustees, should be put at its service,
-the same committee would cease criticizing and begin to be
-practical. Knowledge without industry is often selfishness.</p>
-
-<p>If Oxford and Cambridge need what workmen can give,
-the workmen have no less need of the Universities. Workmen
-have the strength of character which comes of daily
-contact with necessity, the discipline of labour, sympathy
-with the sorrow and sufferings of neighbours with whose infirmities
-they themselves are touched. The working classes
-have on their side the force of sacrifice and the power of
-numbers. They have the future in their hands. If they
-had their share of the knowledge stored in the National
-Universities they would know better at what to aim, what
-to do, and how to do it. They, as it is, are often blind and
-unreasoning. Blind to the things which really satisfy human
-nature while they eagerly follow after their husks, unable to
-pursue a chain of thought while they readily act on some
-gaudy dogma, inclined to think food the chief good, selfishness
-the one motive of action, and force the only remedy.
-The speeches of candidates for workmen’s constituencies—their
-promises—their jokes—their appeals are the measure
-of the industrial mind. How would a Parliament of workmen
-deal with those elements which make so large a part
-of the nation’s strength—its traditions—its literature—its
-natural scenery—its art? What sort of education would it
-foster? Would it recognize that the imagination is the joy
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">125</span>of life and a commercial asset, that unity depends on variety,
-that respect and not only toleration is due to honest opponents?
-How would it understand the people of India or
-deal reverently with the intricate motives, the fears and hopes
-of other nations? How would workmen themselves fulfil their
-place in the future if well-fed, well-clothed, and well-housed,
-they had no other recreation than the spectacle of a football
-match? Industry without knowledge is often brutality.</p>
-
-<p>Workmen have the energy, the honesty, the fellow feeling,
-the habit of sacrifice which are probably the best part of the
-national inheritance, but as a class they have not knowledge
-of human things, the delicate sense which sees what is in
-man—the judgment which knows the value of evidence—the
-feeling which would guide them to distinguish idols
-from ideals and set them on making a Society in which
-every human being shall enjoy the fullness of his being.
-They have not insight nor far-sight and their frequent attitude
-is that of suspicion. If sometimes I am asked what
-I desire for East London I think of all the goodness, the
-struggles, the suffering I have seen—the sorrows of the poor
-and the many fruitless remedies—and I say “more education,”
-“higher education”. People cannot really be raised
-by gifts or food or houses. A healthy body may be used for
-low as for high objects. People must raise themselves—that
-which raises a man like that which defiles a man comes
-from within a man. People therefore must have the education
-which will reveal to them the powers within themselves
-and within other men, their capacities for thinking and feeling,
-for admiration, hope and love. They must be made
-something more than instruments of production, they must
-be made capable of enjoying the highest things. They need
-therefore something more than technical teaching, it is not
-enough for England to be the workshop of the world, it
-must export thoughts and hopes as well as machines. The
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">126</span>Tower of London would be a better defence for the nation
-if it were a centre of teaching, than as a barracks for soldiers.
-The working class movement which is so full of
-promise for the nation seems to me likely to fail unless it be
-inspired by the human knowledge which the Universities
-represent. Working-men without such knowledge will—to
-say nothing else—be always suspicious as to one another
-and as to the objects which they seek.</p>
-
-<p>The old Universities and industry must, if this analysis
-be near the truth, co-operate for social reform. There are
-many ways to bring them together. The University extension
-movement might be worked by the hands of the
-great labour organizations—legislation might adapt the
-constitution of the Universities to the coming days of labour
-ascendancy—workmen might be brought up to graduate in
-colleges, and they might, as an experiment, be allowed to
-use existing colleges during vacations.</p>
-
-<p>But the subject of this paper is the “way of Settlements”.
-Members of the Universities, it is claimed, may
-for a few years settle in industrial centres, and in natural
-intercourse come into contact with their neighbours. There
-is nothing like contact for giving or getting understanding.
-There is no lecture and no book so effective as life. Culture
-spreads by contact. University men who are known
-as neighbours, who are met in the streets, in the clubs, and
-on committees, who can be visited in their own rooms, amid
-their own books and pictures, commend what the University
-stands for as it cannot otherwise be commended. On the
-other hand workmen who are casually and frequently met,
-whose idle words become familiar, whose homes are known,
-reveal the workman mind as it is not revealed by clever
-essayists or by orators of their own class. The friendship
-of one man of knowledge and one man of industry may go
-but a small way to bring together the Universities and the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">127</span>working classes, but it is such friendship which prepares
-the way for the understanding which underlies co-operation.
-If misunderstanding is war, understanding is peace. The
-men who settle may either take rooms by themselves, or they
-may associate themselves in a Settlement. There is something
-to be said for each plan. The advantage of Settlement
-is that a body of University men living together keep up the
-distinctive characteristics of their training, they better resist
-the tendency to put on the universal drab, and they bring a
-variety into their neighbourhood. They are helped, too, by
-the companionship of their fellows, to take larger views of
-what is wanted, their enthusiasm for progress is kept alive and
-at the same time well pruned by friendly and severe criticism.</p>
-
-<p>But whether men live in lodgings or in Settlements, there
-is one necessary condition besides that of social interest if
-they are to be successful in uniting knowledge and industry
-in social reform. They must live their own life. There
-must be no affectation of asceticism, and no consciousness
-of superiority. They must show forth the taste, the mind
-and the faith that is in them. They have not come as
-“missioners,” they have come to settle, that is, to learn as
-much as to teach, to receive as much as to give.</p>
-
-<p>Settlements which have been started during the last
-twenty years have not always fulfilled this condition. Many
-have become centres of missionary effort. They have often
-been powerful for good, and their works done by active and
-devoted men or women have so disturbed the water, that
-many unknown sick folk have been healed. They, however,
-are primarily missions. A Settlement in the original idea
-was not a mission, but a means by which University men
-and workmen might by natural intercourse get to understand
-one another, and co-operate in social reform.</p>
-
-<p>There are many instances of such understanding and co-operation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">128</span>Twenty years ago primary education was much as it had
-been left by Mr. Lowe. Some University men living in a
-Settlement soon became conscious of the loss involved in
-the system, they talked with neighbours who by themselves
-were unconscious of the loss till inspired, and inspiring they
-formed an Education Reform League. There were committees,
-meetings, and public addresses. The league was
-a small affair, and seems to be little among the forces of the
-time. But every one of its proposals have been carried out.
-Some of its members in high official positions have wielded
-with effect the principles which were elaborated in the forge
-at which they and working men sweated together. Others
-of its members on local authorities or as citizens have never
-forgotten the inner meaning of education as they learnt it
-from their University friends.</p>
-
-<p>Another instance may be offered. The relief of the poor
-is a subject on which the employing and the employed
-classes naturally incline to take different views. They
-suspect one another’s remedies. The working men hate
-both the charity of the rich and the strict administration of
-the economist, while they themselves talk a somewhat impracticable
-socialism. University men who assist in such
-relief, are naturally suspected as members of the employing
-class. A few men, however, who as residents had become
-known in other relations, and were recognized as human,
-induced some workmen to take part in administering relief.
-Together they faced actual problems, together they made
-mistakes, together they felt sympathy with sorrow, and saw
-the break-down of their carefully designed action. The
-process went on for years, the personnel of the body of
-fellow-workers has changed, but there has been a gradual
-approach from the different points of view. The University
-men have more acutely realized some of the causes of distress,
-the need of preserving and holding up self-respect,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">129</span>the pressure of the industrial system, and the claim of
-sufferers from this system to some compensation. They
-have learnt through their hearts. The workmen, on the
-other hand, have realized the failure of mere relief to do
-permanent good, the importance of thought in every case,
-and the kindness of severity. The result of this co-operation
-may be traced in the fact that workmen, economists
-and socialists have been found advocating the same principle
-of relief, and now more lately in the establishment of Mr.
-Long’s committee which is carrying those principles into
-effect. Far be it from me to claim that this committee is
-the direct outcome of the association of University and
-working-men, or to assert that this committee has discovered
-the secret of poverty, but it is certain that this committee
-represents the approach of two different views of relief, and
-that among some of its active members are workmen and
-University men who as neighbours in frequent intercourse
-learnt to respect and trust one another.</p>
-
-<p>There is one other instance which is also of interest.
-Local Government is the corner-stone in the English Constitution.
-The people in their own neighbourhoods learn
-what self-government means, as their own Councils and
-Boards make them happy or unhappy. The government in
-industrial neighbourhoods is often bad, sometimes because
-the members are self-seekers, more often because they are
-ignorant or vainglorious. How can it be otherwise? If
-the industrial neighbourhood is self-contained, as for example
-in East London, it has few inhabitants with the
-necessary leisure for study or for frequent attendance at the
-meetings. If it is part of a larger government—as in county
-boroughs—it is unknown to the majority of the community.
-The consequence is that the neighbourhoods wanting most
-light and most water and most space have the least, and
-that bodies whose chief concern should be health and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">130</span>education waste their time and their rates arranging their
-contracts so as to support local labour. In a word, industrial
-neighbourhoods suffer for want of a voice to express their
-needs and for the want of the knowledge which can distinguish
-man from man, recognize the relative importance
-of spending and saving, and encourage mutual self-respect.</p>
-
-<p>University men may and in some measure have met this
-want. They, by residence, have learnt the wants, and their
-voice has helped to bring about the more equal treatment
-which industrial districts are now receiving. They have often,
-for instance, been instrumental in getting the Libraries’ Act
-adopted. They have as members of local bodies learnt
-much and taught something. They have always won the
-respect of their fellow-members, and if not always successful
-in preventing the neighbourly kindnesses which seem to
-them to be “jobs,” or in forwarding expenditure which
-seems to them the best economy, they have kept up the
-lights along the course of public honour.</p>
-
-<p>There are other examples in which results cannot be so
-easily traced. There have been friendships formed at clubs
-which have for ever changed the respective points of view
-affecting both taste and opinion. There have been new ideas
-born in discussion classes, which, beginning in special talk
-about some one subject, have ended in fireside confidences
-over the deepest subjects of life and faith. There have been
-common pleasures, travels, and visits in which every one has
-felt new interest, seeing things with other eyes, and learning
-that the best and most lasting amusement comes from mind
-activity. The University man who has a friend among the
-poor henceforth sees the whole class differently through that
-medium, and so it is with the workman who has a University
-man as his friend. The glory of a Settlement is not that it
-has spread opinions, or increased temperance, or relieved
-distress, but that it has promoted peace and goodwill.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">131</span>But enough has been said to illustrate the point that by
-the way of residence the forces of knowledge and industry
-are brought into co-operation. The way, if long, is practicable.
-More men might live among the poor. The effort to
-do so involves the sacrifice of much which habits of luxury have
-marked as necessary. It involves the daring to be peculiar,
-which is often especially hard for the man who in the public
-school has learnt to support himself on school tradition.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing has been said as to the effect of Settlements on
-Oxford and Cambridge. There does not seem to be much
-change in the attitude of these Universities to social reform,
-and they are not apparently moved by any impulse
-which comes from workmen. But judgment in this matter
-must be cautious as changes may be going on unnoticed.
-It is certain, at any rate, that the individual members who
-have lived among the poor are changed. If a greater
-number would live in the same way that experience could
-not fail ultimately to influence University life.</p>
-
-<p>Social reform will soon be the all-absorbing interest as
-the modern realization of the claims of human nature and
-the growing power of the people, will not tolerate many of
-the present conditions of industrial life. The well-being of
-the future depends on the methods by which reform proceeds.
-Reforms in the past have often been disappointing. They
-have been made in the name of the rights of one class, and
-have ended in the assertion of rights over another class. They
-have been made by force and produced reaction. They have
-been done for the people not by the people, and have never
-been assimilated. The method by which knowledge and industry
-may co-operate has yet to be tried, and one way in
-which to bring about such co-operation is the way of University
-Settlements.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Section 4-->
-<div class="section">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">132</span>
- <h2 id="sect4">SECTION <abbr title="4">IV.</abbr><br /> <br />POVERTY AND LABOUR.</h2>
-</div>
-<div class="synopsis">
-
-<p class="firstpara"><a href="#ch13" title="Go to Chapter 13">The Ethics of the Poor
-Law</a>—<a href="#ch14" title="Go to Chapter 14">Poverty, its Cause and
-Cure</a>—<a href="#ch15" title="Go to Chapter 15">Babies of the
-State</a>—<a href="#ch16" title="Go to Chapter 16">Poor Law
-Reform</a>—<a href="#ch17" title="Go to Chapter 17">The
-Unemployed</a>—<a href="#ch18" title="Go to Chapter 18">The Poor Law
-Report</a>—<a href="#ch19" title="Go to Chapter 19">Widows under the
-Poor Law</a>—<a href="#ch20" title="Go to Chapter 20">The Press and Charitable
-Funds</a>—<a href="#ch21" title="Go to Chapter 21">What is Possible in Poor Law
-Reform</a>—<a href="#ch22" title="Go to Chapter 22">Charity Up To
-Date</a>—<a href="#ch23" title="Go to Chapter 23">What Labour
-wants</a>—<a href="#ch24" title="Go to Chapter 24">Our Present Discontents.</a></p>
-
-</div>
-<h3 title="THE ETHICS OF THE POOR LAW." id="ch13">THE ETHICS OF THE POOR LAW.<a href="#f131" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>October, 1907.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f131">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch13" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-A Paper read at the Church Congress at Yarmouth.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">For</span> the purpose of this paper, I propose to divide the
-history of the Poor Laws into five divisions, and briefly to
-trace for 500 years the growth of thought which inspired
-their inception and directed their administration.</p>
-
-<p>During the first period, from the reign of Richard II
-(1388) to that of Henry VII, such laws as were framed were
-mainly directed against vagrancy. There was no pretence
-that these enactments, which controlled the actions of the
-“valiant rogue” or “sturdy vagabond,” were instituted for
-the good of the individual. It was for the protection of
-the community that they were framed, the recognition that
-a man’s poverty was the result of his own fault being the
-root of many statutes.</p>
-
-<p>Against begging severe penalties were enforced: men
-were forbidden to leave their own dwelling-places, and the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">133</span>workless wanderer met with no pity and scant justice.
-Later, as begging seemed but little nearer to extinction, the
-justices were instructed to determine definite areas in which
-beggars could solicit alms.</p>
-
-<p>Thus was inaugurated the first effort to make each district
-responsible for its own poor. Persons who were caught
-begging outside such areas were dealt with with a severity
-which now seems almost incredible. For the first offence
-they were beaten, for the second they had their ears mutilated
-(so that all men could see they had thus transgressed),
-and for the third they were condemned to suffer “the execution
-of death as an enemy of the commonwealth”. Later,
-the further sting was added, “without benefit of clergy”.</p>
-
-<div class="p133">
-
-<p><em>Put briefly, these laws said, “Poverty demands punishment”.</em></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>But men could not deny that all the dependent poor were not so by
-choice. In the reign of Henry VIII (1536), discrimination was made
-between “the poor impotent sick and diseased persons not being able
-to work, who may be provided for, holpen, and relieved,” and “such
-as be lusty and able to get their living with their own hands”. For
-the assistance of the former, the clergy were bidden to exhort their
-people to give offerings into their hands so that the needy should be
-succoured. This began what I may call the second period, when pity
-scattered its ideas among the leaves of the statute book. In the reign
-of Edward VI (the child King), the first recognition of the duty of
-rescuing children appears to be the subject of an Act whereby persons
-were “authorized to take neglected children between five and fourteen
-away from their parents to be brought up in honest labour”. This was
-followed by the declaration that the neglect of parental duties was
-illegal, and punishments were specified for those who “do run away from
-their parishes and leave their families”.</p>
-
-<div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">134</span></div>
-<div class="p133">
-
-<p><em>Put briefly, these laws said, “Poverty demands pity”.</em></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>During the fifty years (1558-1603) when Elizabeth held
-the sceptre, important changes took place. Her realm, we
-read, was “exceedingly pestered” by “disorderly persons,
-incorrigible rogues, and sturdy beggars,” while the lamentable
-condition of “the poor, the lame, the sick, the impotent
-and decayed persons” was augmented by the suppression
-of the monasteries and other religious organizations which
-had hitherto done much to assuage their sufferings. The
-noble band of men, whom that great woman attracted and
-stimulated, faced the subject as statesmen, and the epoch-making
-enactment of 1601 still bears fruit in our midst.
-Broadly, the position of the supporters in relation to the
-supported was considered, and for the advantage of both
-it was enacted that “a stock of wool, hemp, flax, iron, and
-other stuff” should be bought “to be wrought by those of
-the needy able to labour,” so that they might maintain
-themselves. “Houses of correction” were established, to
-which any person refusing to labour was to be committed,
-where they were to be clothed “in convenient apparel meet
-for such a body to weare,” and “to be kept straitly in diet
-and punished from time to time”. In this Act the duty of
-supporting persons in “unfeigned misery” was made compulsory,
-power being given to tax the “froward persons”
-who “resisted the gentle persuasions of the justices” and
-“withheld of their largesse”.</p>
-
-<p>Thus the system of poor rating was established, and the
-maintenance of the needy drifted out of the hands of the
-Church into the hands of the State.</p>
-
-<p>Neither of the motives which had ruled action in the
-previous centuries was disclaimed. That the idle poor deserve
-punishment, and that the suffering poor demand pity,
-were still held to be true, but to these principles was added
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">135</span>the new one that the State was responsible for both. In
-order to ease the burdens of the charitable, the idle must
-be compelled to support themselves, and in the almost
-incredible event of any one who, having this world’s goods,
-yet refused to be charitable, provision was made to compel
-him to contribute, so as to hinder injustice being done to
-the man who gave willingly.</p>
-
-<div class="p133">
-
-<p><em>Put briefly, these laws said, “Poverty demands scientific
-treatment”.</em></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>During the next two centuries great strides were made
-in the directions indicated by each of these three principles.
-The right to punish persons who would not work “for the
-ordinary wages” was extended from that legalized in Elizabeth’s
-time of being “openly whipped till his body was
-bloody,” to the drastic statute of the reign of Charles II,
-when it became lawful to transport the beggars and rogues
-“to any of the English plantations beyond the seas,” while
-the effort to create the shame of pauperism was made by
-the legislators of William III, who commanded that every
-recipient of public charity should wear “a large ‘P’ on the
-shoulder of the right sleeve of his habilement”. Pity was
-shown to the old, for whom refuges were provided and work
-such as they could perform arranged; the lame were apprenticed;
-the lives of the illegitimate protected; the blind
-relieved; the children whose parents could not or would
-not keep them were set to work or supported; lunatics were
-protected; and infectious diseases recognized.</p>
-
-<p>The whole gamut of the woes of civilization as they
-gradually came into being were brought into relation with
-the State, whose sphere of duty to relieve suffering or assuage
-the consequences of sin was ever enlarging, until, in
-the reign of George III, we find it including penitentiaries,
-and the apprenticing of lads to the King’s ships. The
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">136</span>organization to meet these needs grew apace; guardians
-were appointed, unions were formed, workhouses were built
-(the first erected at Bristol in 1697), a system of inspection
-was instituted, relieving officers were established, areas
-definitely laid down, and the function of officials prescribed.
-But abuses crept in, and in 1691 we find that an Act recites
-“that overseers, upon frivolous pretences, but chiefly
-for their own private ends, do give relief to what persons
-and number they think fit”. And yet another Act was
-passed to enable parish authorities to be punished for paying
-the poor their pittances in bad coin.</p>
-
-<p>Still, it is probable that out of the two principles (roughly
-consistent with the unwritten laws of God in nature) there
-would have been evolved some practicable method of State-administered
-relief, had it not happened that the high cost
-of provisions (following the war with France) and the consequent
-sufferings of the “industrious indigent” so moved
-the magistrates at the end of the eighteenth century, that
-in 1795 they decided to give out-relief to every labourer in
-proportion to the number of his family and the price of
-wheat, without reference to the fact of his being in or out
-of employment. The effect was disastrous. The rich
-found no call to give their charity, and the poor no call to
-work. The rates ate up the value of the land, and farms
-were left without tenants, because it became impossible to
-pay the rates, which often reached £1 per acre. But an
-even worse effect was the demoralization of society. The
-stimulus towards personal effort and self-control was removed,
-for the idle and incompetent received from the rates
-what their labour or character failed to provide for them;
-and wages were reduced because employers realized that
-their workmen would get relief. Drink and dissipation, deception
-and dependence, cheating and chicanery, became
-common.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">137</span>Society threatened in those years to break up. It is a
-curious comment that a humane poor law stands out as
-chief amid the dissolving forces, so blind is pity if it be
-not instructed.</p>
-
-<p>This condition of things pressed for reform, and in 1832
-a Poor Law Commission was appointed, which has left an
-indelible mark on English life.</p>
-
-<p>The Commissioners, like able physicians, diagnosed the
-disease, and dealt directly with its cause, prescribing for its
-cure remedies which may be classed under two heads:—</p>
-
-<div class="p133">
-
-<p><em><abbr title="1">I.</abbr>—The Principle of National Uniformity.</em></p>
-
-<p><em><abbr title="2">II.</abbr>—The Principle of Less Eligibility.</em></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The principle of national uniformity—that is, identity of
-treatment of each class of destitute persons from one end
-of the kingdom to the other—had for its purpose the reduction
-of the “perpetual shifting” from parish to parish,
-and the prevention of discontent in persons who saw the
-paupers of a neighbouring parish treated more leniently
-than themselves.</p>
-
-<p>The principle of less eligibility, or, to put it in the words
-of the report, that “the situation of the individual relieved”
-shall not “be made really or apparently so eligible as the
-situation of the independent labourer of the lowest class,”
-had for its purpose the restoration of the dignity of work
-and the steadying of the labour market.</p>
-
-<div class="p133">
-
-<p><em>Put briefly, the Commission said, “Poverty demands
-principles.”</em></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The workhouse system, with all its ramifications, has
-grown out of these two principles, and in its development
-it has, if not wholly dropped the principles, at least considerably
-confused them. National uniformity no longer
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">138</span>exists, even as an ideal. Less eligibility is forgotten, as
-boards vie with each other to produce more costly and up-to-date
-institutions. Out-relief is still given, after investigation
-and to certain classes of applicants and under particular
-conditions; but the creation of the spirit of institutionalism
-is the main result of the 1834 commission.</p>
-
-<p>And now, to-day, what do we see? An army of 602,094
-paupers, some 221,531 of whom are hidden away in monster
-institutions. Let us face the facts, calmly realize that one
-person in every thirty-eight is dependent on the rates,
-either wholly or partially.</p>
-
-<p>Where are the old, the honoured old? In their homes,
-teaching their grand-children reverence for age and sympathy
-for weakness? No; sitting in rows in the workhouse
-wards waiting for death, their enfeebled lives empty
-of interest, their uncultivated minds feeding on discontent,
-often made querulous or spiteful by close contact.</p>
-
-<p>Where are the able-bodied who are too ignorant and undisciplined
-to earn their own livelihood? Are they under
-training, stimulated to labour by the gift of hope? No; for
-the most part they are in the workhouses. Have you
-ever seen them there? Resentment on their faces, slackness
-in their limbs, individuality merged in routine, kept there,
-often fed and housed in undue comfort, but sinking, ever
-sinking, below the height of their calling as human beings
-and Christ’s brothers and sisters?</p>
-
-<p>Where are the 69,080 children who at the date of the
-last return were wholly dependent on the State? In somebody’s
-home? Sharing somebody’s hearth? Finding
-their way into somebody’s heart? No; 8,659 are boarded
-out, but 21,366 are still in workhouses and workhouse infirmaries,
-and 20,229 in large institutions; disciplined,
-taught, drilled, controlled, it is true, often with kindliness
-and conscientious supervision, but for the most part lacking
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">139</span>in the music of their lives that one note of love, which alone
-can turn all from discord to harmony.</p>
-
-<p>Where are the sick, the imbecile, the decayed, worn out
-with their lifelong fight with poverty? Are they adequately
-classified? Are the consumptive in open-air sanitoria? the
-imbeciles tenderly protected, while encouraged to use their
-feeble brains? No; they are in infirmaries, often admirably
-conducted, but divorced from normal life and its refreshment
-or stimulus, deprived of freedom, put out of sight
-in vast mansions; all sorts of distress often so intermingled
-as to aggravate disorders and embitter the sufferer’s dreary
-days.</p>
-
-<p>And yet we all know that the rates are very heavy, and
-that the struggling poor are cruelly handicapped to keep the
-idle, the old, the young, the sick. We have all read of the
-culpable extravagance and dishonest waste which goes on
-behind the high walls of the palatial institutions governed
-by the “guardians,” who should be the guardians of the
-public purse as well as of the helpless poor.</p>
-
-<p>The village built for the children of the Bermondsey
-Union has cost over £320 per bed, and last year each child
-kept there cost £1 0s. 6½d. per week. It is said that the
-porcelain baths provided for the children of the Mile End
-Union were priced at from £18 to £20 each, while it is
-stated that the cost of erecting and equipping the pauper
-village for the children chargeable to the Liverpool Select
-Vestry worked out at £330 per inmate. For England and
-Wales the pauper bill was in 1905 £13,851,981, or
-£15 13s. 3¼d. for each pauper.</p>
-
-<p>And are we satisfied with what we are purchasing with
-the money? Is even the Socialist content with the giant
-workhouses—“’Omes of rest for them as is tired of working,”
-as a tourist tram-conductor described the Brighton
-Workhouse? With the children’s pauper villages composed
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">140</span>of electrically-lit villa residences? With the huge barrack
-schools, oppressively clean and orderly, where many apparatus
-for domestic labour-saving are considered suitable
-for training girls to be workmen’s wives?</p>
-
-<p>Are we, as Londoners, proud to reply to the intelligent
-foreigner that the magnificent building occupying one of the
-best and most expensive sites on a main thoroughfare of
-West London is the “rubbish heap of humanity,” where,
-cast among enervating surroundings, a full stop is put
-to any effortful progress for character building?</p>
-
-<p>No; and I know I shall find an echo of that emphatic
-“No” in the heart of each of my hearers. We, as Christians,
-are <em>not</em> satisfied with the treatment of our dependent poor.
-The spirit of repression which was paramount before Elizabeth’s
-time is with us still; the spirit of humanitarianism
-which arose in her great reign is with us still; but both have
-taken the form of institutionalism, and with that no one who
-believes in the value of the individual can be rightfully
-satisfied; for while the body is pampered no demands are
-made on the soul, no calls for achievement, for conquest of
-bad tendencies or idle habits.</p>
-
-<p>Broadly speaking, the repression policy failed because it
-was not humanitarian; the humanitarian policy failed because
-it was not scientific; the scientific policy is failing
-because by institutionalism individualism is crushed out.</p>
-
-<p>What is it we want? There is discontent among the
-thoughtful who observe; discontent among the workers
-who pay; discontent among the paupers who receive. But
-discontent is barren unless married to ideals, and they must
-be founded on principles. May I suggest one?</p>
-
-<p>“All State relief should be educational, aiming by the
-strengthening of character to make the recipient independent.”</p>
-
-<p>If the applicant be idle, the State must develop in him an
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">141</span>interest in work. It must, therefore, detain him perhaps
-for years in a workhouse or on a farm; but not to do dull
-and dreary labour at stone-breaking or oakum-picking. It
-must give him work which satisfies the human longing to
-make something, and opens to him the door of hope. If
-the applicant be ignorant and workless, it must teach him,
-establishing something like day industrial schools, in which
-the man would learn and earn, but in which he would feel
-no desire to stay when other work offers.</p>
-
-<p>We must revive the spirit of the principle of 1834, and
-see that the position of the pauper be not as eligible as that
-of the independent workman; there must always be a
-centrifugal force from the centre of relief, driving the relieved
-to seek work; but this force need not be terror or
-repression. A system of training, a process of development,
-would be equally effective in deterring imposition. Scientific
-treatment of the poor need not, therefore, be inconsistent
-with that which is most humane.</p>
-
-<p>The same principle as to the primary importance of developing
-character must be kept in view, though with somewhat
-different application, when the people to be helped
-are the sick, the old, and the children.</p>
-
-<p>Thus the sick, by convalescent homes, by the best nursing
-and the most skilled attention, should be as quickly as
-possible made fit for work.<a id="r132" /><a href="#f132" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 2"><sup>[2]</sup></a></p>
-<div class="footnote" id="f132">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r132" title="Return to text">2</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>How does this harmonize
-with the practice of turning the lying-in mother out after fourteen days?</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The children should be absorbed into the normal life of
-the population, and helped to forget they are paupers.<a id="r133" /><a href="#f133" class="superscr" title='Go to
-Footnote 3'><sup>[3]</sup></a></p>
-<div class="footnote" id="f133">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r133" title="Return to text">3</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-How does this harmonize with the practice of keeping them in barrack
-schools, in pauper villages?</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The aged should be left in their own homes, supported
-by some system of State pensions, unconsciously teaching
-lessons of patience to those who tend them, and giving of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">142</span>their painfully obtained experience lessons of hope or
-warning.<a id="r134" /><a href="#f134" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 4"><sup>[4]</sup></a></p>
-<div class="footnote" id="f134">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r134" title="Return to text">4</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-How does this harmonize with the fact that there are thousands of people
-over sixty years of age in our State institutions? Has it ever occurred to the
-statistical inquirers to ascertain the death-rate of babies in relation to the
-absence of their grand-parents?</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The revelation to this age is the law of development, and
-it can be seen in the laws which govern Society as well as
-those which govern Nature. Slowly has been evolved the
-knowledge of the duty of the State to its members. Repression
-of evil, pity for suffering, systematizing of relief;
-each has given place to the other, and all have left the
-Christian conscience ill at ease. Development of character
-is before us, and it is for the Church to “see visions” and to
-open the eyes of the blind to its ideals. What shall they be?
-As teachers of the reality of the spiritual life I would ask
-you, as clergy, first, to serve on poor-law boards, and,
-secondly, to consider each individual as an individual capable
-of development; each drunken man, each lawless
-woman, each feeble-minded creature, each unruly child, each
-plastic baby, each old crone, each desecrated body: let us
-place each side by side with Christ and their own possibilities,
-and then vote and work to give each an upward
-push, remembering that to allow freedom for choice and to
-withhold aid are often duties, for on all individual souls is
-laid the command to “work out their <em>own</em> salvation in fear
-and trembling”.</p>
-
-<div class="p133">
-
-<p><em>Put briefly, Christians must say, “Poverty demands prayer”.</em></p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Henrietta O. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">143</span>
- <h3 title="POVERTY, ITS CAUSE AND ITS CURE." id="ch14">POVERTY, ITS CAUSE AND ITS CURE.<a href="#f141" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f141">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch14" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-A Paper read at the Summer School for the Study of Social Questions
-held at Hayfield, June 22nd to 29th, 1907.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Poverty</span> is a relative term. The citizen whose cottage
-home, with its bright housewife and happy children, is as
-light in our land, is poor in comparison with the occupant
-of some stately mansion. But his poverty is not an evil to
-be cured. It is a sign that life does not depend on possessions,
-and the existence of poor men alongside of rich men,
-each of whom lives a full human life in different circumstances,
-make up the society of the earthly paradise. The poverty
-which has to be cured is the poverty which degrades human
-nature, and makes impossible for the ordinary man his enjoyment
-of the powers and the tastes with which he was endowed
-at his birth. This is the poverty familiar in our
-streets, more familiar, we are told, than in the streets of
-any foreign town. This is the poverty by which men and
-women and children are kept from nourishment and sent
-out to work weak in body and open to every temptation to
-drink. This is the poverty which makes men slaves to
-work and uninterested in the magnificent drama of nature
-or life. This is the poverty which lets thousands of our
-people sink into pauperism.</p>
-
-<p>What is the cause and the cure of this poverty?</p>
-
-<p>The cause may be said to be the sin or the selfishness of
-rich and poor, and its cure to be the raising of all men to
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">144</span>the level of Christ. The world might be as pleasant and as
-fruitful as Eden, but so long as some men are idle and
-some men are greedy, poverty and other evils are sure to
-invade. Man is always stronger than his environment.
-He may be a prisoner in the midst of pleasures, and he
-may prove that walls cannot a prison make. Character
-may thus be truly said to be the one necessary equipment
-for climbing the hill of life, and every remedy which is
-suggested for those who stumble and fall must be judged
-by its effect on character. The dangers of the relief which
-weakens self-reliance have been recognized, the kindness
-which removes every hindrance from the way has been
-seen to relax effort; but even so there is no justification
-for law and custom to intrude obstacles to make the way
-harder or to bind on life’s wayfarer extra burdens.</p>
-
-<p>Our subject thus presents two questions: 1. How is
-character to be strengthened? 2. How are the obstacles
-imposed by law and custom to be removed?</p>
-
-<p>1. Character largely depends on health and education.
-Children born of overworked parents; fed on food which
-does not nourish; brought up in close air and physicked
-over-much cannot have the physical strength which is the
-basis of courage. The importance of health is recognized,
-and every year more is done to spread knowledge and
-enforce sanitary law. But the neglect of past generations
-has to be made up, and few of us yet realize what is necessary.
-The rate of infant mortality is a safe index of
-unhealthy conditions, and until that is lowered we may be
-sure of a drift towards poverty.</p>
-
-<p>There are two directions in which energy should push
-effort: (<i>a</i>) More space should be secured about houses
-so that in the fullest sense every inhabited house might
-be a “living” house, with a sufficiency of air and space
-and water to enable every inmate to feel in himself the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">145</span>spring of being. (<i>b</i>) The Medical Officer of Health
-should be responsible for the health of every one in his
-district. He should be at the head of the Poor Law
-Medical Officers, of the Dispensary, of the Hospitals, and
-of the Infirmary. He should be able not only to report
-on unhealthy areas but to order for every sick person
-the treatment which is necessary. Medical relief and
-direction should be a right, not a favour grudgingly given
-through Relieving Officers. He should be able to prevent
-mothers working under conditions prejudicial to the health
-of their children. He should be the authorized recognized
-centre of information and direct the spread of knowledge.
-Disraeli, years ago, set up as a Reform cry, <span lang="la" xml:lang="la"><i>Sanitas
-sanitatum, omnia sanitas</i></span>. Much money has been spent
-in the name of health, and hospitals have been doubled
-in efficiency, but because of physical weakness recruits are
-unfit for the army, and family after family drop into poverty.
-The need is some authority to bring the many efforts into
-order, and that authority should be, I submit, a Medical Officer
-responsible for the health of every person in his district.</p>
-
-<p>But when children are strong in body they do not necessarily
-become strong characters. They must be educated.
-Perhaps it might be said that it would be a fair division of
-labour if, while the school developed children’s minds, the
-home developed their characters. But the fact must be
-faced that either through neglect or greed the home has
-largely failed in its part. The schools of the richer classes
-recognize this fact and set themselves to develop character.
-They produce, as a rule, self-reliant men and women, wanting,
-perhaps, in sympathy and moral thoughtfulness, careless,
-perhaps, of others’ poverty, not always intelligent, but
-strong in qualities which keep them from poverty. The
-schools of the industrial classes are models of order, the
-teachers teach admirably and work hard, the children satisfy
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">146</span>examiners and inspectors, their handwriting is good, their
-pronunciation—in school—is careful, they can answer questions
-on hygiene, on thrift, on history, on chemistry, and a
-half a dozen other subjects. But they have not resourcefulness,
-they are without interests which occupy their minds,
-they shun adventure and seek safe places, they have not the
-character which enjoys a struggle and resists the inroads of
-poverty, they have little hold on ideals which force them to
-sacrifice, they soon become untidy, they are an easy prey to
-excitement, and depend on others rather than on themselves.
-The problem how to educate character is full of difficulties.
-Happily there are workmen’s homes where, by the example
-of the parents and by the order of the household, children
-enter the world well equipped, and become leaders in industry
-and politics, but how in the twenty-seven hours of
-school time each week to educate mind <em>and</em> character is a
-problem not to be solved in a few words.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps the first thing to be done is to extend the hours
-of school time; children might come to the school buildings
-on Saturdays, and daily between five and seven, to play
-ordered games, and learn to take a beating without crying;
-boys and girls might be compelled to attend continuation
-schools up to the age of eighteen, and experience the joy
-of new interests; the age of leaving might be raised; the
-classes in the day schools might be smaller; the subjects
-taught might be fewer; the teachers might be left more
-responsible; and the recreation of the children might be
-more considered. Persons, not subjects, make character.
-The teachers in our elementary schools must, therefore, be
-more in number, have more time to know their pupils, and
-feel more responsible for each individual.</p>
-
-<p>Religion is, of course, the great character former, but our
-unhappy divisions put the subject outside friendly discussion.
-All that can be said is that the religious teacher who
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">147</span>recognizes in all his ways that he is “under Authority” unconsciously
-moulds character, and all we can wish is that he
-may have more time and a smaller class. We, who set
-ourselves to root out poverty, will do well to look above
-the cries and claims of religious denominations, while we
-consider how our national schools may help to form the
-character, without which neither health nor wealth, nor even
-denominational equality, will avail much.</p>
-
-<p>2. It is time, however, to consider the second question.
-Character may overcome every obstacle, and our memories
-tell of men like Adam Bede or Abraham Lincoln or some
-of the present labour members, who have triumphed in the
-hardest circumstances. Circumstances must always be hard.
-God has so ordered the world; but there is no justification
-for law and custom to make them harder. Many men
-might have strength to get over what may be called natural
-difficulties, but fail upon those which have been artificially
-made.</p>
-
-<p>Our second question, therefore, in considering the cure
-of poverty is: How are the obstacles imposed by law and
-custom to be removed? I take as an example the laws
-which govern the use of land. The land laws were made
-by our forefathers, because in those days such laws seemed
-the best to force from the land its greatest use to the
-community. These laws made one man absolute owner, so
-that by his energy the land might become most productive.
-But times have changed, and now these laws, instead of
-making wealth, seem to help in making poverty. The
-country labourer may have strong arms; he may have some
-ambition to use his arms and his knowledge to make a
-home in which to enjoy his old age; but he sees land all
-around him which is serving the pleasures of the few, and
-not the needs of the many; he is shut out from applying
-his whole energy to its development, for he cannot hope to
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">148</span>get secure tenure of a small plot. He leaves the country
-and goes to the town, where his strong arms are welcomed.
-But here, again, because the land is in the absolute control
-of its owner, house is crowded against house, so that
-health and enjoyment become almost impossible; and
-here, also, because so large a portion of profit must go to
-the owner who has done no share of his work, his wage
-must be reduced. He gives in, and his wife lets dirt and
-untidiness master his home, and he at last comes into
-poverty. Law, with good intention, created the obstacle
-which he could not surmount. Law could remove the
-obstacle. Law for the common good could interfere with
-that absolute ownership which for the common good it in
-the old days created. Country men might have the possibility
-of holding land, with security of tenure, which they
-could cultivate for their own and their children’s enjoyment.
-Town municipalities might be given the right to
-take possession of the land in their environment, on which
-houses could be built with space for air and for gardens.</p>
-
-<p>The subject is a large one, but the point I would make
-is that poverty is increased by the obstacles which our
-land laws have put in the man’s way. The landlord prevents
-the application of energy to the soil, and so taxes
-industry that a large share of others’ earnings automatically
-reach his pocket. The change of law may involve great
-cost to individuals, or to the State. But patriotism compels
-sacrifice, and a people which willingly gives its hundreds
-of millions to be for ever sunk in a war, may even
-more willingly surrender rights and pay taxes, so that its
-fellow-citizens may develop the common-wealth, and escape
-poverty.</p>
-
-<p>Custom is perhaps as powerful as law in putting
-obstacles in the way of life’s wayfarers. It is by custom
-that the poor are treated as belonging to a lower, and the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">149</span>rich to a higher class; that employers expect servility as
-well as work for the wages they pay; that property is
-more highly regarded than a man’s life; that competition
-is held in a sort of way sacred. It is custom which exalts
-inequality, and makes every one desirous of securing others’
-service, and to be called Master. Many a man is, I believe,
-hindered in the race because he meets with treatment
-which marks him out as an inferior. He is discouraged
-by discourtesy, or he is tempted to cringe by assertions of
-inferiority. Charity to-day is often an insult to manhood.
-Many of our customs, which survive from feudalism, prevent
-the growth of a sense of self-respect and of human dignity.
-Men breathe air which relaxes their vigour, they complain
-of neglect, they seek favour, they follow after rewards, they
-give up, and thus sink into poverty.</p>
-
-<p>It may not seem a great matter, but among the cures
-for poverty I may put greater courtesy; a wider recognition
-of the equality in human nature; a more set determination
-to regard all men as brothers. It is not only gifts
-which demoralize; it is the attitude of those who think
-that gifts are expected of them, and of those who expect
-gifts. Gifts are only safe between those who recognize
-one another as equals.</p>
-
-<p>The subject is so vast that one paper can hardly scratch
-the surface, but I hope I have suggested some lines of
-thought. In conclusion, I would repeat that for the cure of
-poverty, nothing avails but personal influence. He does best
-who turns one sinner to righteousness, that is, who helps
-to make one poor man more earnest of purpose, and one
-rich man more thoughtfully unselfish. But circumstances
-also are important, and he does second best who helps to
-alter the laws and customs which put stumbleblocks in the
-ways of the simple.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">150</span>
- <h3 title="THE BABIES OF THE STATE." id="ch15">THE BABIES OF THE STATE.<a href="#f151" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>July, 1909.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f151">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch15" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Cornhill Magazine”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Without</span> organization and without combination a widespread
-and effective strike has been slowly taking place—the
-strike of the middle and upper-middle class women
-against motherhood.</p>
-
-<p>Month by month short paragraphs can be seen in the
-newspapers chronicling in stern figures the stern facts of
-the decrease of the birth rate. At the same time the
-marriage rate increases, and the physical facts of human
-nature do not change. The conclusion is, therefore, inevitable
-that the wives have struck against what used to be
-considered the necessary corollary of wifehood—motherhood.</p>
-
-<p>The “Cornhill Magazine” is not the place to discuss either
-the physics or the ethics of this subject, but it is the place
-to suggest thoughts on the national and patriotic aspects
-of this regrettable fact.</p>
-
-<p>The nation demands that its population should be kept
-up to the standard of its requirements; the classes which,
-for want of a better term, might be called “educated” are
-refusing adequately to meet the need; the classes whose
-want of knowledge forbids them to strike, or whose lack
-of imagination prevents their realizing the pains, responsibilities,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">151</span>and penalties of family duties, still obey brute
-nature and fling their unwanted children on to the earth.
-“Horrible!” we either think or say, and inclination bids
-us turn from the subject and think of something pleasanter.
-But two considerations bring us sharply back to the point:
-first, that the nation, and all that it stands for, needs the
-young lives; and, secondly, that the babies, with their
-tiny clinging fingers, their soft, velvety skins, their cooey
-sounds and bewitching gestures, are guiltless of the mixed
-and often unholy motives of their creation. They are on
-this wonderful world without choice, bundles of potentialities
-awaiting adult human action to be developed or
-stunted.</p>
-
-<p>How does the nation which wants the children treat
-them? The annals of the police courts, the experience of
-the attendance officers of the London County Council, the
-reports of the National Society for Prevention of Cruelty to
-Children, the stories of the vast young army in truant or
-industrial schools, the tales of the Waifs and Strays
-Society and Dr. Barnardo’s organization are hideously
-eloquent of the cruelty, the neglect, and the criminality of
-thousands of parents. For their action the State can hardly
-be held directly responsible (a price has to be paid for
-liberty), but for the care of the children whose misfortunes
-have brought them to be supported by the State the nation
-is wholly responsible. Their weal or woe is the business
-of every man or woman who reads these pages. To ascertain
-the facts concerning their lives every tax-payer has
-dipped into his pocket to meet the many thousands of
-pounds which the Royal Commission on the Poor Laws
-has cost, and yet the complication of the problem and the
-weight of the Blue-books are to most people prohibitive,
-and few have read them. Even the thoughtful often say:
-“I have got the Reports, and hope to tackle them some
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">152</span>day, but——,” and then follow apologies for their neglect
-owing to their size, the magnitude of the subject, or the
-pressure of other duties or pleasures. Meanwhile the
-children! The children are growing up, or are dying. The
-children, already handicapped by their parentage, are
-further handicapped by the conditions under which the
-State is rearing them. The children, which the nation
-needs—the very life-blood of her existence, for which she is
-paying, are still left under conditions which for decades
-have been condemned by philanthropists and educationists,
-as well as by the Poor Law Inspectors themselves.</p>
-
-<p>On 1 January, 1908, according to the Local Government
-Board return: 234,792 children were dependent on the
-State, either wholly or partially. Of these:—<br /></p>
-<div class="p152">
-<p class="noindent">&nbsp;22,483 were in workhouses and workhouse infirmaries;</p>
-<p class="noindent">&nbsp;11,602 in district and separate, often called “barrack,” schools;</p>
-<p class="noindent">&nbsp;17,090 in village communities, scattered, receiving, and other Guardians’ homes;</p>
-<p class="noindent">&nbsp;11,251 in institutions other than those mentioned above;</p>
-<p class="noindent">&nbsp;&nbsp;8,565 boarded out in families of the industrial classes; and</p>
-</div>
-<div class="noindent">
-<p>163,801 receiving relief while still remaining with their
-parents. It is a portentous array, of nearly a quarter of a
-million of children, and each has an individual character.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Pageants are now the fashion. Let us stand on one side
-of the stage (as did Stow, the historian, in the Whitechapel
-children’s pageant) and pass the verdict of the onlooker,
-as, primed with the figures and facts vouched for by the
-Royal Commissioners, we see the children of the State
-exhibit themselves in evidence of the care of their
-guardians.</p>
-
-<p>First the babies. Here they come, thousands of them,
-some born in the workhouse, tiny, pink crumpled-skinned
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">153</span>mites of a few days old; others toddlers of under three, who
-have never known another home.</p>
-
-<p>“What a nice woman in the nurse’s cap and apron! I
-would trust her with any child. The head official, I suppose.
-But her under staff! What a terrible set! Those old
-women look idiotic and the young ones wicked. The inmates
-told off to serve in the nurseries you say they are!
-Surely no one with common humanity or sense would put
-a baby who requires wise observation under such women!”</p>
-
-<p>“Alas! but the Guardians do.”</p>
-
-<p>The Report states:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The whole nursery has often been found under the charge
-of a person actually certified as of unsound mind, the bottles
-sour, the babies wet, cold, and dirty. The Commission on
-the Care and Control of the Feeble-minded draws attention
-to an episode in connexion with one feeble-minded woman
-who was set to wash a baby; she did so in boiling water,
-and it died.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>But this is no new discovery made by the recent Royal
-Commission. In 1897 Dr. Fuller, the Medical Inspector,
-reported to the Local Government Board that</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“in sixty-four workhouses imbeciles or weak-minded women
-are entrusted with the care of infants, as helps to the able-bodied
-or inferior women who are placed in charge by the
-matron, without the constant supervision of a responsible
-officer”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“We recognise,” acknowledges the Report of the Royal
-Commissioners, “that some improvement has since taken
-place; but, as we have ourselves seen, pauper inmates, many
-of them feeble-minded, are still almost everywhere utilized
-for handling the babies<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. As things are, the visitor to
-a workhouse nursery finds it too often a place of intolerable
-stench, under quite insufficient supervision, in which it would
-be a miracle if the babies continued in health.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">154</span>“How thin and pale and undersized many of them are!
-Surely they are properly fed and clothed and exercised!”</p>
-
-<p>“In one large workhouse,” writes the Commissioners, “it
-was noticed that from perhaps about eighteen months to
-two and a half years of age the children had a sickly appearance.
-They were having their dinner, which consisted
-of large platefuls of potatoes and minced beef—a somewhat
-improper diet for children of that age.” “Even so elementary
-a requirement as suitable clothing is neglected.”
-“The infants,” states a lady Guardian, “have not always a
-proper supply of flannel, and their shirts are sometimes
-made of rough unbleached calico.” “Babies of twelve
-months or thereabouts have their feet compressed into tight
-laced-up boots over thick socks doubled under their feet to
-make them fit into the boots.” “In some workhouses the
-children have no toys, in others the toys remain tidily on
-a shelf out of reach, so that there may be no litter on the
-floor.”</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“In another extensive workhouse it was found that the
-babies of one or two years of age were preparing for their
-afternoon sleep. They were seated in rows on wooden
-benches in front of a wooden table. On the table was a
-long narrow cushion, and when the babies were sufficiently
-exhausted they fell forward upon this to sleep! The position
-seemed most uncomfortable and likely to be injurious.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In another place it was stated:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“That the infants weaned, but unable to feed themselves,
-are sometimes placed in a row and the whole row fed with
-one spoon <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. from one plate of rice pudding. The spoon
-went in and out of the mouths all along the row.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“We were shocked,” continues the Report, “to discover
-that the infants in the nursery of the great palatial establishments
-in London and other large towns <em>seldom or never got
-into the open air</em>.”</p>
-
-<div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">155</span></div>
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We found the nursery frequently on the third or fourth
-story of a gigantic block, often without balconies, whence
-the only means of access even to the workhouse yard was a
-flight of stone steps down which it was impossible to wheel
-a baby carriage of any kind. There was no staff of nurses
-adequate to carrying fifty or sixty infants out for an airing.
-In some of these workhouses it was frankly admitted that
-these babies never left their own quarters (and the stench
-that we have described), and never got into the open air
-during the whole period of their residence in the workhouse
-nursery.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In short, “we regret to report,” say the Commissioners,
-“that these workhouse nurseries are, in a large number of
-cases, alike in structural arrangements, equipment, organization,
-and staffing, wholly unsuited to the healthy rearing
-of infants”.</p>
-
-<p>“See, here come the coffins!”</p>
-
-<p>Coffins—tiny wooden boxes—of just cheap deal; some
-with a wreath of flowers, and followed by a weeping woman;
-others just conveyed by officials—unwanted, unregretted
-babies.</p>
-
-<p>As far as one’s eye can reach they come. Coffins and
-coffins, and still more coffins; almost as many coffins as
-there were babies?</p>
-
-<p>Not quite. The Report repeats the evidence of the
-Medical Inspector of the Local Government Board for Poor-Law
-purposes, who some years ago made a careful inquiry
-and found that one baby out of every three died annually.
-“A long time ago,” did I hear you murmur, “and things
-are better now”?</p>
-
-<p>Would that it were so, but a more recent inquiry made
-by the Commissioners shows that “out of every thousand
-children born in the Poor-Law institutions forty to forty-five
-die within a week, and out of 8483 infants who were
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">156</span>born during 1907, in the workhouses of the 450 Unions
-inquired into, no fewer than 1050 (or 13 per cent) actually
-died on the premises before attaining one year.” “The infantile
-mortality in the population as a whole,” writes the
-authors of the Minority Report, “exposed to all dangers of
-inadequate medical attendance and nursing, lack of sufficient
-food, warmth, and care, and parental ignorance and neglect,
-is admittedly excessive. The corresponding mortality
-among the infants in the Poor-Law institutions, where all
-these dangers may be supposed to be absent, is between two
-and three times as great.”</p>
-
-<p>“It must be the fault of the system, it is often said, that
-children, like chickens, cannot for long be safely aggregated
-together.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is difficult to say whether it is the system or the administration
-which is most to blame, but the facts are incontrovertible.
-In some workhouses 40 per cent of the
-babies die within the year. In ten others 493 babies were
-born, and only fourteen, or 3 per cent, perished before they
-had lived through four seasons. In ten other workhouses
-333 infants saw the light, and through the gates 114 coffins
-were borne, or 33 per cent of the whole.”</p>
-
-<p>This variation would appear to point to faults of administration.
-On the other hand, the system is contrary to
-nature; for the natural law limits families to a few children,
-and usually provides that King Baby should rule as sole
-monarch for eighteen months or two years. On this the
-Report says:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“It has been suggested to us by persons experienced in
-the peculiar dangers of institutions for infants of tender
-years, that the high death rate, especially the excessive
-death rates after the first few weeks of life, right up to the
-age of three or four, may be due to some adverse influence
-steadily increasing in its deleterious effect the longer the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">157</span>child is exposed to it. In the scarlet fever wards of isolation
-hospitals it has been suggested that the mere aggregation of
-cases may possibly produce, unless there are the most elaborate
-measures for disinfection, a dangerous ‘intensification’
-of the disease. In the workhouse nursery there is practically
-no disinfection. The walls, the floors, the furniture, must
-all become, year after year, more impregnated with whatever
-mephitic atmosphere prevails. The very cots in which the
-infants lie have been previously tenanted by an incalculable
-succession of infants in all states of health and morbidity.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“Is the long undertaker’s bill to be deplored, considering
-the parentage of this class of children and the way the
-Guardians rear them?”</p>
-
-<p>The nation wants the babies; indeed, to maintain its
-position it must have them, and “the tendency of nature is
-to return to the normal”—a scientific fact of profound civic
-importance. Besides, the Report says:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We find that it is generally assumed that the women admitted
-to the workhouse for lying-in are either feeble-minded
-girls, persistently immoral women, or wives deserted by their
-husbands. Whatever may have been the case in past years,
-this is no longer a correct description of the patients in what
-have become, in effect, maternity hospitals. Out of all the
-women who gave birth to children in the Poor-Law institutions
-of England and Wales during 1907, it appears that
-about 30 per cent were married women. In the Poor-Law
-institutions of London and some other towns the proportion
-of married women rises to 40 and even to 50 per cent.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>As to how the Guardians rear the babies that is another
-matter. But let us leave Institutions with the high walls,
-the monotony which stifles, the organization which paralyses
-energy, the control which alike saps freedom and initiation,
-and the unfailing provision of food no one visibly earns, so
-that we may go and visit some of the homes which the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">158</span>Guardians subsidize, and where they keep, or partially keep,
-out of the ratepayers’ pockets 163,801 children.</p>
-
-<p><abbr title="1">I.</abbr>—A clean home this, mother out at work, earning 4s. 6d.
-by charing; the Guardians giving 7s. 6d. Four children
-(thirteen, nine, six, four), left to themselves while she is out,
-but evidently fond of home and each other. A small kitchen
-garden which would abundantly pay for care, but fatigue compels
-its neglect. No meat is included in her budget, and but
-3d. a week for milk; but 12s. a week, and 4s. 6d. of it depending
-on her never ailing and her employers always requiring
-her, is hardly adequate on which to pay rent and to keep five
-people, providing the children with their sole items of life’s
-capital—health, height, and strength.</p>
-
-<p><abbr title="2">II.</abbr>—A dirty home this, in a filthy court. The mother is
-out; the children playing among the street garbage. Their
-clothes are ragged, their heads verminous, their poor faces
-sharp with that expression which always wanting and never
-being satisfied stamps indelibly on the human countenance.
-One bed and a mattress pulled on to the floor is all
-that is provided for the restful sleep of six people; and
-3s. a week is what a pitiful public subscribes via the rates
-to show its appreciation of such a home life. Waste and
-worse. The Majority Report quotes with approval the
-words of Dr. McVail: “In many cases the amount allowed
-by the Guardians for the maintenance of out-door pauper
-children cannot possibly suffice to keep them even moderately
-well”. This could be applied to Case I. “Many
-mothers having to earn their living <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. cannot attend to
-their children at home, so that there is no proper cooking,
-the house is untidy and uncomfortable, and the living rooms
-and bedrooms unventilated and dirty.” This could be applied
-to Case II.</p>
-
-<p><abbr title="3">III.</abbr> A disgraceful home this, best perhaps described in
-the words of the Majority Report:—</p>
-
-<div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">159</span></div>
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“A widow with three children, a well-known drunken
-character, was relieved with 3s., one of her children earning
-7s. making a total of 10s. It was urged by the relieving
-officer that it was no case for out relief, as it was encouraging
-drunkenness and immorality<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. It was held that the relief
-having been suspended for a month, she had suffered sufficient
-punishment. The officer said: ‘She still drinks,’
-and that 4s. relief was given on 13 December, ‘to tide her
-over the holidays’. She had been before the police for
-drunkenness. It was considered (by the Guardians) to meet
-the disqualification of the case by reducing the relief to 3s.
-instead of 4s.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><abbr title="4">IV.</abbr> An immoral home this, again best described in
-official words:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I saw in one instance out-relief children habitually sent
-out to pilfer in a small way, others to beg, some whose
-mothers were drunkards or living immoral lives<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. These
-definitely bad mothers were but a small minority of the
-mothers whom we visited, but there were many of a negatively
-bad type, people without standard, whining, colourless
-people, often with poor health. If out relief is given at
-all <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. those who give it must take the responsibility for
-its right use.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In 1898, when Lord Peel was the Chairman of the State
-Children’s Association, its Executive Committee brought out
-a chart which showed that there were children nationally
-supported under the Local Government Board, under the
-Home Office, under the Education Department, under the
-Metropolitan Asylums Board, under the Lunacy Commissioners,
-each using its own administrative organization. At
-that time the same children were being dealt with by what
-may be called rival authorities, without any machinery for
-co-operation or opportunities of interchange of knowledge
-or experience. Since then there has been but little change,
-the Reports point out forcibly the existence of the same
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">160</span>conditions only worse, inasmuch as more parents now
-seek free food and other assistance for their children from
-official hands.</p>
-
-<p>Face to face with such a serious confusion of evils, affecting
-as they do the character of the people—the very foundation
-of our national greatness; confronted with the complicated
-problem how to simplify machinery which has been
-growing for years, and is further entangled with the undergrowth
-of vast numbers of officials and their vested interests;
-distressed on the one hand by the clamour of that
-section of society who think that everything should be done
-by the State, and on the other by the insistent demand of
-those who see the incalculable good which springs from
-volunteer effort or agencies, the bewildered statesman
-might be sympathized with, if not excused, if he did feel
-inclined to agree with Mr. John Burns’s suggestion, and
-leave it all to him.</p>
-
-<p>“I care for the people,” in effect he said, “I know their
-needs. I have the officials to do the work. I am the
-President of the Local Government Board. Be easy, leave
-it all to me, I will report to the House once in three months.
-All will be well.”</p>
-
-<p>It sounds a simple plan, but, before it can be even seriously
-advocated, it would be as well to survey the recent
-history of the Local Government Board, and see if, even
-under this President, its past record gives hope for future
-effective achievement. Once more let us begin with—</p>
-
-<p>(<i>a</i>) <i>The Babies.</i>—Sir John Simon, Chief Medical Officer
-of the Local Government Board, wrote forcibly on the subject
-more than a generation past. Dr. Fuller’s Report was
-made years ago. Again and again reform has been urged
-by Poor Law Inspectors and workhouse officials, who have
-asked for additional powers to obtain information or classification
-or detention. What has the Local Government
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">161</span>Board done? The following extract from the Minority
-Report can be the reply:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Alike in the prevention of the continued procreation of
-the feeble-minded, in the rescue of girl-mothers from a life
-of sexual immorality, and in the reduction of infantile mortality
-in respectable but necessitous families, the destitution
-authorities, in spite of their great expenditure, are
-to-day effecting no useful results. With regard to the two
-first of these problems, at any rate, the activities of the
-Boards of Guardians are, in our judgment, actually intensifying
-the evil. If the State had desired to maximize both
-feeble-minded procreation, and birth out of wedlock, there
-could not have been suggested a more apt device than the
-provision, throughout the country, of general mixed workhouses,
-organized as they are now to serve as unconditional
-maternity hospitals<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. While thus encouraging
-<span class="ellipsis">..</span>. these evils they are doing little to arrest the appalling
-preventible mortality that prevails among the infants of the
-poor.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>(<i>b</i>) <i>The Children in the Workhouses.</i>—“So long ago
-as 1841 the Poor-Law Commissioners pointed out forcibly
-the evils connected with the maintenance of children in
-workhouses.” In 1896 the Departmental Committee, of
-which Mr. Mundella was chairman, and on which I had the
-honour of sitting, brought before the public the opinion
-of inspectors, guardians, officials, educationists and child-lovers,
-all unanimous in condemning this system. “In the
-workhouse the children meet with crime and pauperism
-from day to day.” “They are in the hands of adult
-paupers for their cleanliness, and the whole thing is extremely
-bad.” “The able-bodied paupers with whom they
-associate are a very bad class, almost verging on criminal,
-if not quite,” is some of the evidence quoted in the Report,
-and the Committee unanimously signed the recommendation
-“that no children be allowed to enter the workhouse,”
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">162</span>and now, thirteen years afterwards, the same conditions
-prevail. The Majority Report thus describes cases of
-children in workhouses:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The three-year-old children were in a bare and desolate
-room, sitting about on the floor and on wooden benches,
-and in dismal workhouse dress. The older ones had all
-gone out to school <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. except a cripple, and a dreary
-little girl who sat in a cold room with bare legs and her
-feet in a pail of water as a ‘cure’ for broken chilblains<span class="ellipsis">...</span>.
-The children’s wards left on our minds a marked impression
-of confusion and defective administration<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. In
-appearance the children were dirty, untidy, ill-kept, and
-almost neglected. Their clothes might be described with
-little exaggeration as ragged<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. The boys’ day-room is
-absolutely dreary and bare, and they share a yard and lavatories
-with the young men<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. An old man sleeps with
-the boys. It is a serious drawback (says the inspector)
-that every Saturday and Sunday, to say nothing of summer
-and winter holidays, have for the most part to be spent in
-the workhouse, where they either live amid rigid discipline
-and get no freedom, or else if left to themselves are likely
-to come under the evil influence of adult inmates. The
-Local Government Board inspectors point out that, even if
-the children go to the elementary schools for teaching, the
-practice of rearing them in the workhouse exposes them to
-the contamination of communication with the adult inmates
-whose influence is often hideously depraving.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“Terrible!” my reader will say; “but surely the reform
-requires legislation, and the Poor Law is too large a subject
-to tinker on, it must be dealt with after time has been
-given for due thought.” To this I would reply that even if
-it did require legislation there has been time enough to
-obtain it during all these years that the evils have existed;
-but to quote the Majority Report: “So far as the ‘in-and-out’
-children are concerned it is probable that no further
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">163</span>power would be needed, since the Guardians already have
-power under the Poor Law Act, 1899, to adopt children
-until the age of eighteen.” This Act, I may say in
-passing, was initiated, drafted, and finally secured, not by
-the responsible authorities but by the efforts of the State
-Children’s Association.</p>
-
-<p>Why, then, has not the Local Government Board removed
-the children from the workhouses? Why, indeed?</p>
-
-<p>(<i>c</i>) <i>The Ins and Outs.</i>—In 1896 the Departmental
-Committee quoted the evidence of Mr. Lockwood, the
-Local Government Board Inspector, who referred to “cases
-of children who are constantly in and out of the workhouse,
-dragged about the streets by their parents, and who
-practically get no education at all,” and he puts in a table
-of “particulars of eleven families representing the more
-prominent ‘ins and outs’” of one Metropolitan West-end
-workhouse of whom “one family of three children had been
-admitted and discharged sixty-two times in thirteen months.”
-Other cases were given, for instance:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“D——, a general labourer, who has three boys and a
-girl, who come in and out on an average once a week.</p>
-
-<p>“A family named W——. The husband drunken, and
-has been in an asylum; the wife unable to live with him.
-He would take his boys out in the early morning, leave
-them somewhere, meet them again at night, and bring
-them back to the workhouse; they had had nothing to eat, and
-had wandered about in the cold all day.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“This state of things is cruel and disastrous in every
-respect,” writes the Committee in 1896, appointed, be it remembered,
-by the Department to elicit facts and “to advise
-as to any changes that may be desirable”. Yet we find
-that in 1909 the same conditions exist. To quote the
-Report:—</p>
-
-<div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">164</span></div>
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Out of twenty special cases of which details have been
-obtained, twelve families have been in and out ten or more
-times; one child had been admitted thirty-nine times in
-eleven years; another twenty-three times in six years.
-The Wandsworth Union has a large number of dissolute
-persons in the workhouse with children in the intermediate
-schools. The parents never go out without taking the
-children, and seem to hold the threat of doing so as a rod
-over the heads of the Guardians. One mother frequently
-had her child brought out of his bed to go out into the
-cold winter night. One boy who had been admitted
-twenty-five times in ten years had been sent more than
-once to Banstead Schools, but had never stayed there long.
-Whenever he knew he was to go there he used to write to
-his mother in the workhouse, when she would apply for
-her discharge and go out with him.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In the thirteen years which have passed since the
-issue of the two Reports, what has the Local Government
-Board done? It has induced some of the Boards to
-establish receiving or intermediary houses at the cost, in
-the Metropolis, of about £200,000, but that is but attacking
-the symptom and leaving the disease untouched.
-Without an ideal for child-life or appreciation of child-nature,
-it has been content to let this hideous state of
-things go on. Again to quote the Report:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“It has done nothing to prevent the children from being
-dragged in and out of the workhouse as it suits their
-parents’ whim or convenience. The man or woman may
-take the children to a succession of casual wards or the
-lowest common lodging-houses. They may go out with
-the intention of using the children, half-clad and blue with
-cold, as a means of begging from the soft-hearted, or they
-may go out simply to enjoy a day’s liberty, and find the
-children only encumbrances, to be neglected and half-starved<span class="ellipsis">...</span>.
-The unfortunate boys and girls who are
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">165</span>dragged backwards and forwards by parents of the ‘in-and-out’
-class practically escape supervision. They pass
-the whole period of school age alternately being cleansed
-and ‘fed up’ in this or that Poor Law institution, or
-starving on scraps and blows amid filth and vice in their
-periodical excursions in the outer world, exactly as it suits
-the caprice or convenience of their reckless and irresponsible
-parents.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>And the Local Government Board has stood it for years
-and stands by still and lets the evils go on. Meanwhile it
-is the children who suffer and die; it is the children who
-are being robbed of their birthright of joy as they pass a
-miserable childhood in poverty in workhouses or in huge
-institutions; it is the children whose potentialities for good,
-and strength, and usefulness are being allowed to wither
-and waste and turn into evil and pain. It is the children
-who are needed for the nation; it is the nation who supports
-them; and it is the nation who must decide their
-future.</p>
-
-<p>Speaking for myself (not in any official capacity), twenty-two
-years’ experience as manager of a barrack school, two
-years’ membership of the Departmental Committee, twelve
-years’ work as the honorary secretary of the State
-Children’s Association have brought me to the well-grounded
-opinion that the children should be removed
-altogether from the care of the Local Government Board
-and placed under the Board of Education. This Board’s
-one concern is children. Its inspectors have to consider
-nothing beyond the children’s welfare, and its organization
-admits the latest development in the art of training, both
-in day and boarding schools.</p>
-
-<p>However much courtesy demanded moderation, the fact
-remains that both the Reports are a strong condemnation
-of the whole of the Poor-Law work of the Local Government
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">166</span>Board, both in principle and administration. The
-condition of the aged, the sick, the unemployed, the
-mentally defective, the vagrant, the out-relief cases, as well
-as the children, alike come in for strong expressions of
-disapproval or for proposals for reform so drastic as to
-carry condemnation. If such a report had been issued on
-the work of the Admiralty or the War Office, the whole
-country would have demanded immediate change. “They
-have tried and failed,” it would be said; “let some one
-else try”; and a similar demand is made by those of us
-who have seen many generations of children exposed to
-these evils, and waited, and hoped, and despaired, and
-waited and hoped again. But once more some of the best
-brains in the country have faced the problem of the poor,
-and demanded reforms, and so far as the children are
-concerned almost the identical reforms demanded thirteen
-years ago; once more the nation has been compelled to
-turn its mind to this painful subject, and there is again
-ground for hope that the lives of the wanted babies will
-be saved, and their education be such as to fit them to
-contribute to the strength and honour of the nation.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Henrietta O. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">167</span>
- <h3 title="POOR LAW REFORM." id="ch16">POOR LAW REFORM.<a href="#f161" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>November, 1909.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f161">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch16" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Contemporary Review”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">A compromise</span> between kindliness and cruelty often
-stands—according to Mr. Galsworthy—for social reform.
-The Poor Law is an example of such compromise. In
-kindliness it offers doles of out-relief to the destitute and
-builds institutions at extravagant cost. In cruelty it disregards
-human feelings, breaks up family life, suspects
-poverty as a crime, and degrades labour into punishment.</p>
-
-<p>The Poor Law, however, receives almost universal condemnation.
-Its cost is enormous, amounting to over
-fourteen millions a year. The incidence is so unfair that
-its call on the rich districts is comparatively light, and in
-poor districts inordinately heavy. Its administration is
-both confused and loose. Its relief follows no principle—out-relief
-is given in one district and refused in others;—its
-institutions sometimes attract and sometimes deter applications,
-and its expenditure is often at the mercy of self-seeking
-Guardians, whose minds are set on securing cheap
-labour or even on secret commissions.</p>
-
-<p>The poor, whom at such vast cost and with such parade
-of machinery it relieves, are often demoralized. There is
-neither worth nor joy to be got out of the pauper, who has
-learned to measure success in life by skill in evading inquiry.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">168</span>And, what is most striking of all, the Poor Law has
-allowed a mass of poverty to accumulate which has led to
-the erection of charity upon charity, and is still, by its
-squalor, its misery and hopelessness, a disgrace and a
-danger to the nation. The public, recognizing the failure
-of the Poor Law, has become indifferent to its existence, and
-now only a small percentage of the electors record their votes
-at an election of the guardians of the poor.</p>
-
-<p>The case for reform is clear.</p>
-
-<p>What that reform should be is a question not to be
-answered in the compass of a short article. The best I can
-do is to offer for the consideration of my readers some
-principles which I believe to underlie reform. Those
-principles once accepted, it will be for every one to consider
-with what modifications or extensions they may be
-applied to the different circumstances of town and country,
-young and old, weak and strong.</p>
-
-<p>The last great reform of the Poor Law was in 1834.
-The Reformers of those days took as their main principle
-<em>that the position of the person relieved should be less attractive
-than that of the workman</em>. They were driven to adopt this
-principle by the condition to which the Elizabethan Poor
-Law had brought the nation. When, under that Poor Law,
-the State assumed the whole responsibility “for the relief of
-the impotent and the getting to work of those able to
-work,” and when by Gilbert’s Act in 1782 it was further
-enacted that “out-relief should be made obligatory for all
-except the sick and impotent,” it followed that larger
-and larger numbers threw themselves on the rates. Relief
-offered a better living than work. The number of workers
-decreased, the number receiving relief increased. Ruin
-threatened the nation, and so the Reformers came in
-to enforce the principle that relief should offer a less attractive
-living than work.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">169</span>The principle is good; it is, indeed, eternally true, because
-it is not by what comes from without, but by what
-comes from within that a human being is raised. It is not
-by what a man receives, but by that he is enabled to do for
-himself that he is helped. This principle was applied in
-1834 by requiring from every applicant evidence of destitution,
-by refusing relief to able-bodied persons, except on
-admission to workhouses, and by making the relief as
-unpleasant or as “deterrent” as possible.</p>
-
-<p>This harsh application of the principle may have been the
-best for the moment. The nation required a sharp spur,
-and no doubt under its pressure there was a marvellous recovery.
-Men who had been idle sought work, and men
-who had saved realized that their savings would no longer
-be swallowed up in rates. The spur and the whip had their
-effect, but such effect, whether on a beast or a man, is
-always short-lived.</p>
-
-<p>The tragedy of 1834 is that the reforming spirit, which so
-boldly undertook the immediate need, did not continue to
-take in other needs as they arose. It is, indeed, the tragedy
-of the history of the State, of the Church, and of the individual,
-that moments of reform are followed by periods of
-lethargy. People will not recognize that reform must be a
-continuous act, and that the only condition of progress is
-eternal vigilance. Indolence, especially mental indolence,
-is Satan’s handiest instrument, and so after some great
-effort a pause is easily accepted as a right.</p>
-
-<p>After the reform of 1834 there was such a pause. New
-needs soon came to the front, and the face of society was
-gradually changed. The strain of industrial competition
-threw more and more men on to the scrap heap, too young
-to die, too worn to work, too poor to live. The crowding
-of house against house in the towns reduced the vitality of
-the people so that children grew up unfit for labour, and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">170</span>young people found less and less room for healthy activities
-of mind or body. Education, made common and free, set
-up a higher standard of respectability and called for more
-expenditure. A growing sense of humanity among all
-classes made poverty a greater burden on social life, provoking
-sometimes charity and sometimes indignation.</p>
-
-<p>These, and such as these, were the changes going on in
-the latter part of the nineteenth century, but the spirit of
-the reformers of 1834 was dead, and in their lethargy the
-people were content that the old principle should be applied
-without any change to meet new needs. Institutions were
-increased, officials were multiplied, and inspectors were appointed
-to look after inspectors. Any outcry was met by
-expedients. Mr. Chamberlain authorised municipal bodies
-to give work. Mr. Chaplain relaxed the out-relief order.
-New luxuries were allowed in the workhouse, the infirmaries
-were vastly improved, and the children were, to some extent,
-removed from the workhouses and put, often at great
-cost, in village communities or like establishments. But
-reliance was always placed on making relief disagreeable
-and deterrent. One of the latest reforms has been the introduction
-of the cellular system in casual wards, so that
-men are kept in solitary confinement, while as task work
-they break a pile of stones and throw them through a
-narrow grating. Poverty, indeed, is met by a compromise
-between kindliness and cruelty.</p>
-
-<p>The reformers of 1834 looked out on a society weakened
-by idleness. They faced a condition of things in which the
-chief thing wanted was energy and effort, so they applied
-the spur. The reformers of to-day look out on a very different
-society, and they look with other eyes. They see
-that the people who are weak and poor are not altogether
-suffering the penalty of their own faults. It is by others’
-neglect that uninhabitable houses have robbed them of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">171</span>strength, that wages do not provide the means of living, and
-that education has not fitted them either to earn a livelihood
-or enjoy life. The reformers of to-day, under the subtle influence
-of the Christian spirit, have learnt that self-respect, even
-more than a strong body, is a man’s best asset, and that
-willing work rather than forced work makes national
-wealth.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Harry Johnson, who speaks with rare authority, has
-told us how negroes with a reputation for idleness respond
-to treatment which, showing them respect, calls out their
-hope and their manhood. Treat them, he implies, as children,
-drive them as cattle, and you are justified in your
-belief in their idleness. Treat them as men, give them
-their wages in money, open to them the hope of better
-things, and they work as men.</p>
-
-<p>The relief given in the casual ward may be sufficient for
-the body of the casual, but the penal treatment, the prison-like
-task and the solitary confinement make him set his
-teeth against work, and he becomes the enemy of the
-society which has given him such treatment.</p>
-
-<p>The Reformers of to-day, with their greater knowledge
-of human nature, and in face of a society the fault of which
-is not just idleness, will do well then to take another principle
-as the basis of their action. Such a principle is <em>that
-relief must develop self-respect</em>. They will have, indeed, to
-remember that the form of relief must still be less attractive
-than that offered by work, but less attractiveness must be
-attained not by an insolent inquisition of relief officers
-into the character of applicants, not by treating inmates as
-prisoners, and not by making work as distasteful as possible.
-It might possibly be sufficient if relief, so far as regarded
-the able-bodied, took the form of training for work. There
-is no degradation in requiring men and women to fit themselves
-to earn,—no loss of self-respect is brought on anyone
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">172</span>by being called to be a learner;—but, at the same time, opportunities
-for learning are not attractive to idlers, nor are
-they likely to encourage the reliance on relief which brought
-disaster on the nation before 1834.</p>
-
-<p>The Whitechapel Guardians, many years ago, determined
-that the workhouse should more and more approximate to
-an adult industrial school. They did away with stone
-breaking and oakum picking, they abolished cranks turned
-by human labour, they instituted trade work and appointed
-a mental instructor to teach the inmates in the evening.
-They had no power of detention, so the training was not
-of much use, but as a deterrent the system was most effective,
-and fewer able-bodied men came to Whitechapel
-Union than to neighbouring workhouses. Regard for the
-principle that relief must develop self-respect is not, therefore,
-inconsistent with the principle that relief must offer a
-position which is less attractive than that offered by work.</p>
-
-<p>But let me suggest some further application of the
-principle.</p>
-
-<p>1. It implies, I think, the abolition of Boards of Guardians
-and of all the special machinery for relief. It implies, perhaps,
-the abolition of the Poor Law itself. There is no class
-of “the poor” as there is a class of criminals. Poverty is
-not a crime, and there are poor among the most honourable
-of the people. Poverty is a loose and wide term, involving
-the greater number of the people. There must, therefore,
-be some loss of self-respect in those of the poor who feel
-themselves set apart for special treatment. One poor man
-goes to the hospital, his neighbour—his brother, it may be—goes
-to the Poor Law infirmary. Both are in the same
-position, but the latter, because he comes under the Guardians,
-loses his self-respect, and has acquired a special term—he
-is “a pauper”.</p>
-
-<p>Those men and women who through weakness, through
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">173</span>ignorance or through character are unable to do their work
-and earn a living are, as much as the rich and the strong,
-members of the nation. All form one body and depend
-on one another. Some for health’s sake need one treatment
-and some another. There is no reason in putting
-a few of them under a special law and calling them
-“paupers,” the use of hard names is as inexpedient for the
-Statute Book as it is for Christians. Reason says that all
-should be so treated that they may, as rapidly as possible,
-be restored to economic health by the use of all the resources
-of the State, educational and social. There is no
-place for a special law, a specially elected body of administrators
-and a special rate.</p>
-
-<p>A further objection to Boards of Guardians is that an
-election does not involve interests which are sufficiently
-wide or sufficiently familiar. Side issues have to be
-exalted so as to attract the electors’ attention. Such a
-side issue was found in the religious question, which gave
-interest to the old School Board elections; no such side
-issue has been found in Guardian elections, and so only a
-small minority of ratepayers record their votes. Experience,
-therefore, justifies the proposal that with a view to
-encouraging the growth of self-respect in the economically
-unhealthy members of the nation, the present system of
-Poor Law machinery should be abolished.</p>
-
-<p>2. The principle further implies that the same municipal
-body which is responsible for the health, for the education,
-and for the industrial fitness of some members of the community
-should be responsible in like manner for all the
-members, whatever their position.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>a</i>) <i>The Sick.</i>—The County Council appoints a medical
-officer of health and itself administers many asylums. It
-establishes a sort of privileged class which receives its
-benefits and, unless it extends its operations so that all who
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">174</span>are sick may be reached, must lower the self-respect of
-those who are excluded and driven to beg for relief.</p>
-
-<p>The medical officer might be in fact what he is in name,
-responsible for the health of the district, and as the
-superior officer of the visiting doctors see that ill-health was
-prevented and cured. The interest of the community is
-universal good health; how unreasoning is the system
-which deters the sick man from trying to get well by
-making it necessary for him to endure the inquisition of the
-relieving officer before getting a doctor’s visit! The
-strength of the community is in the self-respect of its
-members; how extravagant is the system which offers
-relief only on condition of some degradation.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>b</i>) <i>The Children.</i>—The County Council is responsible
-for the education of the children; it must—unless one set
-of children is to be kept in a less honourable position—extend
-its care over all the children. There must be no
-such creature as a “pauper child,” and no distinction
-between schools in which children are taught or boarded.
-The child who has lost its parents, the child who has been
-deserted, the child who has no home, must be started in life
-equipped with equal knowledge and on an equal footing
-with other children. Every child must be within reach
-of the best which the State can offer. The inclusion
-of the care of all children under the same municipal authority
-would help to develop in all a sense of self-respect, and
-at the same time enable the authority to make better use of
-the existing buildings in the classification of their uses, apportioning
-some, <i>e.g.</i>, as technical schools, some as infirmaries,
-and some for industrial training. Dr. Barnardo, who
-has taught the nation how to care better for its children,
-adopted some such method.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>c</i>) <i>The Able-Bodied.</i>—A greater difficulty occurs in
-applying the principle to the care of the able-bodied.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">175</span>How, it may be asked, is the County Council to deal with
-the unemployed and with the loafer so as to relieve them
-and at the same time develop their sense of respect? The
-County Council has lately been made responsible for
-dealing with the unemployed, and experience has shown
-that at the bottom of the problem lies the custom of casual
-labour, the use of boys in dissipating work, and the ignorance
-of the people. The Council has in its hands the
-power of dealing with these causes. It can establish labour
-registers, it can prevent much child labour, and it can
-provide education. It may be necessary to increase its
-powers, but already it can do something to prevent unemployment
-in the future.</p>
-
-<p>The need, however, of the present unemployed is
-training. The Council might be empowered to open for
-them houses or farms of discipline, in which such training
-could be given. The man with a settled home could be
-admitted for a short period, the loafer could be detained for
-three or four years. The work in every case, while less attractive
-than other work, could be such as to interest the
-worker; the discipline, such as to involve no degradation;
-and the door of hope could be studiously kept open. The
-farms or houses could indeed be adult industrial schools
-offering a livelihood, not indeed as attractive as that
-offered by work, but such as any man might take with
-gain to his sense of self-respect.</p>
-
-<p>The County Council might thus take over the duties
-performed by Guardians. The same body which now
-looks after the housing and the cleanliness of the streets,
-would possibly realize the cost of neglect in doing those
-duties, if they also had the care of the broken in body and
-in heart. In other words, a more scientific expenditure of
-the rates might be expected to ensue if the body responsible
-for the relief of poverty were the same body as is now
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">176</span>responsible for its prevention. The claims of education
-would perhaps become more popular.</p>
-
-<p>Enough, perhaps, has now been said to suggest a line of
-reform, and hours might be spent in discussing a thousand
-details, each of which has its importance. But not even a
-slight article could be complete without some reference
-to the mass of charity—£10,000,000 is said to be spent in
-London alone—which is annually poured out on the poor.
-Charity, unless it be personal—from a friend to a friend—is
-often as degrading as Poor Law relief. Attempts have
-been made at organization, and much has been done to
-bring about personal relationships between the Haves and
-the Have-nots. Years ago it was suggested that the
-Charity Organization Society might take as a motto, “Not
-relief, but a friend”.</p>
-
-<p>Much has been done, but with a view to putting a
-further limit on the competition of charities and on the
-fostering of cringing habits, some reformers suggest that a
-statutory body of representatives of charities should be
-formed in each district. Over these a County Council
-official might preside. At weekly meetings cases of
-distress which have been noticed by the doctors, the school
-officers or any private person could be considered. These
-cases would then be handed over to individuals or charities,
-who would report progress at the next meeting, or they
-would be undertaken by the presiding officer and dealt
-with efficiently by one of the committees of the County
-Council.</p>
-
-<p>“The strength of a nation,” according to a saying of
-Napoleon quoted by Mr. Fisher, “depends on its history.”
-No reform is likely to endure which does not fit in with the
-traditions of the past. It might be possible to elaborate
-on paper a perfect scheme for the care of the weak and the
-sickly, but it would not avail if it disregarded history.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">177</span>Here in England the State has, during many centuries,
-recognized its obligation for the well-being of all its
-members, and it has performed its obligations by the
-service of individuals. The State, in more senses than one,
-is identified with the Church. In the new times, in the
-face of new needs and with the command of new knowledge,
-it is still the State which must organize the means
-to restore the fallen and it must still use as its instruments
-the willing service of individual men and women. The
-sketch of Poor Law reform which I have presumed to offer
-in this article fulfils, I believe, these requirements.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">178</span>
- <h3 title="THE UNEMPLOYED." id="ch17">THE UNEMPLOYED.<a href="#f171" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>November, 1904.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f171">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch17" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-A Paper read at a meeting in a West-End drawing room and afterwards printed by request.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">I am</span> often asked to speak publicly, and when I express
-wonder as I open my letters at my breakfast-table, my
-family (with that delightful candour which is so good for
-one’s character) say, “Oh, they ask you because you always
-make them hear and sometimes make them laugh”.
-Ladies, to-day I shall, I hope, make you hear, but I cannot
-make you laugh.</p>
-
-<p>Those of us who have lived among the poor, as my dear
-old friend Emma Cons and I have done, in Lambeth and
-Whitechapel for over thirty years, know that there is no
-joke connected with the unemployed. Those of us who
-went through the awful winter of 1886, and saw the sad
-suffering which caused the still more sad sin, as the people
-lied and cringed and begged and bullied to get a share—(what
-they considered a lawful share, some called it “The
-ransom of the rich”) of the Mansion House Fund, know
-that this condition of want of employment is not only an
-economic question, but one involving deep and far-reaching
-moral issues, and it is this problem that is before us now.</p>
-
-<p>The number of unemployed in London is variously estimated,
-some say 30,000 some 100,000, no one can tell, for
-it so much depends on what is meant by unemployed. Do
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">179</span>we mean those workers in seasonal trades, such as the
-painters whose labour ceases in the winter? and the bricklayers’
-labourers who are stopped by a frost? Do we mean
-those thousands which Mr. Charles Booth calculates never
-have an income sufficient to keep the family in health, who
-are always partially unemployed because their labour is of
-so inefficient a kind that they are not worth a “living wage”.
-“Why,” one may ask the frequenters of the Relief Office,
-“have you come to this?” the answer in a hundred different
-forms will be the same. “I fell out of work owing to bad
-trade—I struggled for a year, but things got worse and
-worse—I am no longer fit for continuous work and I couldn’t
-do it if I got it”. They have, that is, lost their power,
-which makes efficient labour.</p>
-
-<p>On this matter there is need of clear thinking, but leaving
-for a moment or two the task of defining and classifying
-the unemployed, let us realize the large army of men,
-with the still larger army of women and children dependent
-on them, who, on this cold, cheerless day are out of work—what
-do they want? Food, fire, shelter,—on this we all
-agree, and the plan of some kind persons is to supply their
-needs. Thus Soup Kitchens, Free Breakfasts, Shelters for
-the Homeless, Meals for the Children, Blankets for the Old,
-Coals for the Cold, Clothing for the Destitute, Doles of all
-kinds for all kinds of people are begged for, and we are
-told, often with regrettable exaggeration, that to support
-this charity or that organization will relieve the suffering
-which (whatever our politics) we all combine to deplore.</p>
-
-<p>But those of us who have thought with our brains, as
-well as with our hearts, know that to ease the symptoms is
-not to cure the disease, and that this social ulcer needs first
-an exhaustive diagnosis by the most experienced social
-physicians, and then infinite patience and great firmness as
-we build up again the constitution of the unfit, which,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">180</span>through long years has become physically weakened and
-morally deteriorated.</p>
-
-<p>I seem to hear my listeners say: “But at least it cannot
-do harm to feed the children,” and there I confess my economics
-break down! I have lived long enough in Whitechapel
-to see three generations, and I have watched the
-underfed boy grow into the undersized man, pushed aside by
-stronger arms in the labour market. I have seen the
-underfed girl grown into the enfeebled woman, producing
-in motherhood puny children. But, and it is a big but, if you
-feed the children, you must feed them adequately, and feed
-them as individuals by individuals. The practice of giving
-children two or three dinner tickets a week is bad economy,
-bad for the children’s digestion, bad for the mother’s housekeeping,
-and bad for the father’s sense of responsibility.
-We should not like our own children to be fed thus, and
-indeed if we would consider each child of the poor as we consider
-our own, the problem of feeding the children would soon
-be solved. I know you will think me Utopian, but if every
-one of us here were to have two or three children as kitchen
-guests daily! Well! It perhaps would not do much, but once
-we were told ten righteous men might have saved the city.</p>
-
-<p>This is a long digression, but the individual treatment of
-children is a subject that occupies much of my thought, and
-one which I would ask you to consider carefully as throwing
-light on many loudly voiced schemes of reform, which, lacking
-the personal touch, are apt to miss the deeper and spiritual
-forces by which character must be nourished if it is to grow.</p>
-
-<p>Now to return to the unemployed. Briefly they can be
-put into four classes:—</p>
-
-<p>1. The skilled mechanic.</p>
-
-<p>2. The unskilled labourer.</p>
-
-<p>3. The casual worker.</p>
-
-<p>4. The loafer.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">181</span>Concerning the first, the Chart published in the “Labour
-Gazette” shows that the number approaches 7 per cent as
-against nearly 5 per cent last year. This is the only class
-about which we have accurate figures, but the returns of
-pauperism, and the experience of charitable agencies combine
-in agreeing that there is more want of employment in
-the other three classes than is usual at this time of the
-year, and that there are fewer “bits of things” to go to the
-pawnshop than usual, because, owing to the war, and some
-think to the fiscal agitation, the summer trade has been
-slack, and wages low and uncertain.</p>
-
-<p>No one can read the daily papers without seeing how
-many schemes are now being put forward to aid the unemployed,
-and in the space of time given to me it is impossible
-to name all these, let alone to discriminate between them,
-but certain principles can be laid down. (1) The form of
-help should be work. (2) The work should be such as will
-uplift and not degrade character. (3) The work should be
-paid sufficiently to keep up the home and adequately feed the
-family. (4) The work, if it be relief work—i.e., that not required
-in the ordinary channels by ordinary employers—should
-not be more attractive than the worker’s normal labour.</p>
-
-<p>It should never be forgotten that provision of work may
-become as dangerous to character as doles of money have
-proved to be. Work is of so many sorts; that which is
-effortful to some men may be child’s play to others, or it
-might be so carelessly supervised as to encourage the casual
-ways and self-indulgent habits which lie at the root of much
-poverty. Human nature in every walk of life has a tendency
-to take the easiest courses, and many men are tempted to relax
-the efforts which the higher classes of employment demand.</p>
-
-<p>“Why,” I said to a butler who had taken £80 a year in
-service, “did you become a cabman?” “Well, madam,” he
-said, “in service one has always to be spruce.” In other
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">182</span>words he had resented the control of order, and so he had
-sunk from a skilled trade to a grade lower.</p>
-
-<p>“Why,” I asked an old friend, a Carter Paterson driver,
-“did you leave your regular work?” “’Tis like this,” he
-said, “it means being out in all weathers, now I can go home
-if things is too nasty outside.” He had yielded to the
-temptation of comfort and gone down a grade lower to casual
-work.</p>
-
-<p>“Why did you go on the tramp?” was asked of a man
-in the casual ward. “If yer takes to the road,” he said
-with perfect candour, “yer never knows what’s before yer.
-Yer may be in luck or yer mayn’t but it’s all on the chance.”
-The spirit of gambling had got the better of him and he had
-gone down a grade lower.</p>
-
-<p>These examples illustrate the importance of the principles
-laid down. The help must be work and the work must be
-steady and continuous, and capable, by drawing forth each
-man’s best powers, to uplift him in character and maintain
-his own self-esteem. The work must be of many kinds. It
-is folly to expect the tailor, the cigarette-maker, the working
-jeweller, to do only road sweeping and that badly, and lastly
-the work, while always strengthening character, must be
-given only under such conditions as will not attract men to
-leave their regular calling, which makes demands on their
-powers of self-discipline, and throw themselves on what is
-charity, even though offered in the form of labour.</p>
-
-<p>Last year the Mansion House Committee carried out on
-a small scale an experiment in relief, which in many ways
-followed these principles. It sent the men to Labour
-Colonies, where they had good food and honest work, away
-from the attractions of the streets, and while they were
-away it provided the women and children with sufficient
-money for the upkeep of health and home. It brought to
-individuals the care of individuals, as week by week superintendents
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">183</span>reported on the workers’ work, and visitors
-carried the money to the families. It offered facilities for
-training men for emigration to the colonies, or for migration
-to the country. It provided employment which was not so
-attractive as to draw men from their regular work, nor the
-loafer from the streets, and it offered to every one hope and
-a way out in the future. The experiment has shown what
-is possible, and encourages those who worked it to believe
-that some year, if not this year, there will be humane and
-scientific dealing with the problem of unemployment.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” I was told by a young married woman the
-other day, “people talk so much of the unemployed now.
-It is all the fashion, but I think quite half of them could
-get work if they wanted to.”</p>
-
-<p>“Really,” I said, recalling the hopeless eyes, gaunt figures,
-and worn boots of many an out-of-work friend, the pathetic
-patience of their women and white faces of the children, “Is
-that your experience?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no!” she replied, “but I am sure I have heard it
-said—and I expect it is true.”</p>
-
-<p>I could have shaken her—but I did not—only that sort of
-thing is what discounts women’s opinion so often with the
-men (the governing sex), and as it is, I fear, not uncommon,
-it behoves us, the thinking, caring women, to think more
-clearly, and to care more deeply. If we bore more continuously
-this sad suffering in mind, if we studied, and read, and
-thought in the effort to probe its cause to its roots, if we resolved
-by personal effort to find or provide labour for at least
-one family during the winter, the problem would be nearer
-solution, but we must see to it that reforms go on lines
-which recognize that character is more important than comfort,
-and that a man is more wronged if Society steals his
-responsibility than if it steals his coat.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Henrietta O. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">184</span>
- <h3 title="THE POOR LAW REPORT." id="ch18">THE POOR LAW REPORT.<a href="#f181" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>April, 1909.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f181">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch18" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Contemporary Review”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">The</span> Poor Law has too long blocked the way of social
-progress, and its ending or its mending has become
-a matter of urgent necessity. The Report just issued may
-thus mark the beginning of a new age. The “condition of
-the people” is, from some points of view, even more serious
-than it was in 1834, when the first Commissioners brought
-out the Report which called “check” to many processes of
-corruption. In those days a lax system of relief had so
-tempted many strong men to idleness and so reduced
-incentives to investment, that the nation was threatened
-with bankruptcy. In these days, when a confusion of
-methods alternates between kindliness and cruelty in their
-treatment of the poor; when begging is encouraged by
-gifts, public and private, said to reach the amount of
-£80,000,000 a year; when giving provokes distrust and
-leaves such evidence of human starvation and degradation
-as may daily be seen amid the splendours of the Embankment,
-it sometimes seems as if the nation were within
-measurable distance of something like a bankruptcy of
-character.</p>
-
-<p>The present Poor Law system, valuable as it was in
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">185</span>checking “various injurious practices,” has been applied
-to conditions and people who were not within its makers’
-range of vision, and is now responsible for more trouble
-than is at once apparent. It preaches by means of palatial
-institutions which every one sees, and of officials who are
-more ubiquitous and powerful than parsons. Its sermon is:
-“Look outside yourselves for the means of livelihood;
-grudge if you are not satisfied”. It preaches selfishness
-and illwill; it encourages a scramble for relief; it discounts
-energy and trust. The present Poor Law does not really
-relieve the poor, and it does tend to weaken the national
-character.</p>
-
-<p>The admirable statistical survey which introduces the
-Report represents the failure of the present system in
-striking figures. The number of paupers—markedly of
-males—is increasing. In London alone 15,800 more paupers
-are being maintained than there were twenty years
-ago, and the rate of pauperism through the country has
-reached 47 in the 1000. The cost has also increased, and
-the country is now spending more than double the amount
-on each individual which was spent in 1872, “making a
-total which is now equivalent to nearly one half of the
-present expenditure on the Army”. The increase goes on,
-as the Commissioners remark, notwithstanding the millions
-of money now spent on education and sanitation, and
-notwithstanding the rise in wages, affording clear proof
-“that something in our social organization is seriously
-wrong”.</p>
-
-<p>The Commissioners are unanimous in their condemnation
-of the system which produces such results. They
-have gathered evidence upon evidence of its failure, and,
-while they praise the devoted service of many Guardians
-and officials, both the Majority and Minority Reports agree
-recommending radical changes.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">186</span>The revelation of the abuse is itself a valuable contribution
-to the needs of the time. The public, unless
-they know the extent of the mischief, will never be moved
-to the necessary effort of reform; and teachers of the
-public, through the Pulpit and the Press, could hardly do
-better than publish extracts from the Report showing the
-waste of money, the demoralization, the ill-will, which
-gathers round workhouses, casual wards and out relief.</p>
-
-<p>The ordinary reader of this evidence might naturally
-inquire, “What has the Local Government Board been
-doing to prevent the abuses which it must have known?
-Why, if conviction was not possible, was not Parliament
-asked for further powers or for some reform? What is the
-use of inspectors? Why should a controlling department
-exist if the nation is to stand convicted of such neglect,
-and to be brought into such danger?” The Report
-implies, indeed, some slight blame to the Local Government
-Board, because it did not at all times afford sufficient
-direction; and the Minority Report, in its more trenchant
-way, sometimes emphasizes the confusion it has caused by
-its varying decisions; but the thought naturally occurs
-that if the Board had not been so strongly represented on
-the Commission, or if a body representative of the best
-guardians were called on to render a report, the supreme
-authority which has so long known the evil and done so
-little for its reform would have been roundly condemned.</p>
-
-<p>The Commissioners, however, pass their judgment on
-the system, and proceed to make their recommendations.
-There are two sets, those of the Majority and those of the
-Minority. They extend over 1238 large pages, and deal
-with thousands of details. A close examination is therefore
-impossible in a short article, but there are certain tests by
-which the principal recommendations may be tried. I
-would try just two such tests: (1) Do they make it possible
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">187</span>to relieve needs without demoralizing character? (2) Do
-they stimulate energy without raising the devil in human
-nature?</p>
-
-<p>The people who need relief are roughly divided into
-two great classes, “the unable” and “the able”. The
-recommendations of the Report—Majority and Minority—as
-they affect these two classes may be tried by the suggested
-test.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">The Unable.</span></h4>
-
-<p><abbr title="1">I.</abbr> “The unable” include the sick, the old, the children
-and infirm, and—although on this matter the Local
-Government Board gave uncertain guidance—widows with
-children. The present system, starting from the principle
-laid down in 1834, aims at deterring people from application
-by a barbed-wire fence of regulations. The sick can
-only have a doctor after inquiry by the relieving officer.
-The old and infirm are herded in a general workhouse
-together with people whose contact often wounds their
-self-respect. The children are isolated from other children,
-and treated as a class apart. Widows with children can
-only get means of maintenance by applying at the relief
-table in company with the degraded, by enduring the close
-inquisition of the relieving officer, and then by attendance
-at the Board of Guardians, where, standing in the middle
-of the room, they have to face their gaze, answer their
-questions, and at the end be grateful for a pittance of
-relief.</p>
-
-<p>This system does not, in the first place, relieve the necessities
-of the poor. Many of the sick defer their application
-till their condition becomes serious, or they set themselves
-to beg for hospital letters. Many of the old and infirm,
-rather than submit to the iniquities of the workhouse, live
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">188</span>a life of semi-starvation. Few of the widows who receive
-a few shillings a week for the maintenance of their families,
-are able unaided to look after their children and give them
-the necessary care and food.</p>
-
-<p>“A few Boards,” says the Minority Report, “restrict to
-the uttermost the grant of out relief to widows with
-children; many refuse it to the widow with only one child
-or with only two children, however young these may be;
-others grant only the quite inadequate sum of 1s. or 1s. 6d.
-a week per child, and nothing for the mother. Very few
-Guardians face the problem of how the widow’s children
-<span class="ellipsis">..</span>. can under these circumstances be properly reared<span class="ellipsis">...</span>.
-In at least 100,000 cases their children are growing up
-stunted, under-nourished, and to a large extent neglected,
-because the mother is so hard driven that she cannot properly
-attend to them. The irony of the situation appears
-in the fact that if the mother thereupon dies the children
-will probably be ‘boarded out’ with a payment of 4s. or 5s.
-per week each, or three or four times as much as the
-Guardians paid for them before, or else be taken into the
-Poor Law school or cottage homes at a cost of 12s. to 21s.
-per week each.”</p>
-
-<p>The vast sum of money—this £20,000,000 a year—which
-is spent misses to a large extent its object to give
-relief, and, further than this, causes widespread demoralization.
-The sick who have overcome their shrinking to face
-the relieving officer to ask for a medical officer, are found
-readily treading the same path to ask for other relief. The
-workhouses—one of which, lately built, has cost £126,612,
-or £286 a bed—“are,” we read, “largely responsible for
-the considerable increase of indoor pauperism,” and evidence
-is given “that life in a workhouse deteriorates
-mentally, morally, and physically the habitual inmates”.
-It must be so, indeed, when young girls are put “to sleep
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">189</span>with women admitted by the master to be frequently of bad
-character”.</p>
-
-<p>Out relief has been the battlefield of rival schools of
-administrators, and the Commissioners find in the system
-“of trying to compensate for inadequacy of knowledge by
-inadequacy of relief” two obvious points: “First, that when
-the applicants are honest in their statements they must
-often suffer great privations; and, second, that when they
-are dishonest, relief must often be given quite unnecessarily”.
-Evidence, too, is given of instances where out
-relief is being applied to subsidize dirt, disease and immorality,
-justifying the conclusion that it is “a very potent
-influence in perpetuating pauperism and propagating
-disease”.</p>
-
-<p>When the Commissioners have admitted that much has
-been done by wise Boards of Guardians in providing infirmaries
-for the sick which are as good as hospitals, and in
-administering out relief with sympathy and discrimination,
-the conclusion must still remain that the present system
-does not relieve the necessities of the poor, while it tends
-to spread demoralization. It fails under the suggested test.</p>
-
-<p>The Commissioners’ proposed reforms must be tried by
-the same tests. Their proposals include (1) the constitution
-of a new authority, and (2) the principles on which that
-authority is to act. The principles—keeping in mind for
-the moment the class of “the unable”—recommended by
-the Majority and Minority are practically identical. In the
-words of the Majority:—</p>
-
-<p>1. The treatment of the poor who apply for public
-assistance should be adapted to the needs of the individual,
-and if constitutional should be governed by classification.</p>
-
-<p>2. The system of public assistance thus established
-should include processes of help which would be preventive,
-curative and restorative.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">190</span>3. Every effort should be made to foster the instincts of
-independence and self-maintenance amongst those assisted.</p>
-
-<p>The same principles appear when the Minority Report
-urges the (1) “paramount importance of subordinating
-mere relief to the specialized treatment of each separate
-class, with the object of preventing or curing its distress”.</p>
-
-<p>(2) “The expediency of ultimately associating this
-specialized treatment of each class with the standing
-machinery for enforcing both before and after the period
-of distress the fulfilment of personal and family obligations.”</p>
-
-<p>The differences between the Reports are manifest in that
-the Minority is more anxious to secure a co-ordination of
-public authorities, but both alike agree that relief must be
-thorough and regard primarily the necessities of the individual.
-The general workhouse is therefore to be broken
-up, and separate institutions set apart for children, the old,
-the sick, mothers, and feeble-minded. Out relief is to be
-given on uniform principles and under strict supervision,
-whether by skilled officials or by a registrar. (The majority
-make the interesting—if it be practicable—suggestion that
-there shall be proscribed districts in which no out relief
-shall be given, on account of their slum character.) The
-sick are to have the means of treatment brought within
-their reach, whether it be by the officer of the Health Committee
-or by means of provident dispensaries. The two
-Reports often differ as to the means by which the ends are
-to be reached, and the consideration of the means they propose
-would make matter for many articles. But their main
-difference is as to the constitution of the authority which
-will apply their principles to practice.</p>
-
-<p>They both agree in making the County Council the
-source of the authority and in taking the county as the
-area. The Majority would create, by a somewhat intricate
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">191</span>system of co-optation and nomination, a “Public Assistance
-Authority,” with local “assistance committees,” to deal
-with all cases of need. The Minority would authorize the
-existing committees of the Council—the Education, the
-Health, the Asylums, and the Parks Committees—to deal
-with such cases of need as may meet them in their ordinary
-work. The Majority would create an <i>ad hoc</i> authority, for
-the purpose of giving such relief; the Minority would leave
-relief to the direction of committees whose primary concern
-is education or health, the feeble-minded or the old. The
-Majority is, further, at great pains to establish a Voluntary
-Aid Council, which shall be representative of the charitable
-funds and charitable bodies of the area. This council is to
-have a recognized position, and to work in close co-operation
-with the Public Assistance authority. The Minority,
-though willing to use voluntary charity, suggests no plan
-for its control or organization. This omission in a scheme
-otherwise so complete is somewhat remarkable. The administration
-of the Poor Law may account for most of the
-mischief in the condition of the people, but the administration
-of charity is also to a large extent responsible. This
-extent of charity is unknown. In London alone it is said
-to amount to more than £7,000,000 a year, and much
-money is given of which no record is possible. Hitherto
-all attempts at organization have failed, and it is quite
-clear that no organization can be enforced. The Majority
-Report suggests a scheme by which charitable bodies and
-persons may be partly tempted and partly constrained to
-co-operate with official bodies. Mr. Nunn, in an interesting
-note, suggests a further development of a plan by which
-they might be given a more definite place in the organization
-of the future. The establishment of Public Welfare
-Societies in so many localities is a proof that charitable
-forces are drawing together, and gives hope that if a place
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">192</span>is found for them in the established system they may become
-powerful for good and not for mischief.</p>
-
-<p>The recommendations, however, which we are now considering
-are not dependent on the establishment of a
-Voluntary Aid Council; they depend on the principles, as
-to which both Reports agree. Those principles satisfy the
-suggested test. If relief in every case be subordinate to
-treatment, if it be given with care and with full consideration
-for each individual, there must be good hope that the
-relief will help and not demoralize, stimulate and not antagonize
-the recipient. Everything, however, depends on
-securing an authority and administrators who are willing
-and able to apply the principles to action. The Majority
-aim, by the substitution of nomination and co-optation for
-direct election, to get an authority which will do with new
-wisdom the old duties of Boards of Guardians. The
-Minority evidently fear that, if any body of people is established
-as a relief agency, no change in the method of appointment
-will prevent the intrusion of the old abuses.
-The Majority believe that it is the persons on the present
-Boards which have caused the breakdown, and that if all
-Boards were as good as the best Boards there would have
-been no need for the Commission. The Minority, on the
-other hand, believe that it is the system which is at fault,
-and that a single authority created to deal with destitution
-only must fail when it is called on to deal with many-sided
-human nature in its various struggles and trials.</p>
-
-<p>The difference is one on which much may be said on both
-sides. It may be argued that a committee and officials
-whose special and daily duty it is to deal with cases of distress
-will become experts in such dealing; and it may be
-equally argued that experts tend to think more of the perfection
-of their system than of the peculiar needs of individuals,
-so that their action becomes rigid and incapable of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">193</span>growth. The Charity Organization Committees are such
-experts, and although they have done service not always
-recognized, they have become unpopular because they have
-seemed to be more careful as to their methods than as to
-the needs of the poor. It may be argued that the Education
-and Health and other committees have neither the
-time nor the experience to administer relief to the cases of
-distress with which their duties bring them into contact;
-and it may equally be argued that it is because they have
-in view education or health that their ways of relief will be
-elastic and human, and therefore guided to the best ends.
-It may be argued that, as the important matter is to check
-the use of public funds by necessitous persons, therefore it
-is the better plan to have in each county one authority
-skilled in dealing with such persons. It may, on the other
-hand, be argued that as the more important matter is to
-prevent any one becoming a necessitous person, therefore
-it is the better plan to let those authorities which have dealings
-with people as to education, or health, or any other
-object, deal with them also when they are threatened or
-overtaken by distress. Knowledge is more necessary than
-skill, and the people who need their neighbour’s guidance
-do not form a special class in the community. Society is
-better regarded as a body of co-operators than as a community
-divided into “an assistance body” and “the assisted”.</p>
-
-<p>The Majority Report in its recommendation is discounted
-by the fact that the Boards of Guardians—an <i>ad hoc</i> body—have
-failed; and the Minority Report is discounted by
-the fact that there is a science of relief for which long training
-is necessary. Both alike seem conscious that success
-must really depend on the character of the administrators;
-the Majority therefore recommend many precautions as
-to the appointment of clerks and relieving officers; the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">194</span>Minority frankly leave the control of relief in the hands of
-a registrar, whose duty it will be to register every case of
-relief recommended by any committee, to assess the amount
-which ought to be repaid, and to proceed to the recovery
-of the amount. The registrar would therefore, by means of
-his own officials, make inquiries into the circumstances of
-every case, and would put his administration of out relief or
-of, as it is called, “home aliment” on a basis of uniform
-and judicial impartiality.</p>
-
-<p>The Minority Report has the advantage of scientific precision,
-but it is somewhat hard on the spirit of compromise
-so long characteristic of English procedure, and it takes
-small account of the disturbance which may be caused by
-the vagaries of weak human nature, and it leaves charity
-without any control. The Majority has the advantage of
-securing some continuity with present practices, but in the
-ingenious attempt to conciliate diverse opinions and to put
-new pieces on to the old garment, some rents seem to have
-been made which it will be hard to fill.</p>
-
-<p>The public will, during the next few months, be called
-upon to decide as to the authority to direct the relief of the
-poor. The decision cannot be easily made, and ought not
-to be attempted without much time and thought. One of
-the tests by which the two systems may be tried during the
-necessary delay is, I submit, whether (1) an <i>ad hoc</i> committee
-with its subject expert officials or (2) committees
-appointed for special objects with an independent expert
-official, are the more likely to administer relief without
-spreading demoralization, and to stimulate energy without
-rousing animosity.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">The Able.</span></h4>
-
-<p><abbr title="2">II.</abbr> The failure of the present system with the able, the
-vagrant, the loafer, and the unemployed, who are physically
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">195</span>and mentally strong, is the most marked; and reform is
-an immediate necessity. The Government can hardly go
-through another Session without doing something to prevent
-the growth of pauperism among comparatively young men,
-to check the habit of vagrancy which threatens to become
-violent, and to meet the demands of the honest unemployed.</p>
-
-<p>The present system deals with the able-bodied by means
-of the workhouse—the labour yard, the casual ward, the
-test workhouse—and also by means of out relief and the
-Unemployed Workmen’s Act. The Commission—Majority
-and Minority—condemn each of these means.</p>
-
-<p><em>The workhouse</em>, we are told, creates the loafer. “The
-moment this class of man”—i.e., the easy-going, healthy
-fellow who feels no call to work—“becomes an inmate so
-surely does he deteriorate into a worse character still”; and
-we read also that “the features in the present workhouse
-system make it not only repellent (as is perhaps necessary),
-but also, as is unnecessary, degrading. Of all the spectacles
-of human demoralization now existing in these islands, there
-can scarcely be anything worse than the scene presented by
-the men’s day ward of a large urban workhouse during the
-long hours of leisure on week-days or the whole of Sundays.
-Through the clouds of tobacco-smoke that fill the long low
-room, the visitor gradually becomes aware of the presence of
-one or two hundred wholly unoccupied males, of every age
-between fifteen and ninety—strong and vicious men, men in
-all stages of recovery from debauch, weedy youths of weak
-intellect, old men dirty and disreputable <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. worthy old
-men, men subject to fits, occasional monstrosities or dwarfs,
-the feeble-minded of every kind, the respectable labourer
-prematurely invalided, the hardened, sodden loafer, and the
-temporarily unemployed man who has found no better refuge.
-In such places there are congregated this winter
-certainly more than 10,000 healthy, able-bodied men.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">196</span><em>The labour yard</em>, we learn, tends to become the habitual
-resort of the incapables, and “a stay there will demoralize
-even the best workmen”. “In short,” says the Minority
-Report, “whether as regards those whom it includes or
-those whom it excludes for relief, the labour yard is a hopeless
-failure, and positively encourages the worst kind of
-under-employment.” The expense of this failure is so
-great that in one yard the stone broken cost the Guardians
-£7 a ton.</p>
-
-<p><em>Casual wards</em> have long been known as the nurseries of
-a certain class of vagrant—men and women who become
-familiar with their methods and settle down to their use.
-They fail as resting-places for honest seekers after work as
-they travel from town to town, and they fail also—even
-when made harsher than prisons—to stimulate energy.
-Poor Law reformers, like Mr. Vallance, have through many
-years called for their abolition.</p>
-
-<p><em>Test workhouses</em> represent the supreme effort of the ingenuity
-of Poor Law officials, and are still recommended to
-Guardians. In these establishments everything which could
-possibly attract is excluded. The house is organized after
-the fashion of a prison, although the officials have neither
-the training nor the knowledge considered to be necessary
-for men who hold their fellow-men in restraint; hard and
-uncongenial work is enforced; the diet is of the plainest,
-and no association during leisure hours is permitted. The
-test is so severe that the house is apt to remain empty till
-the Guardians, overborne by the expense, admit inmates too
-weak to bear the strain, who therefore break down the
-system. The inspectors claim credit for success, because
-applications are prevented, but the Minority Report deals
-with this claim in an admirably written examination of the
-whole position. It is no success, for on account of the
-severity more men are driven on to the streets to provoke
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">197</span>the charity of the unthinking; and it is a failure if such treatment
-adds to the sum of envy, hatred and malice.</p>
-
-<p>The Commissioners of 1834 aimed at abolishing <em>out-door
-relief</em> for the able-bodied, and to this end the central authority
-and its inspectorate has worked, but exceptions have been
-allowed “on account of sudden or urgent necessity,” and
-now it is reported that 10,000 different men, mostly between
-the ages of twenty-five and fifty-five, receive such relief in the
-course of the year, while at least 10,000 or 20,000 more able-bodied
-men are allowed out relief by the special authority of
-the Local Government Board. These numbers tend to increase,
-and will go on increasing, because nothing is done to
-give them “such physical or mental restorative treatment as
-will fit them for employment”.</p>
-
-<p>The means, therefore, by which the Poor Law has attempted
-to deal with the able-bodied may be said to have
-disastrously failed. Distress has grown, and the people
-have been demoralized. Ill-will threatens to become violent.
-The nation, in a hurry to do something, passed the Unemployed
-Act of 1905, and the Commissioners deal faithfully
-with the work of the Distress Committees created under
-that Act. There is much in the work which is suggestive,
-and many recommendations, such as those which affect the
-use of labour and farm colonies, are founded on their experience.
-But the Commissioners are unanimous in the conclusion
-that relief works are economically useless. “Either,”
-they say, “ordinary work is undertaken, in which case it is
-merely forestalled <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. or else it is sham work, which we
-believe to be even more demoralizing than direct relief.”
-“Municipal relief works” (to which the work given by district
-councils has approximated) “have not assisted, but
-rather prejudiced, the better class of workman <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. they
-have encouraged the casual labourers by giving them a
-further supply of the casual work which is so dear to their
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">198</span>hearts and so demoralizing to their character. They have
-encouraged and not helped the incapables; they have discouraged
-and not helped the capables.”</p>
-
-<p>The present system of dealing with the able-bodied,
-whether by the means adopted by the Poor Law or by those
-introduced under the Unemployed Act, fails under our test.
-It does not relieve those who need relief, it spreads wide
-demoralization, and it stirs ill-will.</p>
-
-<p>The Commissioners recognize the failure, and recommend
-a new system. The two Reports agree in their main recommendations.
-There is need for a check to be placed
-on the employment of boys “in uneducative and blind-alley
-occupations,” and for the better education of children, both
-in elementary and continuation schools. There should be
-a national system of labour exchanges working automatically
-all over the country, so that workers permanently displaced
-might easily pass to new occupations, travelling expenses,
-if necessary, being paid or advanced out of the common
-purse, and so that the need of work might be tested by the
-offer of a situation. The Minority Report would enforce
-on certain employers the use of the register. Both Reports
-agree that the work given out by Government departments
-and by local authorities might be regularized, so that most
-public work would be done when there was least demand
-for labour by private employers. If at any time afforestation
-was undertaken, this also might be put on the market
-as the labour barometer showed labour to be in excess of
-the demand. Both agree also that there should be some
-scheme of unemployment insurance, and that with this object
-subsidies might be given to the unemployment funds
-of trade unions.</p>
-
-<p>These recommendations, if adopted, might be expected
-to do much to prevent many of the evils of casual labour
-and unemployment from falling on future generations; but
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">199</span>to meet existing needs the Commissioners recommend emigration
-and industrial training in institutions, some close to
-the homes of the workers, some in the country, some farm
-colonies from which workers would be free to come and go,
-some detention colonies in which they would be detained
-for more or less long periods.</p>
-
-<p>There would thus be established, says the Majority Report,
-in every county four organizations with the common
-object of maintaining or restoring the workmen’s independence:
-(<i>a</i>) An organization for insurance against unemployment,
-(<i>b</i>) a labour exchange, (<i>c</i>) a voluntary aid committee,
-(<i>d</i>) an authority which will deal with individuals, according
-to their needs, by emigration, by migration, or by means
-of day training institutions, farm colonies and detention
-colonies. The Minority would secure the same provision
-by means of one organization in each county.</p>
-
-<p>The workman who, being out of work or unfit for any
-work on the labour register, or for whom no work is possible,
-would be referred to the official who, by inquiry,
-would decide whether he should be trained, mentally or
-physically, in some near institution, or whether he should
-be sent to some special and more distant labour colony, his
-family receiving sufficient money for their daily support.
-If, having had a fair opportunity, he refused to work, or if
-he resumed the practice of mendicity or vagrancy, he would,
-by a magistrate’s order, be committed to a detention colony,
-where, again, he would be given the opportunity during
-three or four years of gaining the power of self-support.</p>
-
-<p>This in a few words represents the dealing practically recommended
-by both Reports. It meets the test which the
-present system fails to meet. The relief is in every case
-provided which need demands, and, as it is accompanied by
-training, demoralization is prevented. At the same time,
-as no relief is given without training, every one is stimulated,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">200</span>while no one can have a sense of injustice. Even
-those committed to detention colonies are so committed
-that they may have a chance of restoration. The scheme,
-it will be observed, deals only with those mentally and
-physically fit to earn their own living. Those not so fit
-must be classed among the “unable,” and receive treatment
-which may be compared with that recommended for the
-feeble-minded.</p>
-
-<p>The two Reports thus agree in their main recommendations,
-though there are important differences which demand
-subsequent consideration. The principal difference is that,
-whereas the Majority Report would make the authority
-controlling the use of training institutions subject to the
-county council, the Minority would make it subject only to
-a central department, such as the Board of Trade or a
-Labour Minister, who would appoint an official in every
-county who would superintend the labour registry, the
-organization for insurance against unemployment, and also
-the use of the training institutions.</p>
-
-<p>The weight of argument would seem to lie with the
-Minority’s recommendation. One authority—with whom
-might easily be associated an advisory board from the employers
-and workmen of the district, and a council representing
-local charities—having the control of the labour
-registry, would be best fitted to deal with individuals wanting
-work; and a national authority, having knowledge of
-training institutions all over the country, would have the
-best opportunity for putting a man in the institution most
-likely to meet his needs.</p>
-
-<p>It might, indeed, be said in conclusion of the whole
-matter that the recommendations of the Majority Report as
-to the able-bodied might be adopted, with the substitution
-of a national for a local authority in the control of the
-use and management of the training institutions; or that
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">201</span>those of the Minority might be adopted, with certain modifications
-and additions suggested in the Majority Report.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">The First Thing To Be Done.</span></h4>
-
-<p>When there is such a body of agreement, when that body
-of agreement applies to the treatment of the able-bodied
-whose needs are most pressing, and when the recommendations
-can be adopted with very little interference with existing
-machinery, the obvious course seems to be the immediate
-dealing with the unemployed.</p>
-
-<p>There is always a danger lest public interest should be
-diverted to discuss principles, and it may be that the advocates
-of a “new Poor Law” and those advocating “no
-Poor Law” may fill the air with their cries while nothing is
-done for the poor, just as the advocates of different principles
-of religious education have prevented knowledge
-reaching the children. The first thing to do before this discussion
-begins, and before the Guardians and their friends,
-obtrusively or subtly, make their protest felt, is, I submit,
-to take the action which affects the able-bodied. There is
-no doubt that there should be some form of more continuous
-education enforced on boys and girls up to the age of
-eighteen. There is no doubt that there should be labour
-registries, some form of unemployment insurance, and some
-regularization of industry, which must be undertaken by a
-national authority. It would not be unreasonable to ask
-that the same national authority should organize training
-institutions, and through its own local official select individuals
-for training. The Guardians, inasmuch as they would
-be relieved of the care of casual wards and of provision in
-their workhouses for the physically and mentally strong,
-might fairly be called on to provide the necessary payment
-to keep the families during the period when the wage-earners
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">202</span>were in training. This treatment of the able-bodied
-in a thorough way is suggested by the Report, and offers a
-compact scheme of reform, which may be carried through as
-a whole without dislocating existing machinery.</p>
-
-<p>If this be successfully done, then another step might later
-be taken in dealing with the children or with the sick; and,
-last of all, when the public mind has become familiar with
-the respective needs of different classes, it might be decided
-whether, as the Majority recommend, there should be a
-special relieving body, or whether, as the Minority recommend,
-relief should be undertaken by other bodies in the
-course of their own particular work.</p>
-
-<p>The public, or at any rate the political, mind is always
-most interested in machinery, and when the cry of “rights”
-is raised passion is likewise roused. If proposals are now
-made to abolish Guardians the interest excited will distract
-attention, and many forces will be moved for their protection.</p>
-
-<p>The chief thing at present is, it seems to me, to draw the
-public mind to consider the condition of the people as it is
-laid bare in this Report, to make them feel ashamed that
-the Poor Law has allowed, and even encouraged, the condition,
-and to be persistent in insisting on reform. The way
-to reform is never the easy or short way; it always demands
-sacrifice, and the public will not make the hard
-sacrifice of thought till they feel the sufferings and wrongs
-of the people. The public will, I believe, be made both to
-feel and to think if the first thing proposed is a complete
-scheme for dealing with the able-bodied on lines recommended
-by both Reports.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">203</span>
- <h3 title="WIDOWS WITH CHILDREN UNDER THE POOR LAW." id="ch19">WIDOWS WITH CHILDREN UNDER THE POOR LAW.<a href="#f191" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>September, 1910.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f191">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch19" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-A Paper read at the Church Congress, Cambridge.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">The</span> last time that I addressed this Congress of “discreet
-and learned persons” was three years ago at Yarmouth,
-when I read a paper on “The Ethics of the Poor Law”. It
-was not a specially good nor interesting paper, but it
-brought me both letters and interviews, with the result
-that now the lives of many people, both children and old
-folk, are better and happier. God grant that this evening’s
-discussion may be as fruitful.</p>
-<p class="sp1para">First let us face the magnitude of the subject for discussion—“Widows
-with Children,” not out-of-works, not illegitimate,
-not deserted wives, all these classes are excluded,
-and our subject narrowed down to married women, with
-their legitimate offspring, who have lost the family’s bread-winner.
-Of these, to quote the Poor Law Commissioners’
-Report,<a id="r192" /><a href="#f192" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 2"><sup>[2]</sup></a> in
-January, 1907, there were 34,749 widows and
-96,342 children in receipt of relief. The large majority of
-these persons were receiving assistance in their own homes,
-there being only 1240 widows and 2998 children in receipt
-of indoor relief in the workhouses.</p>
-<div class="footnote" id="f192">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r192" title="Return to text">2</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Majority Report, pp. 35, 36.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Let us, then, follow some of these 96,342 children into
-their homes, and see what the nation is paying for:—</p>
-
-<p class="sp05para" id="r193"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">204</span>
-The first case is quoted from the Majority Report:<a href="#f193" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 3"><sup>[3]</sup></a>—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>(4) “Widow with seven children, none working. Received
-10s. per week relief. Rent £5 10s. Said to be
-paid by friends. I visited the home, and found it in a very
-dirty, I might say filthy, condition. The woman is a sloven.
-She went about the house in a dazed manner. I tried to
-get particulars of the way she spent her money, but found
-it impossible. One of the children was at home from
-school ill, but had not been seen by a doctor. It is obvious
-<span class="ellipsis">..</span>. that a family of eight persons could not live on 10s.
-per week.”</p>
-
-<p>(5) “Mrs. W., a widow with five children, receives 10s.
-per week. She is a notorious drunkard, and has lately
-been turned out of a house in a street where drunkards
-abound, because her drunken habits disturbed the whole
-street. When we called she refused to open the door; the
-relieving officer concluded she was drunk.”</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f193">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r193" title="Return to text">3</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Majority Report, p. 150.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>That the Local Government Board inspectors are and
-have been fully aware that such conditions exist is shown
-again and again by their own words.</p>
-
-<p class="sp05para" id="r194">Mr. Baldwyn Fleming said:<a href="#f194" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 4"><sup>[4]</sup></a>—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“There were many cases receiving outdoor relief where
-the circumstances <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. were very undesirable<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. The
-relieving officers were well acquainted with the cases.”</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f194">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r194" title="Return to text">4</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Ibid.</i>, p. 151.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Mr. Wethered reported:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Some were clean and tidy, but in very many instances
-the rooms were dirty, ill kept, and sometimes verminous”.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Mr. Bagenal’s experience speaks of the out-relief class as
-“Bankrupt in pocket and character,” and describes their
-homes in these words:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Cleanliness and ventilation are not considered of any account.
-The furniture is always of the most dilapidated
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">205</span>kind. The beds generally consist of dirty palliasses or
-mattresses with very scanty covering. The atmosphere is
-offensive, even fetid, and the clothing of the individuals—old
-and young—is ragged and filthy. The children are
-neglected, and furnish the complaints of the National
-Society for Prevention of Cruelty to Children.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Mr. Williams said:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I found far too much intemperance, and sometimes even
-drunkenness, in cases in which out-relief was being granted<span class="ellipsis">...</span>.
-Closely allied to it were filth, both of persons and
-surroundings, and sadder even was the neglect and resultant
-cruelty to the children, who were ill-fed and ill-clad.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“Exceptional cases!” I hear you say; “why dwell on
-them?” So I will read you the words of the Majority
-Report, ever ready to take the lenient view of the work of
-the Guardians. Such cases, it reports, “occur with sufficient
-frequency to be a very potent influence in perpetuating
-pauperism and propagating disease”.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps, however, figures will convey more startlingly the
-facts. In order to classify the investigators divided the
-mothers into four classes<a id="r195" /><a href="#f195" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 5"><sup>[5]</sup></a>—<abbr title="1">I.</abbr>, good;
-<abbr title="2">II.</abbr>, mediocre; <abbr title="3">III.</abbr>,
-very unsatisfactory, i.e., slovenly and slipshod; <abbr title="4">IV.</abbr>, bad,
-i.e., drunkards, immoral, wilfully neglecting their children.</p>
-<div class="footnote" id="f195">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r195" title="Return to text">5</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Minority Report, p. 753.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>The percentages in the rural districts were 19 per cent in
-the third class, 6 per cent in the fourth. “In the towns
-conditions were, as a rule, much worse.” In one urban
-union 18 per cent came under Class <abbr title="4">IV.</abbr> In another great
-union the appalling percentage rose to 22 per cent. To
-sum up, the number of children on out relief on 1 January,
-1908, in “very unsatisfactory” homes in England and
-Wales, was more than 30,000; while 20,000 were being
-paid for in homes “wholly unfit for children”. “We can
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">206</span>add nothing,” say the Commissioners, “to the force of these
-terrible figures.”</p>
-
-<p>Neither are the evils only moral ones. “Investigation,”
-write the authors of the Minority Report, “as to the physical
-condition of these outdoor relief children in London,
-Liverpool, and elsewhere brings to light innumerable cases
-of untreated sores and eczema, untreated erysipelas and
-swollen glands, untreated ringworm, heart disease, and
-phthisis,” a seed crop the products of which are the unemployed
-and unemployable.</p>
-
-<p>But now I would propose that we leave these haunts of
-evil and go to see the home of a respectable widow who
-is endeavouring to bring up her children to be God-fearing
-and industrious.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Mother a seamstress, earning about 9s. a week, and the
-Board of Guardians granting another 6s. Four children
-(eleven, nine, six, and two) made happy by the motherly love
-of a steady, methodical and careful woman, who, however,
-cannot support them except by working unceasingly, as
-well as by getting charitable help towards their clothes
-from the Church, country holidays from the Children’s
-Country Holiday Fund, official help in dinners from the
-Educational Authority, and medical help from the health
-visitor or nurse engaged by the Town Council.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>What a confusion of sources, what want of inquiry,
-what danger of overlapping; five organizations to aid
-the same family, three of them State supplied, two
-supported by religious or philanthropic persons. On this
-confusion, which is not only extravagant to the ratepayers,
-but corrupting to the character of the recipients, the Minority
-Report lays great stress.</p>
-
-<p>Time forbids me to give more examples, but with this
-vision of wholesome family affection let us read with attention
-the following words from the Minority Report:—<a id="r196" /><a href="#f196" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 6"><sup>[6]</sup></a></p>
-
-<div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">207</span></div>
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“In the vast majority of cases the amount allowed by
-the Guardians is not adequate”. “The children are under-nourished,
-many of them poorly dressed, and many barefooted<span class="ellipsis">...</span>.
-The decent mother’s one desire is to keep
-herself and her children out of the workhouse. She will,
-if allowed, try to do this on an impossibly inadequate sum,
-until both she and her children become mentally and
-physically deteriorated.” <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. “It must be remembered,”
-adds a medical expert, “that semi-starvation is not a
-painful process, and its victims do not recognize what is
-happening.”</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f196">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r196" title="Return to text">6</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Minority Report, p. 747.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Do not all of us who know our parishes know that
-woman? Her poverty, her strenuousness, her patience,
-her fatigue, her hopefulness, her periods of hopelessness,
-and above, below, around all her Mother-love and her faith
-in God—and what is the result of her efforts, her heroism?
-Children strong, healthy, skilled, able to support her in her
-old age and themselves rear a family worthy of such noble
-moral ancestry? No! her reward will be to see her children
-weakly men and undergrown girls, all alike in having
-no stamina, among the first to be pushed out of the labour
-market. All the love, all the industry, all the heroism
-ever showered by devoted mothers cannot take the place
-of milk and bread and air and warmth.</p>
-
-<p>But, it may be asked, “Why does this careful mother so
-dread the workhouse; there, at least, although she herself
-would be deprived of her freedom, she would know that
-her children were well cared for!” To reply to this question
-it will be necessary once more to turn to the ponderous
-Blue Book and search the 1238 pages for descriptions of
-what goes on behind the great walls of those pauper
-palaces.</p>
-
-<p>It is true that the widow has not read the reports nor
-even heard of the Poor Law Commission and its colossal
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">208</span>labours, worthy of the gratitude and reverence of all who
-love their country. But these things filter out though not
-couched in official language. “I can’t a-bear of them to
-go, ma’am,” says some work-beaten mother. “There’s
-Mrs. Jones, she lost her baby when they had to go in, as
-her husband was took with galloping consumption, and her
-Billy got bad eyes and Susie seemed to lose all her gaiety
-like.” “No! I’d rather go hungry than see them that
-way and not be able to kiss ’em when they cries.” But is
-it true? It is understandable that individual homes which
-the Guardians only subsidize may not always be all that
-they could wish, but when the children are entirely under
-their care surely what this poor woman alleges cannot be
-true. Alas! it is far less than the truth. Let us read
-again and see how the children, not being babies, fare when
-they are kept in the workhouses.</p>
-
-<p>The following are extracts:<a id="r197" /><a href="#f197" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 7"><sup>[7]</sup></a>—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The children are not kept separate from the adult
-inmates. The children’s wards left on our minds a marked
-impression of confusion and defective administration<span class="ellipsis">...</span>.
-The eyes of some of the children seemed suspiciously
-‘weak’ and in two or three cases to be suffering from some
-serious inflammation.”</p>
-
-<p>“The chief defect here, as in so many workhouses, is in
-the accommodation for the children. The girls use the
-sewing-room as a day-room. The older children go to
-school one and a half miles distant, taking bread and butter
-or jam with them, and dining on their return when the other
-inmates have their tea. The dining-hall is used by all inmates
-at the same time<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. Altogether, there is great
-need for reform in the treatment of the children.”</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f197">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r197" title="Return to text">7</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-Majority Report, pp. 186, 187.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>It is true that children of school age maintained in the
-workhouses attend the public elementary schools, save for
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">209</span>651 who are still educated within workhouse walls, but the
-school hours account only for about one-third of the children’s
-waking existence, and during the other two-thirds,
-which include the long winter evenings, Saturdays and
-Sundays, and all school holidays, the workhouse is still
-their only home.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We cannot,” says the Minority Report,<a id="r198" /><a href="#f198" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 8"><sup>[8]</sup></a> “too emphatically
-express our disagreement with those who accept this
-[the attendance of children reared in workhouses at public
-elementary schools] as any excuse for retaining children in
-the workhouse at all<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. We paid special attention to
-this point of the provision for children on our visits to
-workhouses, large and small, in town and country, in England,
-Wales, Scotland and Ireland. We saw hardly any
-workhouse or poorhouse in which the accommodation for
-children was at all satisfactory. We unhesitatingly agree
-with the Inspector of the Local Government Board, who
-gave it to us as his opinion that ‘no serious argument in
-defence of the workhouse system is possible. The person
-who would urge that the atmosphere and associations of a
-workhouse are a fit up-bringing for a child merely proves
-his incapacity to express an intelligent opinion upon the
-matter.’”</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f198">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r198" title="Return to text">8</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-Minority Report, pp. 802, 803.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“We are strongly of opinion,” says the Majority Report,<a id="r199" /><a href="#f199" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 9"><sup>[9]</sup></a>
-“that effective steps should be taken to secure that the
-maintenance of children in the workhouse be no longer recognized
-as a legitimate way of dealing with them.”</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f199">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r199" title="Return to text">9</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Majority Report, p. 187.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>This evil is of long standing; for a dozen years the
-pressing necessity for the removal from such surroundings
-of these State-dependent children has been represented to
-successive Presidents of the Local Government Board, and
-to Boards of Guardians, and the saddest fact of all is that,
-at the date of the latest Local Government Board Return,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">210</span>24,175 children (more than one-third of the total number
-who are entirely maintained out of the rates) are still being
-reared in this unsuitable environment, actually a larger
-number than in any preceding year since 1899.</p>
-
-<p>To all those gentlemen who have read the Royal Commissioners’
-Report I must apologize for quoting it so largely.
-Those who have not read it will recognize something of the
-extreme interest of its contents and take it for their winter’s
-reading.</p>
-
-<p>But to return again to the Widows and Children on out
-relief. The Majority Report says:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The Guardians give relief without knowing whether the
-recipients can manage on it; they go on giving it without
-knowing how they are managing on it.” “In short, there
-is a widespread system of trying to compensate for inadequacy
-of knowledge by inadequacy of relief.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>This is a severe condemnation both of the Guardians and
-the Local Government Board, whose inspectors we know
-had been long aware of the facts. Moved by the outcry
-caused by the publication of these revelations, a circular on
-the “Administration of Outdoor Relief” was issued by the
-Central Authority last March to the Boards of Guardians,
-calling on them for greater discrimination in the selection
-of cases and the adoption of uniform principles.</p>
-
-<p>That these demands were not unnecessary is shown by
-the following instances of unequal treatment given in the
-Reports:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“In one case a widow with four dependent children, and
-one boy earning 15s. a week, with a total income to the
-family of 25s., received 7s. from the Guardians, bringing
-their total up to 32s. a week for six persons. One Board
-gives 6d. and 5 lb. of flour per week for each child;
-another family received 5s. a week, bringing their total to
-51s. 6d. per week; another 6s. a week for the mother and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">211</span>three children (all little tots) with ‘no other known income’.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The action of Boards on this circular has been varied.
-Some have declared themselves “satisfied with their proceedings,”
-and that “no alteration is required”. Others
-have set to work to settle a scale of payments for certain
-defined cases; but though every one must rejoice that a circular
-(though a belated one) has been issued from the Local
-Government Board, and that the Guardians are moving, yet
-the proposals do not seem to me to meet the case. The
-world cannot be divided into good or bad, white or black—infinite
-are the shades of grey. More, much more, than
-adequacy or uniformity of payment is required. Many
-classes of help are needed. I would suggest as possible
-solutions of this difficult problem (and my long experience
-of thirty-three years’ life in Whitechapel does not allow me
-to minimize the difficulty) the following plans:—</p>
-
-<p><abbr title="1">I.</abbr>—The children could be boarded out with their own
-mothers. We have to travel back to Egypt to see how well
-it succeeded when tried on Moses, and it succeeded because
-it obtains for the child the one essential basis of all education—i.e.
-Love. The plan is based on quite a simple
-principle.</p>
-
-<p>Women have to be engaged by the State to rear children—it
-is done in workhouses, barrack schools, scattered
-homes, village communities, and in boarding-out. Why
-should not some of the women so engaged be the children’s
-own mothers? The mother so employed must be of good
-character, and have thrifty, home-making virtues, the same
-sort of qualities, in short, as are sought for in the foster
-parents of boarded-out children. She would be moved into
-the country, or into a healthy suburb, and, if her own family
-is not large enough adequately to employ her, she could
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">212</span>have one or two more children or babies sent to her. She
-would be under close inspection, and the Boarding-out
-Committee would make her feel that, though the children
-were her own, yet it was the duty of the State to see that
-she did her duty to them on a high plane.</p>
-
-<p>For some families this seems to me the best of all possible
-solutions, but I have to recognize that it is not practicable
-except for self-respecting worthy women.</p>
-
-<p><abbr title="2">II.</abbr>—To suit those affectionate mothers who are too untutored
-to do without set tasks of employment and daily
-supervision, there might be some sort of modification of the
-plan. Some twenty of these women could be placed in
-small cottages, or tenements in a quadrangle, and employed
-for part of the day at one of the giant official institutions for
-the infirm or imbecile which are scattered all over the
-country. The children could be kept at school for dinner,
-and care taken that the women’s hours of labour were short
-enough to enable them to home-make morning and evening
-when the children return from school.</p>
-
-<p><abbr title="3">III.</abbr>—For other women, who, as the Report says, are
-“too ignorant to be effective mothers,” and yet whose only
-thought is their children, teaching colonies might be established,
-the mothers putting themselves into training, with the
-hope of being ultimately counted as worthy to rear their own
-children at the expense of the State—a goal to strive for when
-they have mastered the skilled trade of “mothering”.</p>
-
-<p><abbr title="4">IV.</abbr>—For women who are already employed at suitable
-work, special arrangements could be made as the condition
-of their receiving out-relief, either concerning their hours of
-labour or to secure the household assistance necessary to
-maintain their children as children of every class ought to
-be kept. I can imagine certain employers, such as the ever
-public-spirited Mr. Cadbury, being willing to arrange shifts
-of labour to suit these needs.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">213</span><abbr title="5">V.</abbr>—From other mothers
-the children should be removed
-altogether, and for these children I should counsel emigration,
-for all workers can cite cases of the ruin of young
-people, when they reach wage-earning ages, by bad parents
-claiming their rights over them.</p>
-
-<p>To turn these suggestions into facts would take much
-work, thought, patience, prayer. “Each case,” as the Majority
-report says, “seems to call for special and individual
-attention.” But is it not worth while? Can we as Christians
-allow the present condition of things to go on?</p>
-
-<p>Gentlemen, there are 178,520 children in your parishes
-being more or less supported by the State. Do the clergy
-know them? What have the clergy done about them?
-Have many joined the Board of Guardians? Have they
-remonstrated at the inadequacy of the relief given? Have
-they made themselves even acquainted with the facts of
-Poor Law administration in their unions? The other day,
-I, by chance, met a clergyman—a nice man, vicar of a big
-church in a large watering-place. His conversation showed
-he was alert and up-to-date on all controversial matters,
-even to the place of a comma in the Lord’s Prayer, but to
-my questions as to how the Poor Law children were dealt
-with in his parish he had to reply, and he did so unashamed,
-“I don’t know”. I remember as a child thinking that it
-was a cruel injustice to punish the man for breaking the
-Sabbath, when he did not know that there was a law to
-command him to keep it, and now, looking back down the
-vista of many years’ experience, I understand that Moses
-but expressed in a detail the law of God which affects the
-whole of social life. The man was punished because he did
-not know. At least he bore the penalty of his own ignorance,
-but in this case it is the children who are punished
-because of our ignorance.</p>
-
-<p>No! the clergy have not known hitherto; but now they
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">214</span>can know. The facts are before them in that vast and
-fascinating storehouse of knowledge bound in blue, and,
-having learnt, they can speak; and speaking, what will
-they say?</p>
-
-<p>Will they blame the Guardians? Will they scold the
-Local Government Board? Will they shrug their shoulders
-and talk about “the difficulties of social problems in a
-complex civilization,” or will each say to himself, “Thou
-art the man” whose fault this is, and then speak and work
-to get things altered?</p>
-
-<p>Gentlemen, you tell us often that children, child-bearing,
-child-teaching, child-rearing, child-loving is the vocation of
-my sex. I agree with you. I want no better calling myself
-than home-making and child protection, and therefore
-you will not take it amiss that I, a woman, speak boldly
-for the children’s sake. You have joined in the neglect of
-these State-dependent children hitherto. You have allowed
-them by your ignorance to be injured. Are you now going
-to injure them further by sitting helplessly down before
-these terrible revelations? The whole world knows how
-England treats State-supported children, its national assets,
-the representatives of those the Master took up in His arms—the
-whole world waits to see what England will do. It
-is for you to lead. Are you going to accept the facts as
-irremediable, or by getting them altered thus pay your
-vows to the Lord?</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Henrietta O. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">215</span>
- <h3 title="THE PRESS AND CHARITABLE FUNDS." id="ch20">THE PRESS AND CHARITABLE FUNDS.<a href="#f201" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>July, 1906.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f201">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch20" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Independent Review”. By permission of Messrs. Fisher Unwin &amp; Co.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">The</span> Press had been the Church’s ablest ally in its effort
-to fulfil the apostolic precept, and teach the nation to remember
-the poor. The social instinct may be native to
-humanity, but it requires an impulse and a direction.
-The Press has again and again stirred such an impulse and
-given such direction. Charity was never more abundant,
-and methods of relief were never more considered.</p>
-
-<p>The Press has been the ally of the Church in creating
-the better world of the present. But the Press, caught in
-these later years (as so many persons and bodies have been
-caught) by the lust of doing and the praise thereof, has
-aspired to be an administrator of relief. It has not been
-content with the rôle of a prophet or of a teacher, it has
-taken a place alongside of Ladies Bountiful, Relief Committees,
-and Boards of Guardians. It has invaded another
-province, and rival newspapers have had their own funds,
-their own agents, and their own systems of relief.</p>
-
-<p>The result is probably an increase in the volume of
-money given by the readers of the papers. A large fund
-may, however, be a fallacious test of sympathy. The
-money subscribed under the pressure of appeal may have
-been diverted from other objects; and gifts are sometimes
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">216</span>made, not for the relief of the poor so much as for the relief
-of the givers. People have been known to give, that
-they may enjoy themselves more comfortably; and they may
-relieve their feelings by a gift, so as to be free to spend a
-family’s weekly income on their own dinner. A large fund
-is not, therefore, a sufficient evidence of increased sympathy.</p>
-
-<p>But let it be granted that the Press action has brought
-more money to the service of the poor. The question is:
-Has it been for good?</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><abbr title="1">I.</abbr></h4>
-
-<p>The first characteristic of a Press fund is that, when a
-newspaper undertakes the administration of relief, it has to
-create its own machinery. It may begin by sending down
-to the distressed district a clever young man with a cab-load
-of tickets. Nothing seems easier than to give to those
-who ask, and so money is poured into the hands of
-applicants, or sent to the clergy for distribution. A rough
-experience soon enforces the necessity of inquiry and organization.
-In West Ham, in the winter of 1904-5, when
-the Borough Council was spending £28,000 on relief, when
-the Guardians had 20,000 persons on their out-relief lists
-and 1300 men in the stone yard, the Press funds were distributed
-without any inquiry or any attempt at co-operation.
-I gather a few notes from reports made at the time by a
-resident in the district.</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Mr. C—— received a large sum from the <i>D. T.</i> He
-relieved 400 regularly; and there was no interchange
-of names.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I found one street in which nearly every one had relief.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“I was asked to visit a starving case on Sunday; and
-found a good dinner stowed away under the table.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">217</span></div>
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“One man in receipt of 47s. a week in wages received
-twelve tickets from the <i>D. N.</i> on Christmas Eve, and did
-not turn up to his work for four days, though extra pay
-was offered for Boxing Day.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“A man,” says a relieving officer, “came to me on Friday
-and had 3s. He went to the Town Hall and got 4s. His
-daughter got 3s. from the same source; his wife 5s. from a
-Councillor, and late the same night a goose.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Another relieving officer reported:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“Outside my office a 4-lb. loaf could be bought for 1d.,
-and a 2s. relief ticket for two pots of beer.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The public-houses did far better when the relief funds
-were at work.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“My impression is, that more than 500 people who
-were in receipt of out relief in my district received relief
-from the funds; but we were never consulted.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>“The relieving officers had to be under police protection
-for four months.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Such an experience naturally forced the newspapers to
-consider their ways. The system of doles was abandoned,
-and local organizations were established to give relief in
-some approved method. Let it be granted, without prejudice,
-that the administration was made so effective as to
-justify a report of good work to the subscribers to the fund.
-Let it be granted that a large number of the unemployed
-were given work, that families were emigrated, and that
-the hands of existing agencies were strengthened. There
-are still two criticisms which may be directed against the
-Press position as an administrator of relief. The first is,
-that the experience by which it learns wisdom is disastrous
-to the people. The waste of money is itself serious, but
-that is a small matter alongside of the bitter feeling, the
-suspicion, the loss of heart, the loss of self-respect, the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">218</span>lying, which are encouraged when gifts are obtained by
-clamour and deceit. Gifts may be poisons as well as food,
-and gifts badly given make an epidemic of moral disease.</p>
-
-<p>The second criticism is, that the organization, when it is
-created, disturbs, displaces, and confuses other organizations,
-while it is not itself permanent. The Press action leaves, it
-may be said, a trail of demoralization, and does not remain
-sufficiently long in existence to clear up its own abuses.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><abbr title="2">II.</abbr></h4>
-
-<p>Another characteristic of a Press fund is, that a newspaper
-raises its money by word pictures of family poverty.
-Its interviewers break in on the sacredness of home. They
-come to the poor man’s house without the sympathy of long
-experience, without any friendly introduction, with an eye
-only to the “copy” which may best provoke the gifts of their
-readers. They write about the secrets of sorrow and suffering.
-They make public the bitterness of heart which is
-precious to the soul, and thus intermeddle with the grief
-which no stranger can understand. Their tales lower the
-standard of human dignity; they make the poor who read
-the tales proud of conditions of which they should be
-ashamed, and they make the rich think of the distress rather
-than of the self-respect of their neighbours.</p>
-
-<p>The effects of the Press method of raising money by uncovering
-the secrets of private sorrow may be summed up
-under three heads.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>a</i>) It increases poverty. Poverty comes to be regarded
-as a sort of domestic asset. The family which can make
-the greatest show of suffering has the greatest chance of
-relief, and examples are found of people who have made
-themselves poor, or appear poor, for the sake of the fund.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>b</i>) It degrades the poor. A subtle effect of this advertisement
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">219</span>of private suffering is, that people so advertised
-lose their self-respect. They, as it were, like to expose
-themselves, and make a show of what ought to be hidden;
-they glory in their shame, and accept at others’ hands what
-they themselves ought to earn. They beg, and are not
-ashamed; they are idle, and are not self-disgraced. They
-are content to be pitied.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>c</i>) It hardens the common conscience. A far-reaching
-effect of these tales of suffering heaped on suffering is, that
-the public demands more and more sensation to move it to
-benevolence. The natural human instinct which makes a
-man care for a man is weakened; and he who yesterday
-shrank from the thought of a sorrowing neighbour, is
-to-day hardly moved by a tale of starvation, anguish, and
-death.</p>
-
-<p>Feeling, we are taught, which is acted on and not
-actively used, becomes dulled; and the Press tales which
-work on the feeling of their readers at last dry up the
-fountain of real charity. The public in a way finds its
-interest, if not its enjoyment, in the news of others’ suffering.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><abbr title="3">III.</abbr></h4>
-
-<p>A third characteristic of a Press fund is, the daily bold
-advertisement of the amount received. Rival funds boast
-themselves one against another; and rivalry is successful in
-drawing in thousands and tens of thousands of pounds.
-The magnitude of these sums is, however, always misleading;
-and people for whom the money is subscribed think
-there is no end to the resources for their relief. The
-demand is increased; people pour in from the country to
-share the benefit; workmen lay down their tools to put
-in their claims; energy is relaxed; greed is encouraged;
-and, when it is found that the relief obtained is small,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">220</span>there are suspicion and discontent. The failure of the
-funds which depend on advertisement suggests the wisdom
-of the Divine direction, that charity should be in secret.</p>
-
-<p>Such are some of the criticisms which I would offer on
-the Press funds. I grant that they apply to all “funds”;
-and most of us who have tried to “remember the poor”
-have seen our work broken by the intrusion of some
-outside and benevolent agency. The truth is, that the only
-gift which deserves the credit of charity is the personal gift—what
-a man gives at his own cost, desiring nothing in
-return, neither thanks nor credit. What a man gives,
-directed by loving sympathy with a neighbour he knows
-and respects, this is the charity which is blessed; and its
-very mistakes are steps to better things. A “fund”
-cannot easily have these qualities of charity. Its agents do
-not give at their own cost; its gifts cannot be in secret; it
-cannot walk along the path of friendship; it is bound to investigate.
-When, therefore, any “fund” assumes the ways
-of charity, when it claims irresponsibility, when it expects
-gratitude, when it is unequal and irregular in its action, it
-justifies the strange cry we have lately heard: “Curse your
-charity”.</p>
-
-<p>A “fund,” voluntary or legal—it seems to me—should
-represent an effort to do justice, and should follow the
-ways of justice. Its object should be, not to express pity,
-or even sympathy, and it should not ask for gratitude. Its
-object is to right wrong, to redress the unfairness which follows
-the triumph of success, and give to the weak and disherited
-a share in the prosperity they have done their part to create.
-A “fund” because its object is to do justice, ought to follow
-scientific lines; it ought to be guided by sound judgment; it
-ought to be administered by skilled officials; and it ought to
-do nothing which can lower any man’s strength and dignity.
-On the contrary, it ought to do everything to open to the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">221</span>lowest the way of honourable living. Its action must be just,
-and seem to be just; it must represent the mind, not of
-one class only, but of all classes.</p>
-
-<p>There have been “funds” which more or less approach
-this ideal. The Mansion House Fund of 1903-4 issued a
-Report which stands as a model of what is possible; and
-its ideal is that of the ablest Poor Law reformers. Press
-funds created by excitement, and directed in a hurry, will
-hardly reach such an ideal. They will neither by their
-genesis nor by their action represent the ways of justice.</p>
-
-<p>The Press, I submit, deserts its high calling when it
-offers itself as a means by which its readers may easily do
-their duty to the poor. The relief of the poor can never
-be easy—the easiest way is almost always the wrong way.
-The Press, when it makes it possible for rich people to
-satisfy their consciences by a donation to its “funds” lets
-them escape their duty of effort, of sacrifice, and of personal
-sympathy. It spoils the public, as foolish parents spoil
-children by taking away the call to effort.</p>
-
-<p>The Press has great possibilities in teaching people to
-remember the poor. It might educate the national conscience
-to make a national effort to remove the causes of
-want of employment, physical weakness, and drunkenness.
-It might rouse the rich to the patriotism which the Russian
-noble expressed, when he said that “the rights of property
-must give way to national needs”. It might set the public
-mind to think of a heart of the Empire in which there should
-be no infant of days, no young man without hope, and no
-old man without the means of peace. The Press has done
-much. It seems to me a loss if, for the sake of the immediate
-earthly link, if for the sake of creating a “fund” to
-relieve present distress, it misses the eternal gain—the creation
-of a public mind which will prevent any distress.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">222</span>
- <h3 title="WHAT IS POSSIBLE IN POOR LAW REFORM." id="ch21">WHAT IS POSSIBLE IN POOR LAW REFORM.<a href="#f211" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>22 September, 1909.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f211">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch21" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">The</span> Archbishop of Canterbury did good service in the
-House of Lords in forcing upon public attention the condition
-of the people as has been revealed by the Poor Law
-Commission. There was only a small attendance of Peers
-to hear his statement, and the public mind has hardly been
-stirred. The imagination is not trained in England. For
-want of it, as Lord Goschen used to say, our fathers lost
-America, and for want of it we are likely to blunder into
-social trouble. The Lords, who are so keen in defence of
-property, do not realize that there are greater dangers to
-property in the presence of the unemployed than in the
-weapons forged by the Budget, and the public mind forgets
-in the summer the “bitter cries” which every winter rise
-from broken homes and shattered lives.</p>
-
-<p>But the facts remain as they have been stated by the
-Archbishop. There is poverty; there is distress; the community
-suffers grievous loss while strong men lose their
-power to work and hearts are hardened by want. All the
-time “out relief is administered so as to foster and encourage
-dirt, disease, and immorality, and the workhouse
-accommodation for the aged is in some cases so dreary as to
-be absolutely appalling, while in others it is palatial”. The
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">223</span>Archbishop “absolutely challenged the statement that these
-difficulties could be met except by a new system under a
-new law”. The whole evidence showed that things are
-radically wrong, and rendered it impossible to argue that
-“we are getting on well enough”.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Burns rests in the progress under the Guardians’
-administration during the last sixty years. “In-door
-pauperism has dropped from 62 to 26 per 1000, out-door
-pauperism from 54 to 16, and child pauperism from 26 to
-7 per 1000,” while “the cost per head of in-door paupers
-has risen from £7 18s. to £13 5s. and out-door
-pauperism from £3 11s. to £6 1s. 5d.” Striking figures,
-but they do not alter the facts which the inquiries of the
-Commissioners have brought to light. There are still
-workhouses which are hot-beds of corruption; there are
-still thousands of children brought up under pauper influences,
-which the boasted education for a few hours a week
-in an elementary school cannot stem; there are still feeble-minded
-people of both sexes who, for want of care, increase
-the number of lunatics and criminals; there are still
-thousands of children who cannot be properly clothed or
-fed on the pittance of out relief; there are still strong men
-and women, stirred by a deterrent system to become
-enemies of society, and to defy, by idleness, the authority
-which would, by severity, force them to work. Let any one
-whose mind Mr. Burns’s figures satisfy dip into the pages
-of the Poor Law Commission Report, and certainly his
-heart will be indignant.</p>
-
-<p>“No greater indictment” it has been truly said, “has
-ever been published against our civilization.”</p>
-
-<p>Progress indeed cannot be judged by comparative
-figures. In 1850 it would have marked a great change if
-pauperism had dropped from 62 to 26 per 1000, but in
-1910 it may be that 26 per 1000 constitutes as heavy a
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">224</span>burden. Truth depends on relation. The social conscience
-has become much more sensitive. This generation cannot
-brook wrongs which previous generations brooked. Our
-self-respect is wounded by the thought of poverty which
-our care might remove. Poverty itself is recognized to be
-something worse than want of food. Every citizen is
-necessary, not only that he may work for the commonwealth,
-but that he may contribute by his thoughtful interest to
-make government efficient and human. The standard by
-which individual value is judged has been raised. Figures
-are not by themselves measures of progress, because every
-unit in the course of years changes its value, and to-day, as
-compared with sixty years ago, each man, woman and child
-may be said to have a worth which has increased tenfold.
-Official figures do not recognize worth and are therefore
-irritating; they increase and do not allay bitterness.</p>
-
-<p>Something then must be done, and the debate in the
-House of Commons suggests something which might be
-done immediately. The Prime Minister and the Government
-might at once adopt certain recommendations on
-which there is general agreement, and which would not
-involve the immediate substitution of a new body of
-administration in the place of the Guardians. It might,
-for instance, 1. establish compulsory continuation schools;
-2. make adequate provision for the feeble-minded; and 3.
-develop some method of training for the able-bodied and
-able-minded who have lost their way in the industrial world.</p>
-
-<p>There is general agreement as to the treatment of
-the feeble-minded, as to the training of the young, and
-as to the way of discipline for the unemployed.</p>
-
-<p>The public has hardly recognized what is involved in the
-neglect of the measures recommended for the care of the
-feeble-minded. They do not know how much crime, how
-much poverty, and how much drunkenness may be traced
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">225</span>to this cause, or they would not expect the laws which
-assume strong-mindedness to be effective. What effect
-can prison have on characters too feeble to resolve on reformation?
-What appeal to independence can have weight
-with those who cannot reason? Evidence abounds in the
-pages of Reports, and the best thought of the times has
-agreed on the recommendations. If these recommendations
-were put into a Bill and adopted a reform would be achieved
-which would cut deeply into the burden of unemployment
-and vice under which the nation now labours.</p>
-
-<p>Then again as to the training of the young. Compulsory
-continuation schools might be established.</p>
-
-<p>It is grievous to reflect that while the country is
-expending £23,000,000 on education, there should be a
-large body of men and women without any resource other
-than that of the mechanical use of their hands and without
-any interest to satisfy their minds. It may be that something
-is wrong in our elementary schooling, but it is hard
-to realize how the boy who leaves school to-day, a good
-reader and writer, and of clean habits, can become the dull,
-ignorant, and almost helpless man of thirty or thirty-five
-who stands among the unemployed at the table of the
-Relief Committee. Nevertheless it is so, and the tale of his
-descent has been often told. The boy, free of school,
-throws off school pursuits as childish things. He will
-have no more to do with books or with learning. He
-takes a situation where he can get the largest wages, and
-where least call is made on mental effort. He has money
-to spend and he spends it on the pleasures which give the
-most excitement. At the age of eighteen or twenty he is
-no longer wanted as a boy, and he has no skill or intelligence
-which would fit him for well-paid work as a man.
-He becomes a casual labourer, or perhaps gets regular
-employment in some mechanical occupation. Before he is
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">226</span>forty, he is very frequently among the “unemployed,” his
-hands capable only of doing one sort of work, and his head
-incapable of thinking out ways or means. His schooling
-has been practically wasted and he is again a burden on
-the community.</p>
-
-<p>All inquiry goes to show that neglected boyhood is the
-chief source of “the unemployed”. Care in securing good
-places for boys when they leave school, and offers of
-technical teaching may do something, but these means do
-not serve to create the intelligent labourer, on whom, more
-than on the skilled artisan, the wealth of the country
-depends. “No skilled labourer,” Mr. Edison is reported to
-have said, “is better than the English, and no unskilled
-labourer is worse.” The intelligent labourer is one who
-does common work so as to save money; one who can
-understand and repeat instructions; one who can rise to an
-emergency; one who serves others’ interests and finds others’
-interests.</p>
-
-<p>Our labourers have not this intelligence because the
-boy’s mind, just opened at school, has been allowed to
-close; he has been taken away from learning just when it
-was becoming interesting. The obvious remedy is compulsory
-continuation schools, and these have been recommended
-again and again by investigators and committees.</p>
-
-<p>Let it be enacted that young persons under eighteen
-cannot be employed unless their employers allow time for
-attendance at such schools on three days a week, and
-receive a certificate of attendance—let it be made obligatory
-on all young persons engaged in industrial work that they
-attend such schools. Great employers like Messrs. Cadbury
-have found it in their interest to make such attendance
-compulsory on the young persons they employ. A Departmental
-Committee would soon discover the best way of
-enforcing compulsion, and the Government by this simple
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">227</span>means would do much to stop unemployment and poverty
-at its source.</p>
-
-<p>Some method of training the able-bodied and able-minded
-unemployed might be developed.</p>
-
-<p>These form a distinct class. They cannot be helped by
-relief, and they are demoralized by relief works. They
-passed through boyhood without getting the necessary
-equipment for life; they have, in a sort of way, a claim for
-such equipment, and failing such they must be a burden to
-the community. There are some ready to respond at once;
-there are others who, by long neglect, have become
-indolent and defiant. The first need to be put on farms or
-in shops where they will receive training.</p>
-
-<p>Hollesley Bay is an example of such a farm, though the
-experiment has unfortunately been confused by the
-introduction of men who receive simple doles of work.
-But among the hundreds of married men with decent
-homes, and bearing good reports from employers, there are
-many in whom capacity is dormant. Pathetic indeed is
-their appeal, as worn in body and mind, ragged in clothing,
-they tell of work lost “because motors have taken the
-place of horses,” “because machinery has been introduced,”
-because “boys do men’s work”; pathetic is the appeal of
-men who, having lost their way in life, can see nothing
-before them but endless casual jobs, in which they will
-lose any strength they gain by the fresh air and food of
-Hollesley. If only they could be told that by learning to
-work and use their brains, they would be given a chance on
-the land or in the Colonies. If only they could realize that
-they might, as others have done, become fit to occupy one
-of the cottages on the estate, how surely they would
-throw their hearts into the work and feel the joy of seeing
-things grow under their hands. There is no need of
-controversial legislation. Training farms or shops could be
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">228</span>provided, and if the decision be deferred as to whether the
-control of the training farm or shops should be local or
-national, it might be agreed that the experiment should be
-made by the Board of Trade or the Board of Agriculture.</p>
-
-<p>If the latter department took charge of the Colony,
-admitted only unemployed men fitted for agriculture,
-trained them, and put them in the way of taking up holdings,
-an experiment would be tried of immense value for
-future legislature.</p>
-
-<p>Then, as to the other able-bodied and able-minded
-unemployed who have become idle and almost enemies of
-society. It has long been agreed that it is necessary to
-detain them for periods of three or four years, during
-which they would be given the opportunity of learning to
-work. The place of detention would not be a prison, but a
-School of Industry, in which their capacities would be
-developed and their self-respect encouraged. The organization
-of such a place of discipline might involve thought,
-but its establishment need involve the Government in no
-long controversy. The Poor Law Commission and the
-Vagrancy Commission are at one in urging the necessity,
-and it must be obvious to anyone that until some means
-is discovered for removing from “the unemployed” the
-“idle and vagrant class,” the public mind will never <span class="fs75">AGREE
-TO WISE DEALING WITH THE PROBLEM</span>.</p>
-
-<p>Here then is something possible, something which even
-a Government so burdened as the present might accomplish.
-The direct effect would be great, if boys were
-checked on their way to the ranks of the unemployed; if
-some untrained men and women were taken from the
-streets and restored trained to the labour market; if the
-feeble-minded and the idle were removed from unwise
-sympathy and unfair abuse. The indirect effect would also
-be great, as the conviction would spread that the Government
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">229</span>was indeed taking a matter in hand which has been
-year by year postponed. There would be more hope of
-peace and good-will between rich and poor. When so
-much is at once possible, is it reasonable that nothing
-should be done till a complete scheme has been devised?</p>
-
-<p>It does not seem to be over-sanguine to believe that
-there are earnest men among the younger M.P.’s who, putting
-party aside, will agree to do what has been shown to be
-possible for the young people, the feeble-minded, and the
-unemployed.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">230</span>
- <h3 title="CHARITY UP TO DATE." id="ch22">CHARITY UP TO DATE.<a href="#f221" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>February, 1912.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f221">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch22" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Contemporary Review”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">The</span> tender mercies of the thoughtless, as of the wicked, are
-often cruel, and charity when it ceases to be a blessing is
-apt to become a curse; A Mansion House fund we used in
-old days to count among the possible winter horrors of
-East London. The boldly advertised details of destitution,
-the publication of the sums collected, the hurried distribution
-by irresponsible and ignorant agents, and the absence of any
-policy, stirred up wild expectation and left behind a trail of
-bitterness and degradation. The people were encouraged
-in deception, and were led on in the way which ends in
-wretchedness.</p>
-
-<p>In 1903 a Committee was formed which used a Mansion
-House fund to initiate a policy of providing honourable and
-sufficiently paid work which would, at the same time, test
-the solid intention of unemployed and able-bodied applicants.
-The report of that Committee has been generally
-accepted, and has indeed become the basis of subsequent
-action and recommendations. It seemed to us East
-Londoners as if the bad time had been passed, and that
-henceforth charitable funds would flow in channels to increase
-fruitfulness and not in floods to make devastation.</p>
-
-<p>The hope has been disappointed. Funds inaugurated by
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">231</span>newspapers, by agencies, or by private persons have appeared
-in overwhelming force, and have followed in the
-old bad ways. The heart of the public has been torn by
-harrowing descriptions of poverty and suffering, which the
-poor also read and feel ashamed. The means of relief are
-often miserably inadequate. A casual dinner eaten in the
-company of the most degraded cannot help the “toiling
-widows and decent working-men,” “waiting in their desolate
-homes to know whether there is to be an end to their pains
-and privations”. Two or three hours spent in fields hardly
-clear of London smoke, after a noisy and crowded ride, is
-not likely to give children the refreshment and the quiet
-which they need for a recreative holiday.</p>
-
-<p>Much of the charity of to-day, it has to be confessed, is
-mischievous, if not even cruel, and to its charge must be
-laid some of the poverty, the degradation, and the bitterness
-which characterize London, where, it is said, eight million
-sterling are every year given away. Ruskin, forty years
-ago, when he was asked by an Oxford man proposing to
-live in Whitechapel what he thought East London most
-wanted, answered, “The destruction of West London”.
-Mr. Bernard Shaw has lately, in his own startling way,
-stated a case against charity, and we all know that the
-legend on the banner of the unemployed, “Curse your
-charity,” represents widely spread opinion.</p>
-
-<p>But—practically—what is the safe outlet for the charitable
-instinct? The discussion of the abolition of charity is not
-practical. People are bound to give their money to their
-neighbours. Human nature is solid—individuals are parts
-of a whole—and the knowledge of a neighbour’s distress
-stirs the desire to give something, as surely as the savour
-of food stirs appetite. But as in the one case the satisfaction
-of the appetite is not enough unless the food builds up
-the body and strength, so in the other case the charity which
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">232</span>relieves the feelings of the giver is not enough unless it
-meets the neighbour’s needs. Those needs are to-day very
-evident, and very complex. Our rich and ease-loving
-society knows well that a family supported on twenty shillings
-a week cannot get sufficient food, and that even forty
-shillings will not provide means for holidays—for travel or
-for study. There will be children whose starved bodies will
-never make strong men and women; and there will be men
-and women who live anxious and care-worn lives, who cannot
-enjoy the beauties and wonders of the world in which
-they have been placed.</p>
-
-<p>There are ghastly facts behind modern unrest, which are
-hardly represented by tales of destitute children and the
-sight of ragged humanity congregated around the free
-shelters. The needs are obvious, and they are very complex.
-The man whose ragged dress and haggard face cries out for
-food, has within him a mind and a soul fed on the crumbs
-which fall from the thoughts of the times, and he is a
-member of society from which he resents exclusion. Relief
-of a human being’s need must take all these facts into account.
-It must not give him food, at the expense of lowering
-his self-respect; it must not provide him with pleasure
-at the expense of degrading his capacity for enjoying his
-higher calling as a man, and it must not be kind at the
-expense of making independence impossible. The man
-who is stirred by the knowledge of his neighbour’s needs
-must take a deal of trouble.</p>
-
-<p>The only safe outlet for the charitable instinct is, it may
-be said, that which is made by thinking and study. The
-charity which is thoughtless is charity out of date. It is
-always hard to be up to date, because to be so involves fresh
-thinking, and it is so much easier to say what has been said
-by previous generations, and to imitate the deeds of the dead
-benefactors. They who would really serve their neighbour’s
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">233</span>needs by a gift must bring the latest knowledge of human
-nature to bear on the applicant’s character, and treat it in
-relation to the structure of society as that structure is now
-understood. They must be students of personality and of
-the State. They must consider the individual who is in
-need or the charitable body which makes an appeal, as carefully
-as a physician considers his case; they must get the
-facts for a right diagnosis, and bring to the cure all the resources
-of civilization. The great benefactors of old days
-were those who thought out their actions—as, for instance,
-when Lady Burdett-Coutts met the need of work by building
-amid the squalor of East London a market beautiful
-enough to be a temple, or as Lord Shaftesbury when he
-inaugurated ragged schools—but new ages demand new
-actions, and the spiritual children of the great dead are not
-they who act as they acted, but those who give thought
-as they gave thought.</p>
-
-<p>The charity which does not flow in channels made by
-thought is the charity which is mischievous. People comfort
-themselves and encourage their indolence by saying
-they would rather give wrongly in ten cases than miss one
-good case. The comfort is deceptive. The gift which does
-not help, hinders, and it is the gifts of the thoughtless which
-open the pitfalls into which the innocent fall and threaten
-the stability of society. Such gifts are temptations to idleness,
-and widen the breach between rich and poor. When
-people of good-will, in pursuit of a good object, do good
-deeds which are followed by cries of distress and by curses
-there is a tragedy.</p>
-
-<p>Charity up to date, whether it be from person to person
-or through some society or fund, must be such as is approved
-by the same close thinking as business men give to
-their business, or politicians to their policy. The best form
-of giving must always, I think, be that from person to
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">234</span>person. Would that it were more used—would that those
-whose feelings are stirred by the sight of many sick folk
-were content to try and heal one! There are always individuals
-in need at our own door—neighbours, workpeople,
-relatives, servants; there is always among those we know
-some one whose home could be made brighter, or whose
-sickness could be lightened; there are tired people who
-could be sent on holiday, boys or girls who could be better
-educated. Gifts which pass from person to person are
-something more than ordinary gifts. “The gift without
-the giver is bare,” and when the giver’s thought makes
-itself felt, the gift is enriched. The best form of charity,
-therefore, is personal, and if for some reason this be impossible,
-then the next best is that which strengthens
-the hands of persons who are themselves in touch with
-neighbours in need, such as are the almoners of the
-Society for the Relief of Distress, the members of the
-Charity Organization Committees, or the residents in
-Settlements.</p>
-
-<p>The personal gift, inspired by good-will and directed by
-painstaking thought, is the best form of charity, but people
-who have learnt what organizations and associations can do
-will not be content unless those means also are applied to
-the relief of their neighbours. The consequence is the
-existence of numberless societies for numberless objects.
-“Which of them may be said to represent charity up to
-date?” The answer I submit is, “Those which approve
-themselves to thoughtful examination”.</p>
-
-<p>Appeals which touch the feelings of the readers, with
-well-known names as patrons and hopeful forecasts, should
-not be sufficient to draw support. The would-be subscriber
-must leisurely apply his mind, and weigh the proposals in
-the light of modern knowledge. The giving a subscription
-involves a large responsibility; it not only withdraws from
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">235</span>use money which, as wages, would have employed useful
-labour, but it may actually be a means of doing mischief.
-As one familiar with the working of many charities, I would
-appeal for more thoughtfulness on the part of all subscribers.
-People must think for themselves and judge for themselves;
-but perhaps, out of a long experience, I may suggest a few
-guiding principles.</p>
-
-<p>I. Charities should aim at encouraging growth rather
-than at giving relief. They should be inspired by hope
-rather than by pity. They should be a means of education,
-a means of enabling the recipient to increase in bodily,
-mental, or spiritual strength. If I spend twenty shillings
-on giving a dinner or a night’s lodging to twenty vagrants,
-I have done nothing to make them stronger workers or
-better citizens, I have only kept poverty alive; but if I
-spend the same sum in sending one person to a convalescent
-hospital, he will be at any rate a stronger man, and if
-during his stay at the hospital his mind is interested in some
-subject—in something not himself—he will probably be a
-happier man. Societies which devote a large income to providing
-food and clothing do not in the long run reduce the
-number of those in want, while Societies which promote
-the clearing of unhealthy areas, the increase of open space
-about town dwellings, greater accessibility to books and
-pictures, gradually raise people above the need of gifts of
-food and clothing. Hospitals which do much in restoring
-strength to the sick would do more if they used their reputation
-and authority to teach people how to avoid sickness,
-and to make a public opinion which would prevent
-many diseases and accidents. The distinguished philanthropist
-who used to say she would rather give a poor man
-a watch than a coat was, I believe, wiser than another
-philanthropist who condemned a poor woman for spending
-her money on buying a picture for her room. It is more
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">236</span>important to raise self-respect and develop taste than just to
-meet physical needs.</p>
-
-<p>Charities intruding themselves upon the intimacies of
-domestic life have by their patronage often dwarfed the best
-sort of growth. Warnings against patronizing the poor are
-frequent, but many charities are by their very existence
-“patronizing,” and many others, by sending people to collect
-votes, by requiring expressions of their gratitude, and by
-the attitude of their agents, do push upon the poor reminders
-of their obligations. They belong to a past age, and have
-no place in the present age, where they foster only a cringing
-or rebellious attitude. It has been well said that, “a
-new spirit is necessary in dealing with the poor, a spirit of
-humility and willingness to learn, rather than generosity
-and anxiety to teach”. This is only another form of saying
-that charities must be educational, because no one can educate
-who is not humble. Our schools, perhaps, will have
-further results when the teachers cease to call themselves
-“masters!”</p>
-
-<p>II. Charities should, I think, look to, if not aim at, their
-own extinction. Their existence, it must be remembered,
-is due to some defect in the State organization or in the
-habits of the people. Schools, for instance, were established
-by the gifts of good-will to meet the ignorance from which
-people suffered, and when the State itself established schools
-the gifts have been continued for the sake of methods and
-experiments to meet further needs which the State has not
-yet seen its way to meet. Charities, in this case, have
-looked, or do look, to their own extinction when the State,
-guided by their example, may take up their work. They have
-been pioneers, original, daring by experiment to lead the way
-to undiscovered good. Relief societies have, in like manner,
-shown how the State may help the poor by means which
-respect their character, by putting work within their reach,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">237</span>by emigrating those fit for colonial life, by giving orphan
-children more of the conditions of a family home. There
-are others which have looked, or still look, to their extinction,
-not in State action, but in co-operation with other
-societies with which they now compete. Competition may
-be the strength of commerce, but co-operation is certainly
-the strength of charity, and wise are those charities which
-are content to sink themselves in common action and die
-that they may rise again in another body. The Charity
-Organization Societies in some of the great cities have in
-this way lost themselves, to live again in Social Welfare
-Councils and Civic Leagues. There are, finally, other
-charities which, by their own action, tend to make themselves
-unnecessary. The Children’s Country Holiday Fund,
-for instance, by giving country holidays to town children,
-and by making the parents contribute to the expense, develop
-at once a new desire for the peace and beauty of the
-country and a new capacity for satisfying this desire. When
-parents realize the necessity of such holiday and know how
-it can be secured, this Fund will cease to have a reason for
-existence.</p>
-
-<p>Charities are many which fulfil this condition, but charities
-also are many which do not fulfil it. They seem to wish to
-establish themselves in permanence, and go on in rivalry
-with the State and with one another. There is waste of
-money, which might be used in pioneer work, in doing what
-is equally well done by others; there is competition which
-excites greed and imposition, and there is overlapping. Very
-little thought is wanted to discover many such charities which
-now receive large incomes from the public.</p>
-
-<p>A wise observer has said: “A charity ought every twenty-five
-years to head a revolution against itself”. Only by
-some such means can it be brought into adjustment with
-the new needs of a new time, only by some such means will
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">238</span>it clear off excrescences and renew its youth. But, failing
-such power of self-reform, it is worthy of consideration
-whether every twenty-five years each charity should not be
-compelled to justify its existence before some State Commission.</p>
-
-<p>III. Charities should keep in line with State activities.
-The State—either by national or by municipal organization—has
-taken over many of the duties which meet the needs of
-the people. Ignorance, poverty, disease and dullness have
-all been met, and the means by which they are being met
-are constantly developed. The Church, it may be said, has
-so far converted the State, and a cheerful payer of rates may
-perhaps deserve the same Divine commendation as the
-cheerful giver. But State organizations, however well considered
-and well administered, will always want the human
-touch. They will not, like the charities, be fitful because
-dependent on subscribers and committees, but they will not,
-like charities, temper their actions to individual peculiarities
-and feelings. Charities, therefore, I think, do well when
-they keep in line with State activities. They may, for instance,
-working in co-operation with the Guardians, undertake
-the care of the families when the bread-winner is in the
-infirmary, or superintend the management of industrial
-colonies to which the unemployed may be sent, or provide
-enfeebled old people with pensions until the age when they
-are eligible for the State pension. They may, in connexion
-with the School and Education authorities, support the Care
-Committees who look after the interest of children in elementary
-schools, or, like Mrs. Humphry Ward’s society, give
-guidance in play during the children’s leisure hours. They
-may also, in conjunction with the Sanitary Authorities, work
-for the increase of health and the wiser use of playgrounds
-and means of recreation. Men and women of good-will
-may, I believe, find boundless opportunities if they will
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">239</span>serve on Municipal bodies or on the Committees appointed
-by such bodies to complement their work.</p>
-
-<p>It may, indeed, be a further indictment against charities
-that much of the good-will which might have improved and
-humanized State action has by them been diverted. If, for
-instance, the passion of good-will which now finds an outlet
-in providing free shelters and dinners for the starving, or
-orphanages for destitute children, had gone to improve
-Casual Wards and Barrack Schools, many evils would have
-been prevented. At any rate, it may be said that charities
-working alongside of the State organizations would become
-stronger, and State organizations inspired by the charities
-would become more humane. It costs more, doubtless, to
-work in co-operation with others, and to subject self-will to
-the common will as a member of a Board of Guardians, than
-to be an important member of a charitable committee, but
-in charity it is cost which counts.</p>
-
-<p>Charity—to sum up my conclusion—represents a very
-important factor in the making of England of to-morrow.
-The outbreak of giving, of which there has been ample
-evidence this Christmas, may represent increased good-will
-and more vivid realization of responsibility for those afflicted
-in mind, body, or estate, or it may represent the impatience
-of light-hearted people anxious to relieve themselves
-and get on to their pleasures. Society is out of joint
-because the wealth of the rich and the poverty of the poor
-have been brought into so great light. It seems intolerable
-that when wealth has to invent new ways of expenditure,
-there should be families where the earnings are insufficient
-for necessary food, where the children cannot enjoy
-the gaiety of their youth, where the boys and girls pass out
-through unskilled trades to pick up casual labour and casual
-doles. The needs are many, but the point I wish to urge is
-that charity which intends to help may hinder. No gift is
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">240</span>without result, and some of the gifts are responsible for the
-suffering, carelessness, and bitterness of our times. Charity
-up to date is that which gives thought as well as money
-and service. The cost is greater, and many who will even
-deny themselves a pleasure so as to give a generous cheque
-cannot exercise the greater denial of giving their thought.
-“There is no glory,” said Napoleon, “where there is no
-danger;” and we may add, there is no charity where there
-is no thought, and thought is very costly.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">241</span>
- <h3 title="WHAT LABOUR WANTS." id="ch23">WHAT LABOUR WANTS.<a href="#f231" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>May, 1912.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f231">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch23" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Daily News”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Working</span> men have become, we are often told, the governing
-class. They form a large part, perhaps the majority,
-of the electorate, and theirs is the obligation of making the
-laws and directing the policy on which depend the safety
-and honour of the nation. They have come into an inheritance
-built up at great cost, and on them lies the responsibility
-for its care and development.</p>
-
-<p>Working-men, in order that they may fulfil their obligation
-and deliver themselves of their responsibility, may rightly,
-I think, urge a moral claim on the community for the opportunities
-by which to fit themselves for the performance
-of their duties. They enjoy by the sacrifice of their ancestors
-the inestimable privilege of freedom, but the value of freedom
-depends on the power to take advantage of its possibilities:
-the right to run in a race is all very well, but it is not of
-great use if the runner’s legs and arms are crippled. Freedom,
-in fact, implies the capacity to do or enjoy something
-worth doing or enjoying. The working classes, who, as
-members of a free nation, have been entrusted with the
-government of the nation, cannot do what is worth doing
-or what they are called to do if their bodies are weakened by
-ill health and their minds cribbed and cabined by ignorance.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">242</span>How can they whose childhood has been spent in the close,
-smoky, and fœtid air of the slums, whose bodies have been
-weakened in unhealthy trade, take their share in the support
-or defence of the nation? How can they who have learned
-no history, whose minds have had no sympathetic training,
-whose eyes have never been opened to the enjoyment of
-beauty, understand the needs of the people or grasp the
-mission of the Empire? Working men have thus a moral
-claim that they shall have the opportunity to secure health
-and knowledge, sanitary dwellings, open spaces, care in
-sickness and the prevention of disease, schools, university
-teaching, and easy access to all those means of life which
-make for true enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p>But when such opportunities have been provided, poverty
-often prevents their use. This excuse does not, indeed,
-hold universally, and it is much to be wished that the Labour
-Press and other makers of Labour opinion would more often
-urge the importance of taking advantage of the provided
-means for health and knowledge. They may have reason
-for stirring men against the unfairness of an economic
-system and uniting them in a strike against the ways of
-capital, but success would be of little value unless the men
-themselves become stronger and wiser. Many workmen—for
-example, those engaged in the building trades—have
-abundant leisure during the winter. It would be well, if
-they, as well as those who consume hours in attending football
-matches, would spend some time in developing their
-capacities of mind and body. Labour indeed needs a
-chaplain who will preach that power comes from what a
-man is, and not only from what a man has. The Labour
-Press, with its voice reiterating complaints, and its eyes
-fixed on “possessions,” makes reading as dreary as the
-pages of a society or financial journal.</p>
-
-<p>But this is digression, and the fact remains that poverty
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">243</span>does in the case of thousands and hundreds of thousands
-of families prevent the possibility of using the means necessary
-for the development of their capacities. A wage of
-20s. a week cannot permit schooling for the children up to
-the age of fifteen; it will not, indeed, provide sufficient food
-for the healthy life even of a small family. It can give no
-margin for the little recreations by which the powers of the
-mind are renewed, and does not allow for the leisure during
-growing years which is necessary to the making of the mind.
-It leaves the breadwinner fretted by anxiety lest in days of
-sickness or unemployment the wolf may enter the door and
-destroy the home.</p>
-
-<p>The mass of labourers are, in a word, too poor to be
-healthy or wise; they are not fit to take a part in government,
-and they have not the opportunity to make themselves
-fit. Their work is often costly though it is cheap, and their
-votes are worthless though gained by much canvassing.
-Wages which are not a living wage unfit workmen for their
-duty in the government of the nation.</p>
-
-<p>Does this fact justify a moral claim for a living wage to
-be fixed and enforced by the community? Ought a wage
-sufficient for the support of manhood to be a first charge on
-the product of labour and capital? The answer has in effect
-been given by the establishment of Wages Boards. There
-are now four trades in which a wage judged by a representative
-committee to be a living wage is enforced, and
-the same principle has lately been applied to the mining
-industry. The extension to other trades—if the experiment
-succeeds—can only be a matter of time. The claim of
-labour has been admitted, and the immediate question is,
-what is likely to be the result. Employers who are forced
-to give a higher wage will certainly require a higher standard
-of work. From one point of view this is all to the good.
-The acceptance of low-class work is as costly to the nation
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">244</span>as it is degrading to the worker; it is a common loss when
-workers make constant mistakes for want of intelligence,
-and prove themselves to be not worthy a living wage. Every
-one is the better for the discipline which is required by the
-service of men; it is likely to make the nation richer and
-the workers more self-respecting, if they are free to fit themselves
-to take their part in government. It will, in economic
-language, probably tend to decrease the cost of production,
-and therefore the cost of living.</p>
-
-<p>But there is another point of view. The raising of the
-standard of work will at once throw out the less able, the
-unskilful, the ignorant, and the lazy. Is this for good or
-for evil? “For good,” is the answer I offer. It is well to
-face facts. Legislation and philanthropy have often done
-mischief by treating the unemployed as one class. If they
-are recognized as those not worth a living wage then it is
-clear that either they must be fitted to earn such a wage, or
-be segregated in colonies where their labour will be subsidized.
-They have a claim on such treatment. Some by
-the want of care in their youth, or by some change of fashion,
-have no marketable skill. It seems only fair that they
-should have the chance of acquiring some other skill. Some,
-because they are lazy and work-shy, are inclined to prey
-upon their poor working neighbours. It seems only fair
-that they should be taken off the market and shut up till
-they learn habits of industry. Some, because they are weak
-in body or mind, can never earn sufficient for their upkeep.
-It seems only fair that they should be kept, not in workhouses
-or on inadequate out relief, but in colonies where
-their labour would go towards their own support, and
-sympathetic guardianship, by necessary subsidies, prevent
-them from starving.</p>
-
-<p>Labour has a moral claim that labourers be given the
-opportunity of becoming free men—free to use and enjoy
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">245</span>their manhood. English people made great sacrifices to
-secure freedom for the negroes, and religious people, to
-accomplish this object, dared to interfere in politics. The
-position to-day is more serious when those who are not
-free are called on to be governors of the nation, and religious
-people may again do well to interfere in politics to secure
-that working men may have the opportunity of developing
-the capacities which they have received for the service of
-mankind.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">246</span>
- <h3 title="OUR PRESENT DISCONTENTS." id="ch24">OUR PRESENT DISCONTENTS.<a href="#f241" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>February, 1913.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f241">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch24" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Nineteenth Century and After”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara">“<span class="sc">History</span>,” we are told, “has often been the record of
-statesmen’s illusions,” and to one into whose mind over thirty
-years’ memories of East London have been burnt, it seems
-as if this generation concerning itself about foreign aggression,
-and the grouping of European Powers, were walking
-in the vain shadow of such an illusion. It is spending
-millions annually on armaments against a possible enemy,
-and grudges a comparatively small sum against the evils
-which are even now eating into the strength of the nation.</p>
-
-<p>Strikes and rumours of strikes are shaking the foundations
-of the wealth by which our Dreadnoughts are built
-and our great Empire secured—political apathy and indifference
-to the commonwealth mock fervid appeals for
-patriotic self-sacrifice—railing accusations are hurled by the
-rich that workmen loaf and drink, and by the tyranny of
-trades unions ruin trade; and the equally railing accusations
-are urged by workmen that the rich in their luxury
-are content to plunder the poor and live in callous indifference
-to the wrongs they see; and to crown all the other
-evidences of discontent, violent speeches and lawless
-conduct are weakening the old calm confidence in the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">247</span>stability of the social structure which has been built up by
-the elaborate care of many generations.</p>
-
-<p>An enemy has got a footing in the heart of the Empire,
-and is causing this disturbance. He has evaded our fleet
-and our forts, and he has the power to destroy our power.
-The nation, like a dreamer awakening, is shaking itself as
-it becomes conscious of another danger than that of foreign
-fleets and armies. It is beginning to be anxious about its
-social condition and is asking somewhat fitfully, What is to
-be done? What is the cause of the present discontent?
-What are the remedies?</p>
-
-<p>Many causes are suggested. It may be that education,
-having developed the people’s capacities for enjoyment,
-has increased the area of discontent, and those who used to
-sit placidly in the shadow now demand a ray of the
-abundant sunshine. It may be that the frantic pace at
-which the modern world moves has stimulated the demand
-for excitement and made men impatient for change; it
-may be that the popular philosophy of the street and the
-Press, eclipsing older philosophies of the Church and the
-chair, impels men and nations to put their own interests
-before other interests—to retaliate blow for blow, and
-to become proud of pride. When nations, classes, or
-individuals seek first to protect themselves, then the
-other things, greed, panic, suspicion, and strife, are soon
-added.</p>
-
-<p>All these causes may operate, but they would not, I
-think, be dangerous, if it were not for the fact of poverty.
-Ideas, philosophies, and feelings have only stirred mankind
-when they have been able to appeal to facts, and agitators
-would now agitate in vain if conditions did not agitate more
-eloquently. Mean streets and ailing bodies jar upon the
-more widely spread sense of joy, and the long hours of
-labour and the small wages stir an anger which becomes
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">248</span>ready to upset society in order that the greater number
-might profit in the scramble. Poverty, as far as I can see,
-is the root cause of the prevailing discontent, the door by
-which the enemy enters and the fortress from which he
-sends out suspicion and strife to compass the nation’s ruin.
-Poverty! And our national income is £1,844,000,000, and
-the nation’s accumulated wealth is the almost inconceivable
-sum of £13,762,000,000.</p>
-
-<p>The voice of the times—would that it had a Gladstone
-for its interpreter—is one that calls every one, be he patriot
-or business man, or even a pleasure-lover, to set himself to
-help in the eviction of poverty. If there be any fighting
-spirit—any chivalry left, here is the object for its attack; if
-there be any enlightened selfishness, here is the field for its
-exercise. Poverty, if it be not destroyed, will destroy the
-England of our hopes and our dreams.</p>
-
-<p>The curious thing is that the public mind which speaks
-through the Press hardly realizes what is meant by poverty.
-There is much talk on the subject—numberless volumes are
-issued, and charities are multiplied, but what is in the minds
-of speakers, writers, and givers is obviously destitution.
-They think of the ragged, broken creatures kept waiting
-outside the doors of the shelter, and they have mental
-pictures of squalid rooms and starving children. Many and
-many a time visitors have come to Whitechapel expecting
-to see whole streets occupied by the ragged and the wretched,
-and they have been almost disappointed to find such misery
-the exception. There are, indeed, many thousands of people
-destitute, but they form only a fraction of the poor, and
-could, as the Poor Law Commissioners have shown, be lifted
-out of the condition by action at once drastic and humane.
-Why that action has not even been attempted is one of the
-many questions which the Local Government Board has to
-answer. But my present point is that, if all the destitute
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">249</span>were removed, the poverty which is at the back of our
-present discontent would remain.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Seebohm Rowntree, whose opinion has been supported
-by subsequent social explorers and by scientific research,
-concludes that 3s. a week for an adult and 2s. 3d.
-for a child is necessary to keep the body in physical repair,
-the food being chosen simply to get the most nutrition for
-the least money, without any regard to appetite or pleasure.
-The rent for a family, even if one room be considered sufficient,
-can hardly be less than 4s. a week in a town, and if
-household sundries are to include fuel, light, and clothing
-for a family of five persons, 4s. 11d. is a moderate sum. It
-thus seems as if the smallest income on which it would be
-possible for an average family to exist is 21s. 8d. a week.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Charles Booth, Mr. Rowntree, and other subsequent
-investigators have shown that 30 per cent. of the town
-population have an income below or hardly above that sum,
-and as the wages of agricultural labourers average in
-England 18s. 3d. a week, in Scotland 19s. 3d., and in Ireland
-10s. 11d., it is fair to conclude that the estimate of the
-towns may be applied to the whole kingdom, and that at
-least 12,000,000 of the 45,000,000 people are living on
-incomes below the poverty line.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Chiozza Money, in his “Riches and Poverty” approaching
-the subject from another side, justifies the conclusion.
-He shows that a population amounting to 39,000,000 persons
-is dependent on incomes of less than £160 a year—say
-60s. a week, and absorbs £935,000,000 of the national
-income; that 4,100,000 persons depend on incomes between
-£160 and £700 per annum, and absorb £275,000,000 of
-the national income; and that the comparatively small
-number of 1,400,000 dependent on incomes over £700
-a year absorb the mighty sum of £634,000,000. In
-other words, more than one-third of the entire income
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">250</span>of the United Kingdom is enjoyed by one-thirtieth of its
-people.</p>
-
-<p id="r242">In the light of these facts it is not incredible that 30 per
-cent of the population live in the grip of actual poverty.
-“The United Kingdom contains,” it may be said in truth
-and shame, “a great multitude of poor people veneered with a
-thin layer of the comfortable and rich.”<a href="#f242" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 2"><sup>[2]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p>The broad fact which stands out of these figures is that,
-when 21s. 8d. is taken as the sum necessary so that an
-average family may keep body and soul together, 12,000,000
-people must give up in despair, and many other millions,
-depending on wages of 30s. or even 40s. a week, live
-anxious days. And this despair or anxiety is not on account
-of life, in all its multitudinous aspects, but only as to
-the maintenance of simple physical efficiency.</p>
-<div class="footnote" id="f242">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#r242" title="Return to text">2</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-These and other figures are put together very lucidly by Mr. Will Reason
-in a little shilling book, “Poverty” published by Headly Bros., which I commend
-to all as a good introduction to the subject.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="bq">
-
-<p>Let us, says Mr. Rowntree, clearly understand what physical
-efficiency means. A family living upon the scale allowed
-for in this estimate must never spend a penny on
-railway fare or omnibus. They must never go into the
-country unless they walk. They must never purchase a
-halfpenny newspaper or buy a ticket for a popular concert.
-They must write no letters to absent children, for they cannot
-afford to pay the postage. They must never contribute
-anything to their church or chapel or give any help to a
-neighbour which costs them money. They cannot save nor
-can they join sick clubs or trade unions, because they cannot
-pay the necessary subscriptions. The children must
-have no pocket-money for dolls, marbles, and sweets. The
-father must smoke no tobacco and must drink no beer.
-The mother must never buy any pretty clothes for herself
-or for her children. Should a child fall ill, it must be attended
-by the parish doctor; should it die, it must be
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">251</span>buried by the parish. Finally, the wage-earner must never
-be absent from his work for a single day.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A few parents of heroic mould may have succeeded in
-bringing up children to healthy and useful manhood and
-womanhood on small wages. Tales of such are repeated in
-select circles, but these families generally belong to a
-generation less open to temptation than the present. There
-are now few, very few, parents who, with an uncertain wage
-of 30s. a week, never spend a penny for the sake of pleasure,
-taste, or friendship. The result is that their own or their
-children’s physical health and well-being are sacrificed.
-The boys are rejected when they offer themselves as soldiers,
-the infant mortality is high, and the girls unprotected are
-more ready to become the victims of vice. The saddest of
-all experiences of life among the poor is the gradual declension
-of respectable families into the ranks of the destitute,
-when loss of work finds them without resources in body or
-skill.</p>
-
-<p>It is the poverty of the great multitude of the working
-people and not the destitution of the very poor which is the
-force of the present discontent. This is not realized even
-by Mrs. George Kerr, whose book, “The Path of Social
-Progress,” seems to me one of the best of those lately published
-on the subject. She speaks of Dr. Chalmers as having
-advocated a policy “which still holds the field,” and is
-the “only scheme which actually did diminish poverty”.
-But this policy aimed at diminishing a poverty which was
-practically destitution, and its method was to strengthen the
-people in habits which would enable them to live independent
-lives on wages of 20s. a week. Mrs. Kerr herself talks of
-the importance of a wife averaging her husband’s wages, so
-that if her husband as a painter earns 36s. a week for four
-months the family expenditure ought to be limited within
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">252</span>18s. a week, and she evidently condemns as waste the purchase
-of a perambulator or bicycle. The methods she advocates
-by which character may be raised and strengthened
-are admirable, and the lead given by Dr. Chalmers cannot
-be too closely followed, but they have reference to destitution
-and not to the poverty from which working people
-suffer whose wages reach a more or less uncertain 30s. or
-40s. a week.</p>
-
-<p>Destitution, in the crusade against which philanthropists
-and Poor Law reformers are so well engaged, does not indeed
-affect the present discontent, except in so far as the presence
-of the destitute is a warning to the workman of his possible
-fate. A mechanic is, perhaps, earning 30s. a week, or even
-more; he, by great frugality on his own part, or by almost
-miraculous management on his wife’s part, just succeeds in
-keeping his family in health; he sees the destitute in their
-wretchedness, he hears of many who are herded in the
-prison-like workhouses, and he feels that if he loses his work,
-if illness overtakes him or his wife, their fate must be his
-fate. The destitute may be a burden to the nation, but
-they are also a danger, in so far as they by their examples
-rouse a dangerous mood in thousands of workpeople whose
-wages hardly lift them out of the reach of poverty, and give
-them no opportunity by saving to make the future secure.</p>
-
-<p>The cure of destitution, necessary though it be on
-humane and economic grounds, is not the remedy for the
-present discontent. If all people incapable of earning a
-living were cared for under the best conditions, if by careful
-selection according to the straitest sect of the eugenists
-all the people engaged in work were fit for their work, if by
-better education and more scientific physical training every
-child were fully developed, or if by moral and religious impulse
-all citizens were to become frugal and self-restrained,
-there would still be the poverty which is the source of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">253</span>danger so long as the share of the national income which
-comes to the workers is so small. The greatest need of the
-greatest number is a larger income.</p>
-
-<p>It is, I think, fair to say that on their present income the
-majority of our people can neither enjoy themselves rationally
-nor give an intelligent vote as joint governors of the
-nation. They have not the freedom which takes pride in
-self-government.</p>
-
-<p>There are, it must be evident, few signs of rational enjoyment
-in the vastly increased pleasure-seeking of to-day.
-The people crowd into the country, but only a few people
-find anything in nature which is theirs. They pass by the
-memorials of great men and great events, and seldom feel
-a thrill of national pride. They wander aimlessly, helplessly
-through museums and picture-galleries, the things
-they see calling out little response in their minds. They
-have a limited and often perverted taste for music, and have
-so little conversation that on holidays they are silent or
-shout senseless songs. They get a short-lived excitement
-out of sport, so that for a whole countryside the event of a
-year is a football match and the chief interest of a Press recording
-the affairs of the Empire is the betting news. The
-recreations of the people and their Bank Holiday pleasures,
-at a time when the universal mind is stirring with a consciousness
-of new capacity, and the world is calling more
-loudly than ever that its good things should be enjoyed,
-give cause for some anxiety. Where there is no rational
-enjoyment there is likely to be discontent and mischief.</p>
-
-<p>The people cannot enjoy themselves so as to satisfy their
-nature because of poverty. They began to work before
-they had time to enjoy learning and before they had become
-conscious of their capacities and tastes. They have
-been crushed from their youth upwards by the necessity of
-earning a livelihood, and have never had the leisure to look
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">254</span>at the beautiful world in which they have been placed. They
-have from their childhood been caught in the industrial
-machine, and have been swept away from the things which
-as men and women they were meant to enjoy. They have
-been too poor to find their pleasure in hope or in memory,
-enough for them if they have been able to snatch at the
-present and passing excitement.</p>
-
-<p>Poverty is the enemy of rational enjoyment, and it also
-prevents the freedom which has pride in self-government.
-The people cannot be said to be keen to take a part in the
-government of their country, they are almost ready to accept
-a despot if they could secure for themselves more
-health and comfort. There is evident failure to grasp
-great principles in politics, and a readiness to accept in their
-stead a popular cry. Parties are judged by their promises,
-and national interests are often put below private interests;
-motives which are untrue to human nature are charged
-against opponents, and the “mob spirit” has an easy
-victory over individual judgment. The votes of the people
-may be at any moment fatal to the commonwealth.</p>
-
-<p>Poverty is to a large extent the cause of this weakness in
-self-government and of the consequent danger to the nation.
-People whose minds have been crushed under the daily
-anxiety about the daily bread have little thought for any
-object but “how to live,” and thus they are apt to lose the
-power of vision. They see money as the only good, and
-they are disposed to measure beauty, tradition, and work in
-its terms. The pictures of “the happy homes of England”
-and the tales of her greatness have for them little meaning.
-“What are our homes that we should fight for them?”
-“What has England done for us?” The welfare of the
-nation is nothing alongside that of their own class; their
-chief want is security from starvation.</p>
-
-<p>Some conception of the nation as a whole is necessary to
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">255</span>kindle interest in self-government, and modern poverty is
-gradually blotting out the old conception which grew up
-when people loved the countryside, where the fields laughed
-and sang with corn and the cottages nestled in gardens,
-and when they had leisure to enjoy the tales of their fathers’
-great deeds. Some knowledge is also necessary if those
-who give votes have to decide on policies which affect international
-relations, and hold firmly to principles in dark as
-well as in bright times. But how can the men and women
-have such knowledge who have been driven by the poverty
-of their homes to go to work as children, and have had no
-leisure in which to read history or to dream dreams? Of
-course they vacillate and of course they fall victims to
-shallow philosophy.</p>
-
-<p>The people, in a word, because of poverty, are not free.
-They are “cogs in a great machine which uses human lives
-as the raw stuff out of which to fashion material wealth”.
-They are by fear of starvation compelled to be instruments
-of production almost as much as if they were under a law of
-slavery. They do not live for an end in themselves, but
-for an end for which others desire to use them.</p>
-
-<p>The poverty of the multitude of workpeople, which limits
-their capacities for enjoyment and for self-government, and
-is divided only by a very thin partition from the destitution
-of squalor and starvation, is, I believe, the chief source of
-our present discontent, and of the bitterness which makes
-that discontent dangerous. The “cares of this life” equally
-with “the deceitfulness of riches” are apt to choke that
-communion with an ideal which is the source of healthy
-progress.</p>
-
-<p>Schemes of relief and charity do not aim to reach this
-poverty. What, then, is to be done? “Give more education,
-and better education,” is the reply of the best reformers.
-“Let there be smaller classes in the elementary
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">256</span>school, so that each child’s personality may be developed
-by the teacher’s personality.” “Let more attention be
-given to physical training.” “Let compulsory continuous
-education prevent the appalling wastage which leaves young
-people to find their interests in the excitement of the street.”
-Yes, a system of more and of better education would send
-out men and women stronger to labour and more fit both
-for the enjoyment and business of life. But poverty still
-stands in the way of such a system of education. The
-family budget of the mass of the people cannot keep the
-boy or girl away from work up to the age of fifteen or
-sixteen, nor can it allow the space and leisure necessary for
-study, for reading, and for intellectual recreation.</p>
-
-<p>What, then, is to be done? The answer demands the
-best thought of our best statesmen. There are, doubtless,
-many things possible, and no one thing will be sufficient.
-But by some means or other the great national income must
-be so shared that the 39,000,000 of poor may have a larger
-proportion.</p>
-
-<p>We have lately been warned against careless talk about
-rights. It may, therefore, be inaccurate to say that
-39,000,000 out of 45,000,000 citizens have a right to more
-than half of the eighteen hundred million pounds of income.
-But it is as inaccurate to say that 6,000,000 citizens have a
-right to the half of the eighteen hundred million pounds
-which they now receive. What are called “rights” have been
-settled by law on principles which seemed to the lawmakers
-of the time the best for the commonwealth. It is law
-made by our ancestors by which it is possible to transfer
-the property of the dead to the living, providing thereby
-a foundation on which stands the mighty accumulation of
-£13,762,000,000. It is, indeed, by such laws that the
-capitalist who has saved a small sum is able to go on increasing
-that sum to millions. There is no natural right
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">257</span>by which the poor may be said to have a claim on wealth
-or the rich to possess wealth.</p>
-
-<p>Law which has determined the lines which the present
-distribution of the national income follows might determine
-others which would make the poor richer and the rich
-poorer. Law has lately, by a system of insurance and
-pensions, given some security for illness, old age, and unemployment;
-it has in some trades fixed a minimum
-wage.</p>
-
-<p>This principle might be extended. The consequent better
-organization of labour and its improved capacity would
-secure larger wages for efficient workers and probably reduce
-the cost of production for the benefit of consumers,
-but doubtless the number of the unemployed would be increased.
-Their inefficiency would not earn the minimum
-wage. For these, training or a refuge would have to be
-provided in farm colonies, industrial schools, or detention
-colonies, in accordance with the suggestion of the Poor Law
-Commissioners.</p>
-
-<p>The law might, by taxing the holders of the accumulated
-wealth of the nation, subsidize education, so that no child
-by want of food and clothing should be driven from school
-before the age of fifteen or sixteen. It might, by securing
-for the poor as well as for the rich an abundant provision of
-air-space and water for the healthy and adequate care and
-attention for the sick, reduce the death-rate among the
-39,000,000 poor people to the level of that which now obtains
-among the 6,000,000 richer people. “Health before
-all things” has long been on the banner of politicians, and
-though much has been done much more remains to be done.
-There is no reason why the death-rate of a poor district
-should be higher than that of a rich district.</p>
-
-<p>Law, to offer one other example, might do more “to
-nationalize luxuries”. In an article on “Practicable
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">258</span>Socialism,” which, as the first-fruits of an experience gained
-by my wife and myself in ten years of Whitechapel life, the
-Editor of this Review accepted in April, 1883, I suggested
-that legislation might provide for the people not what they
-<em>want</em> but what they <em>need</em>. Much has been done in this
-direction during the last thirty years; but still there is not
-the free and sufficient provision of the best music in summer
-and winter, of the best art, of the best books—there is not
-even the adequate supply of baths and flower-gardens, which
-would bring within the reach of the many the enjoyments
-which are the surest recreations of life.</p>
-
-<p>It is thus possible to give examples of laws which would
-bring to the poor the use of a larger share of the national
-income. It is not easy to frame laws which, while they
-remove the burden and the danger of poverty, may by
-encouraging energy and self-respect develop industrial
-resourcefulness. But it ought not to be beyond statesmen’s
-power to devise such measures.</p>
-
-<p>The point, however, which I desire to make clear is that
-if the poor are to become richer the rich must become
-poorer. Increase of production followed by an increased
-national income has under the present laws—as has been
-shown in the booming trade of recent years—meant that
-the rich have become richer. The present income is sufficient
-to assure the greater health and well-being of the whole
-population, but the rich must submit to receive a smaller
-proportion.</p>
-
-<p>This proposition rouses much wrath. Its advocates are
-charged with preaching spoliation and robbery, with setting
-class against class, and with destroying the basis on which
-national prosperity is settled. The taxation which compels
-the rich to reduce their expenditure on holidays and luxuries
-may seem hard, and the fear lest the tax which this
-year takes 5 per cent of their income will be further increased
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">259</span>may induce panic among certain classes; but it is harder
-for the poor to go on suffering for want of the means of
-life, and there is more reason for panic in the thought that
-the mass of the people remain indifferent to the national
-greatness. The tax, it must be remembered, which reduces
-the expenditure of the rich on things which perish in their
-using—on out-of-season foods, on aimless locomotion, and
-the excitements of ostentation—and at the same time makes
-it possible for the poor to spend more on food and clothing,
-increases the work of working people. The millions of
-money, for example, taken from the rich to supply pensions
-for the poor have enabled the old people to spend money
-on food and clothing, which has been better for the nation’s
-trade than money spent on luxuries. It is a striking fact
-that if the people used what is held to be a bare sufficiency
-of woollen and cotton goods, the demand for these goods
-would be increased threefold to sixfold. The transference,
-therefore, of more of the national income from the few rich
-to the many poor need not alarm patriots.</p>
-
-<p>The tax-collectors’ interference with the use of the accumulated
-wealth, now controlled by a comparatively small
-number of the people, is much less dangerous to the national
-prosperity than the discontent which arises from
-poverty. A proposition which offers security for the nation
-at the cost of some sacrifice by a class should, it might be
-expected, be met to-day by the more powerful members of
-society as willingly as in old days the nobles met the call
-to battle. But the powerful members of modern society
-hate the doctrine of taxation, and the hatred becomes a sort
-of instinct which draws them towards any alternative policy
-which may put off the evil day. If they give, their gifts
-are generous, frequently very generous, but often unconsciously
-they have regarded them as a sort of ransom which
-they threaten they will not pay if taxes are imposed, doing
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">260</span>thereby injustice to their generosity. The rich do not
-realize the meaning of poverty, its wounds to human nature,
-or its dangers to the nation.</p>
-
-<p>Poverty, I would submit is at the root of our present
-discontent, not the poverty which the Poor Law and charity
-are to relieve, but the poverty of the great mass of the
-workers. Out of this poverty rises the enemy which
-threatens our peace and our greatness, and this poverty is
-due not to want of trade or work or wealth, but to the
-want of thought as to the distribution of our enormous
-national income. When the meaning of poverty is realized,
-the courage and the sacrifice which in the past have so often
-dared loss to avert danger will hardly fail because the loss
-to be faced is represented by the demand-note of the tax-collector.
-Gifts cannot avert the danger, repression will
-increase the danger, and the preachers who believe in the
-coming of the Kingdom must for the old text, “God loveth
-a cheerful giver,” substitute as its equivalent, “God loveth
-a cheerful taxpayer”.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Section 5-->
-<div class="section">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">261</span>
- <h2 id="sect5">SECTION <abbr title="5">V.</abbr><br /> <br />SOCIAL SERVICE.</h2>
-</div>
-<div class="synopsis">
-
-<p class="firstpara"><a href="#ch25" title="Go to Chapter 25">Of Town
-Planning</a>—<a href="#ch26" title="Go to Chapter 26">The Mission of
-Music</a>—<a href="#ch27" title="Go to Chapter 27">The Real Social
-Reformer</a>—<a href="#ch28" title="Go to Chapter 28">Where Charity
-Fails</a>—<a href="#ch29" title="Go to Chapter 29">Landlordism
-Up-to-date</a>—<a href="#ch30" title="Go to Chapter 30">The Church and Town Planning.</a></p>
-
-</div>
-<h3 title="OF TOWN PLANNING." id="ch25">OF TOWN PLANNING.<a href="#f251" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Mrs. S. A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>January, 1911.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f251">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch25" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Cornhill Magazine”. By kind permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Much</span> has been said lately about town planning. Conferences
-have been held, speeches have been made, articles
-have been written, papers have been read, and columns of
-newspaper-notices have appeared, and yet I am daring to
-occupy eleven pages of the <span class="sc">Cornhill Magazine</span> to try
-and add a few more remarks to what has already been so
-well and so forcibly put forth.</p>
-
-<p>But in apology for the presumption, it can be said that
-what I want to say does not entrench upon the province of
-the architect, the surveyor, or the artist. The questions of
-traffic-congestion, density of population, treatment of levels,
-arrangement of trams, water or gas, relation of railway
-termini or docks to thoroughfares, organization of periodic
-excess of street usage, relative positions of municipal buildings,
-harmony of material and design, standardization of
-streets and road grading, appreciation of scale; on these
-matters I will not write, for on them contributions, interesting,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">262</span>dull, suggestive, or learned, have been abundantly produced,
-and “are they not written in the Book of the Chronicles”
-of the great Conference held last month under the auspices of
-the Royal Institute of British Architects? And are not their
-potentialities visible beneath the legal phraseology of Mr. John
-Burns’ Town-planning Act of last Parliament?</p>
-
-<p>It is so delightful to realize that some of the best brains
-of this and other countries are turning their thoughts to the
-solution of what Mr. T. S. Horsfall (who for many years
-was a voice crying in the wilderness) demanded as the elemental
-right of every human being, “the conditions of a
-healthy life”. It is comforting to know that others are
-doing the thinking, especially when one is old, and can
-recall one’s passionate, youthful indignation at the placid acceptance
-of stinking courts and alleys as the normal homes
-for the poor, when the memory is still vivid of the grand
-day when one portion of the network of such courts, in St.
-Jude’s parish, was swept away, and a grave, tall, carefully
-planned tenement building, erected by the public-spirited
-kindness of the late Mr. George M. Smith, arose in its
-stead, “built to please Barnett as an experiment”.</p>
-
-<p>Some five-and-twenty years ago, when old Petticoat
-Lane was pulled down, my husband sent in to the Local
-Authority a suggestion of laying the area out so that Commercial
-Road should be continued right through to Bishopsgate;
-the letter and plans were merely acknowledged
-and the proposal ignored. Five years ago we filled one of
-the rooms in the Whitechapel Exhibition with plans of
-how East London might be improved, but it elicited only
-little interest, local or otherwise; and now last month, but
-a few years later, all the walls of Burlington House were
-covered with town-planning exhibits, drawings, plans, and
-designs, and its floor space amply supplied with models
-from all parts of the world.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">263</span>And the thought given is so fresh, so unconventional,
-and so full of characteristics, that one came away from a
-careful study of that great Exhibition with a clear sense of
-the individualities of the various nations, as they had stated
-their ideals for their towns. Some in broad avenues, great
-piazzas, parallel streets, careful to adopt Christopher
-Wren’s ideal, that “gardens and unnecessary vacuities <span class="ellipsis">..</span>.
-be placed out of the town”. Some in fairy cities, girt with
-green girdles of open space, tree-lined roads, parks designed
-for quiet as well as for play, waterways used for
-pleasure locomotion as well as for business traffic, contours
-considered as producers of beauty, the view as well as the
-shelter planned for. Some with scrupulous care for the
-history of the growth of the city, its natural features, the
-footmarks left by its wars, each utilized with due regard to
-modern requirements and the tendencies of the future.
-Some glorying in the preservation of every scrap which
-could record age or civic history, others blatantly determined
-to show that the old was folly, and that only of the
-brand-new can it be said “the best is yet to be”.</p>
-
-<p>The imagination is stirred by the opportunities which
-the Colonies possess, and envy is mixed with gratitude that
-they will have the chance of creating glorious cities warned
-by the Old Country’s mistakes, and realizing by the
-progress of economic science that the flow of humanity is
-ever towards aggregation. The “Back-to-the-land” cry
-falls on ninety irresponsive ears to ten responsive ones, for
-the large majority of human beings desire to live in juxtaposition
-with mankind. It behoves thinkers all the more,
-therefore, to plan beautiful cities, places to live as well as to
-work in, and enough of them to prevent a few becoming so
-large as to absorb more than a healthy share of national
-life and wealth.</p>
-
-<p>But if all of us may think imperially, it is given to most
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">264</span>of us only to act locally, and, therefore, I will convey your
-minds and mine back from the visions of town planning
-amid the plains of Canada, the fiords and mountains of
-British Columbia, the high lands and broad velds of Africa,
-the varied beauties of wood, hill, and sea of Australia and
-New Zealand, back from the stimulating, almost intoxicating,
-vision of the work lying before our great Colonies, to
-the sobering atmosphere of a London or a Manchester
-suburb, with its miles of mean streets already built, or its
-open fields and new-made roads, laid out as if under the
-ruler of the office-boy.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever undertakes the area to be laid out, whether it is
-the municipality or a public land company, should see that
-the planning is done on a large scale. The injury wrought
-to towns hitherto has been often due to the narrowness of
-personal interests and the limitation of the acres dealt with,
-both of which dim the far sight. The almost unconscious
-influence of dealing with a wide area is shown in existing
-schemes, which have been undertaken by owners of large
-estates, whether the area be planned for an industrial village,
-such as Mr. Lever’s at Port Sunlight, or for a housing-reform
-scheme like Mr. Cadbury’s at Bournville; or to accommodate
-the leisured, as the Duke of Devonshire’s at
-Eastbourne, or the artistic, as Mr. Comyns Carr’s at Bedford
-Park; or to create a fresh commercial city, as conceived by
-Mr. Ebenezer Howard at Letchworth; or to house all
-classes in attractive surroundings as at the Hampstead
-Garden Suburb. Whatever be the purpose, the fact of a
-large area has influenced them all. It has had, as it were,
-something of the same effect as the opportunity of the
-Sistine Chapel had on Michael Angelo. The population to
-be accommodated was large enough to require its own
-places of worship, public halls, or clubs, its schools, and
-recreation-grounds. So the lines were drawn with a generous
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">265</span>hand, and human needs considered, with a view to their
-provision within the confines of the estate, instead of being
-treated as the organ-grinder, and advised to seek satisfaction
-in the next street—or accommodation on neighbouring land.</p>
-
-<p>The idea of town or suburb planning has not yet found its
-way into the minds which dominate local Public Authorities,
-but a few examples will doubtless awaken them to the benefits
-of the Act, if not from the æsthetic, yet from the economic
-point of view, and then borough or ward boundaries will become
-as unnoticeable for town-planning purposes as ecclesiastical
-parish ones now are for educational administration.</p>
-
-<p>Foremost among the problems will be the allotment of
-different positions of the area under consideration to different
-classes of society, or perhaps it would be better to say
-different standards of income.</p>
-
-<p>No one can view with satisfaction any town, whether in
-England, America, or the Colonies, where the poor, the
-strenuous, and the untutored live as far as possible removed
-from the rich, the leisured, and the cultivated. The divorce
-is injurious to both. Too commonly is it supposed that the
-poor only suffer from the separation, but those who have
-the privilege of friendships among the working-people know
-that the wealthy lose more by not making their acquaintance
-than can possibly be computed.</p>
-
-<p>“I often advise you to make friends,” said the late Dr.
-Jowett to a body of undergraduates assembled in Balliol
-Hall to hearken to my husband and Mr. C. S. Loch, as they
-spoke of the inhabitants of East or South London in the
-early ’seventies, but “now I will add further advice: Make
-some of your friends among the poor.”</p>
-
-<p>Excellent as the advice is, it is hardly possible to follow
-when certain classes live at one end of the town, and other
-classes dwell in the extreme opposite district. It may be
-given to the few to create artificial methods of meeting, but
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">266</span>to the large mass of people, so long as they live in separate
-neighbourhoods, they must remain ignorant of each other to a very
-real, if undefinable, loss—the loss of understanding, mutual respect,
-and that sense of peace which comes when one sits in the parlour and
-knows the servants are doing their best, or works in the kitchen and
-knows that those who govern are directed by a large-hearted sympathy.
-Again and again in 1905-6, when the idea of provision being made
-for all classes of society in the Hampstead Garden Suburb was being
-submitted to the public, I was told that the cultivated would never
-live voluntarily in the neighbourhood of the industrial classes, but I
-was immensely surprised when I laid the scheme before a leading workman
-and trade-unionist to be told:—</p>
-
-<p>“It is all very nice as you say it, Mrs. Barnett, but I’m mistaken
-if you will find any self-respecting workman who cares to bring his
-family to live alongside of the rich. They’re a bad example with their
-pleasure-loving sons and idle, vain daughters, always thinking of
-dressing, and avoiding work and natural duties as if they were sins.”</p>
-
-<p>The acceptance of society newspaper paragraphs and divorce reports as
-accurate and exhaustive accounts of the lives of the leisured, even
-by thinking workmen, serves as an additional evidence of the need of
-common neighbourhood to correct so dangerous and disintegrating a view.</p>
-
-<p>There can be no doubt but that Part III of the Housing Act of 1890 is,
-in so far as it affects recent town development, responsible for much
-of this lamentable ignorance, for under its powers provision can only
-be made to house the industrial classes, and thus whole neighbourhoods
-have grown up, as large in themselves as a small provincial town
-occupied by one class, or those classes the range of whose difference
-is represented by requiring two or three bedrooms, a “kitchen,” or a
-“parlour cottage”.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">267</span>That this segregation of classes into distinct areas is
-unnecessary as well as socially dangerous, is evidenced by
-many small English towns, such as Wareham, Godalming,
-Huntingdon, where the grouping together of all sorts of
-people has taken place under normal conditions of growth,
-as well as in the Garden Suburb at Hampstead, where the
-areas to house people of various degrees of income were
-clearly defined in the original plan, and have been steadfastly
-adhered to. In that estate the rents range from
-tenements of 3s. 3d. a week to houses standing in their own
-gardens of rentals to £250 a year, united by cottages, villas,
-and houses priced at every other figure within that gamut.
-The inhabitants can dwell there as owners, or by renting
-their dwellings, or through the welcoming system and
-elastic doors of the co-partners, or as weekly tenants in the
-usual way. No sort of difficulty has arisen, and the often-expressed
-fears have proved groundless. Indeed, the result
-of the admixture of all classes has been a kindlier feeling
-and a richer sympathy, as people of varied experience,
-different educational standards, and unequal incomes feel
-themselves drawn together in the enjoyment of good music,
-in the discussion of social problems, in the preparation by
-their children of such a summer’s day festival as the
-“Masque of Fairthorpe,” or to enjoy the unaffected
-pleasure of the public open spaces and wall-less gardens.</p>
-
-<p>In England we have not yet reached the gorgeous,
-riotous generosity of the Americans, who plan parks by
-the mile, and cheerfully spend, as Boston did, £7,500,000
-for a girdle of parks, woods, meadows, sea and lake embankments;
-or vote, as Chicago did, £3,600,000 for the
-creation of a connected system of twenty-two parks; but
-we in humbler England have some ground for congratulation,
-that, as a few years ago a flowerless open space was
-counted adequate, now a well-kept garden is desired;
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">268</span>but on the definition of their uses and the difficulties of
-their upkeep something has yet to be said.</p>
-
-<p>Every one has seen derelict open spaces, squares, crescents,
-three-angled pieces of ground deliberately planned
-to create beauty, but allowed to become the resting
-places of too many weary cats or disused household utensils,
-the grass neither mown, protected, nor re-sown. “The
-children like it kept so,” people say, but I doubt if
-they do. In Westminster there are two open spaces, one
-planted and cared for, the other just an unkept open
-space. Both face south, both overlook the river, both are
-open free, but the children flock into the garden, leaving
-the open space drearily empty. It is to be regretted, for
-their noise, even when it is happy shouting and not discordant
-wrangling, is disturbing to those whose strenuous
-lives necessitate that they take their exercise or rest without
-disturbance. But, on the other hand, the children are
-entitled to their share of the garden, and those “passionless
-reformers,” order, beauty, colour, may perhaps speak
-their messages more effectually into ears when they are
-young.</p>
-
-<p>The solution of the difficulty has been found by the
-Germans in their thoughtful planning of parks, and few
-things were more delightful in the Town-planning Exhibition
-than the photographs of the children paddling in the
-shallow pools, making castles (I saw no sign of fortifications!)
-in the sand, playing rough running games on gravel
-slopes, or quieter make-believes in the spinneys, all
-specially provided in specially allocated children’s areas.
-Isolated instances of such provision are existent in our
-English parks, but the principle, that some people are
-entitled to public peace as well as others to public play, is
-not yet recognized, and that there should be zones in which
-noise is permitted, and zones in which silence must be
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">269</span>maintained is as yet an inconceivable restriction. So the
-children usually shout, race, scream, or squabble amid the
-grown-ups, kept even in such order as they are by the fear
-of the park-keeper, whom their consciences encourage
-them to credit with supernatural powers of observation.
-He is usually a worthy, patient man, but an expensive adjunct,
-and one who could sometimes be dispensed with if
-the children’s “sphere of influence” were clearly defined.
-The promiscuous presence of children affects also both the
-standard of cost of the upkeep of open spaces, although
-the deterioration of their standard is more often due to the
-lapse of the authority who created them.</p>
-
-<p>It is because the changes of circumstances so frequently
-affect disastrously the appearance of public spaces that
-I would offer for consideration the suggestion that they
-should be placed under the care of the municipality,
-under stringent covenants concerning their uses, purposes,
-maintenance, and reservation for the inhabitants of special
-dwellings. This step would not, of course, be necessary
-where the owner or company still holds the land, but in
-cases where the houses for which the square or joint garden
-was provided have each strayed into separate ownership,
-and their ground-rents treated only as investments, then
-everyone’s duty usually becomes no one’s duty, and the
-garden drops into a neglected home for “unconsidered
-trifles”. I could quote instances of this, not only in East
-London, but in Clifton, Reading, Ventnor, York, or give
-brighter examples of individual effort and enthusiasm which
-have awakened the interest of the neighbours to take pride
-in the appearance, and pay towards the upkeep, of their
-common pleasance.</p>
-
-<p>The arguments in favour of the municipality having the
-care of these publicly enjoyed or semi-private open spaces
-would be the advantages of a higher gardening standard,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">270</span>the economy of interchange of roots, seeds, and tools,
-the benefit of a staff large enough to meet seasonal needs,
-the stimulating competition of one garden against another,
-and the additional gift of beauty to the passers-by, who
-could thus share without intrusion the fragrance of the
-flowers and the melody of symphonies in colour.</p>
-
-<p>“But how can the public enjoy the gardens when they
-are usually behind walls?” I hear that delightful person,
-the deadly practical man, murmur; and this brings me to
-another question, “Are walls round open spaces necessary?”</p>
-
-<p>English people seem to have adopted the idea that it is
-essential to surround their parks and gardens with visible
-barriers, perhaps because England is surrounded by the sea—a
-very visible line of demarcation; but, in the stead of a
-dancing joy, a witchful barrier, uniting while it separates,
-they have put up grim hard walls, ugly dividing fences,
-barriers which challenge trespass, and make even the law-abiding
-citizen desire to climb over and see what is on the
-other side.</p>
-
-<p>It is extraordinary how firmly established is the acceptance
-of the necessity of walls and protection. Nearly
-thirty-five years ago, when the first effort was made to
-plant Mile End Road with trees, and to make its broad
-margins gracious with shrubs and plants, we were met by
-the argument that they would not be safe without high
-railings. I recall the croakings of those who combated
-the proposal to open Leicester Square to the public, and
-who of us has not listened to the regrets of the landowner
-on the expense entailed by his estate boundary fences?</p>
-
-<p>If you say, “Why make them so high, or keep them up
-so expensively, as you do not preserve your game? Why
-not have low hedges or short open fences, over which
-people can see and enjoy your property?” he will look at
-you with a gentle pity, thinking of you as a deluded idealist,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">271</span>or perhaps his expression will change into something
-not so gentle as it dawns on him that, though one is the
-respectable wife of a respectable Canon, yet one may be
-holding “some of those—Socialist theories”.</p>
-
-<p>Not long ago I went at the request of a gentleman who
-owned property, with his agent to see if suggestions could
-be made to improve the appearance of his estate and the
-happiness of his tenants. The gardens were small enough
-to be valueless, but between and around each were walls,
-many in bad repair.</p>
-
-<p>“The first thing I should do would be to pull down
-those walls, and let the air in; things will then grow, self-respect
-as well as flowers,” I said.</p>
-
-<p>“What!” exclaimed the agent, “pull down the walls?
-Why, what would the men have to lean against?” thus
-conjuring up the vision one has so often seen of men leaning
-listlessly against the public-house walls, a sight which
-the possession of a garden, large enough to be profitable as
-well as pleasurable, ought to do much to abolish.</p>
-
-<p>It is difficult to find arguments for walls. In many
-towns of America the gardens are wall-less, the public
-scrupulously observing the rights of ownership. In the
-Hampstead Garden Suburb all the gardens are wall-less,
-both public and private. The flowers bloom with the
-voluptuous abundance produced by virgin soil, but they
-remain untouched, not only by the inhabitants, which, of
-course, is to be expected, but by the thousands of visitors
-who come to see the realization of the much-talked-of
-scheme, and respect the property as they share its pleasures.</p>
-
-<p>In town-planning literature and talk much is said about
-houses, roads, centre-points to design, architectural features,
-treatment of junctions, and many other items both important
-and interesting; but the tone of thought pervading
-all that I have yet read is that it is the healthy and happy,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">272</span>the respectable and the prosperous, for whom all is to be
-arranged. It takes all sorts to make a world, and the
-town planner who excludes in his arrangements the provision
-for the lonely, the sick, the sorrowful, and the
-handicapped will lose from the midst of the community
-some of its greatest moral teachers.</p>
-
-<p>The children should be specially welcomed amid improved
-or beautiful surroundings, for the impressions made in
-youth last through life, and on the standards adopted by
-the young will depend the nation’s welfare. A vast army
-of children are wholly supported by the State, some 100,000,
-while to them can be added nearly 200,000 more for whom
-the public purse is partly responsible. In town planning
-the needs of these children should be considered, and the
-claims of the sick openly met.</p>
-
-<p>Hospitals are intended to help the sick poor, so, in
-planning the town or its growth, suitable sites should be
-chosen in relation to the population who require such aid;
-but in London many hospitals are clustered in the centre
-of the town, are enlarged, rebuilt, or improved on the old
-positions, though the people’s homes and workshops have
-been moved miles away; thus the sick suffer in body and
-become poorer in purse, as longer journeys have to be
-undertaken after accidents, or when as out-patients they
-need frequent attention.</p>
-
-<p>The wicked, the naughty, the sick, the demented, the
-sorrowful, the blind, the halt, the maimed, the old, the
-handicapped, the children are facts—facts to be faced, facts
-which demand thought, facts which should be reckoned
-with in town planning—for all, even the first-named, can
-be helped by being surrounded with “whatsoever things
-are pure, whatsoever things are lovely, and whatsoever
-things are of good report”.</p>
-
-<p>Every one who has been to Canada must have been
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">273</span>struck with the evidence of faith in educational appreciation
-which the Canadians give in the preparation of their vast
-teaching centres.</p>
-
-<p>“What impressed me greatly,” said Mr. Henry Vivian in
-his speech at the dinner given in his honour on his return
-from the Dominion, “was the preparation that the present
-people have made for the education of the future people,”
-and he described the planning of one University, whose
-buildings, sports-grounds, roads, hostels, and gardens were
-to cover 1300 acres. Compare that with the statement of
-the Secretary of a Borough Council Education Authority,
-who told me the other day, with congratulatory pleasure,
-that long negotiations had at last obtained one acre and
-a quarter for the building of a secondary school and a
-hoped-for three acres some distance off for the boys’ playground.</p>
-
-<p>The town planning of the future will make, it is to
-be hoped, generous provision for educational requirements,
-and not only for the inhabitants of the immediate locality.
-As means of transit become both cheaper and easier, it will
-be recognized as a gain for young people to go out of town
-to study, into purer air, away from nerve-wearing noise,
-amid flowers and trees, and with an outlook on a wider
-sky, itself an elevating educational influence both by day
-and night.</p>
-
-<p>The need of what may be called artificial town addition
-can only concern the elder nations, who have, scattered
-over their lands, splendid buildings in the centre of towns
-that have ceased to grow. As an example, I would quote
-Ely. What a glorious Cathedral! kept in dignified elderly
-repair, its Deans, Canons, Minors, lay-clerks, and choir, all
-doing their respective daily duties in leading worship;
-but, alas! there the population is so small (7713 souls) that
-the response by worshippers is necessarily inadequate—the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">274</span>output bears no proportion to the return. Beauty, sweetness,
-and light are wasted there and West Ham exists,
-with its 267,000 inhabitants, its vast workshops and
-factories, its miles of mean streets of drab-coloured “brick
-boxes with slate lids”—and no Cathedral, no group of kind,
-leisured clergy to leaven the heavy dough of mundane,
-cheerless toil.</p>
-
-<p>If town planning could be treated nationally, it might be
-arranged that Government factories could be established
-in Ely. Army clothiers, stationery manufactories, gunpowder
-depôts would bring the workers in their train. A
-suitable expenditure of the Public Works Loans money
-would cause the cottages to appear; schools would then
-arise, shops and lesser businesses, which population always
-brings into existence, would be started; and the Cathedral
-would become a House of Prayer, not only to the few
-religious ones who now rejoice in the services, but for the
-many whose thoughts would be uplifted by the presence in
-their midst of the stately witness of the Law of Love, and
-whose lives would be benefited by the helpful thought and
-wise consideration of those whose profession it is to serve
-the people.</p>
-
-<p>Pending great changes, something might perhaps be done
-if individual owners and builders would consider the appearance,
-not only of the house they are building, but of the
-street or road of which it forms a part. A few months ago,
-in the bright sunshine, I stood on a hill-top, facing a delightful
-wide view, on a newly developed estate, and, pencil
-in hand, wrote the colours and materials of four houses
-standing side by side. This is the list:—</p>
-
-<p>No. 1 <span class="sc">House</span>.—Roof, grey slates; walls, white plaster
-with red brick; yellow-painted woodwork; red chimneys.</p>
-
-<p>No. 2 <span class="sc">House</span>.—Roof, purpley-red tiles; walls, buff
-rough cast; brown-painted woodwork; yellow chimneys.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">275</span>
-No. 3 <span class="sc">House</span>.—Roof, orangey-red tiles; walls, grey-coloured
-rough cast; white-painted woodwork; red chimneys.</p>
-
-<p>No. 4 <span class="sc">House</span>.—Roof, crimson-red tiles; walls, stone-coloured
-rough cast; peacock-blue paint; red chimneys.</p>
-
-<p>This bare list tells of the inharmonious relation of colours,
-but it cannot supply the variety of tones of red, nor yet the
-mixture of lines, roof-angles, balcony or bow projections,
-one of which ran up to the top of a steep-pitched roof, and
-was castellated at the summit. The road was called “Bon-Accord”.
-One has sometimes to thank local authorities for
-unconscious jokes.</p>
-
-<p>My space is filled, and even a woman’s monologue must
-conclude some time! But one paragraph more may be
-taken to put in a plea for space for an Open-air Museum.
-It need not be a large and exhaustive one, for there is
-something to be said for not making museums “too bright
-and good for human nature’s daily food”. There might be
-objects of museum interest scattered in groups about the
-green girdle which the young among my readers will,
-I trust, live to see round all great towns; or an open-air
-exhibit on a limited subject might be provided, as the
-late Mr. Burt arranged so charmingly at Swanage; or the
-Shakespeare Gardens, already started in some of the London
-County Council parks, might be further developed; or the
-more ambitious schemes of Stockholm and Copenhagen
-intimated; but whichever model is adopted the idea of open-air
-museums (which might be stretched to include bird
-sanctuaries) is one which should find a place in the gracious
-environment of our well-ordered towns when they have come
-under the law and the gospel of the Town-planning Act.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Henrietta O. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">276</span>
- <h3 title="THE MISSION OF MUSIC." id="ch26">THE MISSION OF MUSIC.<a href="#f261" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>July, 1899.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f261">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch26" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “International Journal of Ethics”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara">“<span class="sc">We</span> must have something light or comic.” So say those
-who provide music for the people, and their words represent
-an opinion which is almost universal with regard to the
-popular taste. The uneducated, it is thought, must be unable
-to appreciate that which is refined or to enjoy that
-which does not make them laugh and be merry.</p>
-
-<p>Opinions exist, especially with regard to the tastes and
-wants of the poor, by the side of facts altogether inconsistent
-with those opinions. There are facts within the
-knowledge of some who live in the East End of London
-which are sufficient, at any rate, to shake this general
-opinion as to the people’s taste in music.</p>
-
-<p>In Whitechapel, where so many philanthropists have tried
-“to patch with handfuls of coal and rice” the people’s wants,
-the signs of ignorance are as evident as the signs of poverty.
-There is an almost complete absence of those influences
-which are hostile to the ignorance, not, indeed, of the mere
-elements of knowledge (the Board Schools are now happily
-everywhere prominent), but to the ignorance of joy, truth,
-and beauty. Utility and the pressure of work have crowded
-house upon house; have filled the shops with what is only
-cheap, driven away the distractions of various manners and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">277</span>various dresses, and made the place weary to the body and
-depressing to the mind.</p>
-
-<p>Nevertheless, in this district a crowd has been found
-willing, on many a winter’s night, to come and listen to parts
-of an oratorio or to selections of classical music. The oratorios
-have sometimes been given in a church by various
-bodies of amateurs who have practised together for the purpose;
-the concerts have been given in schoolrooms on
-Sunday evenings by professionals of reputation. To the
-oratorios men and women have come, some of them from the
-low haunts kept around the city by its carelessly administered
-charity, all of them of the class which, working for its
-daily bread, has no margin of time for study. Amid those
-who are generally so independent of restraint, who cough
-and move as they will, there has been a death-like stillness
-as they have listened to some fine solo of Handel’s. On
-faces which are seldom free of the marks of care, except in
-the excitement of drink, a calm has seemed to settle and
-tears to flow, for no reason but because “it is so beautiful!”
-Sometimes the music has appeared to break gradually down
-barriers that shut out some poor fellow from a fairer past or
-a better future than his present: the oppressive weight of
-the daily care lifts, other sights are in his vision, and at last,
-covering his face or sinking on his knees, he makes prayers
-which cannot be uttered. Sometimes it has seemed to seize
-one on business bent, to transport him suddenly to another
-world, and, not knowing what he feels, has forced him to
-say, “It was good to be here”. A church filled with
-hundreds of East Londoners, affected, doubtless, in different
-ways, but all silent, reverent, and self-forgetful, is a sight not
-to be forgotten or to be held to have no meaning. To the
-concerts have crowded hard-headed, unimaginative men, described
-in a local paper as being “friends of Bradlaugh”.
-These have listened to and evidently taken in difficult
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">278</span>movements of Beethoven, Schumann, and Chopin. The loud
-applause which has followed some moments of strained,
-rapt attention has proclaimed the universal feeling.</p>
-
-<p>With a knowledge of the character of the music, the
-applications for admission have increased, and the announcement
-of a hope that the concerts might be continued the
-following winter, and possibly also extended to weekday
-evenings, has brought from some of those present an expression
-of their desire for other high-class music. The
-poor quarters of cities have been too long treated as if their
-inhabitants were deficient in that which is noblest in human
-nature. Human beings want not something which will do,
-but the best.</p>
-
-<p>If it be asked what proof there be that such music has a
-permanent effect on the hearers, the only answer is that
-people do not always know how they have been most influenced.
-It is the air unconsciously breathed which affects
-the cure much more often than the medicine so consciously
-taken. Music may most deeply and permanently affect
-those who themselves can express no appreciation with
-their words or show results in their lives. Like the thousand
-things which surrounds the child and which he never
-notices, music may largely serve in the formation of
-character and the satisfaction of life. That the performance
-of this music in the East End is not followed by expressions
-of intelligent appreciation or by immediate change of life is
-no proof of its failure to influence. The fact that crowds
-come to listen is sufficient to make the world reconsider its
-opinion that the people care only for what is light or laugh-compelling.
-There is evidently in the highest music something
-which finds a response in many minds not educated
-to understand its mysteries nor interested in its creation.
-This suggests that music has in the present time a peculiar
-mission.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">279</span>“Man doth not live by bread alone,” expresses a truth
-which even those will allow who profess themselves careless
-about present-day religion. There is in human beings,
-in those whom the rich think to satisfy by increased wages
-and improved dwellings, a need of something beyond. The
-man who has won an honourable place, who by punctuality,
-honesty, and truthfulness has become the trusted
-servant of his employer, is often weary with the very
-monotony of his successful life. He has bread in abundance,
-but, unsatisfied, he dreams of filling quite another
-place in the world, perhaps as the leader daring much for
-others, perhaps as the patriot suffering much for his class and
-country, or perhaps as the poet living in others’ thoughts.
-There flits before him a vision of a fuller life, and the vision
-stirs in him a longing to share such life. The woman, too,
-who in common talk is the model wife and mother, whose
-days are filled with work, whose talk is of her children’s
-wants, whose life seems so even and uneventful, so complete
-in its very prosaicness, she, if she could be got to speak out
-the thoughts which flit through her brain as she silently
-plies her needle or goes about her household duties, would tell
-of strange longings for quite another sort of life, of passions
-and aspirations which have been scarcely allowed to take
-form in her mind. There is no one to whom “omens that
-would astonish have not predicted a future and uncovered a
-past”.</p>
-
-<p>Beyond the margin of material life is a spiritual life.
-This life has been and may still be believed to be the domain
-of religion, that which science has not known and can
-never know, which material things have not helped and can
-never help. It has been the glory of religion to develop the
-longing to be something higher and nobler by revealing to
-men the God, Who is higher than themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Religion having abdicated this domain to invade that of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">280</span>science has to-day suffered by becoming the slave of æsthetic
-and moral precepts. Her professors often yield themselves
-to the influence of form and colour or boast only of their
-morality and philanthropy.</p>
-
-<p>It is no wonder, therefore, that many who are in earnest
-and feel that neither ritualism nor philanthropy have special
-power to satisfy their natures, reject religion. But they
-will not, if they are fair to themselves, object to the
-strengthening of that power which they must allow to have
-been a source of noble endeavour and of the very science
-whose reign they acknowledge. The sense of something
-better than their best, making itself felt not in outward circumstance
-but inwardly in their hearts, has often been the
-spring of effort and of hope. It is because the forms of
-present-day religion give so little help to strengthen this
-sense, that so many now speak slightingly of religion and
-profess their independence of its forms. Religion, in fact,
-is suffering for want of expression.</p>
-
-<p>In other times men felt that the words of the Prayer Book
-and phrases now labelled “theological” did speak out, or
-at any rate did give some form to their vague, indistinct
-longing to be something else and something more; while
-the picture of God, drawn from the Bible history and Bible
-words, gave an object to their longing, making them desire
-to be like Him and to enjoy Him for ever.</p>
-
-<p>In these days, however, historical criticism and scientific
-discoveries have made the old expressions seem inadequate
-to state man’s longings or to picture God’s character. The
-words of prayers, whether the written prayers of the English
-Church or that rearrangement of old expressions called
-“extempore prayer,” do not at once fit in with the longings
-of those to whom, in these later days, sacrifice has taken other
-forms and life other possibilities. The descriptions of God,
-involving so much that is only marvellous, jar against minds
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">281</span>which have had hints of the grandeur of law and which
-have been awed not by miracles but by holiness. The
-petitions for the joys of heaven do not always meet the needs
-of those who have learnt that what they are is of more consequence
-than what they have, and the anthropomorphic
-descriptions of the character of God make Him seem less
-than many men who are not jealous, nor angry, nor revengeful.</p>
-
-<p>Words and thoughts alike often fail to satisfy modern
-wants. While prayers are being said, the listless attitude
-and wandering gaze of those in whose souls are the deepest
-needs and loftiest aspirations, proclaim the failure. Religion
-has not failed, but only its power of expressing itself.
-There lives still in man that which gropes after God, but it
-can find no form in which to clothe itself. The loss is no
-light one. Expression is necessary to active life, and without
-it, at any rate, some of the greater feelings of human
-nature must suffer loss of energy and be isolated in individuals.
-Free exercise will give those feelings strength; the
-power of utterance will teach men that they are not alone
-when they are their best selves.</p>
-
-<p>The world has been moved to many a crusade by a picture
-of suffering humanity, and the darkness of heathenism
-calls forth missionaries of one Church and another. Almost
-as moving a picture might be drawn of those who wanting
-much can express nothing. Here are men and women,
-bone of our bone, flesh of our flesh: they have that within
-them which raises them above all created things, powers by
-which they are allied to all whom the world honours, faculties
-by which they might find unfailing joy. But they have
-no form of expression and so they live a lower life, walking
-by sight, not by faith, giving rein to powers which find their
-satisfaction near at hand, and developing faculties in the use
-of which there is more of pain than joy. The power which
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">282</span>has been the spring of so much that is helpful to the world
-seems to be dead in them; that sense which has enabled
-men to stand together as brothers, trusting one another as
-common possessors of a Divine spark, seems to be without
-existence. A few may go on walking grimly the path
-of duty, but for the mass of mankind life has lost its
-brightness. Dullness unrelieved by wealth, and loneliness
-undispersed by dissipation, are the common lot. In a sense
-more terrible than ever, men are like children walking in the
-night with no language but a cry. He that will give them
-the means once more to express what they really are and
-what they really want will break the bondage.</p>
-
-<p>The fact that the music of the great masters does stir
-something in most men’s natures should be a reason for
-trying whether music might not, at any rate partially, express
-the religious life of the present day.</p>
-
-<p>There is much to be said in favour of such an experiment.
-On the one side there is the failure of existing modes of
-expression. The prettinesses of ritualism and the social
-efforts of Broad Churchism, even for the comparatively small
-numbers who adopt these forms of worship, do not meet
-those longings of the inner life which go beyond the love
-of beauty and beyond the love of neighbours. The vast
-majority of the people belong to neither ritualism nor Broad
-Churchism; they live, at best, smothering their aspirations
-in activity; at worst, in dissipation, having forsaken duty
-as well as God. Their morality has followed their religion.
-In the East End of London this is more manifest, not because
-the people of the East are worse than the people of
-the West, but because the people of the East have no call
-to seem other than they are. Amid many signs hopeful
-for the future there is also among East Londoners, unblushingly
-declared at every street-corner, the self-indulgence
-which robs the young and weak of that which is their right,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">283</span>education and protection; the vice which saps a nation’s
-strength is boasted of in the shop and flaunted in the highways,
-and the selfishness which is death to a man is often
-the professed ground of action.</p>
-
-<p>Morality for the mass of men has been dependent on the
-consciousness of God, and with the lack of means of expression
-the consciousness of God seems to have ceased. On
-this ground alone there would be reason for making an
-experiment with music, if only because it offers itself as a
-possible means of that expression which the consciousness
-of God supports. And, on the other side, there is the
-natural fitness of music for the purpose.</p>
-
-<p>In the first place, the great musical compositions may be
-asserted to be, not arrangements which are the results of
-study and the application of scientific principles, but the
-results of inspiration. The master, raised by his genius
-above the level of common humanity to think fully what
-others think only in part, and to see face to face what others
-see only darkly, puts into music the thoughts which no words
-can utter and the descriptions which no tongue can tell.
-What he himself would be, his hopes, his fears, his aspirations,
-what he himself sees of that holiest and fairest which
-has haunted his life, he tells by his art. Like the prophets,
-having had a vision of God, his music proclaims what he
-himself would desire to be, and expresses the emotions of
-his higher nature.</p>
-
-<p>If this be a correct account of the meaning of those great
-masterpieces which may every day be performed in the ears
-of the people, it is easy to see how they may be made to
-serve the purpose in view. The greatest master is a man
-with much in him akin to the lowest of the human race.
-The homage all pay to the great is but the assertion of this
-kinship, the assertion of men’s claim to be like the great
-when the obstructions of their mal-formation and mal-education
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">284</span>shall be trained away. Men generally will, therefore,
-find in that which expresses the thoughts of the
-greatest the means of expressing their own thoughts. The
-music which enfolds the passions that have never found
-utterance, that have never been realized by the ordinary
-man, will somehow appeal to him and make him recognize
-his true self and his true object. Music being itself the
-expression of the wants of man, all who share in man’s
-nature will find in it an expression for longings and visions
-for which no words are adequate. It will be what prayers
-and meditations now so often fail to be, a means of linking
-men with the source of the highest thoughts and efforts,
-and of enabling them to enjoy God, a joy which so few
-now understand.</p>
-
-<p>More than this, the best existing expression of that which
-men have found to be good has been by parables, whose
-meanings have not been limited to time or place but are of
-universal application. Heard by different people and at
-different times, parables have given to all alike a conception
-of that which eye cannot see nor voice utter; each hearer
-in each age has gained possibly a different conception, but
-in the use of the same words all have felt themselves to be
-united. The parable of the prodigal son has represented
-the God who has been won to love by the sacrifice of Christ
-and also the God who freely forgives. Such forms of expression
-it is most important to have in an age when movement
-is so rapid that things become old as soon as they are
-new, separating to-morrow those who have stood together
-to-day, and when at the same time the longing for unity is
-so powerful that the thought of it acts as a charm on men’s
-minds.</p>
-
-<p>In some degree all art is a parable, as it makes known
-in a figure that which is unknown, revealing the truth the
-artist has felt to others just in so far as they by education
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">285</span>and surroundings have been qualified to understand it.
-Titian’s picture of the Assumption helped the mediæval
-saint to worship better the Virgin Mother, and also helps
-those of our day to realize the true glory of womanhood.</p>
-
-<p>But music, even more than painting and poetry, fulfils
-this condition. It reveals that which the artist has seen,
-and reveals it with no distracting circumstance of subject,
-necessary to the picture or the poem. The hearer who listens
-to a great composition is not drawn aside to think of some
-historical or romantic incident; he is free to think of that
-of which such incidents are but the clothes. Age succeeds
-to age; the music which sounded in the ears of the fathers
-sounds also in the ears of the children. Place and circumstance
-force men asunder, but still for those of every party
-or sect and for those in every quarter of the world the great
-works of the masters of music remain. The works may
-be performed in the West End or in the East End—the
-hearers will have different conceptions, will see from different
-points of view the vision which inspired the master, but
-will nevertheless have the sense that the music which serves
-all alike creates a bond of union.</p>
-
-<p>Music then would seem fitted to be in this age the expression
-of that which men in their inmost hearts most
-reverence. Creeds have ceased to express this and have
-become symbols of division rather than of unity! Music is
-a parable, telling in sounds which will not change of that
-which is worthy of worship, telling it to each hearer just in
-so far as he by nature and circumstance is able to understand
-it, but giving to all that feeling of common life and
-assurance of sympathy which has in old times been the
-strength of the Church. By music, men may be helped to
-find God who is not far from any one of us, and be brought
-again within reach of that tangible sympathy, the sympathy
-of their fellow-creatures.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">286</span>There is, however, still one other requisite in a perfect
-form of religious expression. The age is new and thoughts
-are new, but nevertheless they are rooted in the past.
-More than any one acknowledges is he under the dominion
-of the buried ages. He who boasts himself superior to the
-superstitions of the present is the child of parents whose
-high thoughts, now transmitted to their child, were intertwined
-with those superstitions. Any form of expression
-therefore which aims at covering emotions said to be new
-must, like these emotions, have associations with the past.
-A brand new form of worship, agreeable to the most enlightened
-reason and surrounded with that which the present
-asserts to be good, would utterly fail to express thoughts
-and feelings, which, if born of the present, share the nature
-of parents who lived in the past. It is interesting to notice
-how machines and institutions which are the product of the
-latest thought bear in their form traces of that which they
-have superseded; the railway carriage suggests the stage-coach,
-and the House of Commons reminds us of the Saxon
-Witanagemot. The absolutely new would have no place in
-this old world, and a new form of expression could not
-express the emotions of the inner life.</p>
-
-<p>Music which offers a form in which to clothe the yearnings
-of the present has been associated with the corresponding
-yearnings of the past, and would seem therefore
-to fulfil the necessary condition. Those who to-day feel
-music telling out their deepest wants and proclaiming their
-praise of the good and holy, might recognize in the music
-echoes of the songs which broke from the lips of Miriam
-and David, of Ambrose and Gregory, and of those simple
-peasants who one hundred years ago were stirred to life on
-the moors of Cornwall and Wales.</p>
-
-<p>The fact that music has been thus associated with religious
-life gives it an immense, if an unrecognized power.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">287</span>The timid are encouraged and the bold are softened! When
-the congregation is gathered together and the sounds rise
-which are full of that which is and perhaps always will be
-“ineffable,” there float in, also, memories of other sounds,
-poor perhaps and uncouth, in which simple people have
-expressed their prayers and praises; the atmosphere, as it
-were, becomes religious, and all feel that the music is not
-only beautiful, but the means of bringing them nearer to
-the God after Whom they have sought so long and often
-despaired to find.</p>
-
-<p>For these reasons music seems to have a natural fitness
-for becoming the expression of the inner life. The experiment,
-at any rate, may be easily tried. There is in every
-parish a church with an organ, and arrangements suitable
-for the performance of grand oratorios; there are concert
-halls or schoolrooms suitable for the performance of classical
-music. There are many individuals and societies with
-voices and instruments capable of rendering the music of
-the masters. Most of them have, we cannot doubt, the enthusiasm
-which would induce them to give their services to
-meet the needs of their fellow-creatures.</p>
-
-<p>Money has been and is freely subscribed for the support
-of missions seeking to meet bodily and spiritual wants;
-music will as surely be given by those who have felt its
-power to meet that need of expression which so far keeps
-the people without the consciousness of God. Members of
-ethical societies, who have taught themselves to fix their
-eyes on moral results, may unite with members of churches
-who care also for religious things. Certain it is that people
-who are able to realize grand ideals will be likely in their
-own lives to do grand things, and doing them make the
-world better and themselves happier.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">288</span>
- <h3 title="THE REAL SOCIAL REFORMER." id="ch27">THE REAL SOCIAL REFORMER.<a href="#f271" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>January, 1910.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f271">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch27" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Manchester Weekly Times”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">The</span> world is out of joint. Reformers have in every age
-tried to put it right. But still Society jerks and jolts as it
-journeys over the road of life. The rich fear the poor, the
-poor suspect the rich, there is strife and misunderstanding;
-children flicker out a few days’ life in sunless courts, and
-honoured old age is hidden in workhouses; people starve
-while food is wasted in luxurious living, and the cry always
-goes up, “Who will show us any good?”</p>
-
-<p>The response to that cry is the appearance of the Social
-Reformer. Philanthropists have brought forward scheme
-after scheme to relieve poverty, and politicians have passed
-laws to remove abuses. Their efforts have been magnificent
-and the immediate results not to be gainsaid, but in counting
-the gains the debit side must not be forgotten. Philanthropists
-weaken as well as strengthen society; law hinders
-as well as helps. When a body of people assume good
-doing as a special profession, there will always be a tendency
-among some of their neighbours to go on more unconcerned
-about evil, and among others to offer themselves as subjects
-for this good doing. The world may be better for its
-philanthropists, but when after such devotion it remains so
-terribly out of joint the question arises whether good is best
-done by a class set apart as Social Reformers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">289</span>There is an often-quoted saying of a monk in the twelfth
-century: “The age of the Son is passing, the age of the
-Spirit is coming”. He saw that the need of the world
-would not always be for a leader or for a class of leaders,
-but rather for a widely diffused spirit.</p>
-
-<p>The present moment is remarkable for the number of
-societies, leagues, and institutions which are being started.
-There never were so many leaders offering themselves to do
-good, so many schemes demanding support. The Charities
-Register reveals agencies which are ready to deal with almost
-any conceivable ill, and it would seem that anyone
-desiring to help a neighbour might do so by pressing the
-button of one of these agencies. The agencies for each
-service are, indeed, so many, that other societies are formed
-now for their organization, and the would-be good-doer is
-thus relieved even from inquiring as to that which is the
-best fitted for his purpose.</p>
-
-<p>The hope of the monk is deferred, and it seems as if it
-were the leaders and not the spirit of the people which is to
-secure social reform. The question therefore presses itself
-whether the best social reformers are the philanthropists.
-Specialists always make a show of activity, but such a show is
-often the cover of widely spread indolence. Specialists in religion—the
-ecclesiastics—were never more active than when
-during the fifteenth century they built churches and restored
-the cathedrals, but underneath this activity was the popular
-indifference which almost immediately woke to take vengeance
-on such leaders. Specialists in social reform to-day—the
-philanthropists—raise great schemes, but many of their
-supporters are at heart indifferent. It really saves them
-trouble to create societies and to make laws. It is easier
-to subscribe money—even to sit on a committee—than to
-help one’s own neighbour. It is easier to promote Socialism
-than to be a Socialist. Activity in social reform movements
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">290</span>may be covering popular indifference, and there is already
-a sign of the vengeance which awakened indifference may
-take in the cry dimly heard, “Curse your charity”.</p>
-
-<p>Better, it may be agreed, than great schemes—voluntary
-or legal—is the individual service of men and women who,
-putting heart and mind into their efforts, and co-operating
-together, take as their motto “One by One”; but again
-the same question presses itself in another form: Should
-the individual who aspires to serve his generation separate
-himself from the ordinary avocations of Society, and become
-a visitor or teacher? Should the business man divide his
-social reforming self from his business self, and keep, as he
-would say, his charity and his business apart?</p>
-
-<p>The world is rich in examples of devoted men and women
-who have given up pleasure and profit to serve others’ needs.
-The modern Press gives every day news of both the benefactions
-and the good deeds of business men who, as business
-men, think first, not of the kingdom of heaven, but
-of business profits. This specialization of effort—as the
-specialization of a class—has its good results; but is it the
-best, the only way of social reform? Is it not likely to
-narrow the heart of the good-doer and make him overkeen
-about his own plan? Will not the charity of a stranger,
-although it be designed in love and be carried out with
-thought, almost always irritate? Is it not the conception
-of society, which assumes one class dependent on the benevolence
-of another class, mediæval rather than modern? Can
-limbs which are out of joint be made to work smoothly by
-any application of oil and not by radical resetting? Is it
-reasonable that business men should look to cure with their
-gifts the injuries they have inflicted in their business, that
-they should build hospitals and give pensions out of profits
-drawn from the rents of houses unfit for human habitation,
-and gained from wages on which no worker could both live
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291">291</span>and look forward to a peaceful old age? Is it possible for
-a human being to divide his nature so as to be on the one
-side charitable and on the other side cruel?</p>
-
-<p>The question therefore as to the best Social Reformer,
-still waits an answer. Before attempting an answer it may
-be as well to glance at the moral causes to which social
-friction is attributed. Popular belief assumed that the designed
-selfishness of classes or of individuals lies at the root
-of every trouble. Bitter and fiery words are therefore
-spoken. Capitalists suspect the aspiring tyranny of trade
-unions to be compassing their ruin, workmen talk of the
-other classes using “their powers as selfish and implacable
-enemies of their rights”. Rich people incline to assume
-that the poor have designs on their property, and the poor
-suspect that every proposal of the rich is for their injury.
-The philosophy of life is very simple. “Every one seeketh
-reward,” and the daily Press gives ample evidence as to the
-way every class acts on that philosophy. But nevertheless
-experience reveals the good which is in every one. Mr.
-Galsworthy in his play, “The Silver Box,” pictures the conflict
-between rich and poor, between the young and the old.
-The pain each works on the other is grievous, there is hardness
-of heart and selfishness, but the reflection left by the
-play is not that anyone designed the pain of the other, but
-that for want of thought each misunderstood the other, and
-each did the wrong thing.</p>
-
-<p>The family whose members are so smugly content with
-the virtue which has secured wealth and comfort, whose
-charities are liberally supported, and kindness frequently
-done, where hospitality is ready, would feel itself unfairly
-charged if it were abused because it lived on abuses, and
-opposed any change which might affect the established order.
-The labour agitator, on the other hand, feels himself unfairly
-charged when he is attacked as designing change for
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_292">292</span>his own benefit and accused of enmity because of his strong
-language. It may be that his words do mischief, but in his
-heart he is kindly and generous. There are criminals in
-every class, rich men who prey on poor men, and poor men
-who prey on rich men, but the criminal class is limited and
-the mass of men do not intend evil. The chief cause of
-social friction is, it may be said, not designed selfishness so
-much as the want of moral thoughtfulness. The rogue of
-the piece is not the criminal, but—you—I—every one.</p>
-
-<p>The recognition of this fact suggests that the best Social
-Reformer is not the philanthropist or the politician so much
-as the man or the woman who brings moral thoughtfulness
-into every act and relation of daily life.</p>
-
-<p>There is abundance of what may be called financial
-thoughtfulness, and people take much pains, not always with
-success—to inquire into the soundness of their investments
-and the solvency of their debtors. The Social Reformer
-who feels the obligation of moral thoughtfulness will take as
-much pains to inquire whether his profits come by others’
-loss. He may not always succeed, but he will seek to
-know if the workers employed by his capital receive a living
-wage and are protected from the dangers of their trade.
-He will look to it that his tenants have houses which ought
-to make homes.</p>
-
-<p>There is much time spent in shopping, and women take
-great pains to learn what is fashionable or suited to their
-means. If they were morally thoughtful they would take
-as much pains to learn what sweated labour had been used so
-that things might be cheap; what suffering others had endured
-for their pleasure. They might not always succeed, but
-the fact of seeking would have its effect, and they would help
-to raise public opinion to a greater sense of responsibility.</p>
-
-<p>Pleasure-seekers are proverbially free-handed, they throw
-their money to passing beggars, they patronize any passing
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">293</span>show which promises a moment’s amusement; greater moral
-thoughtfulness would not prevent their pleasure, but it
-would prevent them from making children greedy, so that
-they might enjoy the fun of watching a scramble, and from
-listening to songs or patronizing shows which degrade the
-performer. Gwendolen, in George Eliot’s “Daniel Deronda,”
-did not realize that the cruelty of gambling is taking profit
-by another’s loss, and so she laid the foundation of a tragedy.
-Pleasure-seekers who make the same mistake are responsible
-for some of the tragedies which disturb society.</p>
-
-<p>The Social Reformers who will do most to fit together
-the jarring joints of Society are, therefore, the man and
-woman who, without giving up their duties or their business,
-who without even taking up special philanthropic work
-are morally thoughtful as to their words and acts. They
-are, in old language, they who are in the world and not of
-the world. If any one says that such moral thoughtfulness
-spells bankruptcy, there are in the examples of business men
-and manufacturers a thousand answers, but reformers who
-have it in mind to lead the world right do not begin by
-asking as to their own reward. It is enough for them that
-as the ills of society come not from the acts of criminals
-who design the ills, but from the thousand and million unconsidered
-acts of men and women who pass as kindly and
-respectable people, they on their part set themselves to
-consider every one of their acts in relation to others’ needs.</p>
-
-<p>The real Social Reformer is therefore the business man,
-the customer, the pleasure-seeker, who in his pursuits thinks
-first of the effect of those pursuits on the health and wealth
-of his partners in such pursuits. The spirit of moral thoughtfulness
-widely spread among rich and poor, employers and
-employed, better than the power of any leader or of any law,
-will most surely set right a world which is out of joint.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">294</span>
- <h3 title="WHERE CHARITY FAILS." id="ch28">WHERE CHARITY FAILS.<a href="#f281" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>January, 1907.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f281">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch28" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “Pearson’s Weekly”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">I do</span> not think that anyone will dispute the fact that our
-charity, taken as a whole, is administered in a somewhat
-wasteful and haphazard fashion. At the same time,
-however, I question whether the public is alive to the full
-extent of the evil arising from the utter lack of system in
-our administration of charity.</p>
-
-<p>For it is not merely the question of the waste of the
-public’s money, though that is bad enough; it is the far
-graver matter of the depreciation of our greatest national
-asset, character, by injudicious and indiscriminate philanthropy.</p>
-
-<p>Owing to the absence of any supreme charitable board
-or authority, and the lack of co-operation between charitable
-bodies, it is very tempting to a poor man to tell a lie
-to draw relief from many sources. He gets his food and
-loses his character.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, I have no hesitation in saying that the present
-system directly encourages mendacity and mendicity, and,
-unless remedied, must inevitably affect the moral fibre of
-the nation.</p>
-
-<p>The want of co-operation already alluded to is, of course,
-at the root of the evil, so far as waste of money is concerned,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">295</span>and I am often asked why charitable bodies will
-not co-operate. My answer is that it is very often a case
-of pride in results. Officials do not wish to share the
-credit of their work; they want to be able to claim to their
-subscribers that they have spent more money or relieved
-more cases than their rival round the corner, just as hospitals
-are led to regard the number of patients they treat as
-the criterion of their usefulness.</p>
-
-<p>However, although I hold that hospitals might well
-extend their sphere from the cure to the prevention of
-disease, by taking more part in teaching people the laws of
-health and influencing them to keep such laws in their
-homes, I am not concerned with that question here, and
-mention hospitals only to introduce my first suggestion for
-charity reform.</p>
-
-<p>The operations for the King’s Hospital Fund have shown
-what can be done to check waste by bringing about a
-saving of £20,000 a year in the hospitals’ bills for provisions,
-etc.</p>
-
-<p>Until the King’s Hospital Fund was instituted there was no
-general knowledge of the comparative expenditure of hospitals
-on food, etc., with the result that some paid exorbitant
-prices for certain articles and some for others. The action
-of the King’s Fund has equalized expenditure, with the result
-I have stated.</p>
-
-<p>Now it occurs to me that another board like the King’s
-Hospital Fund would be able to bring about a similar saving
-in the administration of other charities which now compete to
-the loss of money subscribed by the public for the public, and,
-as I have said, to the detriment of character.</p>
-
-<p>Such a Board would check waste and extravagance engendered
-by competition, and it could be brought into
-being as swiftly and effectively as was the King’s Hospital
-Fund.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">296</span>So much for an immediate measure, but I suggest as a
-more certain method that every twenty-five years or so
-there should be an inquiry by some authority, either
-national or local, into every philanthropic institution.</p>
-
-<p>The terms of reference of such inquiry might be: firstly,
-the economic and business-like character of the management;
-secondly, the way in which co-operation was
-welcomed, and whether something more could not be done
-for further co-operation; and lastly, the institution might
-be tried by the standard of its usefulness to its surroundings.
-For, remember, every charity which really exists
-for the public good ought to test itself by this question,
-“Is our aim that of self-extinction?” The truest charity,
-that is to say, should aim to remove the causes, not the
-symptoms of evil.</p>
-
-<p>But many shirk this self-inquisition, and linger on
-breeding mendicity, after their place has been taken by
-State or municipal organizations, or after they have ceased
-to fulfil any useful purpose.</p>
-
-<p>It may be that this public authority I suggest would not
-at once effect very much, but a public inquiry provides
-facts for public opinion to work upon, and thus inevitably
-brings reform.</p>
-
-<p>My final words, however, must again be as to the
-mischief liable to be done to character by thoughtless
-charity. People should think most carefully and solemnly
-before they give, lest they do more harm than good, and
-until our charity is properly organized and supervised, I
-fear that much money will be wasted on undeserving cases
-and in unnecessary and extravagant expenses of administration.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">297</span>
- <h3 title="LANDLORDISM UP TO DATE." id="ch29">LANDLORDISM UP TO DATE.<a href="#f291" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>August, 1912.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f291">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch29" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara">“<span class="sc">The</span> position of landlord and tenant is often one of opposing
-interests.” This remark from the first number of
-the “Record” of the Hampstead Garden Suburb must
-commend itself as true to all readers of the daily Press.
-The “Record,” however, in two most interesting articles,
-shows that with landlordism up to date it need no longer
-be true. The Hampstead Garden Suburb Trust, of which
-Mr. Alfred Lyttelton is president, and Mrs. S. A. Barnett
-hon. manager, is the landlord of 263 acres—shortly to be
-increased by another 400 acres, most of which will be worked
-in conjunction with the Co-Partnership Tenants. To meet
-the needs of the 25,000 people who will ultimately be housed
-on this unique estate the whole has been laid out with a
-view to the comfort of the people, including in the idea of
-“comfort” not only well-built houses with gardens, but
-also the opportunities for the interknowledge of various
-classes which alike enriches the minds of rich and poor.
-A visit to the estate suggests the multitudinous interests
-which have been considered. The houses are grouped
-around a central square, on which stand the church, the
-chapel, and the institute, and it is so planned that from the
-cottages at 5s. 6d. a week, as from the mansions with rentals
-of from £100 to £250 a year, the inhabitants alike enjoy
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">298</span>beauty either of gardens, tree-planted streets, public open
-spaces, or glimpses over the distant country.</p>
-
-<p>The Hampstead Garden Suburb Trust, as the leading
-article in the “Record” says, “has done what any other
-far-seeing and enlightened landlord has done,” with the
-difference that its pecuniary interest in the financial success
-of the scheme is limited by a self-obtained Act of Parliament
-to 5 per cent. In a summary, which it is well to quote,
-the doings of this up-to-date landlord are gathered together:—</p>
-
-<div class="bq2">
-
-<p class="sp1para">“As a landlord the Trust has laid out and maintains the
-open spaces, the tennis courts, the wall-less gardens with
-their brilliant flowers, the restful nooks, the village green,
-which, with the secluded woods, can be enjoyed in common
-by rich and poor, simple and learned, young and old, sources
-of ‘joy in widest commonalty spread’.</p>
-
-<p>“As a landlord the Trust has given the sites for both the
-Established Church and the Free Church, each standing on
-the Central Square in equally prominent positions, worthy
-of the beautiful buildings their respective organizations have
-erected.</p>
-
-<p>“As a landlord the Trust has given the site for the elementary
-school, and has spared no pains to obtain a building
-adapted to the best and most carefully thought-out
-methods of modern education.</p>
-
-<p>“As a landlord the Trust has built the first section of
-the Institute, with the conviction that their hope of bringing
-into friendly relations all classes of their tenants will be
-furthered by the provision of a centre where residents and
-neighbours can be drawn together by intellectual interests.
-Although the Institute is not yet two years old, the Trust
-has already organized and maintained many activities, a
-full report of which is to be found in subsequent pages of
-the ‘Record’.</p>
-
-<p>“As a landlord the Trust has built three groups of buildings
-which they counted necessary towards the completion
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">299</span>of their civic ideal: (<i>a</i>) Staff cottages, so that the men employed
-on the estate should be housed suitably and economically;
-(<i>b</i>) a group of homes where the State-supported
-children and others needing care and protection should live
-under suitable and adequate administration, and share the
-privileges and pleasures of the suburb; (<i>c</i>) motor-houses,
-with dwellings for the drivers, so that the richer people may
-have their luxury, and the poorer their habitations near
-their work.</p>
-
-<p>“As a landlord the Trust conceives ideas for the public
-good and presses them on companies and others in the
-hope of their achievement. It was thus that the Improved
-Industrial Dwellings Company, Limited, built (from Mr.
-Baillie Scott’s designs) the beautiful quadrangle of Waterlow
-Court, where working ladies find the advantages of both
-privacy and a common life.</p>
-
-<p>“As a landlord the Trust is pushing forward negotiations
-with a view to obtaining a first-rate Secondary School, the
-directors believing that the provision of high-class education
-meets a need not usually considered when an estate is being
-developed, and that the school site should not be limited
-to the minimum necessary ground subsequently bought at
-an inflated price.</p>
-
-<p>“As a landlord the Trust welcomes the public spirit and
-civic generosity of any of their tenants, taking special pride,
-perhaps, in the beautiful shops, the ‘Haven of Rest’ for the
-old and work-weary, and the club house (so admirably
-planned and alive with social and pleasurable activities), the
-tennis courts, the bowling greens, the children’s gardens, the
-skating rink—each and all established and held for co-operative
-pleasure and joint use by their chief tenants, the co-partners.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class="sp05para">This record of what has already been done prepares the
-reader to read with new interest the second article, “An
-Ideal—and After,” by Mr. Raymond Unwin, who now
-stands at the head of “town-planners”. He shows the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">300</span>great principles which have to be considered in planning
-town extensions, which principles have generally been forgotten
-in the growth of London suburbs. He then gives a
-plan of the 412 acres which lie between the Finchley and
-the Great North Road, and are about to be incorporated in
-the Hampstead Garden Suburb. He shows what direction
-the roads should take so as to secure readiness of access to
-the railway stations, and at the same time leave the Central
-Square with its fine buildings dominating and giving beauty
-to the whole neighbourhood. He shows also how other
-heights should be occupied by churches or public buildings,
-and he proposes that another centre (and another will be
-needed when it is remembered that the estate is nearly four
-miles long) “should approximate more nearly to the Market
-Place or Forum, where the main lines of traffic will meet,
-and to which access from all parts will be made easy”. The
-articles make fascinating reading and lay hold of that pioneer
-instinct which has helped to make Englishmen such good
-Colonists. If the reading arouses some indignation at the
-lost chances of London, the fact that Mr. Unwin, on behalf
-of the Trust, and the co-partnership tenants are dealing
-with this great estate, in conjunction with the Finchley District
-Council, gives some hope. In years to come our children
-will see that the Hampstead Garden Suburb Trust as a
-pioneer landlord did notable work in avoiding current mistakes
-and in pointing the way for other metropolitan districts
-to follow. Out of eighty-two authorities in Greater London
-only twenty-seven have so far started to avail themselves
-of the powers of the Housing and Town-Planning
-Act, and meanwhile the jerry-builder is at large, uncontrolled,
-and very actively at work.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">301</span>
- <h3 title="THE CHURCH AND TOWN PLANNING." id="ch30">THE CHURCH AND TOWN PLANNING.<a href="#f301" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>August, 1912.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f301">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch30" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Guardian”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Every</span> year we are told that so many churches have been
-added to London. Every year a volume is published by
-the Bishop of London’s Fund with pictures of these
-churches—buildings of conventional character, showing in
-their mean lines and sterile decoration the trail of the order
-to limit their cost to £8000 or £9000. Every year we
-see London extending itself in long straight ranks of small
-houses, where no tower or spire suggests to men the help
-which comes of looking up, and no hall or public building
-calls them to find strength in meeting together.</p>
-
-<p>Town-planning is much discussed, and the discussion has
-taken shape in an Act of Parliament; but meantime the
-opportunities are being lost for doing what the discussions
-and the Act declare to be necessary for health and happiness.
-Hendon is probably the most highly favoured building land
-nearest to London. It has undulating ground, where
-gentle hills offer a wide prospect towards the west; it has
-fine trees whose preservation might secure grace and
-dignity to the neighbourhood; and it has also a large sheet
-of water, the reservoir of the Brent, whose banks offer to
-young and old recreation for body and for spirit. A few
-years ago town-planning might have secured all these
-advantages, and at the same time provided houses and
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_302">302</span>buildings which would have helped to make social life a
-fair response to the physical surroundings. But while talk
-is spent on the advantages of variety in buildings, of the
-importance of securing a vista which street inhabitants
-may enjoy, and of the value of trees and open spaces,
-straight roads are being cut at right angles across the hills,
-trees are being felled, and nothing has been done to
-prevent what will soon become slum property extending
-alongside the lake. Willesden, as it may be seen from
-Dollis Hill—a chess-board of slate roofs—is an object
-lesson as to the future of London if builders and owners
-and local authorities go on laying out estates with no
-thought but for the rights of private owners.</p>
-
-<p>What, however, it may be asked, can the Church do?
-“Agitate—protest?” Yes, the Church, familiar with
-the lives of inhabitants of mean streets, can speak with
-authority. It can tell how minds and souls are dwarfed
-for want of outlook, how pathetic is the longing for beauty
-shown in the coloured print on the wall of the little dark
-tenement, how hard it is to make a home of a dwelling
-exactly like a hundred other dwellings, how often it is the
-dullness of the street which encourages carelessness of dirt
-and resort to excitement—how, in fact, it is the mean
-house and mean street which prepare the way for poverty
-and vice. The voice of joy and health is not heard even
-in the dwellings of the righteous. The Church might help
-town-planning as it might help every other social reform,
-by charging the atmosphere of life with unselfish and
-sympathetic thought. But the question I would raise is
-whether the Church is not called to take more direct action
-in the matter of town-building. Its policy at present seems
-to build a church for every 4,000 or 5,000 persons as they
-settle on the outskirts of London. The site is generally
-one given by a landlord whose interests do not always take
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">303</span>in those of the whole neighbourhood. The building itself
-aims primarily at accommodating so many hundreds of
-people at a low cost per seat, and outside features are
-regarded as involving expenses too great for present
-generosity. This policy which has not been changed since
-Bishop Blomfield set the example of building the East
-London district churches, is, I believe, prejudicial to Church
-interests, as it certainly is to the dignity of the neighbourhood
-in which they stand.</p>
-
-<p>The Church might help much in town-planning if it
-would change its policy, and, instead of dropping unconsidered
-and trifling buildings at frequent intervals over a new
-suburb, build one grand and dominant building on some
-carefully chosen site to which the roads would lead. The
-Directors of the Hampstead Garden Suburb as a private company
-have shown what is possible. They have crowned the
-hill at the base of which 20,000 people will soon be gathered,
-with the Church, the Chapel, and the public Institute.
-This hill dominates the landscape for miles round, and is
-the obvious centre of a great community of people. The
-Church by adopting a like policy would at once give a
-character to a new suburb, the convergence of roads would
-be marked, and order would be brought into the minds of
-builders planning out their different properties. The architects
-would be conscious of the centre of the circle in which
-they worked, and the houses would fall into some relation
-with the central building. Every one would feel such a
-healthy pride in the grandeur of the central church that it
-would be more difficult for things mean and unsightly to be
-set up in its neighbourhood. The church buildings in the
-City of London, or those which are seen towering over some
-of the newer avenues in Paris, or those familiar in our
-country towns and in villages, often seem as if they had
-brought together the inhabitants and were presiding over
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_304">304</span>their lives. They look like leaders and suggest that the
-world is a world of order. The Bishop of London’s Fund,
-or the authorities who direct the principal building policy,
-and spend annually thousands of pounds in its pursuit, have
-thus a great opportunity of giving direction to the expansion
-of London. They might by care in the selection of
-sites, and by generous expenditure at the direction of a
-large-visioned architect, do for the growing cities or towns
-of to-day what the builders of the past did for the cities and
-towns of their time. The Church by its direct action might
-thus give a great impetus to town planning, the need of
-which is in the mouths of all reformers.</p>
-
-<p>But it may be asked whether the Church ought to contribute
-to the making of beauty at the cost of its own efficiency.
-Has not the State one duty and the Church
-another? Without answering the question it is I think
-easy to show that a new policy would cost less money,
-and be more efficient in promoting worship. It is obviously
-no more costly to build one magnificent building for
-£25,000 or £30,000 than to build three ordinary buildings
-at £8000 or £9000 each, while the maintenance of the three,
-with the constant expense of repairs, must be considerably
-greater.</p>
-
-<p>And if it be asked whether one grand and generous and
-dignified building will attract more worshippers than three
-of the ordinary type, my answer is “Yes, and the worshippers
-will be assisted to a reverent mind and attitude”.
-I speak what I know as a vicar for thirty years of a district
-church in East London. The building was always requiring
-repair, its fittings were oppressively cheap, and there were
-twelve other churches within much less than “a Sabbath
-day’s journey”. There is no doubt that the people preferred
-and were more helped by worship in the finer and better
-served parish churches. I used to feel what an advantage
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_305">305</span>it would have been if the parish church, endowed and glorified
-with some of the money spent on the district churches,
-could have been the centre of a large staff of clergy, and
-have offered freely to all comers the noblest aids to worship.
-A feeling of patronage is incompatible with a feeling of
-worship, and the district church, with its constant need of
-money and its mean appearance, is always calling for the
-patronage of the people. The grandly built and imposing
-building, which gives the best and asks for nothing, provokes
-not patronage but reverence. There is, I believe,
-great need for such places of worship, as there is also need
-for meeting halls where in familiar talk and with simple
-forms of worship the clergy might lead and teach the
-people; but I do not see the need for the cheap churches,
-which are not dignified enough to increase habits of reverence,
-and often pretend to an importance which provokes
-impertinence.</p>
-
-<p>The Church has been powerful because it has called on
-its members to put their best thought and their best gifts
-into the buildings raised for the worship of God. It owes
-much to the stately churches and sumptuous cathedrals, for
-the sake of which men of old made themselves poor; and to-day
-the hearts of many, who are worn by the disease of
-modern civilization, are comforted and uplifted as in the
-greatness of these buildings they forget themselves. The
-Church is as unwise as it is unfaithful when it puts up
-cheap and mean structures. It is not by making excuses—whether
-for its members who keep the best for their own
-dwellings or for itself when it takes an insignificant place in
-the streets—that the Church will command the respect of
-the people. It must prove its faith by the boldness of its
-demand. But I have said enough to show that the Bishop
-of London’s Fund would serve its own object of providing
-the best aid to worship, if it would respond to the call of the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_306">306</span>present and seize the opportunity of taking a lead in town-planning.
-Church policy—as State policy—is often best
-guided by the calls which rise for present needs, and if our
-leaders, distrusting “their own inventions,” would set themselves
-to assist in town-planning it might be given them to
-do the best for the Church as well as for the health and
-wealth of the people.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<!--Section 6-->
-<div class="section">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_307">307</span>
- <h2 id="sect6">SECTION <abbr title="6">VI.</abbr><br /> <br />EDUCATION.</h2>
-</div>
-<div class="synopsis">
-
-<p class="firstpara"><a href="#ch31" title="Go to Chapter 31">The Teacher’s Equipment</a>—<a href="#ch32" title="Go to Chapter 32">
-Oxford University and the Working People, <i>two articles</i></a>—<a href="#ch33" title="Go to Chapter 33">Justice
-to Young Workers</a>—<a href="#ch34" title="Go to Chapter 34">A Race between Education and Ruin.</a></p>
-
-</div>
-<h3 title="THE TEACHER’S EQUIPMENT." id="ch31">THE TEACHER’S EQUIPMENT.<a href="#f311" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>March, 1911.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f311">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch31" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Liberals</span> must be somewhat disappointed that a Liberal
-Government has done so little for education. The reforms
-for which they stand—their hopes for the nation—depend on
-the increase of knowledge and intelligence among the people.
-The establishment of Free Trade, wise economy and wise
-expenditure, and the support of the statesmanship which
-makes for peace, all presuppose an instructed electorate.
-But the present Government has passed no measure to
-strengthen the foundation on which Liberalism rests; attempts,
-indeed, were made to settle the religious difficulty,
-but ever since those attempts were wrecked by the House
-of Lords, Ministers have been content to do nothing,
-although outside the religious controversy they might have
-launched other attempts laden with important reforms and
-safe to reach their port. The administration of the law as
-it stands has doubtless been vigorous; able and public-spirited
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_308">308</span>officials have seen that everything which the law
-requires has been done, and every possible development
-effected, but the Liberal Government has done nothing to
-improve the Law. Minister of Education succeeds Minister
-of Education, years of opportunity roll by, while children
-still leave school at an age when their education has hardly
-begun, while compulsory continuation schools still wait to
-be started, while great—not to say vast—endowments are
-absorbed in the objects of the wealthier classes, while the
-provision for the equipment of teachers is unsatisfactory.</p>
-
-<p>The equipment of the teachers is confessedly the most
-important item in any programme of education, as it is
-upon the teacher rather than upon the building or the curriculum
-that the real progress of education depends. That
-equipment, as far as elementary schools are concerned, is
-now given in training colleges, and especially in residential
-colleges. Young men and women, that is to say, who have
-been through a secondary school, and also shown some aptitude
-for teaching, receive, largely at Government expense,
-two years’ instruction and training in colleges which are
-managed either by religious denominations or by local educational
-authorities. In the colleges the staff is mostly occupied
-in giving the knowledge which forms part of a
-general education, and very little time is spent in training
-or in the study of problems of the child life.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">Training Colleges.</span></h4>
-
-<p>The system is unsatisfactory on many grounds. (1) The
-rivalry between denominational and undenominational colleges
-stirs the keenest partisanship. When in his annual
-statement Mr. Runciman began to talk about the number
-of students in the different colleges he had, he said with
-some irony, “to drop the subject, knowing how far the religious
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309">309</span>controversy is likely to interest this House”. (2)
-The system is most costly, and every year, including building
-grants, an amount of something like half a million of
-money is paid for the training—or, to speak more accurately,
-for the ordinary education of young men and women who
-may feel no call for teaching and cannot be really bound
-to take it up for their life’s work. (3) It breeds a feeling
-of indignation among those who do not get employment,
-and there is now an agitation because the State does not
-find work for those whom it has selected to receive a special
-training, and bound, even though it be by an ineffective
-bond, to follow a particular calling. (4) It brings together
-a body of students whose outlook to the future is identical,
-it encourages, therefore, narrow views, and breeds the exclusive
-professional spirit in a profession whose usefulness
-depends on its power to assimilate the thought of the time
-and to sacrifice its interest for wider interests. The training
-college system as a means of equipping teachers for their
-work is not satisfactory, and the Archbishop of Canterbury
-was well justified when he said: “The thing which mattered
-most in the educational work in England to-day was the
-question of the training colleges”.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">Their Reform or Their Abolition.</span></h4>
-
-<p>The reforms suggested generally follow the lines of further
-expenditure on buildings or on staff, but such expenditure
-would not remove the objections. The money annually
-spent is very large—equal to the gross income of Oxford
-University—and if more were spent there is no very effective
-way of securing that the best among the teachers so
-trained would remain in the profession; the men would still
-take up more remunerative work, and the women would
-still marry. The rivalry between denominational and undenominational
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_310">310</span>would continue, and the protest of conscientious
-objectors—religious or secular—as each further
-expense was proposed would increase difficulties. If the
-number turned out of the training colleges were larger there
-would be a more widely spread sense of wrong among the
-unemployed, who would with difficulty recognize that something
-else was wanting in a teacher than the certificate of a
-training college. But most fatal of all to the proposed extension
-or improvement of the system, is the objection that
-the more and the stronger the colleges become, the more
-deeply would the professional spirit be entrenched, and the
-more powerful would be the influence of the teaching class
-in asserting its rights.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><span class="sc">Substitution of a Better Way of Training.</span></h4>
-
-<p>The reform might, I submit, follow the line of restriction
-and proceed towards the ultimate abolition of the residential
-colleges in their present form. The way is comparatively
-simple. Let the children from elementary schools be helped—as,
-indeed, they now are—by scholarships to enter secondary
-schools, and go on to University colleges, or to the
-Universities. Equal opportunity for getting the best knowledge
-would thus be open to children of all classes. Let
-any over the age of nineteen who have passed through a
-college connected with some University, or otherwise approved
-as giving an education of a general and liberal character,
-be eligible to apply for a teachership, and if, after a
-period of trial in a school—say for three or six months—they,
-on the report of the inspector and master, have shown
-an aptitude for teaching, then let them, at the expense of the
-State, be given a year’s real training in the theory and
-practice of teaching. Teachers are, it must be remembered,
-born and not made. One man or woman who, without any
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_311">311</span>experience, is placed over a class will at once command attention,
-while another with perhaps greater ability will
-create confusion. Those who are not born to it may indeed
-learn the tricks of discipline, and, like a drill-sergeant,
-command obedience and keep order. Many of the complaints
-which are heard about the unintelligence and the
-want of interest in children who have come from schools
-where to the visitor’s eye everything seems right are due, I
-believe, to the fact that the teachers have not been born to
-the work. They have trusted to the rules they have learnt
-and not to the gift of power which is in themselves. They
-teach as the scribes and not with authority. Let, therefore,
-the men and women who have this power be those whom
-the State will train; let it give them not, as at present, a
-few weeks in a practising school, but experience in a variety
-of schools in town and in country, and under masters with
-different systems; let them be made familiar with the last
-thoughts on child life, and with all the many different
-theories of education. The State will in this way draw
-from all classes in the community the men and the women
-best fitted to teach, and it will give them a training worthy
-the name. The teachers will have the best equipment for
-their work.</p>
-
-<p>The advantages of this proposal to get rid of the training
-colleges as they now are may be summarized: (1) There
-will be an end of the religious difficulty where at present it
-is most threatening. The children with scholarships will
-go to the schools and University colleges they elect just as
-do the children who are aiming at other careers. The State
-in the training it provides will have nothing to do with the
-special training required for giving religious knowledge—as
-such training would naturally be given by the different denominations
-at their own expense. (2) The half million of
-money annually spent on training colleges would not be
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_312">312</span>required for the training now proposed. It cannot, however,
-be said that the money would be returned to the taxpayers;
-education—if the nation is to be saved—must become more
-and more costly, but it may be said that the greater part of
-this sum and the existing buildings would be used for the
-general education of persons taken from all classes of the
-community and preparing to walk in all sorts of careers.
-(3) There would be no body of men and women with the
-grievance that, having been selected at an early age, trained
-as teachers, and bound to a profession, no work was provided.
-Every one would have had the best sort of education
-for any career, and only one year, after a fair time for
-choice and probation, would have been given to special
-training. (4) The danger of professionalism would be
-lessened. Men and women educated in schools and colleges
-alongside of other students with other aims, would, by their
-association, gain a wider outlook on life, and would be freed
-from the influences which tend now to force them into an
-organization for the defence of their rights. If afterwards
-they did join such organizations they would do so with a
-wider consciousness of their relation to a body larger than
-their own, and to a knowledge greater than they themselves
-had acquired.</p>
-
-<p>A substantial number of young persons do even under
-present conditions spend their three years with the Government
-scholarship at Universities or University colleges, and
-the experience thus gained illustrates the advantage to intending
-students of mixing with persons intended for other
-careers.</p>
-
-<p>Here, then, I submit, is a way of reform in what is confessedly
-the most important part of our system of education.
-It might be undertaken at no extra expense, and with small
-dislocation of existing institutions. The one thing necessary
-is zeal for education among our political leaders. The best
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_313">313</span>students of the social problem tell us the remedy for the
-unrest is education, and anyone considering the signs of the
-times in England will say also that there must be more
-education if employers and employed, if statesmen and
-people, if the pulpit and the pew are to understand one
-another. The chief Minister in any Government, the
-Minister on whose zeal and ability all the others depend for
-the ultimate success of their work, is the Minister of Education.
-If he is zealous he will find a way of equipping the
-teachers.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_314">314</span>
- <h3 title="OXFORD UNIVERSITY AND THE WORKING PEOPLE. (First Article)" id="ch32">OXFORD UNIVERSITY AND THE WORKING PEOPLE.<a href="#f321" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p><span class="sc">First Article.</span></p>
-
-<p>February, 1909.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f321">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch32" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Oxford</span> last year invited seven working men to act with
-seven members of the University on a Committee appointed
-to consider what the University can do for the
-education of working people. The step is notable—Oxford
-and Cambridge have long done something to make it
-possible for the sons of workmen, by means of scholarships,
-to enter the colleges, to take degrees, and, as members of
-the University, to climb to a place among the professional
-classes. Oxford, in appointing this Committee, has taken
-a new departure, and aimed to put its resources at the
-disposal of people who continue to be members of the
-working classes.</p>
-
-<p>The report of the Committee, of which the Dean of
-Christ Church was Chairman, and Mr. Shackleton, M.P.,
-Vice-Chairman, forms a most interesting pamphlet, which
-may be obtained for a shilling from any bookseller or the
-Clarendon Press. It tells of the purpose, the history, and
-the endowments of the University, and it also gathers
-together evidence of the demand which is being raised by
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_315">315</span>working people for something more than education in
-“bread and butter” subjects. This evidence is summed up
-in the following report:—</p>
-
-<p>The ideal expressed in John Milton’s definition of
-education, “that which fits a man to perform justly,
-skilfully, and magnanimously, all the duties of all offices,”
-is one which is, we think, very deeply embedded in the
-minds of the working classes, and we attribute part of the
-failure of higher education among them in the past, to the
-feeling that, by means of it their ablest members were
-being removed to spheres where they would not be available
-for the service of their fellows. What they desire is
-not that men should escape from their class, but that they
-should remain in it and raise the whole level. The eleven
-millions who weave our clothes, build our houses, and
-carry us safely on our journeys demand university education
-in order that they may face with wisdom the unsolved
-problems of their present position, not in order that they
-may escape to another<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. To-day in their strivings for a
-fuller life, they ask that men of their own class should
-co-operate as students with Oxford in order that, with
-minds enlarged by impartial study, they in their turn may
-become the public teachers and leaders, the philosophers
-and economists of the working classes. The movement,
-which is thus formulated in a report signed by seven
-representative workmen, is fraught with incalculable possibilities.</p>
-
-<p>The sum of happiness in the nation might be vastly
-increased, and politics might be guided by more persistent
-wisdom. The great sources of happiness which rise within
-the mind and are nourished by contact with other minds
-are largely out of reach of the majority of the people.
-These sources might be brought within their reach. The
-working classes whose minds are strengthened by the
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_316">316</span>discipline of work, might have the knowledge which would
-interest them in the things their hands make; they might,
-in the long monotonies of toil, be illuminated by the
-thoughts of the great, and inspired by ideals; they might be
-introduced to the secrets of beauty, and taught the joy of
-admiration. They might be released from the isolation of
-ignorance, so that, speaking a common language, and
-sharing common thoughts, they would have the pleasure of
-helping and being helped in discussions with members of
-other classes on all things under the sun.</p>
-
-<p>The workman knows about livelihood; he might know
-also about life, if the great avenues of art, literature, and
-history, down which come the thoughts and ideals of ages,
-were open to him. He might be happy in reading, in
-thinking, or in admiring, and not be driven to find happiness
-in the excitement of sport or drink. The mass of the
-people it is often said are dumb, so that they cannot tell
-their thoughts; deaf, so that they cannot understand the
-language of modern truth; and blind, so that they cannot
-see the beauty of the world.</p>
-
-<p>The speaker, in Mr. Lowes Dickenson’s dialogue, condemns
-this generation when he says, “their idea of being
-better off is to eat and drink to excess, to dress absurdly,
-and to play stupidly and cruelly”.</p>
-
-<p>The majority of the people, it must be admitted, cannot
-have the best sort of happiness, that which comes from
-within themselves, from the exercise of their own thoughts,
-and from the use of their own faculties. For want of
-knowledge the sum of happiness is decreased, and for want
-of the same knowledge the dangers of war and social
-troubles are increased. The working people have now become
-the governing class in the nation. Up to now, the acting
-governors—the majority which controls the Government—have
-cajoled them by party cries, by appeals to passion,
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_317">317</span>and by the familiar blandishments of expert canvassers,
-to fall in with their policy. But every year working people
-are forming their own opinions, and making their opinions
-felt, both in home and foreign policy. They will break
-in upon the international equilibrium, so delicately poised
-amid passions and prejudices; they will decide the use
-of the Dreadnoughts and the armies of the world; they
-will settle questions of property and of tariff; they will
-form the authority which will have to control individual action
-for the good of the whole. How can they possibly
-carry this responsibility if they have no wider outlook on
-life, no greater knowledge of men, no more power of foresight,
-no more respect for tradition than that which they
-already possess?</p>
-
-<p>How shortsighted is the policy which spends millions on
-armaments, and leaves them to become destructive in ignorant
-hands. How important for national security is a knowledge
-“in widest commonalty spread”. Oxford, to a large
-extent, possesses this knowledge and the means of its distribution.</p>
-
-<p>“The national Universities, which are the national
-fountainheads of national culture,” as one workman has
-said, have been regarded as the legitimate preserves of the
-leisured class. They have helped the rich to enjoy and defend
-their possessions, they have given them out of their
-resources the power to see and to reason; they have made
-them wise in their own interests; they have given to one
-class, and to the recruits who have been drawn to that class
-from the ranks of the workman, the knowledge in which is
-happiness and power. The question arises, should Oxford,
-can Oxford, give the same gifts to working people while
-they remain working people? The answer of the report is
-an unequivocal “Yes”.</p>
-
-<p>In the first place the University has inherited the duty of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_318">318</span>educating the poor. Its colleges have in many cases been
-founded for poor scholars, and its tradition is that poverty
-shall be no bar to learning.</p>
-
-<p>In the next place its long-established custom, of bringing
-men into association in pursuit of knowledge, is one which
-peculiarly fits it to help workmen, whose strength lies in that
-power of association which has covered some districts of
-England with a network of institutions—industrial, social,
-political, and religious. Men who have joined in the discussions
-of the workshop, been members of the committee
-of a co-operative store, and acted as officials of a friendly
-society, have had in some ways a better preparation for
-absorbing the teaching of the University on life, than is
-given in the forms and playing field of a public school.
-The tutor of a class of thirty-nine working people at N——
-who read with him, the regular session through, a course of
-Economic History, reports that the work was excellent,
-and a visitor from Oxford was impressed “by the high level
-of the discussion and the remarkable acumen displayed in
-asking questions”.</p>
-
-<p>In the last place, the University has the money. The
-total net receipts of the Universities and colleges—apart
-from a sum of £178,000 collected from the members of the
-Universities and colleges—is £265,000. Of this sum,
-£50,000 is given in scholarships and exhibitions to boys
-who for the most part have been trained in the schools of
-the richer classes, and of this sum £34,000 is given yearly
-without reference to the financial means of the recipient.
-The report does not analyse the expenditure of this large income,
-except in so far as to suggest that some of the scholarship
-and fellowship money might be diverted to the more
-direct service of working people’s education. Common sense,
-however, suggests that there must be many possible economies
-in the management of estates, in the overlapping of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_319">319</span>lecturers, and in the expense on buildings. The experience
-of the Ecclesiastical Commission has shown how much may
-be gained if estates are removed from the care of many
-amateur corporations, and placed under a centralized and
-efficient management. The knowledge, too, that some
-colleges have ten times the income of others, without corresponding
-difference in the educational output, suggests
-that money may be saved.</p>
-
-<p>Oxford seems to be compelled, both by its traditions, its
-customs, and its money to do something for the education
-of the working people. The question whether it can do so, is
-answered by the scheme which the report recommends; that
-a committee be formed in Oxford, consisting of working-class
-representatives, in equal numbers with members of
-the University; that this Committee should draw up a two
-years’ curriculum, select the tutors, who must also have
-work in Oxford, and settle the localities in which classes
-shall be held; that students at these classes be admitted to
-the diploma course; that half of the teachers’ salary be paid
-by the University, and the other half by the Committee of
-the locality in which the classes are held. The report, with
-a view to bringing working people under the influence of
-Oxford itself, further recommends that colleges be asked
-to set aside a number of scholarships or exhibitions, to
-enable selected students from the tutorial classes to
-reside in Oxford, either in Colleges, in University Halls, as
-non-collegiate students, or at Ruskin Hall.</p>
-
-<p>These recommendations have certain advantages and
-certain shortcomings, the consideration of which must be
-deferred to another article.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_320">320</span>
- <h3 title="OXFORD UNIVERSITY AND THE WORKING PEOPLE. (Second Article)" id="ch32a">OXFORD UNIVERSITY AND THE WORKING PEOPLE.<a href="#f32a1" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p><span class="sc">Second Article.</span></p>
-
-<p>February, 1909.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f32a1">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch32a" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">The</span> points in the scheme which Oxford proposes to adopt
-for bringing its resources to the services of working people
-are: The appointment of representative workmen on the
-Committee responsible for the object. The offer of a working
-University tutor to a locality where a class of thirty workpeople
-has been formed, willing to adopt one of the two
-years’ courses which the committee has approved. The
-recognition of the students of these classes as eligible for a
-diploma in Economics, Political Science, etc. The open
-door, so that students selected from the classes may be able
-to enter and to reside in the University.</p>
-
-<p>Two questions arise: Will the scheme attract workmen?
-Will it get the sympathetic, if not the enthusiastic, support
-of the University?</p>
-
-<p>1. Will it attract workmen? Workmen, apart from the
-demand that they, as a class, should share in the joy and the
-power of knowledge, have learnt that they must have
-educated men of their own class to direct their own
-organizations. There are 1,153 trade unions, 389 friendly
-societies, 2,646 co-operative societies, and many other
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_321">321</span>councils or congresses, most of which employ paid officers
-who are daily discharging duties of the utmost responsibility
-and delicacy, and which make demands on their
-judgment of men and knowledge of economic and political
-principles, as great or greater than those made on the Civil
-servant in India or in this country. Workmen want officials
-who, familiar with their point of view, will have the
-knowledge and experience to convince educated opponents
-of the justice of their contentions. The education which
-Oxford can give by broadening a man’s knowledge and
-strengthening his judgment, would make him a more
-efficient servant of his own society, and a more potent influence
-on the side of industrial peace.</p>
-
-<p>Will workmen accept the offer which Oxford makes?
-Much shyness and prejudice have to be overcome. Oxford
-is often associated with opinions foreign to the democratic
-ideal. The manners of University men sometimes suggest
-that they are superior persons, and a reputation for expensive
-trifling is widely spread. Workmen are afraid that
-their young men in the University atmosphere may be
-alienated from their class, grow ashamed of their belongings,
-and put on artificial manners. They doubt whether the
-teaching may not be of a kind directed in the interest of
-property, and they fear lest there may be too many temptations
-to idleness and to play. They do not want, as one
-Labour leader has said, “good democratic stuff spoiled by
-Oxford lecturers, who may give our people a shoddy notion
-of respectability, and a superficial idea of things which can
-be shown by the airs and graces of book learning”.</p>
-
-<p>Oxford is thus suspect; but, on the other hand, the place
-has immense attraction, as is proved by the fact that so
-many Trade Unions send their men to study at Ruskin
-College.</p>
-
-<p>“What,” it was asked of one of their students, “do you
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_322">322</span>get here you could not have got in a college in your own
-town?”</p>
-
-<p>“I get Oxford,” was his reply; and it is evident in much
-talk that, even when Oxford is “suspect,” it has a great
-hold on the workman’s mind. There may be shyness, but
-it is only shyness that may be overcome by trust.</p>
-
-<p>The place of workmen, therefore, on the University committees
-must be an assured place, and not one allowed as a
-favour or on sufferance. Their voices must be heard as to
-the subjects to be taught, and as to the teachers who are
-chosen; they must be able to make their influence felt in
-the University, which, as it is national, is their University.
-The local centres where classes are given must, in the same
-way, be locally controlled and independent of University
-control. The committees of these centres must have full
-choice of the place and time of their meetings, select from
-the list the courses of study to be followed, and approve the
-tutor. They must, indeed, have the same character as
-club or co-operative classes, while, through the Oxford
-tutor, the course of studies and the examination, light is let
-in from the University. The life must be in the local
-centres, but it must draw its air from Oxford.</p>
-
-<p>The problem as to the admission of working people to
-residence is more difficult. The proposal is that, by means
-of scholarships, they should be enabled to live in colleges
-or in halls, or as non-collegiate students. The difficulty
-would be got over if enough students could come to be a
-support to one another. There must always be a fear lest,
-if they be few in number, they may either lose their independence
-or else go to the extreme of protest. The University
-can, however, get over this difficulty by providing
-sufficient money to bring up a sufficient number of men,
-who will strengthen one another and influence the corporate
-life of the place. The question whether students should
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_323">323</span>reside in colleges, in halls, or in lodgings may be left to
-solve itself. If they are to reside in colleges, the present
-system of erecting new buildings, with suites of expensive
-rooms, might well be checked. Simpler buildings, adapted
-to the needs of workmen students, would save money,
-bring together types of men in one community, and not
-detract from the beauty of the city.</p>
-
-<p>The schemes will, I believe, attract workmen if the University
-takes pain to subordinate itself, and trusts to truth
-rather than to power. Workmen, if once their suspicion—justified,
-it must be allowed—be allayed, will find that there
-is in Oxford more sympathy with their point of view than
-can possibly be found in any other English community.
-Oxford men have, as a rule, open minds, and many of their
-younger Fellows are close and devoted students of social
-questions. Many working men have already experienced
-what Mr. Crooks experienced when, at a meeting in a
-college hall, having hurled some stinging sentences at the
-superiority which University men assumed, his remarks
-were received, “not with boot-jacks, but with cheers”
-Friendships between working men and members of the
-University are soon formed—both are used to living in associations,
-both have a love of free discussion, both, to a
-larger extent than other Englishmen, are believers in
-equality. The scheme, if the University wishes it, will
-attract workmen.</p>
-
-<p>2. The other question is, Will the scheme win the support
-of the University? A statute has already been passed appointing
-a committee consisting of working-class representatives,
-and it has been agreed that tutorial-class students
-may be admitted to the diploma course. The University
-can hardly do more. It cannot alter its constitution, which
-to a large extent leaves the government in the hands of
-college nominees, with an ultimate appeal to members of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_324">324</span>the University, scattered throughout the country. Its total
-income is only £24,000 a year, and it has no power to enforce
-adequate contributions from the colleges, although their
-total income from endowments is £265,000 a year. The
-University itself, unless it be reformed by Act of Parliament,
-or unless the colleges voluntarily endow it with the
-power and the means, can do very little to carry out the
-scheme.</p>
-
-<p>Will the Colleges act in the matter? Will they pass over
-to the control of the University a fair portion of the money
-they now spend either on scholarships and fellowships confined
-to boys from a few schools, or on the maintenance of
-choirs and tutors, or on new buildings? It is not enough
-that one or two colleges make a grant to support some
-workmen’s centre. Workmen will resent the patronage of
-a college. The money must be transferred to the University,
-the tutors must have a University standing, and the
-scholarships, which enable men to reside in Oxford, must
-be both ample and numerous. The University has, so far
-as it can, acted on the recommendation of the report. Will
-the Colleges rise to the opportunity, and enable Oxford to
-give the people the knowledge they need, for the satisfaction
-of their own lives and the security of the nation?</p>
-
-<p>The Colleges as yet have given little sign of a will to do
-anything but strengthen their own independence, and make
-provision for students prepared in the public schools. In
-one or two instances, fellowships have been given to men
-who have become lecturers under the University Extension
-Scheme, but the example has not been followed.</p>
-
-<p>For many years pupil teachers from the elementary schools
-have come to Oxford for their training; one or two colleges
-have given scholarships; but again the example has not
-spread, and the inspector has had to complain of the scant
-provision which has been made for the men’s advantage.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_325">325</span>A plan was once initiated by which parties of teachers
-and others were accommodated in colleges during the long
-vacation, and tasted some of the advantages of Oxford life
-and teaching. The plan worked excellently; it removed
-the reproach that for six months in the year the greatest
-educational capital of the nation is allowed to lie idle. But
-there was little enthusiasm; the energy of the few residents
-who were responsible was, after a few years, worn out, if
-not by opposition, by apathy.</p>
-
-<p>The colleges have as yet shown little power of adapting
-themselves to the education of the new governing class. It
-may be that they will be roused by this report, and that
-something adequate may be done.</p>
-
-<p>The point I would urge is that the something be adequate—a
-few classes scattered about the country, a few men
-admitted to Oxford, will court a failure, and justify condemnation
-of the attempt.</p>
-
-<p>The colleges have their opportunity, but beyond the
-colleges is my friend Bishop Gore, now Bishop of Oxford,
-with his demand for a Commission, and beyond the Bishop
-is the rising power of labour, with its tendency, if it be not
-checked by University influence, to use all national endowments
-for material rather than spiritual ends.</p>
-
-<p>The Bishop’s case for a commission is broadly based
-on the impossibility of working the present constitution of
-the University for its efficient government; on the mischievous
-waste which spends the resources of fine minds and
-unique surroundings on boys, many of whom are capable
-of doing little more than play; on the folly of subsidizing
-with scholarships and fellowships one set of schools, and
-one or two types of knowledge; on the expensive habits
-which the system fostered. The case was not answered,
-and cannot be answered. The report of the committee is
-the first response to its call, and, as the Bishop said in a
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_326">326</span>speech at Toynbee Hall, it has given him a hope for which
-he has long waited.</p>
-
-<p>The next response ought to be an appeal from the University
-itself for a Commission which will enable it to order
-the resources of Oxford as a whole, and apply its powers
-so as to carry out fully the recommendations of the report.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_327">327</span>
- <h3 title="JUSTICE TO YOUNG WORKERS." id="ch33"><a id="P327"></a>JUSTICE TO YOUNG WORKERS.</h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>8 November, 1909.</p>
-
-</div>
-<p class="firstpara"><span class="sc">Thirty</span> years ago the “bitter cry” of the poor disturbed the
-public mind. Housing has since been improved. Technical
-teaching has since been established. The expenditure
-on the Poor Law has been greatly increased. General
-Booth has raised the money for his social scheme. Philanthropy
-has redoubled its efforts, and taken new forms. But
-still the “bitter cry” is raised. The number of the unemployed
-is greater than ever. There is more vagrancy, which
-the Prison Commissioners complain is adding to the inmates
-of the prisons, and the amount spent on poor relief goes up
-by leaps and bounds. Royal Commissions, Departmental
-Committees, philanthropic conferences, scientific professors
-have been facing the problem which every year becomes
-more threatening to the national welfare. Their recommendations
-are many. The striking fact is that in one recommendation
-they all concur. The one thing which they
-agree to be necessary is further training for young people
-between the ages of thirteen and seventeen.</p>
-
-<p>The report of the Consultative Committee of the Board
-of Education, lately published, gives the final word on the
-subject. The reports begin by showing that out of the
-2,000,000 children in England and Wales who have passed
-their fourteenth birthday, and are still under seventeen
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_328">328</span>years of age, only one in four receives on week-days any
-continued education. “The result is a tragic waste of early
-promise.” The children go out of the elementary schools,
-which have been built up at immense expense, and before
-they reach the age of seventeen, when the technical schools
-may be entered, many have acquired desultory habits, and
-lost the power of study. Released from school, they become
-idle and lawless, or they enter “blind alley” employments,
-and for the sake of high immediate wages, miss the
-chance of ultimate responsible employment. The Committee
-agree with the Poor Law Commissioners, “that the
-results of the large employment of boys in occupations
-which offer no opportunity of employment as men are disastrous,”
-and go on to quote the Minority Report: “The
-nation cannot long persist in ignoring the fact that the unemployed,
-and particularly the under-employed, are thus
-being daily created under our eyes out of bright young things,
-for whose training we make no provision”.</p>
-
-<p>The Committee having brought out this extravagant
-waste of money and effort and young life, sets itself to consider
-a remedy. It suggests improvements in the day
-schools by giving a larger place in the curriculum to subjects
-which train the hand and eye, and develop the constructive
-powers. It further suggests that steps should be
-taken to prolong the school life of children, and it will be a
-surprise to many readers that under the age of thirteen
-years 5,300 every year pass out of school, and that the
-extension of the age to fourteen would involve the addition
-of 150,000 children to the registers. These numbers do
-not include the scholars now partially exempted from
-school attendance by the wisdom or unwisdom of managers,
-who may be estimated as numbering some 48,000 children,
-between thirteen and fourteen years of age. The Committee
-add their opinion that the law which permits half-time
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_329">329</span>in the textile districts should be materially changed,
-and it goes on to recommend that “no children under sixteen
-should be allowed to leave the day school unless they
-could show to the satisfaction of the local education authority
-that they were going to be suitably occupied, and that such
-exemptions should only continue so long as they remained
-in suitable employment”.</p>
-
-<p>This recommendation follows on evidence of how large a
-proportion of boys and girls enter forms of employment
-“which discourage the habit of steady work, lessen the power
-of mental concentration, and are economically injurious to
-the community, and deteriorating in their effect on individual
-character”. Employment or apprenticeship Committees
-have been formed, whose members spare no pains in advising
-the older scholars, and the parents of such scholars, in the
-choice of an occupation. They have done enough to show how
-much more might be done could the advice be driven home
-with more system and authority. If the recommendation
-were made the law, no child under sixteen would be allowed
-to enter upon industrial life without sufficient guidance, both
-as to the choice of a place, and as to continued education.</p>
-
-<p>“Continued education,” whatever be the improvements
-in the day school or the laudation of exemption from attendance,
-comes thus to be regarded as the one thing
-necessary. “It is clear to the Committee that the lack of
-continued educational care during the years of adolescence
-is one of the deeper causes of national unemployment.”</p>
-
-<p>Continuation schools have greatly developed during late
-years. They are more frequent, they offer teaching which
-is more attractive and more adapted to the social needs of
-the neighbourhoods in which they have been opened. Educational
-authorities and private organizations have taken
-pains to commend the schools and make them known. Employers
-have in some cases required attendance at continuation
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_330">330</span>schools as a condition of employment, and in
-other cases have encouraged attendance by giving off-time,
-by payment of fees, and by the offer of prizes. Workpeople
-have taken pleasure in visiting the schools, and when
-they are represented on the management, get rid of some
-suspicions, often to become enthusiastic supporters.</p>
-
-<p>Continuation schools may thus be said to have passed
-the period of experiment, and it is now recognized that the
-curriculum should neither be that of the old night-school,
-nor of the modern recreation evening. It should aim
-rather at providing a good general education, to equip men
-and women for intelligent citizenship, as well as to supply
-workers with technical knowledge, and with that adaptability
-which is one of the most valuable possessions of workpeople
-under modern conditions. It cannot too often be
-repeated that the aim of education is not to make machines,
-but to make men and women. People who know how to
-think and to reason, who have capacities for enjoyment
-which do not need the stimulus of excitement, will be more
-valuable citizens, and when they lose one form of work,
-will more readily take to another.</p>
-
-<p>The right sort of continuation school is now known.
-Such schools increase yearly in number, and the attendances
-also increase, but the Committee has been led to the conclusion
-that voluntary methods alone will not solve the problem.
-There must be recourse to compulsory powers. In
-many districts the authorities are apathetic, in other districts
-voluntary methods are powerless against the ignorance and
-indifference of the people. The majority of employers,
-moreover, are indifferent, failing to recognize that closer
-care for the educational interest of their young employés
-would enhance their own profit, and the pupils are often
-too tired to attend any school. The law at present says,
-“Children are compelled to attend school till the age of
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_331">331</span>thirteen,” it therefore creates the impression that at the age
-of thirteen the obligation ceases. The law alone can
-remove this impression, and it must in the future say:
-“Young people are compelled to attend continuation schools
-till the age of seventeen”.</p>
-
-<p>The Committee, in coming to the conclusion that a compulsory
-system is necessary, has been confirmed in the conclusion
-by the elaborate organization of day and evening
-schools (continuation) in Germany and Switzerland, and by
-the movement in France for the extension of educational
-opportunities during the years following the conclusion of
-the day-school course. The Committee has also discovered
-signs of the growth of opinion in England in favour of such
-a course, and this Government has already adopted it in the
-Scotch Act of 1908. Out of eighty-nine witnesses examined
-on this question sixty declared themselves in favour
-of this compulsion, and of the twenty-nine who objected,
-many modified their objections. The Committee felt themselves
-justified in recommending that the example of the
-Scotch Act be followed, and that every local education
-authority should be required to establish suitable continuation
-classes, and that attendance should be made compulsory
-for all young persons under seventeen, when the local
-education authority make by-laws to that effect.</p>
-
-<p>The obligation for the satisfactory working of the compulsion
-would be thrown primarily on the employer. Every
-employer would be bound to supply the officer of the
-education authority with the names of young people in his
-employ; to arrange the hours of work so as to make it
-possible for them to attend classes on certain days or nights
-without causing the overstrain of their bodies; it would be
-his duty to inspect the attendance cards of pupils at the
-classes; and he would be forbidden under penalties to keep
-in his employment anyone not in regular attendance.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_332">332</span>The local authority would be called on to draw up its
-by-laws with due regard to the character of the employment
-in various districts, so as to cause as little inconvenience as
-possible to trade, and avoid any physical overstrain to
-pupils. All street selling by boys and girls under seventeen
-would be prohibited, except in the case of those who were
-formerly licensed, and this licence would be forfeited unless
-the holders’ attendance card proved the necessary attendance
-at the continuation school.</p>
-
-<p>The Committee make special suggestions as to girls in
-urban districts, and generally as regards rural districts.
-Various needs demand various provisions. The point,
-however, which stands out most clearly is that after all
-needs have been weighed, and after all objections have been
-considered, a system of compulsory continuation classes is
-recommended both in the interests of the young people,
-who, for want of such classes, miss the fruit of their education,
-and in the interest of the community, who have to
-bear the burden of the unemployed.</p>
-
-<p>Germany and Switzerland have established compulsory
-continuation schools; Scotland has now followed their
-example. The Consultative Committee has now shown
-that England is ready, and has suggested a practicable
-scheme. Will the men and women whose hearts are torn,
-and whose national pride is wounded by the sight of so
-many workers unable to earn a living wage, and whose
-reason tells them that their unemployed are often incompetent,
-because their training stopped and licence began at
-thirteen years of age, and whose minds have now been
-informed by figures that it is for want of care during the
-most critical period of their lives that loafers and vagrants
-are made—will the men and women who thus feel and
-know make the Government understand that this one thing
-it is necessary shall be taken in hand without further delay?</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
- <span class="pagenum" id="Page_333">333</span>
- <h3 title="A RACE BETWEEN EDUCATION AND RUIN." id="ch34"><a id="P333"></a>A RACE BETWEEN EDUCATION AND RUIN.<a href="#f341" class="superscr" title="Go to Footnote 1"><sup>[1]</sup></a></h3>
-</div>
-<div class="subhead">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">By Canon Barnett.</span></p>
-
-<p>March, 1912.</p>
-
-</div>
-<div class="footnote" id="f341">
-<p><span class="label"><a href="#ch34" title="Return to text">1</a>&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>
-From “The Westminster Gazette”. By permission of the Editor.</p>
-</div>
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><abbr title="1">I.</abbr></h4>
-
-<p class="firstpara">“<span class="sc">Twenty</span> years too late” is the reflection suggested by
-the report of the success of the Universities’ Experiment of
-Tutorial Classes for Working People. The present industrial
-situation needs, it may be agreed, a working-class
-able to take large and generous views, capable of shaping
-not only a class but a national policy, trained to separate
-the essential from the unessential, and to act consistently
-on principles tried and proved in the history of the past.
-The old Universities have the resources for giving the
-people this equipment. They have wealth; they have
-teachers penetrated by the traditions accumulated in Oxford
-and Cambridge; they exist, we are told, to give liberal
-culture a broader outlook, a historical perspective. The
-Universities, roused by the Workers’ Education Association,
-have, by means of the Tutorial Classes, achieved
-notable success. They have offered to groups of twenty or
-thirty working people in the great towns means by which
-they might enter a larger life, feel the years which are behind,
-and get a grasp of eternal principles. The means
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_334">334</span>have been seized with surprising eagerness. Men after a
-hard day’s work have been found week after week at the
-tutors’ tables for the study of economics, political philosophy,
-or history; they have kept up attendance for three years,
-and they have learnt, to quote the words of some who
-attended a summer meeting in Balliol College, “the wonderful
-development which has taken place in my mind” now
-“that my prejudices have been dispelled and mental horizon
-widened”—that “study is a pleasure rather than a task”.</p>
-
-<p>The students, in a word, receive a share of that larger
-education which the Universities exist to give. But success
-over so small an area, affecting only a few thousand men,
-but serves to show what might have been if the movement
-had commenced twenty years earlier.</p>
-
-<p>The working people have now come into power, and they
-have many wrongs to put right. The anxious question is,
-Will they use their power more wisely and more generously
-than the capitalist class? There is not much sign of a wide
-and generous outlook in a policy which assumes that war is
-the necessary attitude of employed and employers. There
-is not much evidence of an inspiring vision of society when
-there is so little recognition of the interdependence of all
-sorts and conditions of men. There is not much grasp of
-principle among those who begin a strike, which must involve
-untold suffering, as if it were a holiday. The working
-people may have wrongs to bear, they may have splendid
-qualities of faithfulness to comrades and endurance under
-hardships, but they can hardly be said to have that knowledge
-of humanity which makes them humble before the
-best, with a capacity for judgment and a standard by which
-to apply it.</p>
-
-<p>The race in all nations seems to be one between Education
-and Ruin. The Universities who are especially responsible
-for national education have too late begun to
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_335">335</span>share their resources with working people, and the success
-of their long-delayed start has only served to encourage the
-formation of the rival Central Labour College. This College
-is thus described by Mr. Rowland Kenney: “It makes
-no pretence of giving a ‘broad’ education<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. Its teaching
-is frankly partisan. History is dealt with as a record of
-the struggles which have taken place in social groups,
-because of the conflicting interests of the various classes
-that have from time to time divided society<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. Its key
-to the interpretation of Sociology is class interest; dividing
-the social groups into the owners and non-owners of property,
-it points out the common interest of all those who
-work for wages<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. It absolutely cuts out any idea of
-conciliation as a final solution of labour problems.” The
-College, in the name of education, appears to be using its
-forces to block the way to peace and goodwill which it is
-largely the object of education to keep open. It preaches
-a class war, treats every member of the middle class as
-“suspect,” and bitterly opposes the Workers’ Education
-Association because its Council includes University men.
-This College is said to supply the brains behind the labour
-revolt.</p>
-
-<p>The Universities, hating to be reformed, and allowing
-the misuse of their resources by undergraduates, sometimes
-described by Rhodes scholars as “British babes,” have been
-unable to do their part for the nation. They have stood
-aside from elementary education, only coldly tolerating the
-establishment of training colleges in their neighbourhood,
-and only timidly following a few of their members when
-they have led the way in the extension of University teaching.
-It may almost be said that they have lost influence
-over public opinion, and that their mission of raising the
-tone of democracy, of clarifying human sympathies and
-elevating human preferences have passed to other hands.
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_336">336</span>A recent visitor to India remarked on his return that many
-of its difficulties seemed due to its government by “unreformed
-Oxford,” and reflecting on the strike, one is led to
-say that some of its most disturbing features are due to
-unreformed Universities.</p>
-
-<h4 class="subsecthead"><abbr title="2">II.</abbr></h4>
-
-<p>There is something more needed, if not demanded, than
-a rise of wages. A few more shillings a week would soon
-be absorbed by men whose first use of leisure is in the
-enjoyment of somewhat sordid forms of sport. The men
-are hardly to be blamed for what are condemned as low
-tastes and brutal pleasures. They are what their environment
-has made them, and a mining village is not likely to
-develop a love of home-making, a taste for beauty, or any
-joy in the use of the higher faculties of admiration, hope,
-and love. The long, grimy rows of houses, without any
-distinctive features by which a man might recognize and
-become proud of his home. The absence of gardens which
-would call him to enjoy nature and be its fellow-worker;
-the want of a bathroom other than a tub in the sitting-room,
-by which to feel clean from the dirt of the day;
-the meanness of such public buildings as are provided—the
-church, the library, or the meeting-hall—do not
-provoke his soul to admiration or stir up a thirst for
-knowledge; such surroundings are likely to make the
-miner content with his pigeons, his dogs, and his football
-matches. Why, it may be asked, have not more owners
-done what some owners have done, and make a Bournville
-or a Port Sunlight for the workpeople. If out of the
-average 10 per cent profits, it is impossible to provide an appreciable
-addition to the men’s weekly wages, it is not impossible
-to provide better and pleasanter housing. Why is
-it that owners and managers, who by many acts have shown
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_337">337</span>themselves to be people of goodwill, have been content that
-workmen should live under conditions which unfit them to
-enjoy the best things: why is it that with all their charity
-they miss their opportunity? The fault lies, I believe,
-largely with the Church—Established and Free. The
-Church has too often gone on preaching a mediæval system,
-it has not moved with the times, and does not recognize
-that goodwill to-day must find other ways of charity than
-those trodden by our fathers, when they built almshouses
-and provided food or clothing. It has allowed a business
-man to be hard in his business, if he is easy in response to
-charitable appeals. But times have changed, and we no
-longer hope for a society in which rich people are kind to
-poor people; we rather think of a society where employers
-and employed share justly the profits of work; where there
-is no dependent class, and all find pleasure in the gifts of
-character which follow the full growth of manhood in rich
-and poor. If the Church recognized some such conception
-of society it would aim to humanize business relations
-and teach investors to ask, as Bishop Stubbs (whose
-“Social Creed,” lately published in the “Times,” well repays
-study) suggests, “Not only whether a business is <em>safe</em>
-to pay, but whether the business <em>deserves</em> to pay”. Coal-owners,
-under the Church’s influence, might substitute for
-such villages as Tonypandy, villages such as Earswick, and
-then every increase of wages would mean that widening of
-human interests which helps to satisfy the individual and to
-increase the stability of the nation.</p>
-
-<hr class="hr50" />
-
-<p>The strike is doing vast mischief, as it dislocates trade,
-spreads poverty, and embitters class relationships. But all
-its mischief may be outweighed if it forces people to think.
-Our prosperity, the triumphs of machinery, the daily provision
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_338">338</span>of opinions by an ubiquitous Press, have encouraged
-a self-satisfied and easy-going spirit. We do not take pains
-to make up our minds; we do not try to think our rivals’
-thoughts; employers do not put themselves in the men’s
-place, and the men do not put themselves in the employers’
-place; none of us put ourselves in the Germans’ place when
-they are angry at our policy. The greatest danger of the
-time is the forgetfulness of danger, the light-heartedness of
-the people, and the want of seriousness which prefers enjoyment
-to study, and the carelessness which, for example,
-goes on refusing to consider the Insurance Act, saying, “It
-will never come into force”. People will not think. The
-Tariff Reform agitation has done untold good in making, at
-any rate, a few people think out the meaning of Free Trade.
-The strike will do good if it makes people—masters and men—think
-out the interdependence of trade—whence it is that
-profits come—what is the relation between home and foreign
-trade—what is the duty which a trade bears to the State—what
-is the justification for a strike or a lock-out which
-cripples the State—and what are the calls for State interference.
-Professor William James declares that the secret
-and glory of our English-speaking race “consists in nothing
-but two common habits carried into public life—habits
-more precious, perhaps, than any that the human race has
-gained<span class="ellipsis">...</span>. One of them is the habit of trained and disciplined
-good temper towards the opposite party when it
-fairly wins its innings. The other is that of fierce and
-merciless resentment towards every man or set of men who
-break the public peace.” The strike and its sufferings will
-not be in vain if by making us think it strengthens our hold
-on those heirlooms.</p>
-<div class="sig">
-
-<p class="spacedpara"><span class="sc">Samuel A. Barnett.</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="full sp2" />
-
-<p class="section firstpara nf-center"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_339">339</span><span class="fs75">
-PRINTED IN GREAT BRITAIN BY THE UNIVERSITY PRESS, ABERDEEN</span></p>
-
-
-<!--Transcriber's Notes-->
-
-<div class="pbb">
- <hr class="full sp2" />
-</div>
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="tnbox">
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">Transcriber's Notes</h2>
-
-<p class="spacedpara">The following changes have been made to the text as printed:</p>
- <ol class="ol_1">
- <li>Footnotes have been placed close to their respective markers and renumbered
- sequentially within each chapter.
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_5" title="Go to Page 5">5</a>: <i>When, however we come to the third constituent</i>
- <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. A comma has
- been inserted after <i>however</i>. [There is extra space in the line as printed, where
- a comma would be expected.]
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_32" title="Go to Page 32">32</a> (footnote): <i>Fom</i> changed to <i>From</i>.
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_50" title="Go to Page 50">50</a>: Changed ’ to ” after <i>respect</i>. [Quote opens with “]
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_54" title="Go to Page 54">54</a>: Changed <i>some unmeaning task, work die unfreed,</i> to
- <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. <i>taskwork,
- die unfreed</i>. [The reference is to the poem <i>A Summer Night</i> by Matthew Arnold:
- <i>Their lives to some unmeaning taskwork give,</i> <span class="ellipsis">..</span>.]
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_95" title="Go to Page 95">95</a> (bottom line): <i>Henrietta A. Barnett</i> changed to <i>Henrietta O.
- Barnett</i>.
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_137" title="Go to Page 137">137</a>: <i>labouror</i> changed to <i>labourer</i>. [The spelling has been
- checked in a facsimile (not e-text) of the 1834 document being quoted]
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_141" title="Go to Page 141">141</a>: <i>satifies</i> changed to <i>satisfies</i>.
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_156" title="Go to Page 156">156</a>: <i>The corresponding mortality <span class="ellipsis">..</span>. it between two and three times</i>
- changed to <i>is between</i> <span class="ellipsis">..</span>.
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_205" title="Go to Page 205">205</a>: Removed quote mark before <i>Mr. Williams said:</i>
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_212" title="Go to Page 212">212</a>: <i>motthering</i> changed to <i>mothering</i>.
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_230" title="Go to Page 230">230</a>: Footnote index [1] inserted in front of <i>From “The Contemporary
- Review”</i>.
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_249" title="Go to Page 249">249</a>: <i>between £160 and £200 per annum</i> changed to <i>between £160 and
- £700</i>. [Figures verified from the work cited: Riches and Poverty, by E. Chiozza Money
- (1905), p. 42.]
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_271" title="Go to Page 271">271</a>: Inserted comma after <i>Why</i> in <i>Why what would the men have to lean
- against?</i>
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_328" title="Go to Page 328">328</a>: <i>5·300</i> changed to <i>5,300</i>.
- </li>
- <li>Page <a href="#Page_332" title="Go to Page 332">332</a> (bottom line): <i>Samuel H. Barnett</i> changed to <i>Samuel A.
- Barnett</i>.
- </li>
- </ol>
-<p class="spacedpara">The following anomalies in the printed text are noted, but no change has been made:</p>
- <ol class="ol_1">
- <li>Inconsistent hyphenations, spellings and punctuation have been retained as printed,
- where not definitely erroneous. [These are discrete essays, written at different times
- by two hands and reprinted from a range of publications.]
- </li>
- <li>In the children’s writings quoted in <a href="#ch04" title="Go to Chapter 4">Chapter 4</a>, all non-standard spelling,
- punctuation and grammar have been retained as printed.
- </li>
- <li><a href="#contents" title="Go to Table of Contents">Table of contents:</a> Chapter 33 begins on page 327, not 320 as printed. Chapter 34
- begins on page 333, not 327. The entries have not been changed, but in this electronic version
- the page numbers are correctly linked to the head of the chapters.
- </li>
- </ol>
-
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK PRACTICABLE SOCIALISM ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/64825-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/64825-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 35a06c0..0000000
--- a/old/64825-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/64825-h/images/frontispiece.jpg b/old/64825-h/images/frontispiece.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 972fc14..0000000
--- a/old/64825-h/images/frontispiece.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ